AMATEUR XXX STORIES

-

ALPHABETICAL SEX STORY LISTINGS:

A - B - C - D - E - F - G - H - I - J - K - L - M - N - O - P - Q - R - S - T - U - V - W - X - Y - Z

CARREE LOVES BILLY ALL IN ONE MF rom oral anal mast toys

Carree Loves Billy- A story of True Passion, True Love

The following story contains ADULT SEXUAL SITUATIONS.

Do not read any further if you do not wish to read

material of this type. YOU HAVE BEEN WARNED.

I lost my William early in 2001. He was a writer who,

one day, planned to use my diary's, which I kept

through our young courtship and beyond, as a basis for

a true erotic story.

William and I enjoyed reading erotic stories of this

type. He planned to use the pen name Billy Hand.

As a means of therapy for dealing with his loss, I

have taken up the project. Though not as accomplished

as William as a writer, I too, write professionally

for travel and vacation guides.

I hope you enjoy our story as much as I did living it.

Whether you believe our story or not, trust me when I

say it has been embellished little.

I will always truly love the character you will know

as William "Billy" or "Bill" Wilson.

The story begins.

Billy was the only boy I ever thought about. From the

time I was 14 he was my boyfriend.

We went to St Pius X together from the eighth grade

until we graduated from High School. From that time

until he got his drivers license we were really

"pretend" boy and girl friend because, beyond an

occasional smooch here and there, after a movie or a

chaperoned school dance, we were rarely alone

together.

His mom and Dad, as well as mine, made sure of that.

What I knew of sex would rattle in a thimble and if

Billy had an interest or knowledge of it, he never let

on.

Once we turned 16, (our birthdays were on successive

days) our parents lost a little of the control they

had over us as Billy got his license. He was allowed

to drive the family car, and eventually his own, to

work, and, as long as I lived along the way, he was

allowed to stop and see me. I finally talked my mom

into letting us go for little drives on hot summer

nights to cool

off.

"Tell Billy not to let his parents know I let you get

away alone," she would say and smile.

They all had little to worry about because when we did

park, we mostly talked. If Billy had any pent up

sexual energy, he released it by talking. By that

summers end we had gotten into each other's head fully

and totally about every aspects of life and what we

expected of it, except for sex.



I began to think I was obsessed with Billy's seemed

ignorance of the subject.

Towards the end of that summer our goodnight kisses

began to have a tenor that bordered on necking. I was

hoping he and I were both waking up to new horizons.

It wasn't that I wanted to HAVE sex, at least

intercourse, but I was curious about it. I was not a

big masturbator, but I knew what felt good when I

showered and washed. My first real session occurred

after a Show and Tell at a slumber party at my

girlfriend Kim's house.

There were 4 of us sleeping over and we spun a bottle

and HAD to tell the truth about the subject on the

card we picked, after the bottle landed on us.

Megan got-

"describe the last sex you had, when you weren't

alone."

She flushed a beet red, so we all knew she had

something to say.

She had dated Jim Beauchamp, a senior, ever since he

asked her to the Winter Snowball in December. After 8

months of a sophomore dating a senior, something had

to be going on.

Megan made us all swear never to whisper a word, and

she went into detail of a session at Jim's parent's

camp.

A trip to a Met's game in New York actually was a trip

to Jimmy's family camp in the Catskills. She described

every touch and feel and told us what a wonder a penis

was to hold in your hand. I don't know if her story

was all true, but she made me wet. It was the first

time I ever really got juicy and wanted to touch

myself to some finish.



When we finally retired that night I volunteered to

put my sleeping bag on the parlor sofa instead of in

the bedroom. (a lack of space) I was alone and laid on

my stomach with both hands between my legs. I had what

I thought then was a pretty good orgasm, as I bit down

on the sleeping bag to muffle my noises.

Another night a few weeks later I repeated the same

scenario as I replayed Megan's words in my head. I was

beginning to wonder if and when Billy would make a

move on me.

Was I pretty enough? Did Billy find me attractive?

Were we too much "pals," to become anything more?

I had lots of self-doubts about my looks and my body.

That summer, before my junior year, I went bathing

suit shopping and tried on some bikinis. My mom scared

the crap out of me by just walking in my dressing

stall, checking on me.

She saw me in the bikini and said, "With your body,

you won't wear that! Your father would throw a sheet

over you and douse you in Holy Water."

I didn't think I looked THAT good, but mom said that

attracting a crowd would not be a problem. Although I

was never obsessed with my body, I figured my

measurements to be 34c-22-34. That sounded pretty good

to me, but when I looked in the mirror, I was not

impressed.

If Billy was impressed, he never showed it. He never

ever tried to even give me a squeeze or a feel. But,

he sure liked kissing me. He would kiss me often in

public, and when we said goodnight, it was always a

long tongue kiss, but never anything more.

I decided I had to be the aggressor. So, one night,

as we said goodnight at the end of my drive (we never

kissed in front of the house), I put my hands around

his head and fell back onto the seat making him press

his body to me.

I liked it!!

HE liked it!!

His tongue way down my throat, he ground his chest

into mine. I thought he was going to try and feel me,

or do SOMETHING, but after about 3 or 4 minutes, he

sat up and said we better get going before someone got

suspicious.

On subsequent nights we replayed the same scenario,

but he was the one who pushed me back onto the seat

these times. Finally in our third night of this I

feigned a leg cramp and got him to let me shift my

legs, and he, in turn, his.

We returned to kissing and tongue battles, but now I

felt his erection against me. Little by little,

without him really trying or thinking it, he began to

grind me.



I thought, "Oh boy, here we go, he'll try something

and I can set some ground rules." But, he just necked

and ground and pawed at my back and shoulders. How

could he not feel my breasts as I pushed my hard

nipples and chest against him?

But, again, after a while he would call time, finish

the trip up the drive, and drop me off. Three nights

in a row of this was having its affect on me. In 17

years of Catholic upbringing I had masturbated twice,

now I had done the deed these 3 nights in a row, and

it was getting better every time.

If I was getting hot pants and the need for release,

what was Billy doing?

I could only figure that he respected me too much or

was afraid of my reaction to try anything else. I was

vexed at this notion because he was the only boy I was

ever interested in and anyone at school knew it was,

Billy and Carree: couple.

If he touched me inappropriately I was not about to

tell him to let me out of the car and never speak to

me again. We just knew each other too well for that.

But, it was becoming apparent that if anything else

was going to happen, I was to be the initiator.

Sunday morning the public library was closed, but the

University's was open. I asked my Dad for a ride to

their library saying I had a school project due at the

end of the spring recess.

Right after church I changed and Dad brought me there

saying he would give me a few hours before family

Sunday dinner.

Once at the library, my mission was to find books on

sexuality with hopes of answering the questions I did

not want to ask anyone else.

When I went to the look-up to find books on the

subject, there were two books that answered all my

questions, "The Joy of Sex," and "Sexual Revolution; a

Woman's Perspective." They were not exactly textbooks,

but they answered what I wondered, frankly and

to the point. From my reading I discovered that,

Interest in sex is normal.

Masturbation was normal, and healthy.

Good sex can be had without intercourse.

No sex is "dirty" if both agree to it.

Billy's aversion to even breaching the subject was a

fear factor he got from his parents.

Billy probably talked openly and spoke of his wishes

or conquests with his friends.

Billy definitely masturbated each night when he got

home from our sessions.

The fact he would not make the first move was another

parental stigma.

When I had "wet pants," he was probably "leaking" too.

By the time I was ready to leave I was definitely

awakened on many subjects of sex, and wondered why I

hadn't spoken more frankly about them with my

girlfriends.

The night Megan had to describe her sex session with

Jim to us at our slumber party, I bet she and my other

2 friends whispered details after I left the room that

night to take the parlor sofa.

My "virgin Mary" reputation may have made them

uncomfortable talking in front of me. (I was the only

one who worried about Sunday church that night).

I heard them giggling, but with both hands on my

vagina and groaning into my sleeping bag, I really

didn't care or wonder what the subject was then.

In my mind, I released Billy from blame for the fact I

was going home horny, wet, and frustrated from our

recent dates. It was apparent I was going to have to

take the bull by the horns on the sexual front of our

relationship. Whoops, didn't mean that pun, but . . .

Going back to school on Monday, I looked at every girl

and wondered what sex experience they had.

Some girls, I looked up and down and said, "No Way,

NEVER," and others "probably every night."

(why do some girls make themselves look so cheap?)



But one thing I did see.

I was better endowed and developed than most of the

girls in school. Lots had larger breasts, but not the

good shape mine had.

Some had shapelier butts, but had flat chests.

Of course, by the end of the day I wondered if I was a

lesbian.

God, I am sooo paranoid.

I was convinced that, unless Billy was gay,

(No - not more paranoia!),

he HAD to want me, and thought about me often.

I was just going to have to make the first move and

speak frankly to make sure the door was open wide to

honest talk that would not be embarrassing.

Billy brought me home from school as usual on Monday,

but had to get right home to change for work. We spoke

little on the way making small talk about lunch and

homework. I leaned over to kiss him goodbye, a nice

deep kiss, not one we usually shared at this hurried

moment, and I followed it with 3 more pecks on his

cheek and forehead.

I smiled and scooted over, opened the door, got half

way out and turned back and caught him square in the

eyes with a question.

"You DO know how much I care for you, right?" I said.

Stunned at first, he answered, " Yes, I guess so . . .

well of course I do!"

"You think I'm pretty, right?" I countered.

"Are you kidding me? You're the most beautiful girl in

the school, and everyone knows it. I'm proud to walk

down the street with you."

I was stunned; Billy actually said something

flattering with sort of sexual overtones (for him).

Trying to be cool, I closed the door and looked

through the window.

"That's sweet of you to say, what took you so long say

it? girls like hearing things like that, ya know," I

said teasingly.

With that, I turned and walked up the walk and was

surprised he didn't speed off as normal.

When I turned at the door before I walked into the

house I looked back to find him watching me, watching

my ASS, walk away and into the door. I mouthed a kiss

as I went in the house. I watched his car roll down

our long drive to the county road, before he finally

sped away.

I wonder what he was thinking as he coasted down the

drive.

I didn't see Billy, besides at school the rest of the

week. We both had track practice the rest of the week

and that took up our after school time.

The girls' team was bussed over to the University

track to run, while the boys used the school

facilities. I was a second on 3 of the event teams;

I was only there for the exercise, although I did

actually compete once on a relay.

Billy was more serious about it, but was not a star by

any stretch. He wanted to play football, but having to

work weekends to save for college made it impossible.



By Friday I was ready for a night out with Billy.

There was a dance at school and firehouse block party

in town. I told my parents we would go to the dance

and meet them at the block party. That way, after we

showed, we could sneak off together.

My mind raced as to what Billy and I might do for

intimacy alone. I was pretty sure I had him

interested, or at least aware that I was interested.

My world crashed when Billy called and said that his

uncle, the one he worked for, invited him to hunting

camp for the weekend.

Deer season had just opened and the testosterone must

have been running with his family's men. They were all

hunters and Billy wanted into that rite.

Megan called me about 20 minutes later and said her

Jimmy was also going with them and wanted to know if I

wanted to slumber with some of our friends after the

dance. It was going to be 4 girls, all dateless,

because their boyfriends were out hunting Bambi.

We each felt jilted and we knew the boy's ears would

be ringing.

The dance was fun, but there were way more girls than

guys and we danced with each other. A couple of the

more cloddy guys came over to ask for a slow dance.

Each of our group of four decided to accept at least

one invitation and hope the word got to our

boyfriends.

I danced with Mark Smith, a short, shy, kind of cute

guy. We made small talk as we danced where he was

quite outgoing. I told him he was a nice dancer and

thanked him for asking. He was nice, but he wasn't

Billy.

Megan's Dad picked us up after the dance and brought

us all to her house. It was a big house where Megan

had almost the whole second floor to herself. She had

a huge bedroom and the other room was converted into a

TV and study room for her, plus her own bathroom.

Her parents called it "the parlor." We each took a

turn getting changed into our sleepwear and settling

in the tv room.

Meg's mom came up and said good night and reminded us

to stay in the tv room side of the house so we didn't

disturb she and Meg's dad, who slept underneath. With

that, we closed the door to the tv room and took up

spots on the floor, sofa and lounger.

We were all quiet for about 10 seconds until Kim said

"OK, Lets talk about sex!!" and we all laughed.

Megan looked at me and said, " I know you have a

church thing, but get into the girl talk, it will be

fun."

"Meg," I said, "I don't know where this religious

thing about me got started and why you guys have to

whisper dirty jokes and stories around me, but I am

really not the virgin Mary."

"Don't get so upset, it's just a reputation you had in

junior high when you wanted to be a nun," Megan

defended.



"A nun?" I said. "Where did you ever hear that?"



"Well," Kim added, "that was the rumor for as long as

I knew you."

"Not true, not true, not true," I chanted. "I go to

church on Sunday with my parents, because they make

me. That is as close as I am to a nun. You've seen me

in the locker room, do I look like a nun?"



Megan, Kim, and Jennifer all looked at me, then at

each other, and then Kim spoke up.

"Well duh, you have the most incredible body, but you

go out with Billy and he tells his friends you are

frigid. He says you're saving it for God!"

I was stunned. "Well that little DICK, that son of a

bitch," I said, surprising myself at my language.

"I've all but had to tear my clothes off to get him to

touch me. He's never even tried to feel me up."



"He tells others a different story," said Jennifer,

"He told Rob (Jenny's new boyfriend) that he got you

to jerk him off and you put your finger in his cum and

tasted it."

I was mortified and embarrassed. I got up to go home.

"Meg, tell your Dad I need a ride home, NOW."

Megan came and put an arm around me to console me.

"Look," she said. "All guys are assholes when it comes

to this shit. They make up stories to tell their

friends of their conquests. It's a guy thing. They all

do it. Somehow they don't think it ever gets around.

It goes with the territory. He told one person you

were saving it for God, and another you were a

cum-eater.

He gets his stories mixed up.

When Jimmy took me up to his Dads cabin in the

Catskills, he told his friends that we spent 2 days

there, making love, and we did every thing. The truth:

We were there for about 2 hours, with about 15 minutes

of the inny-outty, just like I told you guys."

"Don't let this ruin your night, our night." Jen

continued, "We will have fun, just us girls. We're

gonna talk about sex and find out what's going on in

each other's heads. I even have a porn movie we can

watch later. These nights are special. I have 2

sisters and they both told me to do this as often as

we could. Sex and boys and life are all so confusing.

Here we have each other to cry, laugh and wonder

with."



Wiping tears, I said, "Wow, you're the sister I never

had."



Jenny and Kim came over and we had a group hug.



"We're all sisters," Kim said. "Now lets get to the

dirty talk."

That broke the ice and we all laughed. I felt a lot

better knowing I was invited to this intimate party

because they all liked and cared for me and each

other.



"Yeah," I said. "Fuck the boys. Wow, I do believe

that's the first time I ever said that word out loud."

We all laughed again.

Megan stood up and said, "Lets raid the kitchen and

get back up here and make the guys ears really ring.

Maybe we can even make up a few stories about them."



"Yeah," Jenny added, "GAY stories!!!"



We all laughed like hell as we went down the stairs to

the kitchen.

Armed with soda, chips, pretzels, and some frozen

things that tasted like pizza after you nuked them, we

all went back up stairs and took our spots in front of

the TV. Conan had just started and we all munched for

a few minutes, apparently hungry with a need for a

sugar/salt/carbo high.

My mind drifted a bit and then said aloud, "I can't

believe Billy said I did that."



Kim looked at me saying;

"What? The jerking off, or the tasting."



"The TASTING," I emphasized.

"The masturbating thing is OK, I guess."

After a second or 2 of silence Megan spoke.

"We'll all do it, not just the jerking off thing, the

tasting thing, at least that what my sisters tell me.

They say all women suck it; it's inevitable and

natural and just a part of sex."



"My sister says the same thing," Kim added.

"I was watching a movie with her and when Demi Moore

went down on Michael Douglas, I said Eeewww! She told

me she would love to suck him, and so would I,

someday."



I threw a pillow at her and told he she was a whore,

and she said that oral sex was natural and fun and

happened more often that regular sex. She also said

that a guy licking you down there was the best

orgasm you could have."



"Two votes for the same from MY sisters too," Megan

added.

"They both said that I might think of it as

disgusting, but, eventually giving and receiving it

would be the most regular sex you can have, especially

when a bed and a room aren't handy. My sister Judy

says it's the best foreplay because it makes the guy

harder and really lubes you up, but I can't picture

myself. . ."

There was a stone silence in the room as we all took

in the sudden sex talk; just Conan and Marissa Tomei

were heard in the background, but no one was paying

attention.



"I walked in on my mom doing my Dad,"

Megan shocked us by saying after a 10 second lull.

"Right in the living room one night when I got home

from a dance early. I was quiet coming in so I

wouldn't wake anyone and I saw them in the light of

the TV. I stepped back to the door and opened and shut

it again letting it slam a little. I heard them

shuffle and my mom said something about my being home

early, and that she was looking for a contact lens on

the floor. But, I saw her with her shirt pulled up and

my dad's thing in her mouth. That was the reason I

asked Judy about it."



I think we all tried to picture Meg's mom and Dad in

our minds "doing it" for a second when Jenny, who had

been quiet for the whole exchange finally blurted out;

"I've done it, . . . really. Don't think of me as a

slut. It really was quite natural and fun. Remember

last summer when Rick (her old boyfriend - 3 years

older) went to Denver U. orientation, in Colorado?..

and I went to my sisters in New York?

That was a scam.

We really shacked up for a week in the City.

My sister covered for me with my parents. Students who

lived over 1000 miles were not required to go to the

orientation, but Rick used it as an excuse for us to

go away alone. With him going into college and me just

starting my junior year we figured it might be the

only time we might have to be alone. Plus, with him so

far away, I knew we wouldn't be together anymore.

God, we did it 3 times a day . . .umm, not the blowjob

thing, the screwing thing."

Three sets of eyes trained in on Jenny.



"Wow, true confessions!!!!" Kim said, "Tell us more."

Jenny sort of smiled and then got a little teary.

"It seemed so right at the time," she said. "Giving it

up to him. He taught me so much about sex. But, now I

realize he used me. I only heard from him once after

he left. The first time he came home this past

Christmas, he didn't even call me. I finally called

him and he said he heard I was dating someone else,

and that he was so much older and his life changed.

Being older didn't matter when he had me alone in a

waterbed suite in New York. I felt so grown up at the

time, but it was a lot of fun, at least then."

Jenny started crying and we all hugged her and tried

to comfort her.

"Don't feel sorry for me. I thought I was King Shit,

putting things over on my parents and my friends. I

even let the bastard take pictures of me nude, and

with his . . . his dick in my mouth. I was so fuckin'

dumb," she spat.



Finally I was going to be the voice of reason and get

the party going again.

"Jenny, you can't change what happened," I said. "Take

it as a lesson learned and use it to grow with. You

have so much going for you right now, you have great

marks in school and can go wherever you want to

college, you have a nice boyfriend, and you have lots

of friends. Everyone does things they regret in life,

and at the time you were sure it was the right thing

to do. Who could have talked you out of it."

"You're right," she said. "I thought I was quite the

grown up, and you know what, I had fun, even though it

hurts now."



Megan scooted over on the floor and put her arms

around Jenny and said, "So, tell us, what's it like?"

Should we be afraid? Does the purple monster bite?"



We all chuckled, but really wanted an answer to her

supposed joking questions.



"It's what your sisters said," she agreed as she

looked at Megan and Kim.

"It seems a little funny at first, but it feels so

natural when you do it, you feel powerful and

subservient at the same time. But any doubts about it

are dashed once he puts his tongue in your . . vagina,

oh . . . PUSSY!! Why get medical? THAT is awesome."

Kim looked at Jenny as if she were going to say

something and she stopped herself, then started, then

stopped. "Never mind," she said.



"Go ahead," Jen said. "Ask me, I know what you want to

know."

Kim half smiled, "OK, did he shoot it in your mouth?

Oh God Jen, I'm sorry, it's none of my business."



Jennifer smiled, now somehow OK with her new stature

as "experienced woman."

"Yes, he did and he told me to just swallow without

tasting, but you couldn't help but taste it. I was

salty and a little sweet like, but had the consistency

of egg white or unset Jell-O. It seems gross now, but

at the time, and I suppose it makes a difference if

you really care for the guy, it seems like a reward

and you have something from him in your belly. If you

aren't using it as foreplay for sex, and IT is going

to be the sex, it seems like the thing to do at the

time. Plus the swallowing motion of your mouth makes

them go nuts afterwards. You know the supersensitive

feeling, like when we, you know . . .diddle around

down there."

Wow, a few minutes ago we were deciding if 90 seconds

was too long for a pizza roll in the microwave, and

now we were getting a review on the taste of sperm . .

.well, . . . cum.

It was quiet for a second. I suppose it was the

assumed revelation that we all, "diddle around down

there." That opened a whole new door if we wanted to

talk about that, I guess.



But, I had one more question.

"Am I the only virgin here?"

"Well," Kim said, "since we know Megan and Jenny have

both "done it," I guess you are asking me. I am still

a virgin. I really fear getting pregnant. But, I have

been so close, where I really wanted it and only

common sense stopped me from doing it. As long

as we are telling true confessions, Brad and I jerk

each other off, but usually either in the dark, or in

each others pants. He wants me to put it in my mouth,

but I won't.

My sisters both tell me not to do it until he's (Kim

motions quote marks with her extended fingers) eaten

my pie. God, they talk gross."



Megan reeled around on the floor and stared at me,

"So, kiddo, my friend Carree, the supposed and now

denied Virgin Mary, but still an admitted virgin, who

never wanted to be a nun," she began in one big

breath, "What have you and Billy done at the end of

that long drive to your little house on the hill?

Jimmy B and me have seen you guys parked there at

least twice in the past weeks on his way to bring

me home. I know all and see all."



"Well," I began a little sheepishly, "I wish I had

something juicy to tell you guys but I don't. Billy

just lays on me and necks.

He's a great kisser, but I don't know what to do to

get him to take a little initiative. I take and make

all the first moves. I want to reach down and grab

that hard thing he's pressing up against me, but

shouldn't he make the first move? He's leaving me

frustrated, and I figure he must, you know . . .

do it - when he gets home. I don't want to have

intercourse yet either, only for the fear of getting

pregnant too. But, isn't it normal to get the warm and

wetties and then want to do something about it?

Ummm . . .Together?"

Jenny looked at me and smiled "Wow, a guy who doesn't

know what to do, where did you find him? It's just I

don't know if its a good thing or bad. Have you tried

just saying 'hold me squeeze me' to lead him on a

little?"

"I know it's stupid" I said, "But, I don't want him to

think I'm experienced or anything, you know - cheating

on him."

"JeeeSUS, don't worry about that, guys even like a

girl whose whorey in private . . .a . . . so I've

heard" Megan said.

"My sister coaches me all the time, saying to be a

little aggressive to let him know whose the sex boss.

Like George on Seinfeld; 'you gotta have hand' in the

relationship."



"Well," I said " you guys gotta remember that I don't

have sisters or an experienced partner. So I don't

have a sounding board or a teacher. And this is the

first time we ALL really opened up about sex. I mean,

is it about sex or is it about love and caring for

your partner, or are they both the same."

Jenny took my question to heart. "Sometimes a guy just

wants to see 'how much he can get off you, before you

stop him. But, when you have a relationship where you

really care about the other person, it's wanting to

make them happy. As well as satisfying your own urges,

that's natural. But, if someone tapped him on the

shoulder to cut in, like on a dance floor, you

couldn't just continue. There is definitely a

connection, a bond. Like when we went to New York and

were alone on that waterbed, just touching him was

electric. That was why I showed no fear or reluctance

to have any kind of sex with him. We were two as one.

Unfortunately, it ended up that he was using my love

for him to satisfy his urges and make me a conquest.

After it was over, well the thing that convinced me it

was over, was how I realized and remembered how he

manipulated me during the weeks leading up to our

trip. We were not having serious sex, I was holding

out. I was too stupid to realize I was being set up.

But, the fact he was experienced made our love making

all SEEM natural. He knew ways to get me fired up

where I would be vulnerable. While I regret the way

things happened, now that I know I didn't get pregnant

or get a disease or anything, the experience will

shape all my relationships. To tell you that I didn't

enjoy the sex would be a lie. It was incredible. But,

I couldn't just do it with anyone. A girl who gets all

hot and bothered and seeks out a partner for a night,

is shallow and looking for trouble.

Any time you have a sexual relationship, remember you

might be doing something that will put you with that

person forever. I don't mean to sound like Dr. Laura,

but I worried for a while about consequences. Once I

knew he was gone from my life, I skipped a period.

I called him at school to tell him I was late and he

said he would call me back in a day or two to check on

me. He never called and, like I said before, at

Christmas I had to call HIM.

I could have been 5 months pregnant and he didn't even

care. So, having a partner who doesn't know what to do

or is sheepish isn't all bad.

Explain that you know what he does when he gets home

from seeing you. He will deny it, but if you look him

in the eye and tell him not to lie, because you are

doing the same thing, he should open up.

It's so stupid that everyone denies masturbating,

especially guys, and we ALL do it. If you say you

don't, you are lying."

Jenny's words were just sinking in when Megan's phone

rang. "Oh, that's my phone, hardly anyone has this

number, it must be Jimmy B at deer camp."

She picked up the phone and instead of "hello," she

said, "You DO miss me." She blushed embarrassed,

listened for second and said, "Oops , sorry Heid, I

thought you were my boyfriend . . . (she listened

again) Really! Let me ask" she said cupping the

mouthpiece.

"It's Heidi Stewart, she saw my lights, my mom told

her I might have a slumber. She had a chaperones

reception after the dance, and only one person showed.

She's got a couple pizza's and she wants to know if we

want them."

We all looked at each other and said "Sure, why not?."

Meg uncupped her hand and said "Sure Heid, but we're

all in our PJ's waiting for Prince Charmings to whisk

us away. Can I meet you at my door? Be quiet on the

steps so my Dad doesn't think we're sneaking guys in,

ha ha."

Megan had stairs going up to her room from the

outside, but it was really a fire escape of sorts. No

handle or keyhole from the outside. In plain words,

Meg couldn't sneak in at night.

Heidi Stewart was a 32-year-old divorce who worked at

St Pius. She ran the Alumni Association and was the

Yearbook Advisor. Her snappy personality and clean-cut

good looks made her popular with everyone who ever

went to St Pius.

When she was raising money to reduce tuition, she was

always successful. I can't imagine I would ever mail

them a check after I graduated, but I suppose everyone

felt that way at one time.

Heidi was married to the basketball coach and Phys Ed

instructor, Jerry Wayman. They were a beautiful

couple. Heidi looked like a movie star and Jerry her

leading man. Unfortunately Heidi caught Jerry screwing

one of the girls at school. It ended Jerry's career,

put him on probation for 10 years, and ended his

marriage to Heidi.



Megan and Heidi were more girlfriends than

faculty/student. She had known Meg since she was a kid

and Meg loved having a friend who was an adult, whom

she could trust here intimacies with, since her

sisters moved out. In turn, Meg was mature enough to

be able to listen to Heidi share girl/girl advice. She

had been to parties with all of us at Megs before and

just asked us to be cool at school and call her Ms

Stewart, so she could be professional and all. She

really was just an older version of any of us.

She lived across the backyard from Meg and was really

extended family to Meg Parkers family. She was another

"big sister" to Meg. Heidi could have any guy she

wanted, but chose to be cautious after her marriage

broke up. I'm sure a lot of boys at school dreamed

about her.

There was a drumming of fingernails on the metal door

in the corner and Meg went to answer it.



"Hi Heidi, your party was dud, huh?" Meg said.



"Yes," Heidi bubbled. "We try to get together after

dances for some socializing, but tonight there were 6

chaperones and 4 ended up being men and they probably

don't have "wife clearance" to come to my house.

So, just Mrs. Adams came over. She said she knew she

and I were the only female chaperones and was

wondering why I chose tonight have a get together.

Well, DUH, why didn't she tell me instead of keeping

it a secret? Then when she comes over all she does is

ask questions about Jerry. I think she is frustrated

and wonders if she has a chance with him.

I should tell her that as long as she can lower her

drawers, she has a chance with him. Oh, damn, I'm

sorry, I'm just blabbing away and horning in on your

slumber, . . . enjoy your pizza."



Meg laughed at Heidi's frenetic delivery, "For Gods

sake, take a breath will you? How many cups of coffee

did you have with Mrs. Adams? Come on in and stay a

minute or two, the talk is just getting juicy."

Right away I panicked a little. I didn't mind sharing

intimate details with the girls, and as much as Heidi

was cool, she was still "adult." Heidi realized the

same thing right away.

"No," she said, "your girl talk is for your ears

only."

"But, can we ask you some questions. Guy questions?

Without getting embarrassed? At least I have a couple"

Megan said grabbing Heidi's elbow as she turned to

leave.

"Uh-Oh, this is one of THOSE parties. Comparing love

notes, huh? What makes you think I would have the

answers? My marriage went to hell," Heidi said.

"I'll try to help, but don't put me on a spot. I don't

need to be accused of putting ideas in your heads."

"Well, we were talking about, a . .um. . alternative

sex," Megan said.

Heidi turned and said "Ok, I'm out of here," then

stopped and chuckled.

"Just kidding, let me share something with you that

not everybody knows, and I would appreciate it staying

in this room. You are 4 of the most levelheaded girls

in school. Four girls I think I can call friends. You

all know me outside the walls of St.Pius and you know

when I'm inside those walls I am a different person to

you, OK? We can all trust each other, right?"

We all nodded and looked at her intently.

"Jerry and I were in love in high school, right at St

Pius. The perfect couple. From our sophomore year on,

everyone knew we were going to get married. What

people do not know is that I had an abortion in my

junior year, and was pregnant again when I graduated.

We had to get married. Jerry was a great guy then, but

I would not have married him until after college, if

not for being pregnant. By that time I might have

found out what a cheater he was. He cheated on me all

through my marriage. When I had the car accident and

lost my baby I was devastated mentally and physically.

I could never have children again and I accepted that

as Gods punishment for getting pregnant twice and

being so stupid. Ten years later I found out that

Jerry, while seemingly supporting me, was also

screwing one of the nurses at the hospital. The same

one that tended to me for the 2 weeks I was in the

hospital, he ended up screwing for years!

Once I was recuperated from the accident and we

continued college we were only an hour away from each

other during the week, and lived as husband and wife

on weekends, breaks, and of course all summer, for 4

years. I thought I had a dream marriage. A supporting

husband, who worked his tail off, full time, went to

school, paid the rent, bought the food, paid our

tuitions. We came here and bought that house (pointing

across Megan's yard) and both got jobs at St.Pius

using the educations we earned for ourselves.

When he got caught screwing that girl and we went to

trial for statutory, he fessed up to the whole thing

because the prosecutor had 30 girls to bring into

court and testify that he had affairs with them, some

in school when they were underage. It was sickening.

All of this could have been avoided by what you call

"alternative sex." I wouldn't have found out Jerry was

a jerk right away, but if I hadn't been pregnant and

HAD to get married, my thinking would have changed and

I may have looked at things in a different light."

Heidi was choked up a little and we all got up to hug

and comfort her.

I was the first to speak. "Wow, Heidi, that's quite a

bit of advice that every girl should hear. Thanks, and

I am really so sorry. . .I . . ."

"Please" Heidi interjected,

"Don't feel sorry for me. His cheating and

philandering are things I had no control over. But,

having sex like married people, in high school, was

stupid. We did all that other stuff too and always had

lots of opportunities, you know, being alone.

Jerry's mom was dead and his Dad worked lots of hours.

Their house was always free for us. We were so

beautiful, so smart. But, now I know we could have

shared a lot of the same pleasures, same intimacies

without risking pregnancy, by just not having regular

intercourse. We thought we were grown up, we weren't.

Feeling like you are in love and wanting to express it

is only normal. Wanting, or I guess 'being horny' is

normal too. You guys have to worry about disease more

than I did then. Know your partner.

Where you are lucky is that most of your possible

boyfriends are inexperienced and have no shot of

having HIV, but make sure you know them and their

history.

Alternative sex? Wow, you can have so much fun, so

much pleasure, feel so much in love with hand sex,

oral sex, sex toys, and even anal sex of you're

adventurous, anything you can do that you both

agree to.

But, don't let that loaded penis inside your vagina.

15 minutes of pleasure can screw up your whole life.

Some of you may have already done it and gotten away

with it. Don't press your luck anymore."



"Oh God, I'm lecturing now, ruining your night. I just

don't want to see any of you get hurt. Let me just add

this . . .Love isn't thinking a guy has a cute ass, or

him thinking you have a cute ass or big boobs. Make

sure you, or your partner, isn't just like a dog,

sniffin' butt holes and humpin' legs, as we used to

say. Your body is sacred and you don't share it with

just anyone to have a good time.

You can get off at home, alone, if you have to get

off. I've said way too much, and I can talk to any of

you anytime if you have any questions.

Just don't do it at school. We can have private girl

talk if you feel comfortable asking me questions. OK?"

We all nodded and Heidi turned and was out the door in

a flash. She was obviously uncomfortable about sharing

so much of her own life and problems, but you could

see she was concerned for us.

She saw herself at about the same age, and no one was

there for her. But, now there was a wet blanket to

remove from us so we could enjoy the night.

We all sat and tried to think of something to get the

ball rolling.

Kim went over to the pizza boxes and opened one.

"Oh look," she said, "there's sausage on this one, we

can all start practicing now."

We all laughed like hell at her joke and got up to get

pizza too.

"If we're practicing with the sausage," Jenny said "I

hope the boys are having anchovies on theirs."

Again we all laughed when we got the "fish smell"

joke, but I admit, it took me a second longer than the

others.

We wolfed down pizza for a few minutes and watched the

end of Conan, and then some comics that came on next.

Then we turned our circle more towards each other

again.

Megan looked at us saying, "Anal sex, did she really

say that?"

You won't believe this," Kim began, "But my one sister

says she prefers anal to regular sex. My other sister

says she tried it and would leave it, but it is very

intimate, but there is lots of prep for it that

changes the mood. It's not something you do on a

date in the back of a car. I just cannot imagine even

trying it."

"Rick wanted me to try it," Jenny cut in, "On our

little honeymoon from hell in New York? I say that

like I didn't enjoy that week with Rick. I really did,

don't think that he raped me, or anything. Anyway, he

tried . . . a . . .um . . .stuff . . . back there. It

was morning and I hadn't . . .you know . . . went yet.

It seemed pretty gross at the time."

"I think the 'Joy of Sex' says to use a light enema,

like a Fleet, a couple of them to avoid messes, and

lots and lots of lube," I added.

"It makes it easier if you want to be that

adventurous."



All conversation stopped, and all 3 girls looked at

me. "You read up on anal sex?" Megan asked astounded.



"Well, . . .not on purpose," I said. "I was reading

the 'Joy of Sex' and just came to that part. I wasn't

exactly looking for pointers for my next date with

Billy."

That got a laugh for my 3 friends who never heard me

say 'poop' without apologizing.

"Kim, your sister prefers it? I can't imagine that.

What's wrong with her?" Jenny asked.

"Hey, I'm just telling you what she said. She said it

wasn't something you did 4 times a week, but that when

it happened it was special and real intimate." Kim

added.

"I had asked her about it when that rumor mill thing

went around about high schoolers having more sex and

less pregnancy. They say that's because of anal sex,

more kids doing it."

"Oh, that was just one of those urban legends," Megan

chided. "I saw that one too, on my Dads computer.

There was a video clip with it that had some chick

saying

"I'm not going to screw up my life, getting pregnant,"

then she walks away like she has a load in her pants.

Don't believe all that stuff. But, when I did ask my

sisters about it, they both hedged and said was a

personal choice of a committed couple.

I didn't press, it sounded gross. But, I know people

do it."

We looked like 4 zombies being led off into the night

as our minds wandered about the awful things men do to

your bodies to get off. I've had in my mind, for a

long time; any sex act I did not enjoy would be off

limits. I was not going to be a subservient sex tool

to anyone.

Finally Megan stood up. "OK, lets get our minds off of

things that are scaring us, ruining our mood. This is

supposed to be a giggly fun party. I don't wanna talk

sex no more.

I WANT TO SEE IT.

Lets put on the porno movie!!!"

"God, I don't believe you actually have one of those

things," I said. "Where did you get it?"

"From my sister, who else," Kim laughed. "I told her

we were having a slumber and planned to talk sex and

boys and she suggested it. She and her husband have a

lot of them. She said she got hooked on them in her

sorority days for a source of laughs, and to ease

tension and stress. You know, with what you

do afterward. She even told me they had blanket

parties where a bunch of girls sit with blankets over

each of them, watching pornies, and they could use

their hands as they liked without the others seeing.

She said it sounded 'lezzie' but it wasn't at all."

Megan slipped the movie in the VCR and went to lock

the door so her parents couldn't walk in. The movie

opened with some guy talking about the new bunch of

girls he had for his viewers, and they were all new to

the porno business.

Then a girl appears on a couch and the guy interviewed

her about sex, what she liked and didn't. Before you

knew it she was nude and masturbating. We giggled and

made fun of marks on her body and supposed what she

was thinking as she began to make loud squeally

noises.

Then the guy who interviewed her came into the shot

and began to lick her vagina. We got quiet for a bit,

then Kim made some comment and we all laughed and

started throwing in barbs. A few minutes later she had

this huge penis half way down her throat. I was

mesmerized, because, it was the first real penis I had

ever seen. I had seen drawings, but never a real one.

It was huge, but this girl had done this before, and

she looked like she really enjoyed it. She licked him

all over and sucked on his balls, smiling at him.



Kim and Megan were a riot with their comments.

Jennifer was pretty quiet.

I laughed, but was a little uncomfortable seeing all

this for the first time.

Then, the guy lays the girl out with her legs way up

over her head and he puts his penis at the shaved

opening (Kim made a lot of barber jokes at that, too)

of her vagina, and slides the whole

thing in.

We all sat in stunned silence that this huge thing

could slide into such a little girl.

Boy, did she love it. I must say she made ME hot too.

We grew more comfortable with the scenes as they

changed positions over and over and we each threw in

funny comments. Then finally he started moaning and he

pulled his huge penis out and she scooted right down

and put her mouth over it. She then held her mouth

open so the camera could see a mouthful of this thick

milk white stuff, and she swallows it and licks and

sucks him more.

Four girls with eyes bugged out watched in silence

while the guy squirmed and shouted, and the girl

sucked and swallowed.

"Girls," Jennifer said, "That is what a full blow job

is, like it or not. That's what it looks like. But, I

can tell you that when you are with someone you love,

it is making love, not a blowjob, and can be

beautiful. I know we all laughed at this, but it is

pretty downgrading to women."

"That may be true," Kim, said, "But, this whole

performance was for the sake of sexual entertainment,

and quite frankly, I was entertained, and I learned a

few things."

The rest of us were pretty much quiet and did not

participate in the short lived tˆte-…-tˆte.

I think we were all anxious to see the next scene and

I wondered how hot that first one had made the others.

I know I was a little warm down below.

The next few scenes offered more of the same, script

and acting wise. The same guy with the huge penis

having oral sex with some young girl, then screwing

her brains out and having his orgasm either in her

mouth or on her face. We made fun of the noises the

girls made and were having a general good time, but

were bored after seeing the same thing over and over.

At least now I knew what a penis really looked like,

and what sex acts looked like.

If not in the company of my girlfriends, I would have

been quite mortified.

The fourth scene was a girl, with almost no boobs at

all, masturbating a guy with her feet.

It made great fodder for jokes and girl catcalls. All

3 of my friends had probably, at least, done that with

their boyfriends, but definitely NOT with their feet.

When the guy finally had his orgasm, (God I have to

start talking less technical), when he finally

CAME, he shot it high into the air and into her hair

and then a second volley to her chest, before more

oozed onto her feet.



Megan jumped to her knees," Wow, what would that feel

like inside of you? He must have squirted half a cup.

He could have knocked over cans on a fence post at 20

feet!!"

"Well, girls, I guess we know Jimmy B is not a big

cummer," Jenny said as she poked at Meg.

Meg was embarrassed at her outburst and was quick to

defend herself and her beau.

"Well, I only see a thimbleful in the end of the

condom, and he's gone and cleaned up before I could

really get a good look both times."

"Ohhh, BOTH times. Ladies we now know that Meg has

done it twice" Kim cheered.

Meg shot Kim a look, and then smiled when she realized

it was just kidding around.



Meg gave her a little sneer, saying, "Don't worry,

you'll catch up . . . when that boyfriend of yours can

get it up."

"Oh, he can get it up" Kim retorted, "and it's as big

as that guys is, too. I am NOT kidding!"

I wished I had something to add, but was enjoying

their playing. I noticed the screen had 2 new people

on it.

"Look," I said "a NEW guy and a new girl!"

The guy behind the camera introduced the couple as a

one that were married and only worked with each other

in adult movies.

They had only made a few and were getting out of the

business soon. They said they truly made love in their

scenes and were strictly in it for the money, and were

not shy about their love and how they made it. The guy

told them to do their thing and they began.

The scene began with all their clothes on, which

surprised us.

They went through all of the stages of foreplay, and

were quite sensuous in every way. When the girl got

down to put the penis in her mouth, she had me wanting

to do it. They were hot, and all 4 of us were quiet

and, I am sure, pretty juicy.

"Man, I could use one of those blanket party deals

right now," Megan said.

"Do you really want all of us to see you masturbate?"

Kim questioned.

"Well, with a blanket over you, no one really sees,"

Jennifer reasoned.

"Let's face it, we're all going to do it thinking

about this scene, and it's not even over."

"I have to admit," I began, "Its got me pretty steamy

and they aren't even done yet."

After watching them go down on each other, with both

of them licking each other everywhere, and I do mean

everywhere, he finally began to make love to her.

I mean really putting his penis, . . .his DICK (I had

seen 5 of them tonight, I was on a first name basis,

now) inside of her. They were lip locked as he humped

his dick in and out of her. The way she held on to his

back and dug her fingers into him, it was apparent she

was in love with him and what he was doing to her.

He got up and quickly turned her over to all fours and

he plowed into her again. He leaned over her and

grabbed her breasts and they touched tongues, swapping

spit.

She whispered to him to touch her ass and he went back

to his knees. He stuck a thumb in his mouth and

brought it down to her anus and pushed it right in.

She quickly squealed with joy as he began sawing the

thumb in and out of her to same rhythm as his dick in

her . . .pussy.

After a minute or two he produced a plastic bottle of

liquid oil, or gel and began to put it on her anus and

then push it in with his thumb.

We all knew what was coming.

"He's really going to do it, isn't he," Jenny said. "I

never thought it could be so sensuous, or at least

look that way."

"It's a little alarming how stretched out and open she

is," I said.

"I think she has done this before," I chuckled.

He then pulled his dick out of her and took the lube

bottle and laid 2 lines of lube along its length and

then a huge dollop on the tip of his dick.

He pressed it to her anus and she told him to go slow

at first. She drew quick breaths as he pressed

forward, and she pushed him back with her hand a

couple times, but soon, he was pressed right up

against her.

After a minute she looked back and told him to

fuck her. He began sawing in and out of her. I was so

turned on by the sensuality of the whole scene that

this act, which I would have considered a perverted

ticket to hell an hour ago, looked like the most

natural love making I had seen yet.

Within minutes she began to moan and cheer him on to

continue his onslaught into her butt.

She said she wanted to see his face as her fucked her

and he pulled his glistening dick out of her.

She rolled to her back and brought her legs up and he

put a pillow under her butt.

He put his dick up to her anus,. . errr . . asshole,

and it swallowed him right in. Her breathing became

long hard wheezes as she built towards an orgasm and

she soon had a wild-eyed look on her face and she quit

breathing and was turning red as a beet.

Then the most blood-curdling yell came from her mouth

and she appeared to pee to big squirts.

I was beginning to think she had lost bodily function

control when Jenny blurted out, "She's a squirter, a

real female ejaculator."



"She's peeing!" I said.

"No," Jenny said without taking her eyes off the

screen, "It's not pee, see, it's clear. It's actually

from the natural lube ducts in your body. Think about

how good it feels when you 'cream your jeans', and

imagine squirting from there. It's supposed to be

awesome. It's a g-spot orgasm."

I had read about them in the Joy of Sex.

As Jenny finished speaking, the girl on the screen

began to convulse a little and she used what little

coordinated strength she had to push the man out of

her.

She lay there gasping for breath, and vibrating like

she had a current going through her. She finally

opened her eyes and smiled at her partner and he again

pushed into her butt and began screwing her like

crazy.

She had another of those earth shattering, seeming

near death, orgasms when he called out that he was

going to cum.

She drew her ass off his dick and went right for the

slippery head that just came out of her ass.

Without really putting it in her mouth, (Thank God!),

she opened her mouth and he, without stroking or

touching himself, began shooting jets of cum into her

mouth. Not one or two, but 5 or 6.

She swallowed some but let the rest run out of her

mouth onto his dick.

She used it as a lube to then run her hand up and down

it's length, made an O with her fingers to run it

right up to the tip, squee-geeing the cum from his

dick. She then put it in her mouth, sucked a little,

showed some cum on her tongue, swallowed and

mouthed "I love you" to the guy and they kissed,

swapping the juices she had in her mouth.

THE END came up on the screen and we all sat there

dumbfounded.

"THAT WAS HOT," Kim was the first to say. "If you told

me what they were going to do I would have said to

skip the movie, it sounded too disgusting. But that

was HOT. What kind of orgasm was THAT. Now I know why

my sister says she likes anal so much."

"I never would have thought," Jenny began, "that any

lovemaking could have been that sensual, that hot. I

read about squirting orgasms once and thought it was a

myth. I heard of girls passing out with an orgasm and

thought that was a figure of speech, but she was close

to lights out. Hard to believe OUR bodies are capable

of that."

"I think it's hard to believe our boys are capable of

that," Meg added. " I still don't want nobody sticking

a dick up my butt, or shooting their stuff in my

mouth. But I have to admit that with the right guy, at

the right time . . . ."

I think I shocked everyone when I blurted out, "me

too, the right guy, the right time, the right

situation, all of that seems feasible. You know, an

option.

One thing I know is now true, that I never understood

when I read it before; NOTHING two people do,

with each other's consent, is perverted or

unreasonable.

That couple was on the same page. I wanted to screw

that guy, he was so gentle, loving and feeling towards

her."

"Wow," Kim said, "the Virgin Mary gives it up for a

porno star!"

I picked up a throw pillow and threw it at Kim. We all

laughed and then sat back and relaxed.

"Now what do we do," Megan asked. "It's just 2:45,

what do we do now? I'm a little too keyed up to go to

sleep."

Jenny looked at each of us and said, "I have a

suggestion, if everyone is game. Let's pass out the

blankets for that blanket party thing Kim's sister

told her about, turn out the lights and rewind that

scene. We are all friends here. We've seen each other

shower and change clothes, you know, gotten personal.

I think we all feel a little, or maybe a lot, ummm,

"frustrated" by the hot sex scene we saw.

It's something else we can share that's special. If

you guys don't want to do that, I have to go take a

long shower."

"Let me get this straight," Megan said. "We all sit

and get a blanket to cover ourselves, and we let our

hands do what comes naturally and no one can see. But

we can hear each other."

"That's what my sister said," Kim said sheepishly.

"You sit, you know, like we are, Indian style, so

everything is, you know, opened up. You have the

blanket over the front of you and

you can do what you want. It sounded pretty kinky when

she told me, but it's sounding pretty good right now.

Or else, I'M going to need a long shower too."

"You know I'm in" Jenny said. "I let a guy take a

picture of me with his dick in my mouth, that's

probably all over the internet by now, so. . . I can't

be anymore embarrassed, and you guys are friends and

I'm ultimately closer to you than anyone in the world.

Plus I can talk to you guys about more things that

ANYONE, even my mom or sisters. It seems right."

"Carree, how about you?" Megan said. "If you don't

want to, we won't do it. I respect you too much to

force you to do it, or to leave the room so we can."

I was flattered that she felt that way about our

friendship and had no qualms about expressing it to

the others. She and I never talked about sex or that

kind of personal stuff much, me being the Virgin Mary

and all (ha ha), but all of a sudden, with that

personal mountain climbed, we became true sisters.

"I'm in," I said. "That scene had me going and I

wanted to touch myself the first time I saw it. But,

before we do, there is one thing I have to say, or

tell, you all.

We all had confessions of a sort tonight, and you know

I am still a virgin, my boyfriend is a lying dud who

doesn't, as they say, have the balls, to try and touch

me to express his feelings to me. You all thought I

was the Virgin Mary, saving myself to be a nun.

I have to tell you this.

Back a few months ago when Meg gave us details of her

trip to Jimmy's cabin, when we played Truth Spin. She

described in detail about holding Jimmy's peni . . .I

mean, dick, and getting laid and everything. Kim

didn't have a fourth place to sleep in her room, so I

agreed to put my sleeping bag on the sofa in the

parlor. Well, just to show you I am normal, I'll tell

you this.

I diddled myself for an hour that night on that sofa,

thinking about Meg and Jimmy getting it on. And, I

didn't even know what a real penis, I mean DICK,

looked like until tonight, besides drawings.

But, I was hot as hell. A few weeks later, I replayed

her story in my mind one night when I couldn't sleep

and did the same thing.

So, please don't patronize me.

I'm not a nun, I don't want to be a nun. I would love

to get made love to, just like all of you guys. I want

to learn about sex and be able to share questions and

thoughts with my 'sisters'."

"Lordy," Jenny said, "You sure surprise me, Carree.

You were the one I wanted to tell about my New York

trip after Rick ignored me and threw me away. I wanted

you to tell me what to do so I could make myself right

with God. That's how much I thought you WERE 'the

Virgin Mary'. You know, we get preconceived notions

and . . . .well, I'm real sorry Carree. I think we can

all be more honest now."

"Well," I said. "Where are the blankets?"

Megan got up a little sheepishly and went to the

closet and pulled out 4 blankets.

"I can't believe we are doing this," she said. "I

can't believe I want to do this. This is the way I

felt going up the mountain road to Jimmy's camp that

day . . . Excited, but scared."

We all pulled up spots in front of the sofa, except

Kim, who was in front of the recliner right along side

us.

We sat "Indian style" as Meg dropped blankets to each

of us and one to her spot next to me.

I grabbed mine and stuffed part of the blanket under

my knees and butt and pulled the corners up over my

shoulders and I then leaned back to seal my "tent."

All that showed was my head.

Jenny and Kim took my lead and Meg was busying herself

getting the remote and turning off the lights.

"My sister said it sounded kind of 'lezzie'," Kim

said, " and I am just thinking that if I tried to

explain this to anyone, it would sound awful."

"Hey, that's one thing we have to discuss," Megan said

as she plopped down beside me.

"We are all best friends to each other, but we each

have other friends we confide in. NO ONE else can ever

find out that we did this. AGREED?? Consider that

signed in blood?"

The three of us nodded as Meg continued, . . ."and no

one has to do anything here. If anyone has second

thoughts, no one makes fun or anything like that. But

if you don't do anything, you are still part of this

pact, OK?." Again the 3 of us nodded assent.

"Megan," I said, "if that is aimed at me I want you to

know that I am 100% into this. Damn it all, I can't

get that schlub boyfriend of mine to put some

sexcitement into my life, I may as well do something

to do it myself."

"Sexcitement?" Jennifer said laughing.



"Did I say SEXcitement?" I asked, "Wow, a real

Freudian slip."



We all laughed as it broke up a little tension. There

we sat, four of us, in our PJ's , in our little tents,

as Meg rewound the tape to the spot where the last

scene started. She found it and pushed play, and then

busied herself making her tent to hide herself.

"OK, now. No talking or making jokes or anything, and

have fun everybody," Jenny said as if we were about to

go on a ride at Disney.

The camera guy just finished introducing the couple

and they just began to kiss as we settled in, four

sets of eyes staring at the screen. I wondered, as it

started, if we would think it was as hot now, already

knowing what happens.

Once the guy had the girl's shirt up and was fondling

and kissing her breasts, at least I got the answer to

that question. The girl's breasts were big and full,

like mine, and my own nipples ached to be touched, and

touch I did.

You could make some pretty bold moves under the

blanket without being detected by anyone watching. I

grew more confident right away. I pinched and twisted

my nipples and squeezed my breast in tandem with what

I saw on the screen. I noticed right away that

my breathing was quickened and I wondered if the

others noticed too.



"Screw it," I thought to myself. I am going to make as

if they are not in the room. If they don't like the

noise I make, too bad.

But, I also thought that if anyone was going to be

modest about breathing heavy or making noise, maybe my

own heavy breathing or groans might embolden them to

let loose.

My arms were crossed as I cupped and pinched each

breast in unison with the screen, then, as the guy

pulled her shorts off and kissed his way down her

belly to begin licking her vagina, or "eating her," I

slid my own hand from under my pajama top to inside my

bottoms. I was wet, I knew, but I was not aware how

wet. A lot more than any other times I did this. I

used my fingers to pull my lips apart and I slid my

index finger all the way down the slit and then back

up to my little bud, my clit.

As I stroked it a couple times with my index and

middle finger and felt it jump and engorge. It felt

great and I blew out a mouthful of air and sucked in

another through my nose. I kept those two fingers

right on the spot and swirled them in a small

circular motion. Ahh, I was happy.

The couple on the screen had twisted themselves into a

69 position and were happily licking and fondling each

other. The thought of putting a penis in my mouth did

not seem as revolting as it had other times I thought

about it.

I heard myself hum a kind of soft groan on one of my

exhales. I knew I was on my way to a nice orgasm.

While I was concentrating on the screen, I did notice

that there were 3 other girls in the room, all heavy

breathing. I made sure I didn't look at any of them so

as not to embarrass them or break my own

concentration.

The tv duo were now putting their tongues in each

others butt holes. I didn't really understand this,

what pleasure might come from it, but soon the girl

could no longer concentrate on holding the guys balls

and penis aside to get way down there. She raised her

head and moaned an "oh my God," as his tongue drilled

her anus. It dilated and he soon filled it with spit

and put his finger up her butt and continued licking

her vagina . . .PUSSY.

Those words, pussy, dick, cock, asshole, fuck, all

make everything sound sexier. I just have a hard time

getting used to using them. I don't like "cunt"

though. It just has a sound that makes whatever you

are talking about seem filthy. After some moans and

mewls on the screen, the girl dropped her mouth around

his dick and rapid fired it deep, in and out of her

throat.

Finally she could take no more of his licking and

reached her hand between his lips and her pussy and

rolled off him.

She looked him in the eye and said, "fuck me."

She was putting me over the first edge of my first

orgasm. He knelt between her legs and smacked his dick

on her pussy a few times, then he just pushed between

her lips and sunk in to the hilt.

She groaned and he began churning his hips in slow

circular strokes as he hugged her body against him.

Little squeaks from deep in her throat could be heard

each time he hit bottom.

Finally he kneeled back, holding her to him and he

turned and put her butt on the edge of a sofa. His

cock as at the same level as her pussy and he threaded

it in and out with long strokes.

I hadn't noticed before when they showed a close up of

his dick going in her, she had a hand underneath

herself and was fingering her own asshole.

Almost unconsciously, I dipped my wet fingers down

underneath myself and touched my own bottom hole. It

responded to my touch, and seemed to open and flinch.

It went from a place to poop from, to an erogenous

zone.

God, we are funny creatures.

I thought to put one finger on my butt hole and one on

my clit, but to do that I would have to lean forward

too much and I was afraid of the blanket falling down.

That would have to wait for a more private session.

As the girl on the screen said "do me doggie," he

pulled his dick from her pussy to let her off the

couch.

She knelt on the floor and spread her knees and

lowered her head to a waiting pillow. I must have been

distracted the first time I saw this, because I hadn't

noticed that, before he sunk his dick back into her,

he licked her pussy and dragged his tongue from

there back up to her asshole.

She closed her eyes and moaned a long "ohhhhh."

As he put his dick back to her pussy I could hold off

no longer.

I tipped my head back and let out a stifled gutty

moan. I was cumming. My two fingers were sliding on

either side of my clit.

It never felt it so big!

I dug my fingers hard into myself letting out, Hmmmt,

Hmmt, Hmmt, Hmmmt, as I wanted to rut against myself.

I came 3 times right in a row and probably would have

went for more except I didn't want to take my eyes off

the screen.

Sounds in the room told me I was not the only one

cumming.

We all made different noises, some high pitched hums,

some guttural grunts, but I think we were all cumming

about the same time.

The guy on the screen was now on his feet bent over

her kissing her while sawing in and out of her. She

told him to touch her ass. He pulled from for a second

and grabbed a bottle of some kind of lube. He pushed

back into her and began filling the dimple of her butt

with the lube. He then pushed it in with his thumb.

My clit was sensitive, but I wanted another orgasm so

I put a finger inside me, which I really hadn't done

much, afraid of "breaking" myself.

I was sawing my middle finger in small strokes in and

out of my little pussy without really touching my clit

and I felt a new and different kind of orgasm building

deep within me.

The guy on the screen had just pulled from the girl's

pussy and was putting lines of the liquid lube along

his cock. Once he put a dollop on the tip I knew he

was going to push that big thing up her butt.

I still could not believe how easily it just slid

right in.

It was a lot sexier this time than the first time I

saw it, maybe because I had touched my own nether hole

and found that it was so responsive.

She was having somewhat of a tough time taking it in

herself at first, but she never asked him to stop,

just to go slow.

Soon, he had a rhythm and she was cumming to beat the

band making noises like I never heard before.

She said something about seeing his face and he pulled

from her as she flipped to her back. He took the

pillow her head was on and put it under her butt and

she lifted her legs way up beside her head.

Her butt hole was tipped right up to him and open for

him. He took the lube bottle and squirted a clear shot

right into her dilated hole.

He positioned his penis right there and drove into her

butt. Her eyes rolled back and she began meeting his

strokes. When she got to the part where she was like

vibrating and turning red, where I thought she was

convulsing and passing out, she started the squirting.

As she did that I started to cum again myself. But,

this was an orgasm, not from my clit, but from inside

me. No matter where it was from, it was getting harder

and harder not to scream out.

Just then the girl on the screen gave here blood

curdling report to her orgasms as she had to push the

guy from her body. She vibrated like she had an

electric wire going through her and she sprayed 3

times into the air from her pussy.

I noticed this time that the guy tried to catch them

in his mouth and he did get a good shot of the third

volley.

She let out a big sigh and smiled at him and he stuck

his dick right back in her butt hole.

I was, in the meantime, having my second and third

vaginal orgasm from my stroking. I let out some ooo's

and ahh's as they came over me.

They were different from the violent orgasms from my

clit, but felt as good. My hand was soaked, as I

suspected my pajama bottoms were, as I pulled my

middle finger from my slit and brought it along with

my index finger back to my now rested clit.

He began sawing in earnest in her ass again and she

was starting to have one of those loud electric

orgasms when he said he was cumming.

She pushed at his stomach and pulled herself back and

spun around to get her head near his cock.

She was squirting as she did this, I hadn't seen that

the first time through.

Where does that fluid come from?

I don't know a lot about men and how they cum, but I

always thought they had to have contact with their

hand, another hand or vagina or something to

ejaculate. But, he sat back on his haunches almost

barking like a dog and, without touching his penis,

shot 6 huge shots of white thick cum, she catching

each in her mouth.

She swallowed some and then let it run out over his

dick. As she stroked his dick with her cum slathered

hands, I came one more time from rubbing my clit.

I let out a loud groan, louder than any noise I had

made yet that night.

Meg and Kim, as if they planned it let out loud groans

together, as if they were punched in the stomach. I

could see Meg from the corner of my eye, dropping her

head back resigning herself to the orgasm.

The girl on the screen was just making an O with her

thumb and forefinger at the base of the guys cock,

where it met his balls, and drew it forward to wipe

the cum from his cock.

Once she brought it up to a pinch at the tip she wiped

the load from her fingers to her mouth and breasts.

She looked at his dick again and he groaned a little

and a pearl size drop of cum came out. She licked it

off, showed it to him and swallowed.

That particular act, I thought was very sexy.

Then, she took the dick, that had been up her bowels,

into her mouth and licked it clean. She kissed him and

mouthed "I Love You" to him.

It was over. I just came my last time, a gentle

soothing orgasm from my clit.

The previous cums had desensitized me a little. But, I

had found something new with the orgasms I had from

putting my fingers IN myself.

I was steeped in my own reverie when Jenny let loose

with a long loud grunt as if she were trying to pass a

bowling ball.

I was back in the room now. I was out of my sexually

induced state of private pleasure.

I put my head back and closed my eyes as I listened to

the others finish their deeds and then sigh, as I had,

only to drop their heads back to rest and contemplate

what had just happened.

"If I wasn't convinced those two were not totally in

love and committed to each other, that would have been

a disgusting display," Jenny said through still

slightly labored breathing. "I can't believe how hot

they made that."

"Pretty good way to sum it up, Jen," Megan said. "A

lot of what they did never crossed my mind and if

someone ever suggested it, I would have to call the

Police. Good Lord Jesus Christ, that was hot."

"I never had an O that good ever before. That guy was

hot. The girl was awesome. I imagined myself in her

place. I couldn't have done it, but I admire her for

the commitment she had to her man, his pleasure and

hers." Kim said.

"They did things I never heard or thought of either,

Jen."

"I was stunned," I said. "I never thought I could get

off that much watching things like that. I agree there

were things I never heard or thought of in their

repertoire. They were hot to watch. I really got off."

We all put our heads back and let out long breaths. I

think the other three were thinking the same thing

that I was;

How about the four of us, what did WE just do. We just

blindly did one of the most personal things a living

creature can do, in front of each other because we

were seduced by a tape.

We were put in a sexually induced state and did

something we would never ever think we COULD do.

Was sex that powerful?

Is that why your parents try to keep you from being

alone together?

Would you do ANYTHING, like the girl in the video

scene, if you were hot enough?

Do you lose all control? Could I, could we, control

ourselves if we were put in such a state?

Megan broke my thought process by throwing off her

blanket and standing up. "I don't know about you guys,

but I am bushed. I could fall asleep standing on my

head. Fold your blanket and put them on the top shelf

of that closet. Kim, grab that video and put it away.

I wouldn't want to forget it and have my Dad find it

tomorrow."

With that, Megan disappeared into the bathroom as we

all stood up and followed her orders. We were just

putting the last blanket in the closet when Meg came

out of the john, unlocked the door to the TV-Study

room and crossed to her bedroom.

She stopped about one step out of the room and said,

"Before you guys come in my room and touch anything,

. . uhhhh . . . ummmm . . . .wash your hands."

With that she smiled big and we all laughed. I hadn't

been sure if Meg was tired or remorseful by her

robotic actions after she got up. Now I knew she was

just tired. I didn't want anyone to feel bad about

this.

Kim grabbed her tape and went into the bathroom with

her shoulder bag leaving Jennifer and me in the room.

I looked at Jenny and went to hug her, saying "Now you

know, and we know, why you did what you did when you

went on your little honeymoon with Rick. Look how easy

we got carried away by just watching that video.

Sexuality and curiosity can be very powerful. Don't

ever be ashamed about that again.

You are a fine person and a great friend. Don't let

that cloud hang over you.It could have been any one of

us."

Jen tightened her hug with me and then broke it,

looking me square in the eye. "Thanks, I was thinking

the same thing and wondered if I was fooling myself,

doing so. I guess I wasn't. Thanks. It was great to

hear from you. I hope the others understand like you."

"I'm sure they do," I said as the bathroom door opened

and Kim came out.

"Whose next," Kim blurted as she whisked past us.

"I'm so tuckered I almost fell asleep sitting on the

throne."

Jen and I chuckled as Kim passed and Jen went right

to the bathroom.

"I can't hold it any longer, if you don't mind," Jen

said.

"No, go ahead," I said as I picked up the room a

little for Meg.

There was still a lot of Heidi Stewarts pizza left and

empty soda glasses. I turned off the tv and that left

me in a dark room. I felt my way to the light switch

and turned it on.

Just then Meg and Kim came back in.

Meg said, "I better pick up. So my mom doesn't have to

in the . . . Oh, you got food and cups together.

Thanks."



I noticed as Meg and Kim went around the room picking

up and straightening that they had both shed their

panties. It was easily discernable through the thin PJ

bottoms.

Jen opened the bathroom door and I saw she had lost

hers too. As I made a beeline for the bathroom I knew

I would get rid of mine too, and for the same reason,

they were soaking wet.



It was quite a night. I felt more like a woman, almost

as if I had sex with the guy in the video.

I sighed as I stripped off my bottoms and panties and

sat on the toilet. This night was going to change my

relationship with Billy.

If it didn't, he would be gone from my life.

I couldn't wait for him any longer.

My sexuality was awake.

As much as I wanted to feel a man inside me, I wanted

it to be a man I loved.

Also, Heidi Stewart's words rang in my ears, about how

pregnancy ruined her life. I wouldn't let that happen

to me.

I kicked my panties aside, put on my bottoms, washed

my hands, grabbed a tissue and rolled it around my

soiled underwear.

I tucked that into the waistband of my PJs and pulled

my top down over the waist. I switched off the light

and went to Megan's room where the other three had

already gotten into bed or sleeping bags.

Getting to sleep tonight would not be a problem.

- - - - - - - - - - - - -

If I had dreamed that night, I didn't remember. But,

as I struggled to become awake, I also struggled to

place where I was. I heard voices talking in low

tones. Suddenly the events of last night in Megan's tv

room came home and I realized the voices I heard. As

my eyes focused and fluttered open I heard one of the

voices, Megan's speak to me.

"Earth to Carree, welcome to reality. It's Saturday"

"Oh, good morning!" I managed.

"Not quite" said Kim, as I found the other voice that

brought me out of my sleep. "It's one thirty in the

after noon. Jennifer is in the shower. Megan's already

had hers. You and me are next, but if we want any hot

water, it might be a good idea to go down and catch a

coffee first. Jen has been in there a long time."

Just as Kim finished saying that, the door swung open

and Jennifer came in with towel wrapped around her and

another in her hair.

"What no robe, Jen?" Megan asked. "You could have

given my Dad quite an eyeful if he came up."

"I'm sure I don't have anything that he hasn't seen

before, although I would be pretty embarrassed. My

robe takes up half my overnight bag, so it was the

robe or my dryer, and I love my dryer," Jen said.

"Um" Kim said, "You were in there an AWfully l-o-n-g

time, you could have saved US some hot water, or were

you too busy to think about us."

With that Jennifer turned a bright red as she blushed

a guilty look.

"Oh my God," Megan said. "You did it again in the

shower didn't you, you old horn toad."

"Sorry, I couldn't even wash without arousing myself,

besides, that video is etched pretty good in my brain.

My period is due, and I'm always extra horny then,"

Jen admitted.

"We weren't grilling you," I said, "Just busting on

you. YOU were the one who blushed when Meg said it."

Jen sat on her bed and began drying and combing out

her hair. We were all waiting for her to finish that

and put on some clothes so we could go downstairs for

coffee.

Meg looked around at me and said, "You and Kim better

put on some underwear too. You can see right through

your bottoms."



"I have a robe," I said.

"Me too" Kim echoed. "Don't worry, we'll be decent."

It was quiet in the room for a minute while we watched

Jen stroke her hair out.

I had to get something out into the open. "Is

everybody OK with last night? No regrets? No remorse?

No great pangs of guilt? If so, lets talk about it."

"I'm OK," Meg said as Kim and Jen echoed the same.

"But" Meg continued, "Lets finish the pact we made

last night. We did, what we did, as something four

good girlfriends do, and probably do once in their

life, together like that. I think it made us closer as

friends and sisters. But, once we leave this room to

go downstairs, it never happened. We never mention it

again even amongst ourselves. It's gone. It's just in

our memories, and I am sure we all will remember it as

long as we live. But, it's gone. We never speak of it

again. Fair enough? I am not ashamed of it, but a lot

more can be made of it than it was, and the more we

speak of it, the better the chance it gets out."

"It sounds good to me," I said.

"You're right," Jen chimed in. "I think its best we

leave it right here, and never return to it. Kim, you

can't even girl-talk it your sisters. OK?"

"Signed in blood," Kim said.

"Say goodbye to it girls, and lets go downstairs for

coffee.," Megan said rising.

"Then Carree and Kim can shower and my Dad can drop

you home on his way to pick up my mom at the mall."

The door clicked shut and, as far as I know, no one,

until now, ever spoke another word about it. It was a

special night that was never repeated, at least with

me.

I couldn't wait to see Billy on Sunday night when he

got home. He had explaining to do about the stories he

was telling about us to his friends. He also had to

get a little aggressive with me if he really planned

on making me a part of his life. I would wait no more

for his hormones to kick in.

Sunday came and went without my even hearing from

Billy and by 7:30 I was more than peeved. I decided to

call him. I had gotten my period Saturday night and

was not in the best of moods on Sunday anyway.

He was going to hear from me.

When I dialed I hoped he would answer the phone so I

didn't have to make any small talk with his mom or

Dad, and I got my wish.

"Well, were you ever going to call me, or were you

going to let 3 whole days go by without talking to

me!!" I spat into the phone when I heard his voice.

"Well, uh, I just got home a couple hours ago and I

took a nap and." he started before I interrupted.



"A couple hours ago!! I've been staring at the phone

to make it ring and you have been home a couple hours?

You better start adding something to this relationship

to make me want to see you again. I was hoping you

would miss me, for God's sake."

"Jeepers Carree, let get a word in. I don't feel good.

I didn't want to call you feeling so rotten, so I

thought a nap would make me feel better. But, it

hasn't and your call makes me feel worse. What got

into you this weekend?" Billy questioned.

I wasn't going to let him up. "Maybe a lot got into me

this weekend. Maybe a senior picked me up at the dance

Friday and took me to the lake and...and... Oh SHIT,

Billy, I got my damned period and I feel like crap and

I just wanted to hear your voice. Then, you never

called. I'm sorry for taking my frustration, pain and

anger out on you. I wanted you to cheer me up. It's my

hormones talking."

"Wow, that's the first time I EVER heard you swear. Is

this the first time you got that thing?" he stupidly

asked.

"What thing?" I wanted to make sure of by asking.

"You know, that thing you just said you got today,"

Billy said.

"Do you mean my period?? I've been getting it for 5

years now. Just what planet are you from Billy? Didn't

your mom and Dad ever tell you anything about girls or

sex?" I slammed back at him. I was rolling now, and I

knew I had said more than I wanted to.

Billy got defensive now, and I couldn't blame him.

"You never reported it to me before so I guess I

figured you never had it or it wasn't my business."

"Billy, you have been the only member of the opposite

sex in my life for as long as I knew there was a

difference between male and female. You are part of

almost every decision I make. WHY wouldn't it be any

of your business? What am I to you?" I screamed at

him.



"I guess maybe I don't know. I thought I was going out

with the prettiest, nicest girl I ever knew, until she

left for her school. But, tonight I'm hearing a

ferocious fighting female who I really don't know,"

Billy said.

"You know me Billy, you're the only one who knows me

through and through. Just sometimes I think you are

too dense to realize it," I said.

"You didn't go up to the lake with a senior after the

dance on Friday then?" Billy asked.



"Well, what do you think? You've never even brought me

up there, so how would I know what to do? (I fired my

first shot in my quest of waking Billy up) You know I

would never go out on you. Why? Did you meet a bunch

of lady hunters in the woods who took you to their

cabin to show you real wildlife?" (My second shot) I

said as he began to piss me off again with that stupid

question.

"Of course not. I would never cheat on you either.

Boy, you are in a mood! Listen; tell the real Carree

that I will pick her up for school tomorrow morning at

7:15, OK? Goodnight!" he spat and slammed down the

phone.

Good, I thought. I got him pissed and maybe put an

idea in his head. I don't know if my "senior at the

lake" comment got him jealous or just P O 'ed. But I

think I struck a nerve and gave him the idea that I

might not be ALL his, if he didn't treat me right. I

was in a mood, though, and was a little sorry for

being so hard on him.

As I replayed the things he said to me I was struck by

something. So much so, that I called him back. He

answered on the first ring.

"Billy, What did you mean by "going away to her

school"?" I said without even saying hello.

"You know," he answered. "When you go away to the

convent school or whatever you do when you become a

nun."

"WHEN DID I EVER TELL YOU THAT I WAS GOING TO BE A

NUN? WHO GAVE YOU THAT IDEA? LOOK AT ME; DO I LOOK

LIKE A NUN? WOULD A NUN TELL YOU THAT YOU WERE A

FUCKING IDIOT?" and with that I slammed the phone

down. I had never been so mad or outraged in all of my

life.

I had heard, since I was in 7th or 8th grade that I

was going to be a nun, or was at least a very holy

person who was pure as the driven snow. I always

thought it was funny that people could get that idea

from impressions. In grade school I was always picked

to play Mary in the school Christmas plays. I was a

slight girl, light brown hair, blue eyes, and perfect

complexion. I was, and still am, very neat and well

groomed and dressed. I always volunteered to help the

nuns with anything. Back then we had all nuns for our

teachers. It was my nature, and still is.

I would help any authority figure, any elder, who

was working for my benefit. I always figured I was

known as brown-noser or butt-kisser. But, where in

hell did this nun thing come from?

I stewed until my blood was boiling. I HAD to talk to

someone, and that someone at these times had to be

Megan. I had been in school and friends with Megan

Parker since the 2nd or 3rd grade. We shared a lot.

She was always my defender. There was a real affection

between us. I had always thought that would wane once

we got older because of the seemed competition girls

put themselves through with looks, boys etc. But that

never happened with Meg.

Megan picked up on the first ring.

"Hi, Meg, do you have time to talk?"

"Sure, it looks like Jimmy isn't going to call

tonight. He WILL pay for this. God, don't boys know

anything about keeping a girl happy," Meg said.

"Well, that's part of the reason why I called. I

finally had to call Billy to find out they had been

home for a couple hours, so Jimmy has been home too,"

I informed her.

"Meg, this may be out of the blue, but, do you

remember when we talked on Friday about my status as

Virgin Mary, nun to be, candidate for the convent?"

"Yeah, Yeah, that whole thing," Meg cut me short.

"Tell me," I continued, "Where did you first hear that

notion, ya know that I was going to join the convent."

"When you went on that retreat with the sisters in 7th

grade. You went with the...whatdoyacallit, practice

nuns"

"Novices," I interrupted. "Sister Mary Daniel took me

with 5 novices to some place near Cape Cod for a

retreat. I had never been to the ocean and one of the

novices was a cousin of my mothers. She said we could

spend some time at the beach. We ended up spending

more time in chapel than the beach, but I did get to

see the ocean."

"Well, while you were gone they had us pray for

everyone to get the calling to become members of holy

orders. You know we used to do that at Friday Mass

every week, but when you were gone it was everyday

during morning prayer and announcements. Plus, your

mother used to tell everyone that you were interested.

At least, that's what my mom used to tell me. You knew

all this stuff was going on then..." She said.

"Well, not to any great extent. My mother used to say

it would be nice if I got a vocation from God, but I

had no interest. Her cousin was a novice then and

since dropped out and got married. We had a lot of

time to talk when we went on retreat, and she told me

then it was not for her.

How did this get all blown out? For Gods sake it was 5

or 6 years ago," I said.

"Sister Daniel used to tell people that someday you

might be a teacher at St. Pius and what a special

relationship you had with God." Meg recalled.

"Oh my God, Meg, she was senile THEN. After she taught

us, she must have really went off. Why didn't you ever

tell me that I was targeted like that?"

"To tell you the truth, I believed it for a long time.

I always wanted to know why you would do that with

your life, but I figured if I screwed up a vocation, I

would go straight to hell. You know how gullible you

are at that age. But, later on I knew you had no

intentions. You had a goody two shoes reputation, and

that only fed it.," Meg said.

"Well, get this," I began, "BILLY still thinks I am

going to be a nun. He said he always figured he would

be with me until I went away to, quote,' my school',

unquote.

He said; "I thought I was going out with the

prettiest, nicest girl I ever knew, until she left for

her school." "All this time he thought that if he

touched me he would be soiling a nun, I guess. Right

now I am so goddamned mad at every freaking

nun in that school, especially that old relic sister

Daniel, who, thank God, is gone. Why didn't somebody

tell me all this crap was being said?" I shouted into

the phone.

"Part of it was what I said, you never wanted to screw

up a vocation, but I thought it was pretty obvious you

had changed your mind, if you ever thought to do it. I

mean, seriously Care, a nun built like you? You would

have the boys drooling on the desks. girls who can't

find guys become nuns, Right?."

"I don't think I'm THAT good looking but, thanks for

the vote," I said.

Meg was quick to add, "No one even wants to shower

with you, you look so awesome, Care. Don't you have

eyes! I'm proud of my body, but you look like a model.

C'mon you can't be that naive."

"My mom and Dad always taught me to be modest and to

cover up, not wear any clothes that revealed too much.

If my Dad knew I wore a bikini he would have a fit.

But, I always thought of myself as average." I said.

"Well, trust me," Meg said, "You're not average. Half

the guys in school envy Billy because he's with you."

"I am very flattered by your words Meg. But, I still

cannot believe how far this Virgin Mary and nun stuff

has gone. I think I proved to my 3 best friends this

weekend that I'm not nun material either, right?" I

said.

"We don't go there, Care, but you are definitely right

about that," Meg replied.

"God, I'm going to moon at assembly next week, just to

change my image," I joked.

" You would make a lot of boys dreams come true if you

did," Meg chided.

"Well," I said., "At least now I know where this all

came from and how it kept feeding itself. But, it's

really all so stupid. I will have to work at changing

my image. I don't want to seem like a slut or whore,

but I do want people to be honest with me in day to

day dealings, without them thinking I am going to be a

nun. And, I have to call Billy back and do a little

butt kissing. I called him a fucking idiot. That's the

3rd time in my life I said that word out loud. He must

have crapped his pants. I'll talk to you later Meg,

and...Thanks for being honest and being my best

friend. I wish we could hug right now."

"Consider yourself hugged, I'll see you at school,

Bye," and Meg hung up.

I quickly dialed Billy's number and he answered as if

he were waiting for me to call.

"Hi, Billy, it's me," I sort of whispered

(embarrassed) I'm really sorry I blew up at you

before. It is a long story and I am sure you will

forgive me when you hear it. I promise the old Carree

will be here to get picked up at 7:15 tomorrow

morning, if you still want to see her. OK?"

"I still want to see her," he said, but added "You

aren't going to tell me that we are just friends

though, are you? I think I really love you Carree and

I've been sitting here thinking what I might have done

to screw things up. I know we are just juniors, but we

are almost 18, and I feel very good about us and..."

I had to interrupt him, "No Billy, I don't want us to

end either, and you have done nothing to make me go

off like I did. Don't beat your self up, OK? I'll see

you in the morning...and one more thing. I think I

really love you too. Sweet dreams, Bye."

Billy and I were late for first period as I spent

from, the time he picked me up, 7:15, until 8:15,

explaining to Billy Wilson that I was not going to be

a nun, and that whole stupid scenario.

To me, it was as if someone told me I had a second

nose on the back of my head. That's how oblivious I

was to all the stories that had been told over the

past few years. I told him how pissed off I was that

he never asked me about it in all the years we were

together. He said he thought it was something private

between God and me. I told him about honesty, trust

and openness in relationships. There were no secrets.

I even asked him if he was serious about wondering if

I was having my first period . . . and he was!!

No doubt his parents had truly repressed him, but my

parents repressed me, and look what I did this past

weekend.

Finally the clock began to tick towards 8:20. At 8:20

they called all truants homes to be sure they were not

coming, and not playing hooky.

I said, "We have to go so our Moms don't get phone

calls. I may even get Heidi Stewart to forget to

report us late. I'll go in through the main door, you

park your car in the back lot and come up the hall so

people don't see us together. Go right to class, I'll

have Heidi take care of things, OK?"

Billy nodded in agreement and leaned over to give me a

kiss. I pecked him on the lips, and then once on the

forehead. I opened the door and reached for his hand,

I gave it a squeeze and then held it.

"Thanks for listening and thanks for understanding,

Billy. One more question . . . . All the stuff about

me going to convent, is that why you never tried to

touch me, HERE" and as I said it I placed his open

hand full on my left breast and squeezed with my hand.

Without waiting for an answer, I got out of the car

and hurried to Heidi Stewart's office.

The school week was uneventful with Billy and I

spending little time together besides a ride home the

2 days either he or I didn't have track, which was

ending because of the weather. Those rides were spent

with small talk, and the subject of "us" was never

breached, although each time he looked at me a little

smile I had never seen appeared. It was an "I know

something no one else knows" type of smile. I looked

forward to the weekend.

There was a dance at St Pius on Friday and Billy asked

me if I wanted to go or do something else. I said we

should go, but then I found out it was going to be

after the basketball game. That did not excite me. I

asked Billy how much cash he could put together if we

wanted to go "out" out, like to dinner. I could scare

up about $15 of my own without asking my parents, whom

I didn't want to ask. I was hoping we could say we

were going to the game and dance, and then just show

up at the dance. Billy said he had carry-out tips from

the hardware store that no one really knew about, and

he could swing most of it, if we didn't go to fancy.

(His parents kept him on a budget to save for college,

he saw little of what he made. He would eventually get

most of his education paid for interning with a

publishing company).

We picked a quiet little family owned spot in town

that was generally only busy when there was sports at

the University. Tonight was free of crowds. There were

10 tables in front room and 6 more in the back. We

asked for a table in the back to be alone and the

waitress, after some coercing by me, let us sit in

there, even though that room was usually closed when

it wasn't busy.

"Billy," I said, "We have to talk about US. I have

always under the impression that as long as things

stayed the same between us, we would be a couple

forever. You, on the other hand have always thought I

was going to leave you for God. So, what am I to you?

Have you ever thought about where we could be 5 years

from now, 10 or 20 years from now?"

"Well, I always figured we would be friends forever,

but I have always been afraid of the day when I

couldn't be with you, hold you and kiss you

goodnight.," he started, "I figured there was some

time when you would no longer allow me to kiss you."

"Billy, don't get mad at me, but, how could you have

been so stupid, so thick, so untrusting of me," I

said.

"Untrusting?" he interrupted.

"Yes, by not asking questions," I explained.

"Did you think I was playing a game those nights we

laid on the front seat of your car, your body pressed

to mine with our mouths joined and you clawing at my

shoulders and back? When you pressed your erection

against my crotch, what did you think I was feeling?

Was I just a vessel to give your imagination a fantasy

to masturbate to?"

Billy was definitely feeling uncomfortable by my

words, and my inference to his erection and

masturbating. He kept looking around to make sure no

one else could hear us.

Finally he got mad and sat up in his chair and leaned

over the table to get closer to my face. He put a

stern, determined look on his face, as he squeezed my

hand on the table.

"Look, maybe I am stupid about some of the things I

thought about you. Yes, I was afraid to touch you for

fear I would do something that would chase you from my

life. The fact is that I know that I am only 18, or

almost, but I thought I found the person I want to

spend my life with, and I was going to lose her. Every

week I would hear things from my parents about

"spending your last times with your sweetheart", and

"don"t worry, after college there will be plenty of

girls who would want a successful writer". They made

it sound like we were 10 years old. I would really

hate them sometimes; they acted like they were glad

that you were going away to a convent. It meant that

their boy would remain pure and not have any

distractions for college. My Dad would take me aside

and say "don't you go and do anything to make her

unfit to be a Sister". They filled me up with so much

bullshit, oops sorry . . . crap. It's like a weekly

job of theirs to rub it in my face.

Now I want to tell them you are not going to be a nun,

but I know they will say "What did you do to her?".

I'm going crazy Care. You know, I want to make them

happy, they are my parents, but they seem to want to

make my life miserable, like that's how it supposed to

be. They make me put my paychecks in the bank where I

can't touch them, they constantly remind me that you

are not my property, but Gods. Everything I find in my

life to give me a little freedom and make me feel good

about myself, they think is wrong. I am not stupid, I

am not a child, and . . . I do really love you."

Billy started to tear up and get real emotional. He

had been holding things in for a long time.

Our waitress just came around the corner at the end of

Billy's diatribe and saw he was upset. She looked at

me, knowingly and mouthed "I'll come back" and flashed

me the OK sign.

"Billy, how could you hold so much inside for so

long?" I asked. "Our relationship is supposed to be

based on honesty and you were not honest with me if

you had all that bottled up. I swear to God, it's like

the nuns put me in a soundproof room and announced

to the world that I had a vocation and anyone who said

anything to ruin it would be stricken from the earth.

I even asked my mother about it, and she said, "don't

be silly; no one thought you were going to be a nun.

My cousin Clarice took you on a retreat once when you

were 12, when she was a novice. You liked school so

much that we thought maybe you were interested in

teaching and all. Clarice wanted to be a teacher."

Apparently the nuns got wind of this and blew it all

out of proportion. But, I have no idea where your

parents got their weird ideas."

"Oh, I do," he interrupted. "We used to have nuns to

the house all the time for Sunday dinner and my mom

would mend their nun clothes."

"Oh, my God, it was a conspiracy," I said as I smiled.

"Look Bill,. . . and that's all I am going to call you

from now on, Bill. Billy is a boy. Bill is a man. And,

I really think you are a man, now that you have stood

up for me, and for yourself. Look Bill, you are the

only guy I have ever really known, but I know what I

like. We are two peas in a pod. People would tell us

that we don't know what anyone else is like, but I

don't want to know. You are what I want. I want to

spend my life with you too. Things may happen in our

lives that will change everything, and the way we feel

about each other. But, that's what makes the whole

trip so exciting. Right now we want to be with each

other, and no one can change that but us, OK?"

With a tear in his eye Bill said "Ok, . . .umm. I love

you Carree"

I looked at him and said, "I know, I love you too,"

and we both smiled and leaned over the table to kiss.

It was a real Kodak moment.

Bill looked down at the menu for a second and then

looked up at me.

"You know, on Monday when you put my hand on your

breast, I really knew that all of my dreams about

spending my life with you would come true. That's how

much that meant to me. And don't think I haven't

wanted to touch you, I have. I was afraid."

"I know," I said. "but you should have been more

honest.Let me ask you a question," I began as I leaned

forward with my elbows on the table.

"Do you masturbate thinking about me?"

Shocked by my question, he answered, "No, I don't do

that."

"Now BILLY, let me ask you again, because I think I

already know the answer that BILL would give if he

were going to be honest.

Do you masturbate thinking about me?"

Bill looked around and said, "Yes I do, this

embarrassing me."

"Well, it shouldn't, Bill, everyone does it. It's

natural. I do it thinking about you." I revealed.

Bill was bug-eyed at my words.

"Those nights when you would rub your erection against

me got me excited too, you know. I want you as much as

you want me. But, I should tell you right now; we

cannot have intercourse, we can't do that. Pregnancy

would ruin everything. But we can certainly get more

intimate than we have been, OK?"

"Ummm, OK. We wouldn't want to get pregnant, and we

need to worry about diseases too.," Bill said

authoritatively.

"Bill," I countered, "No we don't, as long as we are

the only people we have been with. We are worry free

about that. That is why it is so important to have a

trusting relationship where we are exclusive to each

other. If we have sex with another person, then it is

a problem."

"And now Bill, let's clear the air about things we say

to other people. What little fantasy of yours had me

masturbating you in your car, and then me sticking my

finger in the cum and tasting it, huh?"

Bill was devastated to hear me say that. He wanted to

get up and walk out. He couldn't look me in the eye.

He knew I had him trapped in his lie.

"I'm so stupid. So STUPID sometimes," he began to cry.

"Carree, I am so, so sorry for saying that and even

sorrier that it got around."

"Honesty, Bill, honesty," was all I had to say.

"Don't you know how that made me feel? What would be

worse would be if it was true and you told someone.

Things partners do intimately with each other is

private. If you do share it with anyone, for the

purpose of getting advice, or just to express personal

joy, make sure it is someone who you can truly confide

in. Not with locker buddies. Luckily for me, everyone

thinks I'm sister Carree and they believe the other

story you told."

"Other story?" Bill asked.



"You know, that I was frigid," I told him.

"Oh God, I am so stupid," Bill lamented again and

began to well up again. "Where do you get this stuff?"

"Bill, when couples get intimate, they tell each other

things they normally wouldn't, I guess. Whoever you

said these things to, told their girlfriends, and they

got back to me. If they thought they were true I

probably would not have heard them.

Bill, it hurt me awful to think you would say anything

about our intimate moments. The only thing that saved

you from me wanting to not see you again over it is, I

was told all guys do it to show their machismo. You

have to club your prey over the head and

hang their hide at the cave door. I hope that our

relationship is deeper than a high school romance

played out in the front or back seat of a car. I want

to have intimate moments with you Bill, but they are

not for broadcast, OK?"

"Bill, I am not telling you that we are going to make

up for lost time in our relationship. What I am

telling you is that you should be honest in your

feelings for me. If you want to touch my breasts, or

anything else, make a move. If I am uncomfortable,

I'll let you know. Don't be afraid to express yourself

to me. I am not saying I will like, . . . or go along

with your advances, but; We will both be 18 before you

know it, grown-ups. We are both entering our sexual

prime time, and its natural to have those feelings.

What's not natural is to repress them without letting

your partner know how you feel. OK?" I lectured.

Bill was still reeling over the fact I knew he had

lied to his friend or friends. He realized he had done

me wrong, probably for the first times, and probably

the last, too. He had wanted a life relationship with

me and thought he couldn't get it, because I was

supposed to follow a vocation.

Now, with that lifted and seeming agreement from me

about the kind of relationship we should have, he

would be more protective of lives, our private

moments and us.

The waitress came back and asked if it was a better

moment now, understanding we had to talk. We smiled

and thanked her for the few private minutes. Bill hid

his face in the menu so she couldn't see he had been

crying.

We both ordered big Italian pasta dishes and ate them

rapidly, using our appetites to satisfy some of our

frustrations with sex and each other. Bill was proud

to push my hand back when I went to offer to pay part

of the check. He said not to worry; he had

it all taken care of, trying to be dashing.

By the time we left the restaurant we figured the game

must be close to over and if we got to the dance

afterwards, no one would have missed us. Our plan was

good as gold, when we got to the school the game was

just letting out and the students were milling to the

school hall for the dance.

After-Dances stink because they are so short, but it

did give us some time to mingle with friends and hold

each other for a few minutes

Being 17, we both had a curfew of midnight. The school

encouraged that curfew and therefore only allowed

school sponsored functions to last until 11:15. At

11:10 the lights went up and everyone started heading

out.

Those of us that came as couples seemed to straggle

the most. Meg and Jim asked us if we wanted to go grab

a bite and coffee at a local diner, but I think Bill

and I were looking forward to being alone. If we left

now and headed home, it gave us a half hour before

Bill should deposit me at the door.

My parents knew we parked at the bottom of the hill

leading up to the house. When Bill pulled in he turned

off his headlights and let the last streetlight on the

city's string light our way to a spot where I knew mom

and Dad could see we were there, but could not see

into the car at all, it WAS a long driveway.

Whenever we got long out there my Dad always turned on

the porch light, and that usually was a silent hint

that it was long enough. Tonight was no different.

Bill pulled in and switch the lights and killed the

engine right away.

"Well," he said, "here is the end of the line young

lady. All passengers must alight here. But, before you

do, why don't you give the driver a little kiss?"

"Don't be such a jerk Bill, I don't kiss the bus

drivers on the first date, um . . its usually the

second," I said, smiling at his attempt to be cute

(and he was).

"Wow, pretty good," he said as he leaned over and

kissed me full on the lips, then pecked twice there

again, and then wrapped his arms round me and hugged

and kissed me deeply. After some tongue battle he

sought to push me back onto the seat.

"Wait a minute Bill, my Dad will turn the light on in

10 minutes, do you really want to get all involved and

steamy?" I asked.

"I just want to hold you and feel against me Care. I

always thought I was going to lose you and now. . . "

he paused and I took the chance to jump in.

"Now, you want to be sure you don't lose me.

I know.

I'm HERE Bill.

I'm with you and I want to stay with you.

We are an US.

I love you," I said as I began to tear up.

With that Bill pressed his lips hard against me and I

slid back and eventually laid on the seat. He pawed my

back as he held me tight in our kiss. His knee was

right between my legs as I felt him put both hands

behind me and lift me. He pulled me straight up and

then back to where I was laying on him as he was

propped up against his door. I looked down at him and

smiled.

"Do I have you where I want you, or do you have me

where you want me?" he asked.

"It depends," I said pausing to tease, "on what you

had in mind."

"I just wanted to feel you against me and see your

face lit up by the moon and streetlight. You're in the

dark when I lay on you the other way. You are so

pretty tonight, every night, umm. . . all the time,"

Bill said as he pressed his lips to mine and pulled me

close in a bear hug. In the middle of the hug I felt

his hand slide down my back to my ass and give my

buttock a squeeze.

"Wanted to see my face, Huh?" I said as he kneaded my

jean clad cheek.

"Yup," he said as he pressed his lips to mine and bent

up a little to put his other hand on my left buttock.

He pulled me to him as I crushed my breasts against

him and reveled in the feeling of his hands squeezing

and rubbing my ass. There was definitely something

going on in his pants too. I felt his erection push

right against my crotch. Our kiss became deeper and

he began pulling my ass to him in a humping motion.

I broke the kiss and said "Hold on big fella, you're

getting yourself, and," I said blushing, "ME. . . all

worked up here."

"I know," he said, "but I have wanted to hold your

cute butt for so long that I couldn't wait any longer.

I'm surprised you haven't said something about the way

I watch you when you walk away from me."

A little coquettishly I said, "Gee, I never noticed."

"I bet," he said as he pulled my lips to his face, and

my hips to his, to continue our grinding kiss.

After a few minutes of this most enjoyable interplay,

the big sodium light on the front of my porch went on.

My Dad was calling me in. It was midnight.

"Damn, Bill. You see?" I said as I pulled myself off

him. "All worked up with no time. You would think he

would go to bed. But, he says he can't go to sleep

till he knows I'm home safe. Being in the driveway is

home, but in the house, is what he calls safe, I

guess."



Bill sat up and I noticed he had to adjust things a

little to accommodate driving. It was probably 100

yards from where we were parked to my porch. That big

sodium light lit up the whole front yard. Bill started

the car and eased up the drive.

Knowing how hot I was, I knew I was going to get some

relief once I got in bed. I looked at Bill and said,

"think of me later, OK?" and I pecked him on the lips,

then, without really thinking about it, I patted him

lightly right at the top on his bulge.

With that, I scooted over and opened the door.

"Goodnight Bill. I'll be thinking of you too," I

teased as I let him know my intentions as well.

I went to run the couple steps to the stairs and I

heard the window come down and I turned.

"Goodnight Carree, I love you," Bill said smiling.

"I love YOU," I said turning and going to the door.

The car didn't move until I got inside, I knew he was

watching my ass as I disappeared into the house. My

Dad was not around but I saw their bedroom light go

out under their door just after I switched the porch

light to the "motion" setting.

This was the first night Bill had really become

aggressive in his affection toward me and I loved it.

I had been worried that he was afraid of it or me. I

guess all he needed was my green light.

He certainly got me all hot and bothered in just a few

minutes. Besides the fact that I really loved him, he

was a good-looking guy with rugged looks. He was slim,

but had an athletic body. . . and had a nice butt too.

I couldn't really tell how big he was "down there,"

but it seemed large enough from feeling it pressed

against me. I was unsure if the ones I had seen in

Kim's porno movie were normal or extra large. All I

knew is that I loved to think about Bill and how might

look standing there before me naked.

I went to the bathroom, urinated, stripped down to my

panties and went across the hall to my room after

depositing my clothes in the hamper. I took the super

large t-shirt from the back of my bedroom door, slid

it over my head and slipped into bed.

Well, almost. I stopped as I began to get under the

covers to remove my panties. They would just be in the

way tonight.

I did not aggressively just "do" myself that night. I

remember laying there thinking about what my sex life

with Bill might be. I know that straight intercourse

was out. I had read about and knew too many girls who

ended up pregnant using the "safe" methods of birth

control. The day or two following the end of a

period should be safe, and doing it during a period

should be safe, but both of those methods had a

failure rate. Being on the pill, plus using a condom

also had a failure rate. Any risk at all was too

great. I remember hearing an analogy that said;

Suppose there were a plane taking off with 300 people

on board, and they told you that one of the 300 would

not be alive when it landed, would you get on it? . .

. and the answer is "of course not." If there were any

chance that you might be the one, why take it. The

same thing applies to risk of pregnancy. I would

take no chances.

I wondered what it would be like to hold Bill's penis

in my hand and stroke it for him, how would he use his

hands to get me off? Would masturbating each other be

satisfying? I know that working ourselves up in the

car and then going home alone to finish the job seemed

stupid, when we could be "making love" by doing it for

each other. How about doing ourselves in front of each

other.

Oooo, that sounded sexy. It was about here, at this

thought juncture that my orgasms took over my thoughts

. . . and as I panted in the afterglow, I drifted to

sleep.

The next thing I knew my mom was trying to wake me.

"Carree, you can't sleep all day. It's after 11

o'clock. Megan Parker has called for you twice already

this morning. Your Dad and I are leaving to go to help

paint at the Church for a while. I told your father

you had to study and couldn't go. He thinks you should

be there. So, don't have too much fun here. We will be

home by 3 or 4. And, why do you leave your underwear

lying around on the floor? Carree!! Are you awake?"

"Yes Mother," I groggily answered. " I heard you. I'll

call Megan. I don't think I'll be going anywhere, and

I really might study a bit. Thanks for covering for

Dad, and I'll pick up my room. Bye"

Gee Mom, I thought to myself. Haven't you ever diddled

yourself to sleep and left your underwear on the

floor? My mom and Dad were both still quite

attractive, but the way they beat a path to

the church, it's hard to believe they were as nasty as

I had been recently, or maybe that's why they did go

to church. Trying to save themselves.

What did Megan want? I jumped in the shower with the

intention of calling her as soon as I got out. While

showering I began to make extra sure my vagina . .

err . . pussy was extra clean. It didn't take much to

get off a little before I heard the doorbell ringing

over and over. I look out the window and from the

upstairs bath I could see Megan's family car in our

drive. I banged on the window to let her know I knew

she was there and hoped she figured I was in the

shower.

I did a quick rinse and dry, wrapped a towel around

myself and went down to let Meg in.

"Your mom saw me at the gas station and said you were

home and that I should make sure you were awake.," she

said.

"I was just going to call you when I got out of the

shower. She said you called twice, what's up?" I

asked.

With that Meg began crying and said something

unintelligible about Jimmy.

"What is the matter Meg, calm down and talk to me," I

said.

"It's Jimmy. He wants me to go away with him again,

and I told him that we couldn't fuck anymore. It was

too risky. He's tried to get me to do it in the car

every time we are together, it seems. I told him that

I love him and I love to do it too, but I can't risk

getting pregnant. He says I'm a big baby and maybe he

shouldn't be going out with someone so young," Meg

blubbered.



"God, Meg, he's only a year older than you, it's not

like he's 25. You can't let him pressure you into sex,

that's rape. What brought all this on?" I asked.

"I don't know, maybe he just wants to move on. I

really thought we were special. I gave him my

virginity!!" she said with tears running down her

cheeks. "I thought he was special and would love me.

Instead he wants to just use me to, to . . . get laid,

as he says. I think he gets pressure from his friends

who go away on weekends a lot, with their girlfriends.

I don't know what to dooo" she tearfully said.

"Meg, you have to stand firm with him. If that is all

he needs you for, you might better move on. I know you

don't want to hear that, but. . . " I said.

With that I went to sit down when I realized I wasn't

dressed. "Here, wait for me a second while I get

dressed and we can talk more, OK?"

I went upstairs and got some clothes on while thinking

about her dilemma. Jimmy always seemed like he was the

best thing for her, but now he was being an asshole

over sex. I know that they had made love twice, but

Heidi Stewarts lecture had really made her think twice

about pre-marital intercourse. I went back downstairs

to find Meg on the sofa.

"Meg, what if you give in to him, and then he leaves

you anyway? How stupid would you feel then. Look at

Jennifer. Look how she got burned when Rob went to

college. Jimmy will be away at school and you will be

here at St Pius. Can you trust him?" I asked.

"Probably not. No trust means no love. That's what

really hurts. I know there is no way I can stay with

him" she said as the water works opened again.

"Megan, you HAVE to tell him that. Give him the

ultimatum that if he can't be trusted if you don't

"come across", maybe you should move on," I advised.

"That's what I wanted to do, I guess I just needed a

second opinion. I should have known it was too

perfect, once I gave into him the first time. We've

done other things together, but he wants to go all the

way, all the time. I even said that maybe I could, you

know, do the other thing. Umm. . . with my mouth?

He's all for that, but I don't want to do it in a car

or off in the woods. It seems so tawdry, so whorish. "

She said as the tears began to flow freely again.

"He says if he is going to pay for a motel room to get

a blowjob, he would just hire a prostitute. THAT'S why

I know its over."

Meg," I began. "Maybe you should get together and

talk. What you are saying doesn't sound like Jimmy.

Maybe he said some things he didn't want to in the

heat of the moment. He maybe IS getting pressure from

his friends to get someone who can go away with them

on weekends. Meg, if that's the case and he would dump

you to be on the right side of his friends, he isn't

the right guy. He needs to grow up."

"Everything you are saying, I know already!" Meg said.

"I just wanted to hear it from someone else." Then Meg

fell into me and we hugged and I comforted her.

Through her tears she said, "Love and sex are so God

Damn confusing."



Didn't I know that! Bill had me so horny and wanting

that I felt guilty about my masturbating. I began to

feel that I was the only person in the world who knew

the secret of self abuse, and I was abusing it.

"Meg, as long as we are hashing out problems, can I

ask you a question that is pretty personal?" I asked.

"Maybe in your emotional state you might want to wait

to get into this, I can wait."

"NO!" she interrupted. "Please go ahead. I may be a

basket case right now, but I can always try to help

you out, you are like my sister"

"I'm glad you feel that way, because I am lost without

a real one. Anyway. . . if I told you that I was

playing solo with myself, you know . . like. . .

getting off, umm a couple times a week or more, would

you think I was , I don't know, . . a pervert or

something?" I said without really looking her in the

eye.

"God, NO. My sis, Terry, told me once that she Jilled

everyday of her senior year and right through

college," Meg said.

"Jilled?" I asked.

"You know, males Jack off, females Jill off, like Jack

and Jill? Get the picture? Anyway, I forget how the

subject came up, . . . Oh, we were talking about

stress and dealing with boys and school and keeping

marks up, the whole deal. Terry said she swore it was

the great stress reliever. If it makes you feel any

less guilty, I'm as bad as you. I get a better, rush,

I guess is the word, alone. Terry said that until you

get into getting oral sex, it's the best way to ease

your stress and put a smile on your face. But, I fear

the unknown of that whole thing. Geez, Carree, you

got me doing true confessions here. Jimmy and I play

with each other sometimes when we park, but he's never

tried to . . . go down. He wants to be the macho

lover and stick it in me every night, but it seems

like he's not interested in my needs, just getting

himself off" Meg confessed.

"You mean," I began, "the times you did it, you

weren't satisfied. . . you didn't . . ."

"Yeah, I did, but, the first time I was alone

afterwards, I always finished it. Maybe a more

experienced lover would make a difference, but

learning together is supposed to be fun too.

Jimmy just wants to put notches on his bedpost, it

seems."

"Well," I said, "Bill and I are just beginning to . .

a . . experiment a little, and I'm thinking it would

be sort of exciting to watch each other . . . . do it.

He can see what makes me happy. I would love to watch

him. We've never seen each others bodies and I want to

make little moments like that special. Megan, I really

love him, that Bill Wilson. He is so naive in some

ways, but is so focused in others. He knows what he

wants to do with his life. He's written some great

short stories full of imagination. He writes term

papers like novels as if his life depended on them. I

read his stuff and he makes me feel shallow, and I

know I'm not. He devours a couple newspapers a day;

he's such an information junkie. Yet, I had to put his

hand on my breast to show him that it was there."



I paused a long time and then looked at Megan, "I want

to get old with him Meg. Am I stupid to think that I

have found the right guy and I'm not out of high

school yet?"

"That's a great question, Care. The mere fact you ask

it of yourself tells says you are aware of the

pitfalls in a young relationship.

Heidi gives me an adults perception, and she tells me

that me, you, Jennifer, Kim, Billy . . er . . Bill,

sorry, and Brad are the only ones in our class that

will be 19 when we graduate. Do you think it's a

coincidence that we are all connected and, I dunno,

. . . more mature that some of the others? I think

each of our parents held us back because we were born

late in the year.

Heidi said there was a baby boom amongst Catholics

after the Pope issued a new encyclical about birth

control, I think for New Years. Catholic Schools were

overcrowded when we first turned school age, so our

parents had us start late to school. Ain't that weird?

But, anyway, if you started school on time, you would

be an 18 year old senior come June. But, you'll be 19.

There are lots of girls who know the "right" guy by

then. So, don't worry about it and go with the flow."

"I guess that's all I can do, right now. I just want

to push this relationship into a physical stage. It

makes me feel kind of cheap, in some ways, after all

the things our mothers said we shouldn't do. But, now

you realize they all did the same things, probably,

when they dated. Too bad we can't ask them for advice

about what to do.," I said.

Yes, I can see it now, umm, "Mom I happened to see you

going down on Pop one night. Do you think you can give

me some pointers. They tell us that we can ask them

anything, but . . . how could you ask about sex?" Meg

mused.

Just then the phone rang, and it was Bill. His uncle

had let him out of work early because it was slow. He

wanted to stop by and take me to lunch. I was feeling

peckish, not having had breakfast, so I agreed. He

would be round in about 5 minutes.

As soon as I hung up, the phone rang again and it was

my Mom, reminding me to call Meg. I told her that she

was there already. She also reminded me to put the

Saturday evening dinner in the oven at 4:30. They

would be later at the church than they thought, but

would be home to serve dinner by 6 or so. mom had a

pot roast with veggies all put together in the fridge.

After hanging up I smiled to Meg and said, "Speak of

the devil, that's was Bill and he is taking me to

lunch. I'd guess to one of the finer establishments in

our fair city, like McDonalds. His uncle let him off

early, it's slow."

"Well, I'll just get going then and let the perfect

couple have the afternoon," Meg said. "Thanks for

talking with me and giving me a shoulder to cry on."

With that we hugged and I told her be strong and let

the Jimmy B situation either work itself out, or to

cut bait. She really loved the guy, but no way should

she be railroaded into risky sex. I really liked Jimmy

and I thought they made a great couple. I hope they

could work things out.

I had a couple minutes to get ready for lunch with

Bill.

Megan let herself out as I ran up the stairs in twos

to get changed. My hair was dry but I hadn't done a

thing with it. I spritzed it quick and blew it out to

give it a little shape. I guessed my jeans were OK,

but I needed a better top than my St Pius t-shirt. I

slipped it off and found my Winter Olympics Sweatshirt

and put that on. As the fleece inside ran over my

nipples I was reminded I didn't have bra on. I slipped

out of the shirt as I was searching for one in my

drawer when I thought; maybe I can give my Bill a

thrill with his lunch today. I slid the sweatshirt

back on, sans a bra, and went down stairs. Bill

was pulling up the drive as I hit the bottom step. I

was at the closet getting a coat when I heard the

screen swing open. He knocked on the window and I

looked to see him smiling at me. I hadn't expected him

to come in at all, and here he was opening the door

and letting himself in.

"Hi Bill, aren't you the lucky one, getting off from

work early on a Saturday," I said.

"Yeah, the only big customer I had was the church

picking up gallons and gallons of paint, plus all the

extras. They rented scaffold and everything. I had a

nice talk with your mom and Dad. They told me that

their daughter was home cleaning her room and talking

to Megan. When my uncle said I could leave early, I

don't know WHY I thought to call you," Bill said with

a goofy grin on.

"William Wilson, did you come over here to take

advantage on their poor daughter?" I asked as cutely

as I could.

Then Bill, turning dead serious said, "I just thought

it was a nice time to be alone together. I don't mean

to be forward, if you think I really came here to take

advantage of the situation. Let's go grab lunch."

"OK, I'm famished," I said and went for the door.

"Lordy, you must be hungry, You didn't even kiss me

hello yet," Bill said.

"I kiss better in the car, c'mon let's go," I said as

I led the way out.

Once in the car, I did lean over and gave Bill a nice

smack on the lips, then a second, then a third and

then a long kiss to say a real hello.

He pulled back from me and looked me right square in

the eyes as if he had the most important thing to say,

and said "Hi."

"Hello," I said and kissed him again. "Feed me," and

off we went.

We made small talk on the way to town and no mention

was made of the previous night until we passed school.

"Your Dad didn't give you hard time last night, did

he," Bill asked.



"No, he's just making sure I get home safe," I said.

Bill slowed by the Diner and said," Here?"

I thought for a second and then quickly pointed ahead

to McDonalds. "No, there, and go to the drive-up, get

it to go, and we can go back to my house. My empty,

parentless house," I said with a sly smile.

"You sure? Care, I don't want you to get in trouble,"

he asked.

"Don't worry, we should be alone for at least a couple

hours" I said.

In 10 minutes we were driving up the drive to my house

with a couple burgers and fries and shakes. My mind

was off food, though, as I thought about what might

happen if left alone with Bill. I was excited.

We went into the house and were sure to lock front

screen, so if anyone came they would have to knock. It

only locked from the inside. It locked by itself if it

slammed, so the locking was pre alibi-ed. The back was

always locked anyway.

We went to the couch and spread the food on the coffee

table. We ate and talked, but we both had other things

on our minds. We finished up quick and both made

juvenile noises with the straws to signal the ends of

our shakes. I gathered the empty bags and stuff and

put them in the basket. I grabbed some schoolbooks,

put them on the dining room table and opened them with

a yellow pad set aside with a couple pencils. I skewed

2 dining room chairs and went back to the living room.

"If they come home, go right to the dining room table

where we are studying, OK?" I told Bill.

"But, we should be OK until at least 4:30."

"You sure about this, Care?" Bill asked.

"Hey, I haven't promised anything, so don't make any

big assumptions," I said, but, I couldn't hide my

smile.

I plopped down beside Bill and all of a sudden I felt

cheap. Something planned didn't have the excitement of

something spontaneous.

I looked at Bill and said, "We're bad, ya know. Last

night, humping like a couple dogs in heat, getting all

worked up. Now, all of a sudden I feel like we are

here for the sex of it, and not for each other"

"Carree, I'm here because I love you and want to be

with you. How often do I, . . . do WE, get a chance to

lay and hold each other.

How often can I whisper my hopes and dreams for the

future with you?

How often can I just look into your eyes and read

them, and you mine?

Communication is the whole thing. Even going "all the

way" is communication. I know, and you know, that

really "doing it" is out of the question. There's too

many risks with our future planning. We have to be

able to dictate the paths we take. You getting

pregnant would dictate too much for us.

Don't think

I'm here to get my first screw, lay, whatever you want

to call it. Last night when you told me to think about

you later? . . . THAT was making love. You know how a

. . . umm . . . excited I was.

I stayed that way until I got into bed. I lay there

thinking about you. In my mind, I made love to you."

Bills words turned my mood around. I was back to

feeling hot about the afternoon. Being with Bill.

"Bill, I thought about you, too, ya know. You had me

pretty excited and I wanted to love you up too. I'm

glad we can talk so openly about it. Just think of a

couple getting themselves all worked up, going home

and "doing it" and never making mention of it to the

other person, when the other person is the reason they

got so worked up.

We were probably doing it together last night. I

thought about that as I . . . did it. I have to

confess, this morning you still had me flustered when

I showered and I . . . did it again.

You must think I'm awful."

"No, not awful!" Bill said . "That's beautiful that we

can conjure images of each other and become so

excited, don't you think? Some guys have to get porno

movies or girlie magazines to get themselves in such a

state. Hell, I did THOSE things before we started

getting serious about our affections"

I could wait no longer and leaned over and kissed Bill

full on the mouth, opening it as our lips met. We

tangled tongues as he pulled me to him and then

shifted to where he was pinning me to the back of the

couch. He brought a knee over and straddled me

sitting there. My tiny body easily fit between his

athletic legs as we held the same kiss and he held my

face in his hands.

He pulled away from my lips for a second and said

smiling an impish smile "Wow, now THIS is a kiss,"

then turning a serious look he added " and you are so,

so beautiful."

He once again tried to devour my face as we returned

to swapping tongue lances. He broke the kiss and

trailed kisses across my face, over my forehead and

down my neck and to my ears. He was electric and his

kisses were giving me shocks all the way down to my

center. Somewhere in this frenzy of kisses one of his

hands must have left my face because I felt it

touching my breast through my sweatshirt. He was

gently kneading and squeezing me.

God, how I wanted him to pinch my nipple! Then he did

put my nipple, now hard and budded, between his thumb

and forefinger and rolled it. I reached and put my

fingers over his and pinched with him, I groaned and

he got the idea. Then he repeated the same massage

with my other breast. I was flying now. I wanted him

so badly. At that moment I understood how accidental

pregnancies happened.

"Let me get up," I told him and he swung his knee back

to my left side. I pushed him back and suddenly I was

straddling him sitting just above his crotch. I looked

down at him and he had such a love struck look on his

face. I smiled at him, crossed my arms and grabbed the

bottom of my sweatshirt. I pulled it up and over my

head, revealing my entire upper body to him for the

first time. His eyes glued to my breasts.

"Oh my God, you look spectacular" he said before

whispering, " My God, My God, My God" as he reached

for them. He held them in his hands like two

treasures.

"You are even more beautiful than I ever imagined

Carree" he said as his voice broke and tears filled

his eyes.

I bent over and pressed my breasts to his chest and

kissed him deeper than I ever had. We held that long

sucking kiss for a minute or more.

Then, as I sat back up I must have shifted a little,

because when

I sat up I could feel his hardness against my ass and

pussy. I tried to be careful not to put all my weight

on it. HE brought his hands up and cupped my breasts

again and then slid his hands to their sides while

pulling me towards his mouth. He gently kissed one

nipple, then the other. Then he took the first one

again and kissed it, then enveloped it in his mouth.

Flicking his tongue over it. I had no idea this could

feel this good and how much it affected the sensitive

parts between my legs.

After fully sucking and trying to get the whole breast

in his mouth, he did the same to the other.

"Oh God Bill, Ohhhhh God" I said as I began to rock on

his hardness a little. I was cumming.

It wasn't a big orgasm, but it caught me by surprise.

I didn't know I could do that without real direct

stimulation. I sat up and pulled my breast from his

mouth and rode the lump in his pants like a jockey at

the finish line.

After 6 or 8 ruts I came again not letting on to Bill

I had just got off. But, I just had to get up. My

panties became bunched next to my vulva and the hard

cotton of the seam of my jeans was rubbing me the

wrong way.

"Oh, Bill" I exclaimed as I unashamedly rubbed my

crotch through my jeans.

"It's so sensitive down there and my jeans are rubbing

it raw."

With that I ran to the bathroom, half embarrassed and

half because I didn't want to pee my pants. I sat on

the john and tried to go but the urge passed. Then I

wondered about the girl in the video, the squirter.

Was that what I felt coming on? I let the thought pass

as I didn't want to ruin Bills moment or mine.

I slid my panties back up and arranged them between my

legs so the jeans couldn't rub me.

When I returned to the couch, Bill was lying in the

same position with his hand over the lump in his

pants. It was then I got the idea.

"Bill, how would you like to watch me" I asked.

"Watch you what?" he said perhaps a little confused

over the fact he was rubbing his penis through his

pants and didn't seem to mind that I saw him.

"Get off, masturbate, Jill off, whatever you want to

call it," I answered.

"Jill off? "he said, confused.

"You know Jack and Jill. Jack off, Jill off, male,

female," I said explaining.

"Man, you girls have a whole new vocabulary I will

have to learn . . . Of course I would like to watch,

but can I touch?" he asked.

"No, not me, nor yourself, not this time. Just watch

and see how I do it. Talk to me as I think about you,

us" I said.

"Then I'll watch you, how you do it. We can both

learn. Wow, is this intimate or what? Just talking

about it is getting me . . . crazy!"

"Let's do it" Bill said sitting up.

Reminding him I said, "Remember, no touching, and

believe me I would love to have your hands all over

me. But just watch and see what I do, what I look

like. I've wanted this for a while but never dreamed

we could do it so soon. I would never do it in the

dark or in a car. I've wanted you to really SEE me the

first time I am naked in front of you."

With that I had him sit on the arm of the couch

looking at me.



"I'm going to take the rest of my clothes off Bill,

and then lay down on the sofa. This is a big step for

us. Talk to me, OK?"

He just nodded as he glued his eyes to me.

I unbuttoned my jeans and slid down the zipper. I put

the palms of my hands on my hips, inside my jeans and

slid my hands down, bringing my jeans off my hips. I

reached down and pulled the narrow leg part past my

calf on each side, and then just stepped out of my

jeans.

I was only in my panties in front of him. I turned

around to show my ass to him and hooked my fingers in

the sides of my underwear and slid then down to a

puddle of silk on the floor.

"My God, Carree" he said with his voice cracking again

and his eyes welling up.

"You are so beautiful, almost like a dream. In my

wildest fantasies, you were never this beautiful. You

are the loveliest creature God ever put on the earth"

I was flattered to no end by his words. I flushed and

then turned a knee and covered my breasts.

"Bill, you're embarrassing me," I said.

"There is nothing to be embarrassed about Carree, you

are just . . . just . . . man, there are no words"



Embarassed, but proud, I did a little pirouette and he

said, "Stop, oh Lord, your backside, your beautiful

ass, what a sight. I have dreamed of looking at that

for a long time, and you know it. I know you catch me

looking all the time."



I was totally embarrassed, but flattered by his words.

I finished my turn and sat on the sofa stretching my

legs out as he turned and sat perched on the arm

looking over me.

I had become more aware of how well put together I was

in recent months. I always knew, and thought, I was

pretty. But, my mom and Megan and some other friends

went out of their way to say how particularly fine my

body was.

Now, for once I was very proud of the way I looked and

the effect it had on Bill. If I could change one

thing, it would have been to have a bikini trim. I

always kept my pubic hair trimmed as far down my

stomach and abdomen as I could, so none would show

above bikini panties, but the rest I never worried

about until bathing suit season. Now with this new

found "sex life" I would have to trim more.

Kim had told me that she shaved it off entirely and it

was great. That was something to think about.

It also occurred to me that Bill had never even seen

me in a bikini. Whenever we went to a pool or lake it

was always a school function or with our families. I

wasn't allowed to wear anything revealing then. I only

wore bikinis to tan or go to my girlfriend's pools. He

had never seen my body.

I wasn't quite sure how to begin my little show with

Bill. I decided a narrative might be sexy for him and

provoke questions from him.

"Bill, when I get home at night from being with you in

your car, I always feel hot. Your touching and rubbing

against me stimulates me. Once I begin to get

stimulated, this whole area (moving both hands in a V

over my pussy) gets engorged with blood, just like you

do. This is my vagina, or I call it my . . . pussy.

Never the C word, I don't like that. (Bill was

watching me, first my eyes, then my hands, back and

forth.)

Then the natural lubrication begins to work. My body

thinks I am going to have intercourse so it provides

lots of slippery-ness. It makes my pants wet. Bill,

YOU make my pants wet. (He was still staring but now

rubbing his hands up and down the fronts of his thighs

and rocking a little, back and forth).

With the blood rushing to that area I am more

sensitive and my clitoris becomes more pronounced. (I

was parting my vaginal entrance to show him my

clitoris) I call that little bud my clit.

I don't have to touch that much to get a big reaction

from my body. That's what gets stimulated during

intercourse. It doesn't have to be directly touched.

Sometimes I just go inside a bit with my finger (now I

was doing so) without really touching my clit, I can

still get a big one. But, when I need relief, my clit

is what I rub. (I drew my fingers up so my clit was

between my middle and forefinger)

I jiggle it between these fingers, Uhhh! (I drew a

quick breath) until it gets, Uhhh! REAL sensitive

Uhhh! Then, I press my fingers together and ride my

clit in the groove between them, stroking.

Uhhh! Uhhh! Uhhh! Uhhh! Now, I'm getting real close to

a big orgasm and the nipples on my breasts are hard

and need some attention. I pinch and squeeze them,

Goddddddddd, that feels soooo goood! (I drew my knees

up as my orgasm built)

Now I'm drawing my body up getting ready to go over.

You always look at my ass Bill. Well, do you see it

now? With my legs drawn up? Uhhh!

Uhhh! you can see the 2 halves, can't you?

(Bill was nodding, still rubbing his thighs)

You can see everything now Bill,

(I was panting furiously)

all the most private parts.

They're all for you, Uhhh! Uhhh! Bill!

ALL!!

Uhhh! Uhhh! Uhhh!

FOR!!

Uhhh! Uhhh! Uhhh!

YOU!!

Uhhh! Uhhh! Uhhh! Uhhhhhhhhhhh!

On that cue, I went into a little orgasmic convulsion,

drawing my legs up tight to my chest then stretching

them down pointing my toes, all without breathing.

I assume I was pretty red from holding my breath as

the orgasm hit me and overtook me. Bill looked stunned

and concerned as I struggled to breath. My clit became

so hard and sensitive I could no longer touch it, it

was electric. I was incredibly wet and little drops of

water were on my hand (Maybe I had squirted a little)

as I brought it up meet my other hand cross clasped on

my chest as the orgasm ebbed and I began to draw air.

I vibrated and my legs spasmed straight out and up off

the couch in 3 rapid-fire jolts.

I was still drawing the same breath, deep and rasping,

and then I let everything go, the breath, and all my

muscles. I lay there, a limp rag, like a washcloth

dropped in the shower.

"Ohhhhhh," I exclaimed, "that was awesome. Bill, do

you see what you do to me?"

Bill was almost catatonic. He was looking at me as if

I had just had an elephant fly out of my nose.

"Incredible," he said. "Just incredible. No,

Wonderful! To see you in such ecstasy almost made me,

uh . . .you know . . . do it in my pants.

You really lose it. Did it feel as good as it looked?"

"Better," I whispered. "Better because you were here

with me. It was you touching me, filling me, that made

me so crazy."

I pulled myself up to a sitting position, Indian style

in the corner next to the arm of the couch. I reached

down and grasped my knees with my forearms and pulled

myself in a tight ball. I knew my pussy and butt hole

were right out there as Billy stared.



"Now, YOU have some business to take care off before

you burst out of your pants."

I sprang to my feet on the couch and stepped off. I

gathered my clothes and went towards the bathroom.

"I need the bathroom and will get dressed. There

should only be one of us nude at a time here in case

someone comes home. One of us can run to the bathroom

to dress while the other goes to the table to, . . .

HA . . . study!"

As I sat on the john I was aware that I was wetter

than ever and it was different than usual. I really

did think I squirted a bit.

As I remembered, this sort of ejaculation came from a

G-spot orgasm. I would have to get to the library

again. But, I had more important things at hand (no

pun intended).

I wanted to see Bill and that beautiful penis I have

been imagining. I wanted to see it work.

Jeepers, I was probably going to have get off again

after his show. Oh well . . .



"Carree!!" Bill called me just as was about to open

the bathroom door.



"I'm right here, Bill. Is everything alright?" I said.

"Yes, no ones coming or anything I just thought you

would be sooner than that," Bill said.

"Oh, I said with a sly grin, "can't wait to put on a

show for me?"

"No, just nervous as hell. You knew how to push my

buttons as well as your own. I don't know if I can be

as much of a turn on as you were."

"You have to be kidding me, Bill," I said. "You will

be just fine. The reason for this is to see what we do

to relieve the sexual tensions we raise in each other,

and to become better acquainted with each others

bodies."

All the while throughout this little conversation I

was backing him into the living room to the back of

the sofa. When we reached it I fell into his arms and

we embraced and kissed, deeply. He broke the kiss and

held his lips close to my ear.

He whispered to me, "You are a truly incredible female

to have that much passion within yourself. To know

that it's for me is overwhelming. I love you so much."

"Oh, I love you so much too, Bill. Do you think I

could ever do that with anyone else? We are each

other's soul mate. I have been so mad at you twice

this week, and each time I just needed one look at you

to ease my anger and look at the situation

differently."

"I loved putting on a little show for you. I've

always wanted to make the first time you saw me "au

natural" to be special, and not in a car, or hiding

someplace."

"But, now . . . I want to see you."

As I finished that sentence I pulled back to look in

Bills eyes, and he was tearing up once again.

"What is it with you Bill? I've never known you to be

so emotional. I've seen you cry, or come close to it 4

times in the last 2 days," I queried.

Then, the water works opened and Bill spoke through

his tears.

"Carree, please understand how much I love you and how

helpless I felt knowing I was going to lose you.

Seemingly, there was nothing I could do about it. Now,

in the matter of a few days I am living the dream I

thought could not possibly come true. I used to

fantasize about what life would be like when we were

alone, and maybe someday even married, with children.

Those fantasies would always crash. Now, they don't

seem like fantasies and I am full of emotion at that

thought. Sorry, but I just love you so."

"Bill, don't worry." I said. "I'm here, you are here,

and we are here. If we work at it, all of our dreams

will come true." I said as I moved from Bills embrace

and went to the spot he occupied when I showed him

myself.

"Bill, show me how you do it. Show me your body. Show

me what I do to you," I pleaded with him.

"OK, here goes," he said as he began unbuttoning his

shirt. "I guess the same rules apply to you, you can't

touch me or yourself . . . WAIT, you can touch me if

you want. It's up to you. Your hand might be nice."

Then Bill stripped off his shirt, and then made

muscleman poses.

"Bill," I asked, "are you stalling?"

"No Carree, I've never done this before. If you know a

better way, maybe you should help," he said.

"Bill, I've never seen a man in the altogether before.

Well, in pictures I have but . . ." I started but was

stopped by the snap of Bills jeans being undone. He

looked right at me and drew down his zipper and said

"Well, little lady you're about to see a man

in the "altogether" "

Then, his jeans fell to the floor. He stepped out of

them and turned to me.

"Did you guess boxers or briefs?" he asked.

"Stalling," I said with a little faux irritation

implied.

He then reached into his boxers to protect himself and

peeled the waistband past his penis and balls, and

then down his legs. He stood there for a moment, and I

waited for a pose, as I looked at his penis, standing

at attention before me.

He didn't pose, but said, "Your pirouette," and turned

slowly around.

"You like my ass, Bill. But, you also have a

spectacular ass, although much harrier than mine," I

giggled.

He wiggled his butt effeminately for effect and turned

around. His penis was erect and standing away from his

body.

"How do you walk with those things?" I asked.

"When they are in this state we usually aren't

walking. But, if I should (he took a few steps) it

bobs like a roosters head when he's pecking. That's

why they call them peckers or cocks. I prefer dick or

cock. How 'bout you?"

"I usually say penis or dick, not that I spend a lot

of time talking about them, and . . . uhh, stalling,"

I said.

"Stop the stalling comments." he laughed. "I'm

nervous, and why would I stall with this thing hurting

more and more?"

With that he sat on the couch and swung his legs up

and slouched to a lounging position.

"Hurting?" I asked.

"After it's been hard for awhile with no relief it

begins to hurt from being full of blood and the

natural function of the body is to send more blood,

causing it to ache. That's when I squeeze the head

here. To relieve that pressure."

He put his hand around the base of it and began to

move it up and down over the length. His hand covered

about three quarters of the length; I estimated it was

about 8 inches long. It looked big and fat to me.

"Why is the skin moving like that," I asked, never

seeing that before.

He looked at me sheepishly, saying "I'm not

circumcised, is that all right? I have a foreskin. See

how it covers the head when I stroke it up? When I go

soft it slides up and protects it. Cosmo says women

prefer uncircumcised, men last longer and are more

sensitive."

"Ummm,"I said. "I don't have a preference as you are

the first man I ever saw. Bill, I love YOU, that makes

no difference."

He began to stroke his dick in earnest, groaning every

few seconds saying how good it felt. Then his slid his

hand down to hold his ball sack, which appeared to be

shrinking.

"What's happening to the sack, it's round and not

hanging now," I asked.

"Ask questions later, babe, I have concentrate on

something," he said panting.

"Can I get closer to watch and look? I think your

penis . . .or DICK is fascinating," I asked.

"Anything you want, just let me go," he said with his

face flushing while he stroked.

I moved from the arm of our sofa and knelt on the

floor and watched closely as he stroked. He removed

his hand from his balls and placed it firmly on the

side of his leg. He said I could touch, so I reached

over and held that sack in my hand. He stopped

stroking right away.

"What are you DOING babe, c'mon Care, I was just about

to blow!!" Bill cried out.

"You said I could touch, so I did," I defended myself.

"Oh, I'm sorry, I didn't mean to holler at you, I was

just about 2 or 3 strokes away and you broke my

concentration," he said.

"You men sure are strange creatures," I said as I

moved my hand from his sack to his penis.

"Here, let me feel, as long as you stopped," I said.

I ran my hand along it length like he did and it felt

strange but wonderful in my hand. There was a power

you could feel in it.



"Am I doing it right?" I asked.

"Yes, keep going, but I've lost my concentration,

now," he said."Just keep going and it will come back."

I sped up my stroking and it felt great in my hand. At

one point he reached down and sort of took over for me

closing his eyes.

"Here, let me. I don't want to lose it again," he

said.

"Go, baby. cum for me," was all I could say as I

watched.

After another 5 or 6 strokes I spoke out loud a

thought I had, "I could kiss that, easy. It's such a

wonderful part of you." Bill stopped abruptly.

"Carree, come on. What did you say THAT for," Bill

whined.

"Well, I could. It's pretty and a part of you. I

always thought I would be afraid of oral sex, but . .

. " I started before he cried out again.

"It's not WHAT you said, it was saying anything that

broke my concentration. I let you get off, didn't I?

Now, besides stopping me, you have me thinking about

you kissing me there. How much do you think a guy can

take? Sit back up there or sit away on the floor. No

more touching or talking. You wanted to watch me, and

I want to show you. LET ME"

"OK, Bill I'm sorry. At least now we can never tell

our friends what our first real fight was about," I

said smirking.

"You are something else Carree, I'm glad YOU can make

jokes about it," he said chuckling.

"Now can I just jerk off in peace? . . . Wow, I'll

never use that line again." He said still laughing.

Bill laid back and closed his eyes and began to stroke

his dick with uninterrupted resolve. He began to talk

in a low whisper.

"Carree every time I do this I'm thinking of you, and

do you know what I'm doing to you? I'm pushing my hard

dick into your pussy. On top of you, behind you, any

which way I can imagine. I hope that doesn't surprise

you. I would never admit it, but you mentioned it

already, I've even imagine you kissing it, sucking it

. . .arghh . . Ohhhhh Godddd! I imagine you making

love to me, me making love to you . . . arghh . .

.ahhhhh . . .I'm gonna come!!"

Bill threw his head straight back as far as he could

dig it into the chairs arm, then thrust his hips up

and held his dick tightly just below the rim of the

head. He held that for a couple seconds and then let

out a cry as if he had been punched in the stomach.

A long spray of watery stuff came out and shot over

his head and hit the arm of my Moms sofa. Then a

second shot came out, it looked thicker, and hit Bill

on the neck. He groaned again and a third volley came

out, thick, white, and it plopped just above his pubic

hair. Then he stroked a little more and more semen

dribbled out the top and over his hand.

He made some guttural noises, and then did electric

shocks, almost like I did. One, then two, then a

third. Then he collapsed within to the sofa with

his head back and eyes closed.

"Now, do you see what YOU do to ME," he mumbled in his

orgasm-induced exhaustion.

I was in total awe of the volume and distance he shot.

I was surprised how much it took out of him. It also

made me hot. I realized that I had grabbed my jeans

right by the crotch and was rubbing pretty hard.

"Bill, I know we said no touching ourselves, but I

have to go off soon. I'm sorry, I'm touching," and

saying that I stuck my hand down my jeans.

"Hey wait!! I gotta clean up here. If somebody came

right now I would drip this stuff all the way to the

bathroom," Bill reminded me.

"SHIT, you're right. Let me get a towel" I said as I

ran to the bathroom. I grabbed my shower towel from

the hamper to leave less evidence.

When I came back I told Bill it might seem a little

cold, because it was damp, but it would clean up

better that way.

I wiped Bill down from his neck, continually folding

the towel to get fresh parts of it to clean him up.

When I got down to his dick, I was dabbing around the

base when I noticed it was losing its stiffness and

the skin was beginning to roll up the head.

I grabbed it, not knowing or realizing how sensitive

it was to him, to peel back the skin to wipe the head

(and also have an excuse to hold it again). He jumped

as I held it and another big drop oozed from the end.

I held him right around the base of the head with that

big drop of cum gathering there.

I thought of the girl in the movie and how she gobbled

that last drop when she squeezed it.

Would I, Could I? Would Bill freak out! I was quickly

losing my nerve! I looked him in the eye, and back at

his dick. I think he knew what I wanted to do. The

look on his face was real . . . I don't know . . .

queer. Like he was reading my mind.

I lost my nerve and wiped it with the towel and before

I even touched it with the towel I was sorry. As the

towel wiped over the tip, he jerked again and another

drop formed. I dropped my mouth to the head of his

dick and kissed and sucked off the drop and swallowed

fast. I gave it a second kiss and sprang to my feet

and ran to the bathroom with the towel.

I sat on the toilet lid and cried for a second.

"He must think I'm a whore or a slut to do that. I

couldn't help it," I thought to myself. Then I

realized I could taste a little of what I had

licked.

It was a little bleachy, a little salty and maybe a

hint of sweetness, hard to tell with so little and

maybe my body soap on the towel. I was freaking, I

might even tell him to leave so I didn't have to face

him. Then the door opened.

"Carree, are you OK? Don't cry or be embarrassed. That

was beautiful, what you just did. You must love me a

lot. I knew you wanted to do that, and I don't know

why I knew. Just before you wiped the first one, I

thought you were going to do that. It was like a

zzzzzzt zzzzzzt radio signal to my head. It's like we

just fucked each others minds. Sorry about that word,

it's just the only one that fits. We communicated at a

different level, like intercourse."

I stood up and hugged Bill so hard that I thought I

would squeeze the breath out of him. "I'm sorry, but

I'm glad about it Bill. I don't want you to think I'm

a slut or a whore," I said.

"Carree" he said tipping my chin up to look at him,

"How could I think that about you? Remember what you

told me once. Nothing 2 people do together, as long as

they both agree on it, is wrong.

As long as they both agree on it. That was something

you wanted to do, and I certainly welcomed it."

I cried some more and swung my arm around Bills waist

to walk to the living room again with him when I

realized he still hadn't dressed.

"Bill, for Gods sake, get some clothes on, and what

time is it? I have to put Moms dinner in the oven at

4:30!" I said, a little panicked.



"Gosh, don't worry, it's only a little after 3:00. We

have plenty of time to get decent." Bill said as he

dressed, adding "can we just sit and talk and hold

each other?."

"That sounds great, Bill. Put your toy away first

though," I said as he pulled his boxers up over his

manhood.

I remembered the first spurt from Bills ejaculation

going over his head to the arm of the couch and I

looked for it to clean up.

It must have been clear fluid, because I couldn't find

any sign of it. So I plopped down on the couch and

patted the seat beside me for Bill.

"Wait," he said, "Let me go take care of something. I

gotta pee like crazy now."



"Wow, thanks for sharing" I said as Bill disappeared

down the hall to the bathroom.

I threw my head back and thought about the afternoon's

events and was overwhelmed. We had masturbated in

front of each other. I had held and stroked his

beautiful penis with my hands, and even kissed and

tasted some semen from it.

Was I pushing things too fast? Had I let my hormones

and over active sex drive take over?

Were we just in love and trying to share everything?

It was natural to have a wonderment of sex, but we let

so much happen this afternoon. Then it struck me. We

let a lot happen, but we had not had risky

intercourse, or even tried. That was the one

thing we promised each other we would avoid. We

wouldn't let us get pregnant to dictate our futures.

We expressed our love and took no chances.

I was suddenly proud, and felt like we performed

as responsible adults.

Bill returned from the bathroom and sat next to me.

"We did good," he said. "We really got off big time

and enjoyed each other sexually and never even got

close to really screwing and risking anything

happening."

I chuckled and told Bill the same thought had just

passed through my mind. I told him about all the

sexual frustration I had felt in the month leading up

to today. He reiterated my points and emphasized his

own frustration in that time.

Then he added, "But, you know Carree, moments like

these will be few and far between for us. Being alone

where we can do as we want. We will have to grab them

when we can. We have to come up with a way to spend a

night together. Wouldn't that be awesome?"

"That would be incredible, Bill. But, I agree these

moments will be rare. mom and Dad only paint at the

church, or stay away like this once in a blue moon. We

will have to pick our spots. But I really don't want

us to have to go home and hide in our rooms from each

other when we get all . . .excited, by each other.

We should try to do each other, if we can. It's

something we will have to work on," I said in awe of

the moment.

"Now, you have to answer some questions I had when you

said I kept interrupting you. Like, how come your sack

was all big and droopy, and then got all round and

tight, before you exploded?."



"I guess the fluid from my sack goes to like another

place or tube where it picks up that clear stuff to

lube its journey. I guess it helps it shoot harder and

with more power to reach the females egg. Remember the

body thinks we are doing it to make babies. Not, just

to get off"

"I KNOW that," I said. "But, getting sexual and

feeling good and having orgasms is also part of love

and expression too. If there was a baby for every

orgasm we would be a little deep in babies.

And, I guess you answered the other question I had,

about that clear stuff. NOW, lets talk about something

that was brought up and sort of . . . you know . . .

happened. Oral sex."

Bill squirmed a little uncomfortably and I sensed it

was something he didn't ever plan on talking about.

"Don't go limp on this here, Bill. You told me in the

heat of passion, that you imagined me kissing or

sucking it. I know we all grow up thinking that it's

something only bad girls do, and good girls don't.

But, I know from reading at the library, talking with

other girls, especially ones with big sisters and

even mothers that will talk about it, that oral sex is

natural, very satisfying, safe and lots of fun.

Obviously we are talking about you on me, as well as

me on you. Now, tell me what you think of it, and how

you would feel about us doing it to each other. I know

I'm being forward and forcing you to be honest and

forthright on the spot without time to alibi yourself.

You said you fantasized about me doing it."

Bill was flustered by my frank talk. "Yes, I guess

every guy imagines their girl doing it. It's supposed

to feel real good, the next best thing to the real

thing. The image of a girl with a, you know . . . a

penis in her mouth is real sexy. And, YES, I have

thought about doing it to you. You know already that I

love sucking licking on your breasts. I wanted to lick

you all the way down your belly right to your, your .

. . pussy. It looks so nice all pink inside. When you

get excited your mound puffs up with that pretty

little clit sticking out.

I saw it in movies I got from my old mans room. When

you were opening yourself up today, I wanted to dive

in. Geez, Carree, how do you get me talking about

this stuff. This is guy talk."

"No, its not, it's honest lovers talk. Don't you think

I have some of the same fantasies about you? Is it

stupid to make a fantasy about your lover come true?

I thought that was the reason we had sex. IE:

communication!!" I said.

"Once again, you ARE right Care. I guess guys are more

comfortable beating around the bush. Left up to me I

suppose I would still be trying to get a hand under

your bra today," he said laughingly.

"Hey," I said. "C'mere," I said as I pulled him to me.

I pulled his face to mine and said, "I love you" and

kissed him deeply. He turned his body a little and

moved me back to the arm of the sofa and laid right on

me. We were necking and swapping spit like 2 horny

teenagers again. Our satisfied lusts were re-ignited.

In the matter of moments he his hands on my breasts

and I was getting heated up again. My shy little Billy

was now aggressive Bill, with a little initiative from

me. He apparently had spent some of his puberty

watching dirty movies to gather technique. He

was making all the right moves now. For the first

time, I felt a hand snaking down my pants.

"Bill, BILL," I cried out. "I want this as much as

you, but I don't think we have enough time. I can't do

anything to cause my parents to not trust me, you or

us."

"Care, its only 3:30. If you have to put the roast in

at 4:30 and they won't be home until after that, we

have lots of time." With that he buried his face into

mine and I felt his hand going into my panties and

touching my pussy. I was sooo hot.

Bill ran his fingers past my clit and pushed them into

my soaking pussy ever so tentatively. He did not know

what to expect, this was his first. Finally I could

not stand the teetering on the brink of ecstasy and

fear.

"STOP Bill!!" I said, as I pulled his

hand from my pants. "I want you so bad but I'm afraid

of being caught. This is too risky!"

Bill hugged me and tried to allay my fears.

"Please don't be afraid. Calm down. I don't want my

Carree to be afraid." He said.

So, he just hugged me and kept whispering in my ear.

"Everything's OK, Everything's OK, Everything's OK."

I started to cry and I wanted to go wipe my face. I

asked Bill to let me up and he did. He walked me to

the bathroom and wiped my tears for me. He was so

loving and gentle as he held my face, wiping my tears,

easing my fears.



"Hey," he said. "We have a whole lifetime for this. No

sense in driving ourselves crazy over it, right? I

want you to be free and easy like you were before when

we make love, no matter how or when we do it. We have

a lot of time in our life's."

"You understand? . . . right?" I said. "I do want to

love you and let you love me, but how can I relax and

enjoy us if I have to worry about them coming home?"

"I know, I know, I . . ." Bill started to say but was

interrupted by the ringing of the phone. I broke our

embrace and ran to answer it.

"Hi Mom," Bill heard me say, and he left the room so

as not to make any noise to let on he was there.

Mom asked if I could hold off on dinner for another

hour. Instead of spending Sunday afternoon painting,

they were close enough to done to finish today and

leave Sunday free. Then she asked if Bill was here. I

panicked and lied, saying no.

"Well," she said, "he may call. His uncle let him out

of work early. We just got back from his store, we had

to get more brushes."

Quickly, I covered myself. "Oh, he called. He's going

to come over in a little while and we are going to

study together."

"Are you sure that's all," my mom asked suspiciously.

"Yeah Mom, it's what? a quarter of 4 now and you were

due home at 4:30. Like we had BIG plans. We both have

Physics lab finals Monday and Tuesday. He IS my lab

partner. Besides, we're going out tonight."

"OK," she said. "Study hard. And don't forget about

putting dinner in the oven. Turn it on at 5:15 and put

it in at 5:30. Don't change anything. I have it all

set to go."

"OK, Mom, no problem. I have to run. Bill is just

getting here now," I lied.

We said goodbye and hung up.

"Bill, you better go," I said "I think my mom is

suspicious about you being here."

"We actually have more time, but I think the mood is

gone for me now. We're going out tonight. We can have

fun later, OK?"

"I suppose you ARE right," he said. "We did do a lot

today and maybe we let our lust get the better of us.

I love you Carree and I want to be with you all the

time. I want to hold you and put my mouth all over

you, taste you and make love to you, nothing will

change that, either."

"I know, I want all those things too, but we have

time. Time tonight, time in our lives." Saying that, I

reached around and squeezed his butt, saying "Get out

of here you bad boy, and make sure you shower REAL

good and pick me up at 8:00. OK?" I said winking at

him, "lover?"

"OK, Baby" he said as he gathered his coat and walked

to the door.

I followed and kissed him hot and deep at he door. "Be

a good boy and save it all for later, OK?" I said.

He knew what I meant.

- - - - - - - - - - - -

Once Billy left I felt like a different person. I felt

like a woman for the first time in my life. I went

into the bathroom to pee and when I stood up to pull

my jeans up I glanced at the full-length mirror on the

back of the door and stopped.

For the first time ever, I saw a sexy woman, with a

sexy woman body. Instead of pulling up my jeans, I

peeled them off, and then pulled my sweatshirt over my

head. I stood there looking at myself. My breasts were

perfect. Firm, but with a little gravity droop and the

nipple perfectly centered and tipped. My waist was

slim and flat, but not boney. Even my navel was a

picture perfect inny. My hips flared perfectly to form

a nicely shaped lower abdomen and when I turned I had

a full firm round bottom. I posed for myself, proud

and sure of myself. I looked at my pubic hair and

decided to do something about that right now. I

checked the clock and saw I had over 45 minutes before

I had to pre-heat the oven. Plenty of time.

I was really afraid to use any shaving cream on my

tender parts, thinking it might sting or leave

irritation or a scent. After all, who knows, soon

someone might be close enough to it to smell or

see it. I laughed to myself.

My new found sexual freedom filled me with a

confidence.

I grabbed the Nutregena bar and began working up a

lather. Then I remembered that it might be a little

easier if I used scissors to cut the large tufts of

hair away. So I rinsed my hands and went to the

kitchen nude to grab the shears. Walking through the

house naked and free made me feel and more womanly.

Back in the bathroom I straddled the toilet and let

the clippings fall in as I snipped away a lot of my

pubes.

Once I was sure no more could be gotten that easily, I

went back to lathering the Nutregena bar. Once I got a

good later up I began dabbing it and rubbing it into

my crotch. I grabbed a couple new razors and sat on

the cold edge of the tub. Gently I began losing my

blonde bush. As I got down to the nitty gritty where I

had to hold my lips open and posture to get all the

hair I began to feel some warm familiar

feelings. I thought of "jilling" off right on the

spot, but I asked Bill to save himself for tonight,

and I should do the same.



If we were going to be able to find a private spot to

be alone, I wanted it to be HOT. I thought about what

might happen tonight, what possibilities there were.

Could he just get his hands in my pants and finger and

rub me? Should I wear a dress or skirt so I could

slide it up? We were only going to a movie. A dress?

Nah!

Outside of school I ALWAYS wore jeans, except to

church. If we were going to a dinner or a party,

maybe. Would we get a spot alone enough for me to take

off my jeans? I doubt that. Would I have to take them

off if he wanted to oral me, well I guess it's called

'going down' or 'eating'. Call it what you might, the

thought of his tongue on me sounded exciting. Would I

have to go down on him? Have to? Geez, I wouldn't do

anything I didn't want to. Kissing the head of his

penis before was exciting, but the thought of trying

to put my lips around it and taking it in my mouth, I

don't know.

It looked big, and I didn't think I could do anything

like the girls in Kim's video. They had it going down

their throats!! One of the girls just put the head in

her mouth and jerked the guy off.

Could I do that? Did I want to?

All of a sudden I was getting cold feet on the oral

sex bit. If Bill were to cum in my mouth the way he

came earlier I would surely not be able to swallow the

volume of it, nor did I really want to revel in the

taste of it. I didn't really know what it tasted like.

A drop on my tongue was one thing. A juice glass full

of it? . . .Ewwww! Suppose it made me want to vomit?

But, suppose my passion for Bill made me not care

about any of this and I would really want to swallow

everything he shot out. I would play this by ear

for sure.

I stood and went to the mirror real close and

inspected my shave. My Lord, my little slit looked

like it did when I was twelve when I would take baths

and play with things in the tub. I would lie on my

back in the tub and use my stomach for a stage, with

that pink split at the end being the 'ramp' where

Barbie and Ken would run into the water.

I bet when I get aroused it will look really nice.

Bill would be

surprised when he put his hand down there later, if he

put his hand down there later. God, I hoped so.

My sexy thoughts were broke by the ring of the phone.

I ran to the living room in the buff again to answer

it. It was Megan.

She wanted to know how my lunch was with Bill, but she

changed the subject quickly. She asked for no details,

I offered none. She really called to tell me her plan

with Jimmy that night. She gathered the rings and

personal things he had given her and was going to tell

him to take everything, if all she was to him was "a

fuck."

She said that everything that was so special and

personal meant nothing, if all he wanted her for was

sex. I asked her if she realized she may lose him and

get her feelings hurt badly tonight. She said she

knew, but this was what she wanted. I told her to talk

to him first about how she felt, before she offered

the give back. Throwing the stuff in his face from the

get-go might run him off.

She said she knew and had prepared herself for

anything. If things didn't go well, she wanted to

talk later. I told her I would be late and she said to

call on her private number whenever I got home. I told

her I would try, but not be disappointed if I didn't.

She agreed and we hung up.

I went to the kitchen to find something to hold me

till dinner. I was a bit peckish. After all, I had

"worked" hard that afternoon.

I saw bananas on the counter hanger and grabbed one.

As I peeled it I realized the phallic implications of

it. It was a fairly large fruit, firm and just a day

past showing any green. Not as big around as Bill on

the end, but the rest was close, it seemed.

Could I get my mouth down over this. Here I was, nude,

on the sofa, trying to give a banana a blowjob.

Seriously, putting my mouth around it and slipping a

few inches in seemed like a good preview of the real

thing.

It wasn't warm, and didn't have that smooth texture,

but it was round. I slid it in and out of my mouth a

few times. Definitely not sexy. Made me want to gag.

Maybe oral sex was not going to be for me. I ate the

banana. It was its punishment for leaving me un-

satisfied in my quest for a penis substitute. I went

to the fridge for a drink and opened it to see a big

kielbasa wrapped in saran wrap on a plate.

Was I that curious? Sure, but I would leave some

curiosity's undiscovered. It was the right girth, and

had a smooth outer skin. It was smooth and it was as

fat or fatter than Bills penis. I wasn't that sick

yet, I thought to myself.

But, in all seriousness, Bill and I hadn't really

promised each other oral sex; we just said it was a

possibility. I began to cool on the thought it might

happen tonight, although, I did want to get further

satisfaction and bring a closure to our earlier

"playing."

We hadn't really finished . . . The wall clock

striking the quarter hour took me out of my daydream.

I saw the time and ran to get dressed. I didn't want

my parents to see me nude, especially with my shaved

pussy. I cleaned up all the evidence of my shave, got

a bra and dressed. I took care of dinner, as

instructed, and waited for my parents to come back.

I was at the table studying when mom and Dad got home.

"Billy gone already, Carree?" my mom asked as soon as

she walked in the door.

"Yes, he only stayed a few minutes, maybe a half hour.

We went over the labs we were being tested on. We have

a study hall together on the morning of the tests, so

. . . ," I explained.

"I don't like you too being alone together like that,

you know," my Dad added.

"Well, you better get used to him being around and

being alone with me, because I think he is the one," I

added coyly.

"Carree, you are only a young girl, how would you know

who you want to spend your life with," my Dad asked.

"I may be a young girl, but I will be 18 in a few

weeks. I am not stupid and I have an idea of what I

might want with my life. Why don't we just drop the

subject. Before I run off and get married I DO plan on

finishing High School and College.

We have a while to worry about that," I said as I

started upstairs.

"Young lady, you just make sure you stay out of

trouble," my Dad added.

I stopped in my tracks and turned to him.

"What kind of trouble do you mean," I asked him

knowingly.

"You know damn well what I mean, getting pregnant and

screwing up our plans for you. Sitting out at the end

of that driveway every night will only get you in

trouble," he rambled on.

"Daddy," I began, "First of all, I have my own plans

for myself, but I am sure they run the same direction

as yours. Secondly, to get pregnant, we would have to

be having sex, and we are not stupid about how

pregnancy can ruin our lives at our age.

Thirdly, what we do or say at the end of that driveway

are private moments between us. If you want, we will

drive up in front of the porch and you can watch to be

sure I am a good girl.

But, you know you raised me to be a good girl. So,

have a little confidence in me, and my judgment. As I

said, I WILL be 18 in a few weeks and will be

considered an adult. When you look at me, don't you

see an adult? . . . and Mom, you called him Billy

before, his name is Bill!!"

"Eighteen does not make you an adult. You will still

live under this roof and live by my rules," Daddy

said.

"I know Daddy. Have I ever done anything to make you

unhappy, or disrespect you or your rules? I think it

might be nice to have 3 adults living in this house

together. We should be able to discuss things on an

intelligent level with input from all

sides.," I said.

"OK pumpkin, I think we are all on the same page. I

just have a hard time not looking at you thinking of

you as my little girl. I want to protect you."

I came down from the third stair where I was speaking

from, and kissed my Daddy.

"I'll always be your little girl, Daddy. Just when you

look at me, I don't think you see a little girl

anymore. I hope you see a woman."



I turned in my semi-tight jeans and walked up the

stairs swaying my hips to accent the fact I was a

woman. As I turned at the top of the banister to go

down the hallway I saw that he watched the whole show.

"I'm right, aren't I Dad?" I said and smiled.

"Dinner in 5 minutes!" I heard my mom say as I closed

my door.

Talk over dinner was small and mostly about their work

at the church that day. A little was brought up about

school and working on college applications. I told

them that I had a meeting scheduled with my guidance

counselor and that closed that door of

discussion. We touched on Bill for a second, with me

reminding them that we were going out that night,

probably to a movie. I didn't think that telling them

that we might try oral sex would be a good move at

this point.

Bill was prompt in calling for me at eight, but

instead of beeping like he often did, he came to the

door. I was in the utility room ironing my blouse when

I heard him come in.

"Hi Mr. Kasc, is Carree almost ready?" Bill asked.

" Yes she is Billy, err, Bill. She is. We were running

a little late today. Carree's mother and I were

working at the church and we ran a little long, so

dinner was late."

"No problem sir, I wanted to ask you a question,

anyway," I heard Bill say and I wondered what it might

be.

"There is a new teen night club that just opened in

town. A friend of mine is in the band that is playing

there and he asked me to come and hear them. The club

is open until 1:00 a.m. and the band finishes at

12:45. I know you have always wanted Carree home by

midnight, but I was wondering if we could stretch that

tonight. The club is endorsed by both local high

school principals, and the local police, according to

the article in today's paper. They all give it a thumb

up. You know that for any reason, if I thought Carree

would be in any trouble or danger I either wouldn't

bring her there, or would leave with her right away.

Umm . . . I love your daughter, sir. I would never let

anything happen to her."

I couldn't believe my ears. Bill talking real talk and

words with my Dad, and telling him he loved me. He

even referenced an article in the paper. I knew

reading all those darn newspapers would pay off. I had

just finished ironing my blouse, and stood behind the

door to drop my robe and slip into it, I didn't want

to miss a word of this.

"Well, what a coincidence Bill. We love our daughter

too. That's why we have the curfew, to keep her safe.

But, as long as you think this place is OK, you kids

have a good time. But, STAY OUT OF TROUBLE. I don't

want the first time I go against my better judgment to

come around and bite me, OK?"

"Umm, Sir, if it's against your better judgment, maybe

we should skip it then," Bill said confidently.

"No, Son. You seem to have researched this a little

and I will trust your judgment. I trust you with my

daughter, so I must think something of that," my Dad

said.

This could not be happening. They were talking like

adults. Did my little speech and vamp give my Dad an

epiphany?

"She's in good hands Sir. I always take good care of

her, and her me. We're a team. I plan to always take

good care of her," Bill reiterated sweetly. (I was so

proud of him knowing that he didn't know I could hear

him. His intentions were clear for the future of us)

"Billy, you've never given us reason to think you had

bad judgment, or couldn't be trusted," Dad said.

"Thank You Sir, and a . . . it's Bill, sir. Your

daughter sir, she thinks it makes me sound more

mature, or as mature as I am. I will be 18 in a few

days. She thinks Billy sounds like a boy. I've always

hated it. I tried to lose it a long time ago, but

people insisted on adding the L-Y. Carree has gotten

most everyone to change it to Bill," Bill stammered.

My Dad leaned close to Bill and made a comment. Later

I found out he said something like,

"When you are as pretty as she is, people tend to pay

more attention" and then he winked at him.



I'll never figure my Dad out, but I sure do love him.

That night and forward, he always trusted Bill with

me, even though I know sometimes he didn't want to,

but he told himself we were adults.

I always think about that night, and it's a kinky

thought. It's that if Dad knew I had kissed Bills

penis and tasted his semen that very afternoon in the

very spot where he was sitting, he may have had the

big one, right on the spot.

I came out of the utility room with my freshly ironed

blouse on and walked through the living room.

"Hi Bill, be ready in a minute" I said as I passed

through, but Bill walked to me and kissed me hello,

right on the mouth.

"Hi, you look great. Your Dad says we can go to that

"DanceTeen" club downtown tonight. Make sure you bring

your school ID. Jerry Bennett's band is playing tere."

I was a little stunned by his kiss, but I played as if

I knew the score.

"You look nice and smell nice too, Bill. What's Jerry

calling his band this week? He changes it everyday.

I'll be right down, Bill. Dad, you're not asking Bill

any embarrassing questions are you?" I said laughing.

"No, pumpkin, I'm behaving," my Dad answered as I

disappeared up the stairs to my room.

I wanted to put a little blush on if we were going out

to dance. Being blonde and blue-eyed of Polish and

Swedish decent I tended to be extra white once the

summer sun was gone. As I sat at the mirror a knock

came to the door, it was my Mom.

"Carree dear, can I ask you a question without you

getting mad at me, a mother-daughter question?" she

asked.

"Sure Mom, we can talk as girls" I said smiling.

"When you and Bill have sex you are using dependable

birth control, aren't you" she said matter of factly.

"MOM! Whatever made you think that Bill and I are

having intercourse? We most certainly are not. It is a

subject we have fully discussed and talked about.

Getting pregnant could be the worst thing that could

happen. We will not take chances. We just talked about

this at the dinner table tonight didn't we? I said

a little peeved.

"You didn't exactly say you weren't having

intercourse, you said that you were not stupid about

how pregnancy can ruin our lives at your age. I'm not

stupid either, Carree," my mom said rather smartly as

if she had caught me in a lie.

"Mom, whether you believe it or not, I am a virgin.

Bill has not had sexual intercourse with me, nor has

he attempted. Remember just a couple weeks ago I told

you he thought I was going to be a nun? Well . . . do

you think he would have tried before with a nun? We

have talked about sex at great lengths, Mom. We know

that ANY risk is too much. We love each other too much

to jeopardize our future lives together." I said to my

Mom not really believing she thought I used certain

words to deceive her.

"Don't be mad at me Carree, I just want you to be safe

when you decide to do it. I always have condoms for

you to take if you want them.," she said.

"Mom, have you heard a word I said?" now even more

peeved. "We don't plan on doing it. Keep your condoms

for you and Dad."

"Carree, I'm sorry for not trusting you or your

judgment. I just know the pressure there was when I

was in school and . . ." my Moms voice trailed off.

She wanted to say more but stopped herself. She hugged

me and said, "I didn't always have the best friends

and certainly anyone as nice as Bill. I didn't meet

your Dad until college, and he was the first boy who

ever respected me. Your Dad and I, we talked about you

and Bill tonight while you were showering and getting

ready. We don't like you being so serious with a boy,

but we think Bill is nice. You are grown up and seem

to have a good head on your shoulders. Be careful and

don't let us down."

"Mom, can we talk about this later, I have to go. Just

be assured that Bill and I have a good grasp in each

other's lives, and know the consequences of messing

up, especially with sex. But Mom, you do know, (I

paused for an effect, which I got), I love Bill." I

said. As she nodded I grabbed her arm went out of my

room, and we walked down the stairs together.

"Hi Mrs. Kasc," Bill said as we came down the stairs.

"It's easy to see where Carree gets her beauty from,

you 2 could be twins."

"Oh my God," mom said, "She's dating Eddie Haskell"

Bill blushed and said "No, really, the 2 of you look

so much alike."

"Yeah sure, Eddie," I said. "Lay it on thick for my

Mom." I rolled my eyes as I walked passed him to kiss

my Dad goodnight.

Bill turned and grabbed my hand and we headed to the

door. He looked right back at my Dad and said. "The

band stops at 12:45, so we should be back not long

after, Goodnight."

When we got in the car Bill looked at me and said;

"Wow, your Dad really softened up tonight. What

happened?"

"I told them both that we were no longer kids and

would be 18 soon, and were pretty serious about each

other. I assured them we were not having intercourse

and to trust us," I explained.

"They asked you about sex and you told them we weren't

doing anything? Do you really think they believed

that?" Bill asked incredulously.

"No, I told them we weren't having intercourse, and

had not planned to either. I told them I was a virgin

and would stay that way," I said.

"Whoa, heavy stuff. They must listen to you and trust

you though. The difference in them was obvious," Bill

said.

"You know," I began. "When my Dad called me his little

girl, I was on the stairs. I turned and asked him if

THIS looked like a little girl, as I walked up the

stairs swaying my hips. You know that may have been

the first time he ever looked at me as a woman, and I

think he realized that I was."

"Carree, with your butt, I don't think he could miss,"

Bill chuckled.

"My mom still has a nice shape, and I think he sees a

lot of her in me. He acts the macho Dad part, but my

Mom really runs the show, for the most part. She acts

the innocent doting wife, but she keeps my Dad in

line." I said as Bill slipped the car in gear and we

went off.

"What do you want to do?" Bill asked. "We could go to

a movie and then go to the DanceTeen club, or just go

to the club and wait for the band to start at 9:30.

Or, Jerry said we could stop at his brothers

apartment. It's right around the corner from the

club. He's living there on the weekend when he plays."

"How about Jerry's brother, does he mind if he has

company?" I asked.

"No, he works at Mount Snow all weekend as a ski

instructor, so Jerry has the run of the place. He

can't have parties or anything, but he said we could

stop by," Bill explained.



"Well, I'd like to see Jerry if you want to go there

first. This is the first year I am not in any of his

classes, so we just usually say hi in the hall and

that's it. Plus, I couldn't sit through a movie

tonight. Umm . . . you ARE going to get us alone

sometime tonight too, aren't you. I think we have to

talk about everything today and . . . you know," I

said.

"Yes, I want to be alone for a while too. I wish I

knew a good place to park NOW, but at 8:30, it's a

little tough." Bill said.

We got into town and went down near the urban

reconstruction area and found the club. They had a big

parking lot across the street, well lit and

everything. Bill said he was worried about going to

his car late in the dark, but felt better now. There

was a four-story brownstone reconstruction at the end

of the block and Bill said that was the place Jerry

was staying.

We parked in the club lot and walked to the corner.

Bill buzzed Jerry and was let in.

Inside there were a couple townhouses and 4

apartments. Jerry's brother was in an apartment. Jerry

was standing at the door as we came up the stairs. We

hugged and shook hands as he invited us

in. Two other guys in the band were there and we all

sat in the kitchen to talk. Jerry was always the class

clown all through school. He and I were pal-sy wal-sy

since the sisters usually put him with me on projects

in grade school. I was serious and wouldn't let him

goof off, I guess. But he was always a great friend.

Once he got interested in playing guitar he got more

serious about everything. I guess he channeled his

goofiness elsewhere. Now, he was thinking of going

into pre-med if he kept his grades up enough to get a

scholarship.

We all laughed and had a good time just talking. His

band mates asked if we were cool, because they had

some beer with them.

Jerry said that we were, and he offered us some, but

we did not partake. Jerry told them to be sure they

didn't smell like beer when they went to the club.

They each guzzled 2 beers and began to gather

instrument cases. Jerry said he would see them in a

few minutes and let them out.

With just the three of us Jerry turned more serious

and talked about school, and making money with the

band. He spoke about how this club was going to be

great for him if they kept him on for a while. Then he

looked at his watch and said he had to get down to

finish set up and tune-up.

"Do you guys want to stay here for a bit. Its 9:00 and

we don't start until, usually 9:45. It's just tuning

up and stuff. There's soda in the fridge, and a . . .

I have the only key." He said winking.

"No, we couldn't do that, Jerry. It wouldn't be right.

That's not why we . . ."Bill started, but I

interrupted.

"Why not Bill? A few minutes alone would be the chance

we wanted to talk," I said.

Jerry put his hand on Bill's shoulder. "Go ahead. I

know what its like trying to find a few minutes alone

with your girl. I only see Julie a couple times during

school, (Julie goes to an out of state prep school)

and I wish I had some of these alone times. No

one knows you're here but me. We're all old buds and

lips are zipped. Just lock the door when you leave.

Put the chain on and set the deadbolt after I go."



Bill was quick to say "Jerry, it's not like we're

gonna . . . ."

But Jerry interrupted, "I don't care what you do Bill.

It's none of my business. Enjoy a few minutes together

if you want, or watch TV. Come on down to the club

when you want, your names will be on the guest list."

With that, Jerry went to the door. Set the lock,

picked up his guitar case and left.

"You can set the chain and bolt if you like," he said

as he left.

The door closed and I looked at Bill.

"Was this a set-up?"

"No, Carree, I swear. I never knew. Trust me on this,"

Bill defended.

"Bill, I trust you on everything. I just wanted your

word. I have it. Chain the door, and I'll feel

better," I said.

"Geez, I feel dirty, Care," Bill said.

"Why," I asked, "because you're alone with me? Or

because our buddy thinks we're going to be screwing

like bunnies in a few minutes."

"That's it," Bill said. "Too many of our friends are

having sex and when word of this gets around, they

will think we are too."

"Jerry said his lip was zipped. I take him at his

word. Besides, I can always fall back on the nun

routine," I said laughing and hugging Bill at the same

time.

"Lets enjoy a couple minutes alone. OK Lover?" I said

giving him a squeeze.

We started to kiss and that quickly turned into

necking as we stood in the foyer of the apartment. I

felt a longing between my legs begin to build. I

definitely had some frustration from earlier this

afternoon that I wanted to burn off, but Bill broke

the kiss.

"Do you really want our first time together to be like

this? We watched each other this afternoon and felt

the beauty of the intimacy, but this is not like that.

I want the first time we really do each other to be

something we remember as a special moment. This isn't

it. Don't be mad at me, Care. But if we walk in that

place in 45 minutes or an hour, Jerry and both of his

band mates are going to know, or think, we got laid. I

love you more than that."

Bill almost made me cry. I was letting my passion

(read horniness) get the best of me. He was thinking

of the moment and us. He was right and I knew it. If

he was patient enough, I had to be. This was another

reason why this man was so special.

"You're right baby," I said. "Looking back on this

wouldn't be as much special as tawdry. I just want us

to make each other happy. Even if it's in the car at

the end of my driveway, it's just us sharing it. Let's

get down to the club before they have a chance

to think we did something."

Bill made sure the lock was set and closed the door

with a click. There were lots of others on the streets

now milling to get in DanceTeen. Couples got in

cheaper so I think some were trying to find a familiar

face to hook up with. The line was short, only 8 or

10. When we got to the door Bill said, "We are on the

guest list, Wilson. Bill Wilson."

The bouncer checked his guest list. "I'm going to need

a picture ID Mr. Wilson."

Bill produced his drivers license and the bouncer

looked at him, checked the picture, ran it under a

blue light and handed it back to Bill.

"Go ahead in, let me stamp your hands. You and Mrs.

Wilson have a good time. Enjoy the band."

Bill grabbed my hand and whisked me inside saying

"C'mon Mrs. Wilson. You're holding up the line."

We had a good laugh with that the rest of the night.

Did the bouncer really think 2 high school teens were

married?

Jerry saw us as soon as we got there. He told us the

band didn't start for another half hour and we could

have waited. We just wanted to be sure he knew we came

right down. We had a great time dancing and seeing

friends from school. We felt kind of grown up even

though we were just drinking sodas and virgin mixed

drinks. Jerry's band was great and the place went wild

at the end of each set. We impressed some people by

the fact that Jerry came over and sat with us on each

break.

To us he was just good ol' Jerry Bennett,

class clown. To lots of the girls there, he was band

meat. Jerry said that his girl, Julie, worried about

band-chicks picking him up. But, he wasn't interested.

Jerry was a great guy.

The band went on for their last set at midnight and we

said our good-byes to Jerry before he went up. We

wanted to leave at 12:30 or so. Although my Dad didn't

really give Bill a curfew, he wanted to, at least, be

in the driveway before one o'clock.

The night air was cold when we left and we jogged

across the street to the car. Bill let me in and I

couldn't wait to snuggle up to him to get warm. He

started the engine and we waited a few minutes for it

to warm up. We just had a long hug waiting for the

heat to come up. Bill opened his jacket and let me lie

against him while he tried to wrap it around me.

Once the heat started up I sat up so he could drive.

As I pushed away from him I felt his erection against

my elbow. I wished we had a place to go besides

my driveway.

The drive home seemed short, maybe because we were

cold, maybe because we couldn't wait to hold each

other. Before I knew it, we were pulling off the road

onto our drive. Bill flicked off the

lights as soon as he turned and again we were parked

just beyond the glow of the last streetlight of town.

Bill kept the car running tonight. This last weekend

before Thanksgiving was a cold one. Once the car was

in park Bill reached for me and we hugged.

My head was nuzzled into his chest and neck, he

whispered "I love you" and I held him even closer, if

that was possible.

"We won't see each other much this week, with family

stuff and the Holiday," Bill said.

"We are going to my grandmothers in Vermont for a few

days. We leave Wednesday after school and come back

Sunday morning. I'll miss you."

"I'll miss you too, but family stuff is important.

Maybe we can get together Sunday afternoon. Maybe we

can do some Christmas shopping together?" I answered.

"What are you going to do for the week, any plans?" he

asked.

"Well," I began, "Meg has passes and gift certificates

for skiing at the Tyrol in Okemo. We may go up Friday

and come back Saturday if she can get the car. When

Heidi ran the ski trip last year, Megan was all paid

up, and then couldn't go because it ended up being the

same weekend as her parent's thirtieth anniversary

party. So, she has a chalet and 2-day ski pass. Last

year her mom and dad took us and let us have a chalet

together. It ended up costing me a couple hundred

dollars. My Dad thought I was nuts, but it was great.

We skied all day and stayed up half the night talking.

Plus, her mom and Dad got to be alone in their own

chalet, so it was a vacation for them too. This year

if we go on the gift certs and passes it shouldn't

cost me even $50, plus gas. She wanted to bring Jimmy,

but couldn't find a way to do it without her parents

finding out. Now, they might break up. If that happens

I will be the crying shoulder for the weekend."

"That doesn't sound like fun, except for the skiing. I

can't wait to get out this year. I got those new ski's

last year and only got out once," he said as he turned

his face down and twisted to kiss me. "But, I have

other things in mind right now."

Bill really knew how to push my buttons with his

kissing. The way he nibbled on my tongue, and covered

my lips with his was so sexy. This while holding me

tightly to him made me nuts. I wanted to feel him

closer so I broke our clench and knelt up on the seat

and opened my coat. Now I was the aggressor kissing

down on his lips but could hold my unjacketed chest to

his. The kissing got pretty hot and heavy as he

reached around me and held my ass, squeezing and

kneading me. I hummed a moan of approval and he

continued feeling my butt. I felt his free hand crawl

up my blouse to feel my breasts.

Again I hummed the same moan to let him know he was

doing just fine.

He pulled his hand away from my breasts and I felt him

pulling my blouse out of the waist of my jeans so he

could slide his hand up. My bra was a thin one, more

for sleeping than anything, but it made me feel sexy,

almost braless.

He slid his hands over the slick silky texture and

pinched each nipple. I was wet as hell. I lifted my

head from his face and that put his head almost level

with my breasts.

He put both hands on my waist and pushed my blouse up

over my bra. He reached behind me to unsnap me and I

had to show him the front clasp.

"Oooo, that's handy for me," he said with a smile.

Bill buried his face in my breasts sucking, fondling

and squeezing them. He really knew how to chew on my

nipples just to the point of where they hurt and then

he would soothe them with a nice tonguing. (More

technique from porno movies?) I was going to worry

about the time, but at this point, Dad was going to

have to come down to the car to get me in the house. I

felt one of Bill's hands at my belt undoing it and

then searching for the snap on my jeans.

I felt it undo and my zip go down. I had to feel his

hands on my pussy. Just as he slid his hand down I

remembered that I had shaved. I dropped my hand to

stop his. He looked up at me a little panic.

"Ready for a little surprise?" I said.

He looked at me confused.

"You'll find out," I said as I removed my hand from

his.

He slid down a little more and got underneath my

panty. Right away he knew what I had done.



"Ohhh, you are a nasty little girl. Did you do that

for me?" he said.

"Who else," I answered.



"Oh, baby, I wish I could see it, and kiss it" Bill

said teasing the hell out of me.

"I don't think that can happen tonight, it's a little

cold to get undressed out here, but that will be for

another night, OK?" I whispered to him.

Bill dipped his hand to my pussy and traced the whole

length, and then put his finger on my clit. I was

shaking with desire for him.

"I've been waiting," I whispered, "I've been waiting

for you to touch me so intimately, so privately, for

so long. I thought you were afraid," I said as I

shuttered, "or didn't feel the way I did. Ughhh

Ughhhhh" my voice cracked and lost pitch as I neared

an early little climax.

"Nooooo, No," he whispered. "You've always been the

one. I was afraid, but not of the sex. I was afraid of

being rejected because the whole nun mess, that goddam

misunderstanding. Don't worry about that now, just

enjoy my loving you" he said as his hand busied itself

on my clit"

"Ughhhh Ughhhh," I reacted to each jolt of my coming

orgasm like ice being put down my back. It kept

building and building and I couldn't find the peak

"Ughhhh Ughhhh Ughhhh Ughhhh" I continued to grunt in

Bill's ear as I held my head tightly to his. Then it

hit me.

"Ohhhhhhhhhh Ughhhhhhhh," and then I couldn't even

draw a breath.

I spasmed and tried to contort myself away from Bill's

invading hand. My clit was so sensitive, each touch

was like a hot poker touching me. But, I couldn't draw

a breath, nor could I move from this spasmed cramped

position. I thought for sure I would black out. I was

at the top of my orgasm and I couldn't get off of it.

Then, as I drew a breath so deep it almost burned

going down my lungs, my climax passed.

I was finally able to grab Bill's hand through my

jeans to stop his assault on my clit.

"Please, Please, no more Bill, no more, I can't stay

conscious through another."

He took his fingers off my clit and just had his

middle finger waving back and forth just in between my

inner lips. It was nice and soothing, but I had to

stop him.

I was crazy from my orgasm and fully satisfied I had

it all, and then some. I pulled Bill's hand from my

pants.

"Oh God Bill, I can't take one more second of that. It

was wonderful, God oh so wonderful" I said, as I held

him in a death grip hug.

I breathed in and out of my mouth in his ear until I

began to get a normal cadence breath.

"Let me take care of you now, Bill. I'm sure you're as

crazy as I was. You were hard in the parking lot at

the club," I whispered.

"I was watching you dance, that's enough to get anyone

excited. Knowing I was going to drive you home had me

going all night," he said.

"Oh Bill, I hope I can make you feel as special as you

did me," I said as I reached to rub his length through

his pants.

After a couple strokes I reached for his belt and

fingered it loose. I unsnapped his pants and worked

his zipper down.

"Let me raise up and lower these a little, OK?

Otherwise I don't think I'll have enough room to let

it out" he said as he did just that.

Once again I said, "Lordy, you men are funny

creatures."

Then I reached into his boxers and pulled them over

his erection. I didn't have as much light as earlier,

but I could see it and it was still beautiful.

These penis things were new to me, but I know that I

liked them. Warm and powerful to hold in your hand

and totally reactive to any touch.

Still kneeling on the seat with my blouse and pants

open, I sat up to fix myself a little.

"I'm sorry to stop there a second, but I'm cold," I

said as I re-snapped my bra and tucked my blouse into

my jeans again.

Once done with that I returned my right hand to his

penis and grabbed near the base. The loose foreskin

easily sheathed with my hand as I began to stroke him

up and down.

I liked doing this, and to hear him hum moans, he did

too. I stopped my stroke for a second and moved my

right hand under his sack and felt his balls roll

around in my hand. I twisted away from him a little to

get my left hand in the stroking.

He began to moan and breath heavy after a couple

minutes of this. I was having fun knowing I could

get him off as much as he did me. Each time I stroked

down the shiny head glowed in the light from outside.

It was beautiful.

I switched hands again leaving his balls to sit alone

so I could get a more coordinated rhythm on his dick.

I thought about earlier in the day when I kissed it.

I wondered if he wanted the same now. It looked

inviting, knowing how sensitive he was now and how he

showed no mercy on my little clit. I didn't know if I

really wanted to suck him or kiss him.

Was this my night for oral sex, even though it

couldn't work for me, to get undressed in the cold

car. Could I take any of his cum in my mouth?

Would he want or expect me too?

I was thinking too much and lost my stroke as he let

out a long breath.

"Don't stop like that" he said, "Keep going." Finally

the quandary in my head just voiced itself.

"Oh baby, do you want me to suck or kiss it for you,

would that help?" I breathlessly asked.

"Oh yeah Carree, but you don't have to do that. I

couldn't do it for you" he said through heavy breaths.

"I'll make you happy baby" I said as I shifted and

lowered my head.

I just stuck my tongue out a little and let it touch

him gently and then let my upper lip form a wide kiss

on the head. I slowed my hand a little to steady his

dick so I could keep the tip in my kiss.

Getting a little more brave, I allowed the whole

head in my mouth, moving just the head in and out in

rapid strokes.

When I lashed my tongue over the top while doing this

Bill groaned a deep groan and made guttural noises

through his open upturned mouth. I bobbed my head a

little and allowed maybe a inch plus the head in and

out of my mouth. The feeling was enjoyable feeling the

velvet smooth head with my tongue and lips.

But you could almost feel the hum of the blood

coursing through his engorged dick.

He began to hump at my face a little and I knew he was

going to explode soon. D-day! D-day! I said to myself.



Do I let this come in my mouth and spit it into a

napkin?

Do I let it shoot all over us and hope we can clean it

up good enough?

Do I swallow it and risk getting sick from the feel of

its unknown full taste and texture.

The decision was made for in a split second.

Bill sucked air and pushed a "Supp Supp Ughhh" sound

deep from in his throat.

A fine watery blast hit the back of my throat and I

wanted to gag, so I had to swallow that. Two shots

followed and went into my mouth and I didn't know what

to do, so I held them hoping there wouldn't be much

more.

Then more and more oozed out as he pumped towards my

lips. I was sucking naturally just to keep him in my

mouth with his movements under me.

My mouth was full!! What should I do??

Bill was reaching down and grabbing the side of the

seat to have something more to push up to me with.

To let it run out and down his dick and balls seemed

gross.

I had gotten into this without thinking too much about

this end of it, or how to end it. I gave up and

swallowed, one, then two mouthfuls of his cum.

I really tasted the second one and it was not great,

but not so terrible.

It was thick, salty, and just a trace of sweetness.

But, it had a sort of unpleasant, bleachy aftertaste.

As the second mouthful went down I felt more oozing

from the tip. I up-stroked with my hand and felt my

mouth fill a little again. I swallowed and pulled the

head from my mouth.

I coughed and began to gag a little and then all was

fine.

I kept my head down and swallowed my saliva over and

over to clear my mouth.

He was still oozing a little more and I kissed the tip

one more time to clean it. I still kept my head down

and was tying to produce as much saliva as possible to

swallow.

"Oh Carree" Bill said, his voice cracking and a cry

forming with it. "I love you so, so much. That was

unbelievable," he said as he pulled my head up from

his lap.

He looked me straight in the eye. "I love you," he

repeated.

I had been trying to not breath in his face so he

wouldn't smell my bleachy cum breath. But, he pulled

my face close and kissed me hard giving me his tongue

and inviting me to give him mine. There were still

traces of his cum in my mouth and I know we were

sharing it, and he didn't care.

I was glad of that. He wouldn't ask me to taste

anything he wouldn't.

I felt exhilarated in my feat.

Imagine sweet little Carree, she just gave her man,

Bill, a blowjob, and she loved herself for it.



I didn't like the term "blowjob", but "oral love"

sounded like a textbook.

Blowjob was fine, it left no doubt.

I felt his sweet surprise in my belly and we were both

happy. I hadn't planned it this way, but it happened.

I smiled big for Bill and said, "I'm glad I was able

to do that for you. I love to make you happy, and I

love to make my special love to you with my mouth.

Soon we will do it for each other, OK?"

Bill grabbed me and held me tighter than he ever did.

"Soon, soon," he said. "I want to have you that way

too. That was the most exciting thing that ever

happened to me, and you did it. You are so precious,

so, so precious."

He sat back and waited for his breathing to return to

normal. His dick was shrinking and the skin growing

over the head.



"Lets put him away while he still fits back in your

pants," I said as I pulled his boxers back up over his

penis.

He lifted his butt up and pulled them up the rest of

the way.

He fiddled with his belt and said,

"I better get you the rest of the way home, huh?" and

then he kissed me again and again.

He put the car in drive and went up the drive. As we

got close, the big sodium light went on, sensing the

movement of Bills car.

"Goodnight my special lover," I said as I kissed him

over and over again.

"This was the best day of my whole life, Bill," I

said.

"Same here, Carree. Today I know I am in love for the

rest of my life," he said.

"I know, Bill, I know," I agreed as I scooted towards

the door.

"Call me in the morning as soon as you get up, OK? I

already miss you and I'm not out of the car yet," I

said.

Then I got out of the car and closed the door. I bent

to look in and waved again.

He smiled and waved back, mouthing "I love you." I

strode towards the porch waiting to hear his car zoom

down the driveway.

Instead I heard a door open and I turned to find him

halfway to the porch.

He grabbed me and picked me up kissing me and spinning

me around.

It was like a corny movie.

"I just had to come back and kiss you and tell you

that I love you. I don't want you to forget it," he

said.

"Don't worry Bill, I wont. And I have something right

here" I said as I rubbed my tummy, "to remind me."



I planted my lips to his for another long kiss.

"You better go before we start something else," I

said.

He kissed me again and ran to his car, waving as he

got in and drove away. The clock struck 2:00 a.m. as I

walked into the house.

I went to the bathroom and sat on the john to pee. As

I wiped myself, I realized how sensitive I still was

from our play there earlier.

Getting to sleep in this "after sex" reverie would be

easy. I felt a little hunger pang because the only

thing in my stomach was Bills cum, his love.

I took a little sip of water to wash a stale taste

from my mouth and I went to bed.

Fully satisfied.

I was undeniably IN LOVE. IN HOT SEXY LOVE.

- - - - - - - - - - - -

"Carree come on, you have to wake up," I heard my mom

shout, and from her tone it was not the first time.

"I'm awake, I'm awake," I said. "What's the matter?"

"Church is the matter. Dad waited to go to eleven

o'clock mass for you, so you could sleep. It's five

after 10. We leave in 40 minutes and you want to get

ready, don't you? Shower and wash?" she said through

the door.

Then as she opened it to make sure I was awake she

continued in a softer voice.

"Your Dad said you were in the driveway before one

last night, and that Bill was a man of his word. He

doesn't know what time you came in, but he says the

last time he saw the clock before dozing off it was

quarter after, so you better say you were in by 20

after or half past."

I was a little irritated at being awoken so abruptly,

but glad they weren't going to nine o'clock Mass like

usual. Thank God for 2 hours extra sleep.

"I don't know what you do in that car for so long

every time you come home with him," my mom said, as

she made busy raising the shades and getting my towels

out and such.

"What did you do in cars with your boyfriends, Mother?

What do you think?" I asked, kind of smarty pants.

She grew stern in her look and lowered her voice even

more. "I DID what you said you DON'T do in cars with

my boyfriends, and I'm not proud of it now and that's

why I worry about you. I was as pretty as you and

every guy in the school wanted to go out with me. I've

said more than I want to here, but I take you at your

word that no screwing is going on and you're a virgin.

Don't do anything to make me think you are deceiving

me. I told MY mother I was a virgin too."

"Come on Mom, lighten up. You've told me more than I

want to know," I said. "It's really none of anyone's

business if I'm a virgin or not. But, I told you I

was, and if I wasn't, I would tell you that too,

especially now. Bill and I know the score. We spend a

lot of time out there because we can be alone together

and talk and kiss and what have you. Mom, I wouldn't

lie to you about this. I am a virgin."

"I believe you, honey," she said hugging me. "I'm

sorry I get so frustrated with this subject. But I

wasn't a very good girl in high school and I don't

want you to be like me. I was easy and no boy wanted

me for a steady girlfriend. I had to wait for college

to meet guys who didn't know my reputation."

"Why are you telling me this NOW, Mom?" I asked. "What

you did then makes no difference to anyone. We all

know the real you."

"I just wanted you to know that I know what can go on

out there. I didn't fall out of the sky a mother. I

was a teenager just like you. Oh, we're babbling on

here. Get ready for church. Some day we'll have a

woman to woman on it. OK?" she asked.

"OK, Mom," I said as I hugged her. "Don't worry about

me! Bill is the best guy in the world and he loves me

so much and I love him. We have it all together Mom,

really."

She smiled and wiped away a tear as she left. After

she left I panicked a second that she may have seen

that I shaved when I got out of bed to hug her.

However, my giant t-shirt covered me up all the way to

almost my knees.

If this were summer, I may have been a dead give away.

I gathered my towel and under things and threw on a

robe and went to shower. I thought of Bill all through

my shower and all through church. We were home about

15 minutes, about quarter after 12 when the phone

rang. I knew it was Bill.

"Hello?" I answered it.

"Hi Lover, how are you today?" Bill asked.

"Fantastic, how about you," I bubbled, to let him know

that I was still happy about last nights "activities."

"I have one small problem," he said. "I love you a lot

more today than yesterday," he said making me blush.

"I know that sounds corny, but its true. Can we get

out this afternoon?" he asked.

"I think so," I said. "Let me find out what's going on

here and I can call you back in a few. My parents like

me to check with them to see if they had plans. OK?"

"OK, I'll wait for your call. Bye, baby doll" he said

and hung up.

Mom fixed a quick brunch of hot cereal with berries

and pastries. She promised a nice big dinner tonight,

around 7:00. With all the Holiday activities coming

up, she wanted to have one nice meal to

finish off the week.

"I have a prime rib for tonight with all the fixings.

You can ask Bill if you want," mom said.

I checked to see if Dad was downstairs from changing

and said to her in a low voice,

"I'll ask him, only if you promise not to ask him

about sex in his car."

Mom looked up from stirring the Cream of Wheat and

said, "That is not amusing, I only said those things

to you to make sure you weren't lying to me about

that."

It irked me that she had to check to see if I was

lying. I never lied to her before. She must have told

some doozies in her day, though, to suspect ME so. My

fuse was lit.

Checking once more for Dad I strongly appealed to her.

"Mom, you told me this morning that you believed me,

now I feel you are doubting me. Damn it that makes me

mad,. . . my own mother!"

I heard my dad begin to come down the stairs so I had

to finish quick. I sidled up to mom with my fists

clenched at my side in frustration and whispered

loudly to her,

"You're my Mom, I'm your daughter. When I say I didn't

lie, believe me! I don't lie and I don't fuck!"

I stormed out of the room already sorry for what I

said. My Dad asked what the ruckus was because there

was never a raised voice in our house.

My mom was stifling tears and told my Dad it was

something she and I had to work out. She took

breakfast off the stove and sought me out.

I was looking out the picture window trying to cool

the boil I was on.

Mom said, "Up to your room right now, so we can talk

in private."

I turned on my heel and went up as instructed. She was

right behind me and closed the door.

"That word should only be used in passion, not in

anger. That was the first time it has ever been used

in this house in anger and I will not have it.

I never said you were a liar. I just wanted to make

sure you weren't holding back the truth to protect me.

I am wrong to blame you for the fact that I lied to my

parents about what I did with boys out to all hours.

I know that.

You have been brought up in a Christian household with

a Christian education, 2 things I never had.

I would like to think they made an impression on you,"

Mom finished and was flustered and near tears.

"Mom, I'm real sorry to use that word. I can tell you

it is the second time I have ever said it, and it was

in anger. On the other thing, I just resent being

doubted. I never lied to you or Dad and don't suspect

I ever will. Of course there are little protection

deceptions. How else can anyone have a private life?

But, mother this isn't one of them. If I was screwing

around and told you I wasn't, if you cornered me, you

know I would tell the truth," I responded.

"I'll tell you part of it," she explained.

"You've had that look of satisfaction that only sex

can bring. I won't lie when I tell you that I know it

well. Your Dad and I are only in our early forties. We

enjoy the nights when you go out and leave us alone.

But, I don't want you to be hurt like I was, OK?"

"I understand Mom. Just be careful of your words,

that's all. I'm honest with you and you accuse me of

deception, and it hurts. As far as the look of

satisfaction," I said smiling, "you are right on, and

only a good mother who knows her daughter could pick

that up. But there's no intercourse going on, I swear

to you. Mom, I really love Bill. He is so special.

But, we are adults. Don't treat us like kids. Last

night you and Dad treated us like adults and we

thought it was great, to be trusted to stay out beyond

curfew, on our word. I love you Mom, and never want

anything to come between us."

"I know you do, but you can't fault me for protecting

you. Let's go down and eat. Please ask Bill to stay

for dinner tonight, if he likes. We should get to know

him better I guess. Apparently he makes you very

happy. I won't question you about this again, OK?

I'll cover your Dad. He's putty in my hands," she said

smiling.

We went downstairs and Dad was still stirring the

cereal.

"Crisis averted Carl, mother and daughter getting

along fine now. We just had a little disagreement on

woman things" mom explained.

"Glory Be, Silvie, I was afraid it was about sex." Dad

said either innocently or knowingly.

All three of us laughed. Dad thought it was a great

idea to invite Bill for dinner, and didn't mind if I

saw him this afternoon. I called Bill and asked him to

call for me about half past one.

He called me sweet names and bid me goodbye. I really

couldn't wait to hold him and kiss him.

I put on jeans, long sleeve knit shirt and vest to

meet Bill when he came. I felt really cool and knew it

accented my figure. I didn't wear a bra and knew it

wasn't obvious with the vest buttoned up.

I felt free and ready to see Bill. When he came to

the door, my mom let him in as I walked from the

utility room where I as ironing tomorrows uniform.

I walked right up to him in front of both mom and Dad

and put my arm around his neck and kissed him.

"What do you think about coming back here for dinner

later? My mom is making her specialty, prime rib with

horseradish," I asked him.

"Wow, that sounds great. We usually do pizza or subs

on Sunday night at home. My mom and Dad won't mind,

but I'll call them to be sure. Do you mind?" he said

as he walked to the phone.

Dad motioned to the phone and Bill dialed up and after

a few words he came back and said "All set. I would be

honored to sit at your table with Carree."

"Oh, God, he's Eddie Haskell again," I said jabbing

him.

"No I'm not," he said "I am honored," and he took my

arm to walk to the door.



"Bill, have her back by half past six at the latest so

you can wash up and we can talk, have some appetizers,

umm . . . beforehand, OK?" my Dad said.

"Sure thing, Mr. Kasc" Bill said as we walked out the

door.

As soon as we were out the door Bill said, "Geez

Carree, don't accuse me of laying on thick to them. I

want them to trust me, and not think I'm some phony or

something."

"I'm sure they don't think that," I said. "Plus they

know how much I love you. I've had to tell them 50

times in the last day. They keep asking about parking

at the end of the driveway. I told them it was private

moments for us and that I loved you and we were not

screwing around. I think I may have gotten through to

both of them now."

"Ummm Bill,", I said pointing, "Pull over in Closed

for the Season."(It was an Ice Cream stand that only

stayed open from Memorial Day to Labor Day, the rest

of the year they had a big sign up, Closed for the

Season)

"Sure, why?" he asked as he pulled in.

"So I can do this" I said just before I kissed him

deeply on the lips.

I pulled back from him and told him, "Last night was

absolutely wonderful, the ending to a perfect day. We

crossed so many bridges yesterday and made up for some

lost time, too. The whole day with you was things I

never really thought I would ever do, especially with

you. I all but gave up hope for you as a lover,

really. You were fantastic. Once the day comes when

you can finally put that beautiful dick inside of me,

I know it will be worth the wait. Until then, we can

have lots of moments like last night and they can only

get better once you do that to me."

"Carree, you are so amazing. How can someone so

beautiful, so sexy, so smart, love me? All the years

we were together were like warm ups for the real heat.

I've always wanted to do everything to you and thought

I never could. I love you good because I love you so

much."

"And you! You loved me beyond any of my expectations.

I never thought any woman would ever do that to me. I

knew you loved me, but that much? Its all a blur," he

said losing his breath he talked so fast.

"Bill, when your penis was in my mouth I could feel

your heart beat. It was so special. I never knew it

would be so sexy, such a turn on. It felt so warm and

smooth, like velvet. I wasn't really planning on

taking your stuff, but it just happened. It was not

bad to taste, and most of all, it was you. I was so

glad it happened that way. I could do it again right

now," I said.

"Carree, I could taste it on your lips and tongue and

I was glad I could. If we could find a spot I would

love for you to do it again. Just talking about it has

me hard as a rock. Well, kissing you does that.

Talking just makes it harder," Bill said as he began

to breath heavier.

"Bill we won't see each other like this again till

next Sunday. I would gladly do it again, just to

please you. But where can we go?" I asked.

"I'll try to think of someplace," Bill said. "If we

don't find a spot that's private, we'll just have to

wait. I want to get my tongue into you too, you know."

Bill just talking about putting his tongue in me made

me shutter. It was the thing he wanted to do as much

as I wanted to have him in my mouth.

I didn't hold out much hope of finding a private place

in broad daylight.

Bill pulled out of Closed for the Season and turned

back away from town, saying, "I think I know a spot."

He drove about 2 miles away from town and turned up

the road that led to his house.

"Bill are you going home?" I asked.

"Yeah, I think I have the place all to myself until at

least 5 o'clock. Let me go read Moms note," he said.

"Her note?" I wondered aloud.

He explained, "When I called back home about dinner

with you guys she said that she and Pop were going to

shop at the outlets in Massachusetts. But they had to

stop at a place near Canaan, on the State line, to see

some antiques. The guy wouldn't be there until half

past three, I think. She said she would leave me his

number in case I needed them for something."

"Oh, this is too good Bill, are you sure?" I wondered

aloud.

"Let's just go read the note, OK?" he said.

I've only been to Bills twice before, once for a party

and once for pictures before a dance where we had to

dress up in costume.

We got there and there was no one home. Bill was an

only child and his parents' families were from

Vermont. So, they wouldn't normally have anyone

dropping in. Bill pulled up the drive and backed to

the front of the garage.

"Come on," he said, "lets go check my Moms note."

Sure enough, there was a note that she and his dad had

left before they knew he would be calling. It said,

"The antique speculator from Canaan called an will be

home this afternoon after 3:30. We are going to the

outlets in Lee Mass for a while, and will stop in

Canaan on the way back. We'll bring dinner home.

Here's the antiquary's phone number if you need to

leave us a message 555-1234. Love, mom and Pop"

I looked at Bill and giggled.

"Ohh, you have a dirty mind" I said.

"Nahhhh," he exaggerated, "I just love you so much

there's nothing I won't do to make you happy. Thank

God I thought of this. Still though, I have to do

something to give us a fail-safe in case they come

home early. . . . Gee, I'm so stupid. We can

just go to my room over the garage. I go there all the

time to study and write. If they see my car parked in

front of the garages with a fire going, they won't

even question it."

Bill had told me about his writing room, but I had

never seen it.

We went to the side door and he let me in and he

followed after me up the stairs, first setting the

dead bolt.



"You're watching my ass, Bill," I joked knowingly.

"I'm gonna kiss and lick it later," he said catching

up to me to give it a slap and a squeeze.

His writing room was about 20 by 20 and had a Franklin

stove in the middle. He had a big Commodore computer

that he did his writing on there. He called it his

super word processor, but I thought it was a computer.

There were two chairs, tv and a desk, as well as a

curved seat. Like a chaise lounge, only it was

inside furniture.

There was a small bathroom with only a toilet and

sink. But, as a study room where he could be alone, it

was awesome, and for us, it was even better.

It was chilly. He said there was electric baseboard

heat to keep the pipes from

freezing, but they never turned it up much over 55.

The stove kept it toasty in the winter, if you had to

work there. Bill threw a couple logs in the stove and

had a fire going in no time. I was shivering a little,

partly from being cold, part from nerves and part from

being a little scared.

"He saw me shivering and said "Come here, let me get

you warm."

He pulled the slouch couch (his name, not mine) over

near the stove and sat, patting the spot next to him

for me. We proceeded to kiss and neck up a storm as we

warmed up and got familiar with each other. Eventually

Bill had me on my back on the slouch couch after

taking my coat off, as it had gotten warmer in the

room, in more ways than one. He was in between my

spread legs kissing my neck and face when he started

unbuttoning my vest.

Once divested of that he clearly saw my braless

nipples through my knit shirt. He pinched both nipples

and held them between his middle and forefingers. He

then used his thumb to massage the

pinched bud.

He was making me crazy.

I felt him undo my belt and then he pulled my shirt up

over my breasts. He kept telling me over and over

again how beautiful my breasts were. For the first

time he called them tits. I never used that word much

because I thought it cheapened real ripe breasts like

mine.

Girls could have fake tits, but real breasts.

Either name was OK right now.

They were electrically charged to my pussy, I know

that. It was more obvious this afternoon, that not

having a pubic bush made your panties wetter faster.

I felt soaked. I wanted him to take my pants off, and

soon.

But, he knew how to tease. He cupped 4 fingers between

my legs and rubbed his thumb over the spot where

my clit was, rocking his fingers back and forth. He

was bathing my tits with his tongue and he was making

sure no spot was missed.

After what the tongue bath and nipple chewing had done

I was nuts with desire, but he remained patient. He

trailed kisses down my belly to my navel. I swear he

tried to lick my back through my belly button he drove

into it so hard.

Finally he trailed down to where he had unsnapped my

jeans. He took my zipper tab between his tongue and

upper teeth and pulled it down.

I wanted to jump up and shed my jeans, but he remained

ever the tease. He sat back and grabbed my jeans at

the hips and coaxed me to lift my legs and rolled me

up on my back so he could slide them off. I had my

legs together in the air and he pulled them down with

my underwear. Now he just had to push them up and off

my legs so I could put my legs on either side of him.

But he stopped pushing off my jeans. They were just 6

inches below my ass with my legs together in the air

and he held me here. He pushed his face into my

hairless pussy and tongued his way up my vulva, which

was forced closed by my position, and drilled down

to my now hidden clit.

I was prone and couldn't stop him if I wanted to. I

started cumming right there making noises and sounds

I never knew I could make. He pushed my legs back a

little more turning my butt up even more and he

brought his tongue down and kissed my butt hole,

quickly tonguing it.

It felt really weird but exciting, but it was over

before I knew it. He pushed my pants the rest of the

way up and off my legs. Now I could finally rest

my legs on either side of his body. He dropped his

head to my pussy and kissed and licked all around it

everywhere, except my clit. I was wound tighter than a

baseball when he finally waved his tongue over my

clit. He danced it over my tender bud, occasionally

nipping at it and then sucking it out and away from

my body. Finally he held it in one position and

flickered his tongue over my clit as fast as he could.

I jerked up on my elbows and thrust out my chest as

waves of orgasms hit, cne after another and I couldn't

breath.

For sure I was going to pass out. I wanted to push his

head away but I was paralyzed, vibrating and trying to

breath. I felt a steam of fluid escape me and must

have hit him in the face. He never lost a stroke of

his tongue and finally I was able to shout a loud yelp

to signal the top of my orgasm.

Then, while inhaling for the first time in what seemed

2 minutes, I came off my elbows and held my breasts as

I drew that long hard breath. I must have had 3 or 4

small orgasms while I drew that breath. I was

vibrating and bouncing on that chaise like a snake on

a hot griddle.

In the last 3 days I had orgasms so earth shattering

that I didn't think they could be topped.

Anything more intense than this one and I would surely

pass out or die.

I finally had enough coordinated strength to push his

mouth away from me. "no, No, NOOOO!!"I told him trying

to get him to stop, but he fought me.

He was trying to keep that tongue dancing on my clit.

He finally gave it up but didn't take it out of my

pussy. He tried to swallow my lips as he ran his

tongue up and down the groove.

I finally gave up fighting the orgasms and sank in to

the lounge. He sensed I was through and finally lay

back a little with his head resting just inches from

my pussy. I don't know how many times I came, at least

10, but the one orgasm must have lasted over a minute.

A moment more and I would have blacked out.

All of the stories about being eaten and how good

the orgasm was were under-stated. This was beyond

description.

From exhaustion I think I fell asleep right there for

a second or two. A couple sharp slaps on the hip from

Bill brought me back to reality. My eyes filled with

tears as I smiled at him. He slapped my hip again and

I realized he was trying to get me to kneel up.

I rolled over and went to my knees, not sure what he

wanted. I felt his mouth take big slobbering bites of

my ass cheeks. He gave them a full bath eventually

chewing and working his tongue to the top of the split

of my butt halves.

Using his hands he spread them little by little

working his tongue down the groove, totally bathing

me.

He reached my little private hole and gently whisked

his tongue over and over it. Bill had definitely seen

some good flicks to learn all of this technique.

Little did he know that was how I knew what to do with

his penis in my mouth. A tongue in your butt hole may

be one of the most erotic and strange feelings there

is.

The more he wiped it back and forth the more I felt it

open up. The more it opened, the more nerve endings he

found. I buried my face in the couch as I felt another

strange and different orgasm building. As I began to

breath un-even while keeping his tongue in my ass, he

put one finger in my pussy and flicked it like he was

trying to reach the back of my clit, from the inside.

Whatever he touched, I'm guessing it was what I read

to be the G-spot, I went off quickly with a hard grunt

and I know I snapped my hips back in his face and I

leaked fluid again.

I could definitely squirt!!

Once I got control of myself I crawled forward and

turned to my hip to disengage him.

"Oh my God, Bill! Oh my God, Bill! Oh my God, Bill!

Stop!! I'll die with any more!! Where did you learn

that!! Oh my God, Bill!"

I pleaded as I cupped my pussy and asshole with my

hand to prevent him touching me anymore.

He flipped to the floor and knelt beside me and

brought his face to mine.

"I just love you and want to make you happy. Umm . . .

did you cum," he smiled at me knowingly.

"Yes, a little. . . . F U C K, I came a lot!! I

thought my heart was going to explode. Where did you

learn to do all that stuff? What were you in your

former life" I facetiously asked.

"I told you I had some of my Dads porno's to keep

myself busy when I needed to relieve my frustration

with you. I watched them and jacked off right here on

the slouch couch, imagining I was with you," he

explained.

"Well, you are as good a student here as you are in

school" I said smiling and panting. "Can I get a drink

of water?"

Bill smiled and got up and went to the little bathroom

and brought me a paper cup of water. I sat up and

swung my feet to the floor. I was afraid to stand up,

feeling a little lightheaded.

As he stood there I saw the outline of his erection.

He hadn't even loosened his pants during his marathon

with me. He had to be hurting.

I reached out and pressed my palm up and down the

length of his bulge.

I looked up at him and smiled. I spread my feet and

knees so he could stand between them and I hugged the

side of my face to his bulge, then turned my face and

buried my nose in his crotch and inhaled deeply, then

hugged my other cheek to him. I looked up and found

the tab on his zipper. I snaked it down and reached in

his boxers to fish out his dick.

This was not going to work. I undid his belt and

pulled his jeans down just below his ass.

I carefully pulled the boxer waistband out, down and

away from his dick.

I smiled as it sprang up and said "Hi" to me.

Without touching, it I put the head in my mouth and

hummed along with Bill as he moaned approval. I lolled

the head in my mouth, and it felt so good. It was

already an old friend. I tried to get a little more in

my mouth, but could only manage an inch or so past the

head. I don't think I was going to be a deep throater.

I brought my hand up and started to stroke him in

rhythm with my mouth. I could barely hear Bill's

moaning and cheering me on as I devoted all my senses

to his dick. Put his hands in my hair and

was stroking it, then petting my cheek.

He was calling my name and telling me how beautiful I

looked with his cock in my mouth. I never heard him

say "cock" before, I didn't think. He never heard me

say fuck before either, so we were even there. He

pulled my hand away from his dick and held my face a

little. He started to move his hips a little and I saw

he wanted to hump at my face.

I let him as I held my head still. He was getting more

of his err. . . cock in my mouth than I felt

comfortable with.

I pressed

my hand to his hip to show him he was too deep. He

stopped and pulled his cock from my mouth.

"Let me get undressed and we can do this right," he

said.



He knew I would be happier being in control and he was

right. Besides, I wanted to kneel over him and inspect

him like he inspected me. I had a feeling I was going

to know his cock pretty well.

As Bill undressed and then adjusted the stove I

couldn't help but think of the changes in both of us

in the last few weeks.

Two frustrated young adults who wanted to explore

their sexuality, but not with just anyone, with each

other.

If Bill's uncle hadn't invited him to deer camp, my

frustration with Bill might have got the best of me. I

might be out looking for a new boyfriend right now.

How weird is life?

Bill walked over to the couch and sat down as I stood

up. He laid back and I knelt between his knees. We

necked and kissed for a moment and I tasted myself on

his face. Normally that smell would have grossed me

out, but now I associated that with sex.

I loved the aroma. I splayed my hair on his chest as I

kissed and bit at his nipples. I was surprised they

had some of the same erectile quality as mine.

Again, what strange beings these males were.

I loved his smell as I kissed and licked at his hairy

chest. I got to his belly button and I had fun with it

using my tongue. I felt his dick bounce a few times

under my breasts and I knew he was full of

anticipation. I kissed down to his cock and kissed

around the base and then tried to go lower to his

balls. He was really hairy there and it was unpleasant

for me to do what I saw in Kim's video, where the girl

sucked them and put them in her

mouth.

I put small kisses around his sack and returned to the

head of his pretty penis. I grabbed it with my hand

and rubbed it on my lips and tongue, my eyes glued to

his.

I closed my eyes as I sank my head over his penis. In

this position I could get a little more in my mouth,

maybe the head and 2 or 3 inches, but it was not

comfortable or sexy for me. I returned my hand to the

shaft and kept my mouth over the head. I stroked and

moved the head in and out of my mouth, never really

letting the crown out past my lips. He began to

shutter a bit and he pushed my hand away.

"Just your mouth, just your mouth," he said excitedly.

I hummed loudly and proceeded as he asked. It was

pleasant for me to do this as I felt him shutter and

could feel his heart quicken through the head of his

dick in my mouth.

He was leaking something as I began to taste a little

bleachy after-taste. I knew he was close.

His breathing quickened and his whispered in a

guttural voice,

"Do you want me, baby? Do you want my cum? Or do you

want to watch it spray?." He asked.

I answered by redoubling my effort. I wanted it in my

mouth. He began to hitch and shutter wildly gripping

the sides of the couch.

"Here it is Carree," he bellowed and the first shot

hit the back of my throat. I gagged a little and was

afraid of hurting him but I suppressed it by

swallowing and more warm gelatinous fluid filled my

mouth, I kept swallowing until I felt no more

eruptions from him.

How he could have produced that much in the 12 or so

hours from last night was beyond me. It was not

terrible tasting, but not a taste you would ask for

in, say, an ice cream.

I liked it because it was Bill. Last night when I went

to bed knowing that my tummy was full of his juices, I

was content and happy.

It sounds silly, but I was. Swallowing his semen was

as intimate a thing as I could do for him. Intimacy or

innermost feelings in sexual relations mean the most.

I wanted that for Bill.

I kept stroking up on his penis to get any last drops

of his ejaculation.

Doing so was driving him crazy and he finally managed

to push my mouth and hands away. I wiped my mouth with

the back of my hand and crawled up and collapsed on

his prone body. He sought out my mouth and we

exchanged tongues and tastes.

I once thought that a man would never kiss the woman

who had oral sex with him, and vice-versa.

But that is not true in real love

situations. We reveled in it. After a prolonged kiss I

finally slid down his side and we spooned on his

slouch couch.

"That was awesome," I said as I held him so tightly to

me.

"Everything was awesome, but I have questions, Sweet

William."

"Ahh, William. I love hearing that. If I were to

choose what people would really call me, it would be

William. When I write, I author as William," he

meandered off the subject.

"The questions have to do with your foray on my ass,"

I said, with a little feigned indignity.

He sat up a little and turned to look at me. "That was

a little spur of the moment. Ahhh . . . I just had to

kiss that beautiful ass, and I wanted to lick those

cheeks. Your butt just turns me on so. It's perfect!

And, well, when I got to your crack, I couldn't help

myself. Your little hole was so, so . . .inviting

and once I touched it with my tongue you reacted so

sexy, I couldn't stop myself. You liked it didn't you,

especially when I found your G-spot. Man, you squirt!!

That's supposed to be the most intense for a female.

They say the nerve endings in the G-spot and the . .

. rect . . . asshole are shared, or something.

I've read a lot on sexuality, Dr. Kinsey's stuff, you

know.

Couples can do it there too, if you prepare and are

gentle, a . . ." he faded off as he saw me smiling at

him.

"You're cute when you get caught with your hand in the

cookie jar, Bill. I liked it enough, just it was

unexpected. Now that's intimate. I know about having

sex there, it just seems hard to imagine. Although,

what you did was very exciting. Maybe someday, hey, we

have a whole lifetime," I said.

We lay quietly for a few more minutes and Bill finally

spoke.

"This weekend was the most incredible of my life. So

many little fantasies I had about you, about our love,

have come true. One thing all of this sex has done is

made me want to be inside of you more than ever. God,

I want to make love to you. To really, fuck, . . .

you know.

Having sex like we did is great but, it makes NOT

doing the other seem even harder. If every weekend

were like this one, we might be nuts in a few weeks."

"I know," I said. "I was thinking the same thing too.

Moments like these have to be special, not every time

we see each other. They can't be planned, they just

have to happen," I said.

"Umm Carree, do you think someday we will, you know,

be married and together every night?" Bill asked

measuring his words so as not to really propose.

"Bill, I hope so. But, you know we have to live

through some hard years ahead. College. Probably away

from each other. We've never been out with anyone

else, will we still think each other to be as exciting

after meeting new people?

I can say that I can't imagine anyone but you, Bill,"

I said.

"Same here, Care, its only you I can think of," Bill

said.

"So, now we know what bringing each other to total

ecstasy is, in a couple different ways. We are

familiar and comfortable with each others bodies. Now

we have to cool our jets a little though, Agree?" I

said.

"Agree," he said. "Picking our spots for our

lovemaking should not be taken lightly. Each time

should be special. God, I love you Carree. Thank you

for making this weekend so special."

"God, Bill you made it as special for me. Lets make a

pact, that we don't do anything like this in the car

anymore. Today was too beautiful where we could take

off our clothes and love each others bodies so

completely," I said.

"Gee, do you think I could move in here each weekend?"

I asked jokingly.

"I'm not sure, I'll ask, OK?" he played along.

"But," he continued, "Seriously though, this is the

only way to be with each other; Free and without

worry. We know how we feel about each other; we don't

need to do this every 5 minutes to

prove it, although it would be nice."

"Yes, I do think this was a weekend to get some things

out in the open. We really deserved it. I feel so much

better about every thing. I worried about how sex

would be without intercourse, and now I know it can be

very fulfilling," I said.

Bill flipped over and faced me, then hugged me, then

kissed me. Next time we have to plan to overnight

together" he said, "that would be awesome. What would

you like to do?" he asked.

"I want to shower with you. To clean and rub and wash,

and suck here, and wash, and suck there, oooooooooooh!

I get chicken skin just thinking of it," I said.

"Damn, it's giving me another hard-on," Bill said.

"Ohh, it is raising up and shedding its skin. What

should we do about that?" I asked teasingly as it got

to full mast in no time.

"Just watch me stroke it," Bill said as he grabbed it

and began pulling on it with earnest.

"See what you do to me, Carree," he declared.

He was stroking it easily and he was throwing his head

back and moaning. I wanted to get into the action. I

moved my head down near his cock and watched it appear

and disappear in its skin.

"Ooo Bill, you don't think I'm going to miss a chance

to feel that in my mouth again do you." I asked.

"God Carree, if I knew you were going to like sucking

it this much, I would have asked you 2 years ago,"

Bill said.

"Bill, if those balls were bigger, you might have

gotten my mouth a lot sooner," I chided.

"Although I never thought I would like doing this."

"Gonna come," he said and went into his little dance.

I put my mouth over the head of his cock and felt his

come almost immediately. There were no shots or

volleys of sperm, just an oozing flow. I waved my

tongue through the flow and then gave his dick a hard

suck.

Bang, that's all he could take. He pushed my mouth off

and left some running out of the little hole and

across my chin as I was pushed away. This stuff was

really thick and I knew I would vomit if I tried to

swallow it. I grabbed my water cup from before and

spit it into it.



"Oh, sorry Care, too sensitive" he said as he writhed

in pleasure pain.



I laughed at his predicament as I watched the last few

drops of his cum go over his hands as he rubbed the

pain away.

"You men are sure strange creatures," I said, "I

couldn't swallow that. It was like the stuff you cough

out of your throat, real thick wads. Yeeech!!"

But his show had done a little for me too as I rubbed

my pussy without thinking.

"You want some help with that" Bill said as he flipped

over to the floor on his knees.

He pulled me to the edge of the couch and buried his

tongue in my pussy. In 30 seconds I was begging for

mercy, as he had been. I came a couple quick short

orgasms and pushed him away.

"Gawwwdd, lets get dressed before we kill each other"

I said, and we did.

Bill watched me get dressed and I know he was getting

aroused again. I looked down at his dick and then at

him, shaking my head.

He laughed and said it was my fault. I sat back down

as he got up to dress. He had to stuff his dick in his

pants a little, but it went away. We were both

sensitive in the crotch.

Bill looked at his watch and said "Wow, five o'clock.

Let me seal up the stove and we can get going to your

house. I am famished."

I told him I was full and had been eating all

afternoon. He laughed and kissed me.

By a little after five we were in Bills car and headed

down the back road to get roundabout to my house. He

didn't want to cross paths with his parents on their

way home.

We got to my house about 5:30 after stopping to get a

couple Cokes to wash our breath away. mom and Dad were

glad to see us early and they sat in the living room

with us chit-chatting about bits of everything.

They asked us both questions about college and

eventually turned the subject around to us.

Mom got up and went to get a tray of hors d'oeuvres

that the 4 of us wolfed down.

They asked us "couple" questions and impressed

commitment on us.

How we were young and making long term commitments

were going to be tough. They were "for" us, as a

couple, but thought that such a young love would have

to be strong to last the upcoming formative years of

adulthood.

I wanted to blurt out "Geez, mom and Dad, I just

sucked his dick 3 times in the last 18 hours, isn't

that a strong commitment?"

It was just then that I realized how I cheapened our

love. I hadn't "sucked his dick," or "given him a

blowjob." Whores and tramps would do that. I had made

love to him, and him to me. I could never look at a

great looking guy and wish to perform that act with no

love involved. It was because he was Bill, he was

special. God, I loved him.

After that thought I pulled Bills knee and brought his

leg right next to mine on the sofa while mom and Dad

talked. I smiled at him and gave him a passionate look

and bent a little to hug our legs together. For me, in

front of my parents, it was a pretty intimate move,

but I had to do it right then. I smiled at Bill and

looked to see that my parents took in the whole thing.

My mom looked uncomfortable, but my Dad said "She sure

loves you, son. Be sure to take good care of her.

She's my pride and joy too."

"Don't worry, Mr. and Mrs. Kasc. I'll always take

great care of her. I couldn't love her more," Bill

said as I sat with a tear running down my cheek.

"Come on Carree," my mom said. "Give me a hand in the

kitchen and we can eat."



I followed her into the kitchen and she gave me little

orders, hand me this, put this here, get me the

whatever. We were busy in the warm kitchen.



"Why don't you take off that vest Carree, you must be

hot," she said.

"Mom, I'm not wearing a bra under my shirt, I can't

take off my vest," I said as I laughed to myself.

"Nothing wrong with being modest, Carree. I'm proud

you're like that," my mom said.

I thought of me with my face buried in the slouch

couch, my ass in the air and Bill with his tongue in

my butt hole.

"Nothing wrong with being modest!"

We put dinner on the table and we had a great time. It

was a great ending to a seminal weekend in our

relationship.

Bill and I only had sexual liaisons once more before

Christmas, and just 2 more times before school got out

that June. As hot as we were for each other, we feared

too much of a good thing. For us to be intimate,

everything had to be special. No cars or backseats. We

were selective, and when it happened, it was always

awesome and incredible.

_ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _

CARREE LOVES BILLY - EPILOGUE

Now comes the part of the story that I dread. I must

explain a few things.

I kept diaries all through my early school years. As I

got closer and closer to Billy, they became mainly

just about him and the things we did together. They

evolved into my sex diaries, and they became my erotic

accounts of Billy and I. After William and I married

we began to enjoy reading erotic stories to each

other.

It was just a kink. One night I read him a story that

I actually wrote from my diary. About half way

through, he realized it was he and I in the story.

He was intrigued and wanted to know how I had such

detail. I confessed, I had the diaries.

He never asked to see them, but let me read different

things from them, different situations, different

times.

He was fascinated.

He said that if I gave him a list, with the timeline,

and specific events, he would love to ghost write some

erotic stories with my help.

He thought it would be a gas to go online and read

our own stories to each other. Over a couple months I

gave finally gave him what he needed. He made an

outline on some of the stories but wanted to do a long

piece about the weeks that led up to and included that

weekend before Thanksgiving in 1992.

That was to be "Carree Loves Billy."

I agreed to hand over the diaries and let him read

them when we started the stories. The only things in

them that he didn't already "really" know about were,

the "blanket party" and watching Kim's video.

I credit that video as sort of an oral sex

primer for me, in my diary. I think he thought he

taught me everything from the movies he snuck from his

Dads room.

Unfortunately, my William never saw those diaries. He

was excited to write the stories, and he planned on

using Billy Hand as his non deplume.

In March of 2001 something happened that neither I,

nor anyone else, could save him from.

William was in the wrong place at the wrong time.

He went out to get a bottle of wine for the dinner I

was preparing. On his way home there was a sudden ice

shower, freezing rain, what have you.

A car, a few hundred yards in front of him, went off

the road. He slowed down to see if the

driver was OK.

It was a pregnant woman, her car down the ditch.

She got out OK, but could not climb the bank to the

road. Bill told her to wait and parked his car on the

shoulder. He went down the bank to help her get up.

They had gotten about half way up when another car

spun out while braking to rubberneck.

William was hit hard by the car and was knocked down

the bank and pinned under the car.

The woman was thrown clear.

Almost immediately a car with 4 men on their way home

from work stopped to help. They saw William was

breathing and they rolled the car off him. He was

alive, but never regained consciousness. His neck was

broken.

Paramedics took him, on a board, to the hospital where

I saw him for the last time. William expired with me

holding his hand. While doctors told me there was

little they could do for him, they tried.

He was going to surgery when he died. There he was,

looking like he could wake up and talk to me, but he

was gone. I have cried everyday, as I am now, for 10

months asking "why?" Why him, why then?

I hope our erotic stories show you what a wonderful

man, lover and husband he was. I had my sexual

relationship with my dear William for almost 9 years,

and for 4 years before that, he was my best friend.

I am thankful for that. He was a brilliant man

who was having his dream lived out, by having his

first novel bought with a nice advance from the

publisher. He never finished it, but I am taking that

task too. I have his outlines for the final chapter.

It should go to the editor before summer of 2002.

What about me?

I will be fine over time, but I will never get over

Billy, Bill, William. I write for travel and vacation

magazines and guides.

Since September 11 work has been sparse, so I had the

time to work on this project and the novel.

My looks will keep me in work for some time, as well

as my writing. I have done some swimsuit ads, and my

picture appears in many island resort photos of people

having fun on the white sand beaches. If you have any

of those brochures, the blonde in the blue bikini

might just be me.

Even this, I have to thank William for. I was always a

fair skinned, blue-eyed blonde. From the time I was

interested in boys

there was Billy. I never fussed to impress anyone

else, to win any other guy over.

I was just him me. I never had to spend hours

in front of a mirror primping.

When Bill cried the first time he saw me nude, I had

to ask him why. He told me I was "so beautiful." He

made me look at myself and really see how blessed I

was.

When he was writing in college (stringing, he called

it) for different magazines he began to get checks for

his work. He bought me nice things so I could dress

sexy for him. Not cheap, but sexy. Later when I

started to travel on assignments for resorts he would

accompany me at times.

Once, when I had grown my hair out, we were in

Hartsfield International in Atlanta. A man in the

terminal asked, "May I have your autograph Ms.

Pfeiffer?."

William played along and said, "Michelle, sign for

this man, but we have to get going."

From then on he wanted me to play along with him that

I was Michelle Pfeiffer. When I grew my hair out and

got the wave going, I did resemble her, but mostly

with sunglasses. He loved goofing on people like that.

But now, thanks to William, I am proud of the way that

I look. He would see me nude and rush to hold me, not

sexually, but as his treasure. No man could treat a

woman better than William. Never once did he treat me

as a thing, as his property, or as a sexual toy. I was

always respected as a woman.

This past summer I went back home to visit my parents,

William's parents and my old friends that were still

around. I had to show them I survived. But, in many

ways I hadn't. It was like I was looking for him. At

the Wilson's house I asked to go in the "writing room"

over the garage. The slouch couch was still there as

was the desk and the old Commodore computer. After

William left and got married his mom kept an index of

her antiques on that relic.

I looked at the slouch couch and cried. Mrs. Wilson

asked me why and I just told her it had a sentiment

for me. She told me that she had bought it as an

antique psychiatrist sofa, and later found it was a

fraud. She put it in Bills room as a tv lounger. I

asked to sleep there in that room that night.

She said shaking her head, "Bill isn't here."

I told her I knew that, but I wanted to feel close to

him.

When she balked more I told her,

"Billy made love to me on that couch quite a few

times, including the first time. Please let me stay,"

and I did.

I dreamed of William that night and even woke up

excited like he was still alive. Reality hit, but the

initial rush was great.

So, soon I'll be back to work. I have 2 assignments

for the middle of January through February. I have a

review of a resort, and will supervise a resort

magazine that will feature some photos of me.

Plus, I have to finish Williams's novel. It was

basically done, but he had editing he wanted to do. He

had hand written notes on his galleys while flying

with me last February.

After that, I will try to restart my life. When I get

lonely I may write more of our erotic stories. I

realize I am writing them from my viewpoint and

perspective, but, so far, I think he would be happy.

There are stories of our 18 th birthdays, prom night,

graduation weekend and our liaisons while away at

school, and our wedding night. He has 10 subject

stories outlined he wanted to do besides the Carree

Loves Billy long piece.

I'll try to do each one. The only embellishments are

to protect real people and places.

I hope you enjoy them and think of the love we

expended in living them. Knowing people are reading

them makes me feel like a part of William is still

with me. Thanks.

Carree



This is an account of the days following our first

sexual encounters at my parents home and in Bill's

over the garage. That all happened the weekend before

Thanksgiving 1991.

It has been nearly a year since I lost my William and

recalling and recounting this period has been

happy/sad for me. For the happy part, I know William

is smiling down on me. I hope you enjoy it.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

CARREE, AFTER THE LOVING

Monday morning I woke as a new and different person as

the one who went to classes on Friday.

Saturday and Sunday had totally changed my life as a

woman and as a lover. I also had changed my own

parents' perspective of me as their daughter. They

knew that I was in love with Bill and he with me. They

also understood, somewhat reluctantly, that he and I

were totally committed to each other and planned to

live our lives as a couple.

I knew that I had committed my body, and it pleasures,

to Bill, and his to mine. The only pleasure and

commitment that would go un-acted on was true sexual

intercourse. That was a promise we made to each

other, to fulfill to each other, when the time was

right, when we were married and in a position to

handle the possible result of that union, pregnancy.

I stood at the mirror doing a deep clean on my face

when I paused. I looked at the lips on my face, my

mouth. Just a few hours earlier they had given my

lover great pleasure. I had taken his seed into my

mouth and tasted his very being, his gift of life. We

had made love with our mouths to each other, had

satisfied our great curiosities of each other's sexual

beings.



I was surprised I was being so philosophical about all

that had happened. I think there was a fear that I

might feel cheap, but instead I felt the beauty of it.

My decision to show Bill how I satisfied myself, after

his unfulfilled necking sessions with me, was a good

one. I left no doubt in his mind how I felt towards

him. His fear of my rejection had now waned and he

opened up to show me his fantasies of how he wanted to

love me.

I lost count of the orgasms he had given me, how he

had brought me to the pinnacle of sexual pleasure, and

how satisfied and happy he had made me. I was so happy

with everything that being in love could bring, and

our sexual passions had only been tweaked at, the

surface just scratched. We had so much more to look

forward to.

How could I, at a few days shy of starting my

eighteenth year, feel so sure and secure in the love

of the rest of my life?

Those questions went unanswered as my perusal of life

came to an abrupt halt with a banging on the bathroom

door.

"Carree, I'm so sorry, pumpkin, but I have to get back

in there," my Dad bellowed.

"I know I used up most of the hot water already on

you, but nature is screaming at me and I need that

room back."

My Dad was, as my mom categorized, like a teenage

girl, in the shower. He would be under the hot water

for 20-25 minutes, leaving a lukewarm reception for

the next user, unless you could wait a half hour for

the tank to refill and reheat. I was about

20 minutes into that half hour wait when he banged on

the door.

"Daddy," I pleaded, "Can't you do that stuff while

you're in here in the first place? Leave the fan on

and spray."

I still had 45 minutes to shower and dry my hair, get

dressed and eat a little breakfast before Bill picked

me up for school. My mom had called me downstairs when

she heard my plight.

"Carree, I just poured your coffee and juice, why

don't you eat now and save time later," she said from

the foyer.

I was already on my way down in my robe before she

finished the sentence.

I turned into the kitchen and saw my juice, coffee,

and a fruit salad with granola waiting for me. mom sat

down with me and started the conversation right away.

"I hate to say this, but you and Bill seem like a real

good couple, Carree. While we sat and talked with the

two of you last night I found it hard to believe that

you were that mature. I can see where Bill is very

special to you. You are both very comfortable with

each other and act like an old couple. Just remember

that you are both young and your views and

personalities change, don't take each other for

granted. Learn to grow with each other. My God, I'm

talking to my 17 year old daughter like she's 25," my

Mom rambled.

I was surprised at her candor and was proud that her

attitude had changed about us. I wanted her to take us

at face value, not as her little girl with a boy, and

she had done that.

"Mom, I know things change and don't always turn out

like we plan. But I know I'm only 17, and in spite of

that, I never felt so right about anything. He just

seems so natural for me. Our hearts beat as one

sometimes. He makes me feel, . . . special."

I said.

As the words left my lips I know I blushed and I know

my mom saw it.

"Just remember not to mistake sex for love, honey, and

what you told me about staying out of trouble, you

know, . . . that way," my mom said uncomfortably.

I reached out and touched her hand and told her not to

worry, that as much as I loved Bill, I was still

taking one day at a time, in many ways. I didn't

broach the "virginity" issue. If she needed more

assurance after our little spat yesterday, I wasn't

going to satisfy her anyway.

Dad came in the kitchen as we finished our little

talk.

"Give it a few minutes Carree and it should be safe

and you will have enough hot water. Sorry to hold you

up," he apologized and continued.

"Your mother and I are happy with Bill as your

boyfriend. I hope you know that 17 is pretty young to

say you've made as big of a decision as knowing who

you want to live your life with. But, I really like

him. He really adores you, pumpkin. He made me a

little jealous, yesterday."

"I'm really glad you both like him," I said. "But, you

do know that this is the same Bill I have been seeing

since eighth grade. You act like you never met him

before."

"I KNOW that," my mom said. "He just seems so grown up

now, and he was always so shy and quiet when we were

around. He really has opened up. He's lost that little

boy aura about him, like he's been awakened to the

world."

After my mom made that statement, she paused and then

I saw her blush and look at me. As soon as she made

eye contact she got up to refill her coffee cup. I

took that as a cue to get to the shower. My 45-minute

window was closed to 35 and I might have to hurry a

little now. I couldn't help but chuckle a little, to

myself, as my mom realized what it might be that

erased the little boy aura from Bill.

As I hit the top of the stairs I heard my mom yell one

more time.

"Darn it all Carree, Megan Parker called for you 3

times yesterday and wanted you to get back to her. I'm

so sorry I forgot to tell you yesterday."

Damn, I thought to myself. I was supposed to call her

"no matter how late" on Saturday night when I got

home. My duties as best friend had been shunned.

During my shower I beat myself up for not calling her

when she really needed someone. I had no excuse,

except that I had just swallowed my lovers cum for the

first time. I was so satiated and in the free fall of

love at the time, even the best of friends were

forgotten in that special moment.

As I switched my hairdryer off I heard my mom speaking

to someone downstairs. My Dad had left for work during

my shower, I had seen his car go down the drive, and

so I wondered whom it could be.

One more pause to listen told me it was Bill. He

normally just blew the horn and waited.

My mom was in the foyer as I came out of the bathroom.

"Carree, Bill is here. He beeped, but you couldn't

hear over your dryer. You have 5 minutes; it's only 10

after. He was early. We're having coffee."

Oh my God, I thought to myself. Bill having coffee

with my Mom! Maybe he's telling her now good her

daughter is at oral sex.

Ummmmmm, Well, maybe not. The 2 of them getting along

to this extent, and my mom feeling comfortable enough

to call him in, only encouraged me more that my

parents approval of Bill was real.

I came downstairs with my coat already on and my books

in tow. I kissed Bill hello and my mom goodbye as he

finished his coffee and stood up when I came into the

room.

"Good morning Carree," Bill said, "I guess I was a

little early. I must be anxious because this is a

short week."

"Short week?" my mom asked"

"Regular classes today and tomorrow, Mass and assembly

on Wednesday with early dismissal for Thanksgiving," I

explained.

With that we were out the door and on our way. We made

small talk on the way to school as I sat and watched

Bills face in my infatuation of the state of our

relationship. The fact that neither he nor I, were

bubbling about sex, told me that we were comfortable

with all that happened, and it had fallen into place

in our lives without being awkward. We were right in

what we did.

Although I was mad at myself for forgetting my best

friend, when she needed me, I was pretty happy with

life right now. My first chore of the day was to seek

out Megan.

Bill let me off and we kissed goodbye, and as I pulled

away I had to go back for another smooch with a little

tongue.

He grinned and said, "I love you, YOU made my life

this weekend."

I kissed him back one more time and said "Goodbye

lover, it can only get better," as I squeezed his

thigh and ran into the main door.

I didn't want to go all the way to the parking lot and

walk back in the cold.

I had enough time to get to Meg's homeroom before the

first bell, but as I went by Heidi Stewart's office I

heard my name called.

It was Heidi and I really wanted to make like I hadn't

heard her so I could find Meg, but she called again.

"Carree, . . . Carree Kasc!! I have a message for you

from Megan Parker." Heidi hollered over the din of the

busy hallway.

I stopped in my tracks and fought off the rushing

students to backtrack to Heidi's open door.

"Come in and close the door so you can hear," Heidi

said as I came back and looked in around the rush of

passing students.

I went in and closed the door and Heidi said, "Megan

just called in late for first period, but wanted you

to give her a call this morning. She has study halls

and gym until lunch and won't be in until after lunch

period. She's not feeling well. Sounds like,

you know, THAT time."

"Oh yeah," I exclaimed, "We have the same rotation

today. I can call her after theology. Thanks Heidi

err, Ms Stewart," I said as I turned to the door.

"Carree, I have to go home to wait for a furniture

delivery at 9:30. Do you want to go with me and stop

at Megan's? She sounded pretty upset. I can mark you

excused from gym, as long as you don't have too many

X's. I'll put you down the same as Megan. I mark them

as "cycle," and then there are no questions. Never

ever tell anyone about me doing this, though. I know

how upset Meg is and she really wants to talk to you."

"I don't have any X's in gym, Ms Stewart. I was

supposed to call Meg on Saturday night, and then I was

out all day yesterday and my mom forgot to tell me she

called until this morning."

Heidi scribbled out a pass to leave my second period

study hall and gave it to me, saying "Meet me right

here at 9:15, and remember, not a word. It's really no

big deal, but . . . you know. OK?"

"I'll see you then Ms. Stewart," I said as I left and

headed to homeroom.

- - - - - - - - - -

Heidi Stewart pulled up in front of her house just as

the furniture truck was getting there.

"I was going to walk you over to Parkers, Care, but I

have to let the men in. I have a path shoveled to the

gate on the back fence. Just go through and knock on

Meg's back door. I never got a chance to call her and

say you were coming, but I'm sure she will be glad to

see you," Heidi said, as she gave me the bums rush.

I knocked on Parkers back door on the patio and when

Megan came to answer it I hardly recognized her.

"Oh my God Megan, did Jimmy do that to you?" I was

astonished at how red and blotchy her face was and

appeared to have a black eye.

"No, No, the son of a bitch broke my heart, but he

didn't lay a hand on me. I would have handed him his

balls if he did. I've been crying and I tried some eye

drops and my eyes had a reaction. Then, I rubbed my

right eye so much; I may end up with a shiner. (She

started crying again) Look at me! I am such a

fuckin' mess. And YOU, you son of a bitch, some kind

of best friend you are. I'm hoarse from screaming at

my phone to ring, waiting for your call!!"

I reached out and hugged Megan and apologized and

explained about not getting her messages, and calling

after 2:00 a.m. on Saturday seemed unreasonable.

She seemed to understand, but she was still a basket-

case. I put my arm around her and walked her to the

living room and sat her down and asked her if she ate

yet. She hadn't and I went out and made coffee and put

on some hot water for instant oatmeal I saw on the

counter. All the while we talked in raised voices from

kitchen to living room. I told her how Heidi got me

out of school and found me this morning, just small

talk until we could talk eye to eye.

Speaking of that eye, I went to the bathroom and

found an ice bag for her eye. In about 7 minutes flat,

I had some coffee, hot oatmeal and an ice bag on a

tray going into the living room.

"Oh Care, how could I have been mad at you. You're

here like a Florence Nightingale to help me." Megan

said as she touched my arm.

"Sit back and let me get the ice bag started while

your coffee and cereal cools, Now, I know it's cold,

but that eye needs it. Grin and bear it you little

bitch, for calling me names," I said kidding her. I

knew she was pissed when I didn't call and probably

called me every name in the book.

She put her head back and said "If you only knew . .

Owww, THAT'S COLD, you son of a bitch. Ooops there I

go again."

"No shit Megan, what did you think ICE would be?" I

said. "Just lie back and bear it for a minute or two.

Shut your gutter mouth and calm down and listen to me

for a minute. Umm, Bill and I have been pretty sexy

the last couple days. We are like this amazing couple

right now. I'm not saying this to make you jealous

or anything, just be happy for me Meg. God, I love him

so damn much, and we really got, oh I don't know what

you call it, sexy, like I said."

"You didn't do it, did you?" Megan asked cautiously.

"NO, of course not," I said "but we sure were into

each other, Meg. He is just the best guy there could

ever be. I can't tell you how much I love him. He is

so special. But, enough about me, take a deep breath

and spill your guts about Jimmy."

Meg sat up and took her coffee and sipped a couple

swallows and laid back and put the ice back on her

eye, and began to talk.

"Well, it didn't go how I wanted it to, but I ended it

MY way not his. He came over to pick me up and I

wouldn't go with him. I insisted he come in and we

hash things out at my house. My parents were over at

Heidi's for cards. I sat him right here on the sofa

and told him how much I really cared for him, that I

thought I loved him, that he was real special to me.

Although I was only a sophomore, he was a senior and

we had to prepare for spending long periods of time

apart. I told him I wanted to share special moments

with him, you know, personal sexual things that tie

the binds of people who love each other and want to

express it.

But, I let him know that I was not prepared to have

intercourse with him on any basis. We had done it

before but now I had changed my feelings about it.

It didn't mean I cared for him any less, and it didn't

mean that I was going to hold sexual intercourse as

ransom for the promise of rings, trips, you know, all

that baloney. I didn't want to trade a roll in the hay

for a nice time."

"He sat there with this long face on and I held his

face in my hands and looked him square in the eye and

told him, If there were no risk of getting pregnant, I

would fuck him everyday and twice on any he wanted. I

loved sex. I enjoyed sex. But it was only with him.

Although we had only done it twice and each time I

was afraid and had reservations, I loved it. But, it

wasn't the fucking, it was making love to HIM.

To pack up with his friends and go away for a weekend

to screw in a tent in the woods, or in a cabin, or any

other arrangement, seemed cheap, and not something

that people in love would do. If he said he wanted to

take me and make love to me in front of his friends to

show them how much he loved me, it would be one thing,

not that I would do that.

I asked him if his friends ever screwed around with

their other friends' dates, and he said, "not

usually."

"That wasn't a NO, Carree!. I told him I was hurt that

he wanted to treat me that way.

Here, I want to be something special and give of

myself, and he wants to go to something like an orgy,

where I might get shared. I thought I was his

girlfriend, not his conquest or contribution to a pot

luck supper!"

"Then I set myself up for the big hurt. I asked him if

he ever had any kind of sex, even just necking, with

any other girl, besides me, since we started dating.

He never hesitated and said NO. Just the way I asked

him and the way he answered, I knew he was not lying.

Then I asked him if would turn down an offer of sex

from another girl when he went away to school.

Again he answered NO right away and said he wouldn't

do anything with anyone if he and I committed to each

other.

But then he told me, the only commitment he would

accept was, regular intercourse, fucking. He said if I

liked doing it, and I felt about him as strong as he

felt about me, it shouldn't be a problem.

If we had regular sex, he wouldn't go away with his

senior buddy's and their little whores."

"Carree, if he said he loved me so much that he would

honor his commitment to me when he went away, and he

had never cheated on me at all, why did I have to

screw him to prove anything to him?

"He said that if I really loved him I would want to do

it all the time. I was crying, and he felt bad that he

made me cry and I went to get a tissue. When I came

back I had a box with most of the stuff he had given

me, things that I considered tokens of love. This was

to be MY power play. I told him that I enjoyed the

time we had spent together, and had no regrets that I

gave him my virginity. At the time it was right, and

that was all that mattered," Megan rambled on, holding

back tears.

"He got real pissed off and wanted to know what the

big deal about sex was. All his friends did it all the

time, BUT I wanted to make it seem like we were the

only couple that ever snuck away and did it for the

first time. I told him that giving my body to another

human being was a big deal and I was willing to do

lots of stuff with him to express my love, but not

that, not now. That should be held in a special place

because of the consequences of pregnancy and what it

could do to the rest of our lives. I told him I only

had one life and I wanted to live it in a way I would

be happy, and I thought he was the one I wanted to

share it with.

Then he got pissed and took the box of things and said

I would never see it again, he would bury it.

He said to not call him anymore; he was going to get

on with his life. He was an idiot for going out with a

kid, just because she had nice tits.

He was saying things to hurt me, being a shit head. I

was screaming at him that he was an asshole, that he

really loved me and wasn't man enough to admit it. He

was letting his friends decide whom he should be with.

I really let loose," she continued.

"He finally got up, took the box and stormed out the

door, and I've been crying here ever since," she said

as she sought me out for a hug.

We hugged and then I calmed her down enough to get her

to eat and finish her coffee and get the ice bag back

on her eye. I kept her quiet and had her just listen

to me. I said I thought he would come back, but not to

wait for that to happen.

To sit and moon over a guy, who wanted a sperm

receptacle, even though his heart was in the right

place, was crazy. I think Jimmy really loved her, but

let his friends tell him what love was supposed to

mean, and that meant regular screwing.

Why he wouldn't even go down the avenues of

alternative sex was beyond me. Was it not macho

enough? Jimmy had issues and until he got them

resolved. I told Megan she shouldn't blame herself.

She had to toughen up and get on and stop feeling

sorry for herself. She clearly was swinging the hammer

if there was any chance of reconciliation. She agreed

that she should not bend from her position. It was her

life she was dealing with. She wanted that life to be

spent being in love with Jimmy, but he clearly loved

himself and his friends lives more.

We sat on the sofa together thinking the situation

over. She pulled the ice bag from her eye and asked if

it was doing any good, and it clearly was. I told her

to lie back and relax and she might be able to go

through the afternoon at school without a question

being asked. I told her that if a nun or anyone asked

about her appearance, just to say she had her period.

That usually ended those kinds of conversations

abruptly.

"Megan, I don't mean to pry to be nosey, tell me to

get lost if you want, but, did you ever let Jimmy

think that you were going to start putting out on a

regular basis and hang around with those goons he

calls friends or classmates?" I asked.

"After he had me at his family camp he sort of

intimated that we would be doing it again real soon. I

told him that I would need a while to erase the guilt

and fear from the first time before I ever thought to

do it again. Then he was mad and said he never did a

girl just once, that he always screwed them a lot of

times before he sent them moving on.

Macho bullshit!! Obviously I blew up at him. I knew he

was lying about other girls, I had to put his damn

condom on, he had no clue. I don't think he knew what

a clitoris was!"

"We had seen the film in sex ed class demonstrating

putting a condom on a cucumber. Ours was the only

class to see that!" Meg explained.

"The nuns shut the class down the next day. That was

when the public school would send students for

Religious Ed to St Pius, so the city council wanted

the Sex Ed class to be taught to us. You know, the

whole forced morality thing."

"We were supposed to have an instructor from City

Central show each Gym class the movie. It made one

showing before they shut that down. But anyway, about

the condom, I knew to pinch an inch and roll down

without using fingernails. He had no idea, and it was

totally apparent that he had never used one or put one

on."

"He had no idea about opening my bra and when he

played . .

Geez Care, this is a little embarrassing." Meg said

pausing, "Ummm, when he played around, "down there,"

he just poked his finger in and never even looked or

felt for my clit." She said as she moved her averted

eyes to mine."

"Oh shit, I can see you're embarrassed too, I'm

sorry," Meg said.

"No, please go ahead, let's at least talk like grown

up girlfriends, I want to help you out if I can," I

said.

"Ohh God," she exasperated, "anyway I told him to find

IT to help me get wet, meaning to stimulate me a

little. But, he said, he did find it and he had his

finger in it. How stupid was he? I knew then, that all

his macho talk was bullshit."

"That was why I told you guys, at the truth or dare

sleepover, so much about holding it and how wonderful

it felt in your hand. I had it in my hand more than he

had it in HIS that day! I didn't own one, but knew

what to do with it, at least!" she said.

"I don't know if he really asked me out because I had

big boobs for a sophomore, or not. I don't think he

was making any ground with those whorey sluts his

friends hang with, and he saw me as someone as

gullible and susceptible as he was."

"But if we were ever in their company, there was

always about 3 or 4 guys and 4 or 5 girls, he always

treated me cheap, like the others treated their

girlfriends. I avoided going out with them as much as

possible."

"They openly joked about screwing, oral sex, you know

all stuff couples keep as personal. I couldn't

understand why he hung with them. Jimmy was nothing

like them, and if he hung with the guys from our

class, you know ones in our crowd, he was always a

great guy."

"But the peer pressure from his senior friends made

him an asshole. I'm old for a sophomore, like you, but

Jimmy is young for a senior. I think he's only a

couple months older than me. They gave him the idea

that I should be screwing him every chance he wants,

and if I didn't put out, I must be cold or giving it

to someone else." Meg said, drawing a deep breath.

"He does all this macho sex talk crap with those

people, and then he would see a cute little teddy bear

on a gold chain with a diamond in its belly button,

and buy it for me, even though it means we have no gas

money for the weekend. YOU figure him out. Which guy

is he?

I know he cares about me, but he cares what those

other jerks think more, it seems."

"My sister Judy thinks he looks up to these guys as

mentors, tough guys, because he's a little younger

than they are. He wants to be in a position where a

"new" Jimmy will come along and want to be like HIM.

When is he going to wake up and see these people as

the jerks they are?

I mean, Carree, I love you, and look up to you in some

ways, but I don't want to be in the same room with you

when you have sex, even necking or what ever with

Billy, er, Bill . . . sorry."

"He made the thought of having sex with him real

exciting the first time and I really wanted to do it,

I had so many questions and I wanted to keep him as my

boyfriend. I saw so many possibilities, because he was

so nice to me. I liked it and I had an orgasm, even

though I had to help it. But about a month later we

did it again at his house and I was really getting

into it and he yanked it out of me, having cum already

in the condom. He ran to the bathroom and came back to

get me to hurry, making sure his parents didn't catch

us. He just did it to say he did it. I enjoyed it, but

I wanted an orgasm. He just came and I guess he liked

it for a second, but he ran and took off the condom

and he was done - period. That's when I decided I

would not run the risk anymore for the little I got

out of it, especially when I can do better alone or

with him watching me alone."

Meg finished her story as she took the ice from her

eye, looking at me for a reaction to how the eye was.

"Your eye looks 100 per cent better Meg, all the

swelling is down and the little black and blue that

shows can be covered with make-up. Just don't rub or

cry anymore." I said. "And you know" I continued, "I

think he's going to come back to you Meg. He was

spending more and more time with our crowd in the last

month or so. I think he just had some time with his

old crowd who told him that he should be getting more,

as if sex is the only thing there is in a

relationship. Being a sophomore and being very

attractive, I think you were originally his trophy for

those guys. I agree with Judy. He hadn't planned on

falling for you. When he did, I think they told him he

was a wimp. He said he only dated you because you had

big tits. That was probably the truth. That's why I

say you were his trophy. You two clicked right away

and it caught him off guard."

"I hope you're right. If not, if he remains this macho

jerk, I may have to seek him out and kick him in the

balls," Meg said laughing.

"Real grown up," I added with a smirk. "So, am I back

in your ski trip plans or not?" I asked.

"I guess you were NEVER REALLY out of them. Inviting

Jimmy to go with me was going to be rape avoidance,

for me, all weekend, plus if my mom and Dad ever found

out, I would be really screwed. You never really

thought you weren't going with me, did you?" Meg

asked.

"Not really. I didn't see how you could pull it off.

Why don't you put Jimmy on the back burner and lets

concentrate on fun this weekend. If it's as much fun

as last year with your parents, it will be great." I

said as I got up to start picking up.

Meg got up and hugged me again. "I knew you couldn't

be the bitch that I hoped would "die a virgin" all

Saturday and Sunday. (we both laughed) "I'm going to

shower and get ready for school. I can give you a ride

back with me, even though my mom says "no riders" yet.

It's only a little ways. You trust me to drive right?"

I told her I did, and she ran up the stairs to shower

and dress, while I picked up her mess. We both got

back to school in time for the first period after

lunch, and Meg looked OK. If I saw Jimmy alone this

afternoon, I was going to give him a piece of my mind,

the little bastard. What he did to my friend was

strictly rotten and he was going to hear from me.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - -

I didn't see Jimmy that day or the next. On Wednesday

there was supposed to be a senior skip, but when it

was announced that the Bishop would be saying the

Thanksgiving Mass in the Gym, there was a general

announcement that the skip was not authorized and

anyone who was absent would be disciplined. Usually

this kind of an infraction meant that quarterly marks

would not be mailed, they would have to be picked up

with a parent present, or some other little threat. I

figured Jimmy would cancel his skip so I had asked

Bill to bring me into school 10 minutes early. He knew

what I wanted to do, so he went along with my plan.

Bill let me off just in front of school before he went

to the lot. Seniors could park on the street in front

of school so I knew where to lay in wait for my prey.

Bill and I would wait until after Mass to say our

weekend goodbyes.

I hated not seeing him for 4 days, but last weekend we

made up for a lot of future lost time. Tuesday night

Bill had to rush home to get to work after school, so

we had a nice long phone session after he finally got

home from work. A couple times we caught each other

saying how we missed our little "sessions" from

last weekend. We had both promised to not be as wild

and active as we had been last weekend, sexually.

Unless the time and place presented itself, any sex

acts like last weekends, were not going to happen. As

much as we loved each other, we knew the day when we

would be alone together was far off.

Great temptations for intercourse, like last weeks,

would be harder to resist if we were at each other

that often. The necking, rubbing, touching, and even

masturbation, when things got real hot, would have to

satisfy our urges. Before Bill left with his family to

Thanksgiving in Vermont, I wanted a nice long special

goodbye, and I bet he did to.

I had no more gotten out of Bills car when Jimmy drove

up. He parked his car right behind Benny Smiths car.

Benny was one of the senior jerks that used to try and

date underclass girls "to break them in right." He

made me sick. My friend Jenny calls him Fonzie,

because of the way he acts. He really thinks that he

can get girls, like the tv character did. He was one

of the guys that Jimmy looked up to.

"Jimmy Beauchamp, I have to talk to you," I called

out.

He turned and saw me, and already I knew he wished he

hadn't.

"What does SHE want you to tell me, Carree?" He said

with a sneer.

I got right in his face. I always liked Jimmy. We had

been out with he and Meg a lot as a couple, so I had

no fear of him.

"SHE doesn't have a thing to say to you, you lowlife

piece of shit," I swore so he knew I was pissed.



"You are so wrapped up in being macho with the bunch

of losers you hang with that you can't even admit you

love her, can you?

I see all the trinkets and things you buy her. I bet

your hoodlum friends would be surprised to see the

cutesy stuff you buy her.

Maybe if you took her little bear with the diamond in

it and gave it to your pal Benny. Maybe he would like

it.

On second thought, maybe you couldn't. I know because,

you can't look at that bear without thinking about

her, can you? You look at it and know it's the only

thing you have left of her, and you threw her away.

I always really liked you Jimmy, mainly because I call

Meg my best friend. Everyone told her she was stupid

to date a senior, and she stuck with you, despite the

trashy reputations of your friends.

She saw the good in you. You will never find a dearer

friend than you had in her. I also know you took

advantage of her, too.

That's something she can never get back again, Jimmy.

It's too bad you can't just admit how you feel about

her and tell your friends to, to, to . . . just FUCK

OFF if they don't like it.

You may not have lost her yet, you asshole, but if you

have, it serves you right. She can't believe the real

Jimmy Beauchamp, that she knows, would have given her

an ultimatum like THAT. You let trash put ideas in

your head Jimmy. Wake up!!"

I turned on a heel and walked away. I hadn't quite

drawn a crowd, but there were many in earshot to know

what I had said. I'm sure many of them had never, and

will never again, hear me use that kind of language. I

saw what he did to Megan, how devastated she was.

She was my dearest friend and the thought of her

dreams going up in smoke like that, for no real

reason, rubbed me raw. I wasn't sorry for what I said;

I just wish the audience were smaller.

When I got to the school door I turned around to see

if Jimmy was catching up, to give me a piece of his

mind, but he was gone.

No actually, I saw he was back in his car, sitting

there looking straight ahead. Good, I hope he felt

like a heel.

Good God, how lucky was I to have Bill? It took a

while for him to wake up, but things really looked

good for us, now.

- - - - - - - - - - - - -

The next couple weeks flew by as I was preparing for

the Holidays. I didn't really have a lot of shopping

to do, but I helped my mom out quite a bit with her

shopping if I went to the Malls with Bill. Bill and I

enjoyed going and watching the people. I think we

secretly liked watching the happy couples, figuring

that would be us someday. I helped Bill pick out gifts

for his mom and Dad. He had saved some money from his

paycheck that he was finally getting to see more and

more of.

His parents had been so paranoid that college was out

of his reach, financially, that he literally saved

every cent he earned at his uncles hardware store.

However, Bills PSAT scores made it quite apparent that

he would be able to get lots of college financial

help.

Bill, finally, was able to allow himself money from

each weeks check. Between that and the little I could

spare from my allowance, we always had gas money and

usually enough for a movie or a chance to go out for

pizza with friends.

Every Friday and Saturday night also allowed us a

chance to be alone, even if it was at the end of my

driveway. We always did a lot of necking, cuddling and

kissing, with little side trips for our hands in each

others pants, and, of course, my shirt or blouse. We

always tried to go home somewhat satisfied, so we

wouldn't have to jack or jill off alone. If we stopped

at McDonalds for a quick burger or shake, or went out

for a pizza, we always loaded up on napkins. Cleaning

up after Bill, if I masturbated him, or if he did

himself, as I watched, always needed a lot of clean-

up.

There was an occasion one Friday night, when I had my

period, when I wanted to give Bill oral sex, but he

insisted we wait until we could do it together.

However, things got hot enough that he had his penis

out and asked me to sit back and watch him get off. As

he began to breath heavily, I began to tell him how

much I would love to taste his cum, and feel his cock

pulse in my mouth. He kept putting off my advances

saying it wasn't fair to me.

Fair, schmair, I loved him and had the desire!

UN-fairly I used the magic words, "I think it's unfair

to me, not to let me suck your juice from your cock."

I knew he couldn't resist. He just dropped his head

back and began jerking in earnest.

Once I put my mouth over the head, that was all it

took to push him over.

I really hadn't gotten used to the taste, but more so,

I enjoyed giving him that special pleasure. It was the

fourth time he let it go in my mouth. (I was still

counting then.) It gave me a special thrill that I

felt at my very core. Even though I had my period and

wouldn't want him to touch me, the feeling or thrill I

got, was reciprocal, although he didn't know it.

The day after that particular Friday I was pretty sure

my period was done, but on Saturday night it was real

cold out and when we stopped at the end of my drive

the wind seemed to blow right through the car and we

kept our goodbyes short and sweet. The cars heater

could barely keep the frost from the windows. If there

were to be any "getting off," it was to be in fantasy,

alone in our rooms.

That Sunday morning I was extra hot for Bill, but with

this, the Sunday before Christmas looming, I was

pretty sure we would be either shopping or spending

time with family, and Sunday night was out for a date,

as we both needed that night for studies.

I got home from church with my mom and Dad about 10:30

and resigned myself to a day of helping mom prepare

Sunday dinner and studying. Around One o'clock the

phone rang and I was happy to hear Bills voice.

"How you doing with homework, Carree? . . . All caught

up?" he asked.

"Assignments to hand in are fine," I said, "but I

really need to review 2 chapters in Lit, or I'll be in

trouble. I had my period Thursday and Friday and my

head wasn't really in it.

Plus, to tell you the truth, the thought of seeing you

this weekend had me distracted. I really missed you

this week. When you work every day after school I

never see you." I lamented.

"It's my uncles busy time, so I can really make some

extra dough, Care. Things will be back to normal after

Christmas. Friday night I had a pretty good idea that

you a . . .sort of . . . missed me," he said.

"Yeah," I blushed, "I did. I got a little carried

away, but I wanted you to know how much I missed you.

I liked it too, you know. So, anyway, what's up?"

"My mom and Dad went shopping today to get some last

minute things. My mom just called me and wants me to

meet her at Sears. She has something to get for my

Dad, and he's with her. She wants me to meet them,

sort of "run into them," and she can pass me the

receipt so I can pick it up at the dock and bring it

home.

Anyway, as long as I'm going passed your house, I was

wondering if you wanted to get out for an hour or so?"

Bill asked.

"That would be nice Bill!" I said. "We won't eat till

5 or so and I just need a couple hours tonight for

review. I can be ready in 5 minutes. This is great! I

had figured you shopping and studying today, I didn't

expect to see you until the morning," I said to Bill.

"I was going to shop," Bill said, "but my mom is

picking up what I needed. I was going to call you to

see if you wanted to get out for a drive when my mom

called me, so it all works out. I'll be by directly.

Bye for now hon," he said as he hung up.

I went downstairs and told my parents what we were

doing and they just asked I be home by 4 o'clock to

help with dinner. They were doing Christmas Cards, at

the last minute, as was their usual.

So, buried in that mess, they wouldn't really miss me

if I took off for an hour or so.

I slipped into some jeans and a sweater, found some

warm mittens, put on my coat and waited to hear Bill

come up the drive. I no more than perked an ear for

him, when he beeped outside. I always told him that

when it was cold out, not to bother coming up to the

door. Leave the car warm for both of us and just beep

for me.

My parents understood.

"Hi sugar bun," he greeted me as he jumped out to get

my door and shut me in.

He jumped back in his door and gave me a nice kiss. He

looked extra delicious today.

Something about Sunday, and the promise of the

beginning of a new week being nigh, made the day dark

and mysterious in some way I can't explain.

If I ever wasn't home on a Sunday by 5 or 6, it was

like I was missing some right of passage to the new

week.

Sunday nights were for resting, eating and preparing

for the upcoming week.

It seemed the whole day was a preparation for the

evening, when the new week would be laid into

schedule, the old week reviewed for what it added to

the sum of things in general. (I still have

this take on Sundays, even when I'm "working" in

vacation resorts.) Seeing Bill while I was in this

mood, just made me glad he called. There was some sort

of unfulfilled promise waiting, it seemed.

"My mom found all this exercise equipment for my Dad

at Sears and it's on a closeout. He saw it there the

other day and lamented that he wished he could afford

it right now. When it was still there today mom

decided to just buy it. She lost Dad for a couple

minutes and called me to pick it up. I'll have to stow

it in my room over the garage. He hardly ever goes up

there. I just hope we can get it in one trip. We just

have to casually run into them, so mom can give me the

receipt for picking it up at the dock. Does that sound

like a plan?" Bill explained.

"Sounds good to me. Are you sure he won't go up

there?" I asked.

"He hardly ever does. It's just my word processor, TV,

a few of Mom's antiques up there. Besides, I think it

will fit in the eaves crawl space." He said.

Everything went as planned. We "happened" to run into

the Wilson's and Mrs. Wilson wanted to show Bill a

sweater or something. She took him aside for that and

gave him the stuff he needed. While Mr. Wilson and I

talked, he reached into his wallet and gave me a $10

bill and told me to treat Bill and I to an ice cream

at Friendlys. I think he just felt uncomfortable

making small talk with me, and this was his way get

over his discomfort. (Figuring ice cream to be a

comfort food?) Bills parents hadn't really opened up

to me yet. I don't think Bill had told them that,

number 1, I was NOT going to be a nun, and number 2,

We were probably going to someday get married.

At the time they would have laughed at him anyway.

Bills Dad had a thing he said that irritated Bill to

no end. It was, "Oh, BIG plans for the BIG shot. Don't

worry, you'll wake up and see it right someday."

Bill used to think that his father must have had a lot

of disappointment in his life. He never saw anything

possible, until it happened.

Bill came back with his mom and he gave me a little

wink as we bid adieu to them. They went off about

their shopping as Bill grabbed my hand and we headed

toward the dock area of the store.

"Your Dad gave me a ten spot to treat us to ice

cream," I said in a childlike voice.

"Oh, leave him alone Care, he was just trying to be

nice because I know he must have been uncomfortable as

hell alone there with you" Bill said, hitting the nail

right on the head.

"Uncomfortable would have been the word. Your Dad is

like 40 and acts like 60, how come?" I asked.

"You notice that too, huh? I think he wants to be a

sage to me and anyone else a day younger than he. He

equivocates age with knowledge. He wants everyone to

walk away with one of his pearls of wisdom. He's a

great guy, but tries too hard to be like his father.

My mom gave me something better that 10 bucks to treat

you with though." he said with a smile.

I stopped as we neared the back door to button my coat

and prepare for the chill of the outside air. As I

pulled on my mittens I said to Bill, "Well? What was

it she gave you, are you going to keep me in

suspense?"

"She gave me until 5 or so," he said as if I knew what

he meant.

"Are you Ellery Queen?" I asked trying to figure the

mystery.

"I guess I have a one track mind. She gave me until 5

o'clock to get this stuff home and hidden away. That's

how long she will keep him away. They will shop until

around 4 and then there is a Barbeque pork supper at

the Presbyterian Church up the avenue.

Dad loves Barbeque so they are going there after

shopping. It starts at four!" he said.

"So?" I said, "I have to be home around four, to help

my mom cook dinner."

"Earth to Carree! If we get this stuff home and put

away, the rest of the time we are guaranteed alone

until well after four. You know, alone, a-l-o-n-e," he

said, knowing I NOW knew what he meant.

"Bill Wilson, you bad boy. You wouldn't try to take

advantage of me, would you, she said knowingly," I

said.

"Only if we hurry. It's 5 till two, right now. If we

get everything home in one trip and put away, we

should have at least an hour. Do we have a date?" he

said.

"We can have more than that, if we hurry Bill." I said

as I grabbed his hand and rushed to the pick up area.

The pick up area was 20 deep in people; the long line

dashed all hopes of getting out in a hurry. Bill

looked at me and then looked at the receipt.

"We're screwed," he said as he got a number from the

take-a-tik dispenser. "Number 84 and the sign says

they are waiting on 63," Bill noted.

We lost the wind from our sail as we waited.

"69, number 69," the man called. "This person must

have left and we will have to go back to it." The man

drawled. "One last time, 69?"

Bill folded his arms with the receipts and pick up

tags in his hand and I saw a yellow ticket stapled

right on the front with "69" right on it.

"69!" I yelled to the front of the room, "THAT'S US,

SORRY!"

Bill didn't understand what I yelled for as I grabbed

the receipts from his hand and headed up front.

Bills mom must have gotten a ticket ahead, figuring a

long line, so we wouldn't have to wait. He followed me

as I pulled the ticket from its staple and waved it.

"She already got a waiting line ticket! Wow what a

Mom!!" Bill said as the dockhand gathered our stuff

from the long conveyor.

I leaned over to Bill's ear and said, " I like that

number, too. 69," I said as I poked him.

He looked at the number, then at me. He appeared to

let it pass and then I knew it hit him, what it meant,

what I meant.

"God, Carree, how am I supposed to function," he

whispered to me.

My only answer was a giggle. Even I didn't know what

69 really was. I mean, I know what it was, but NOT

WHAT it would be.

Have you ever tried to think logical, when your brain

has something else it wants to sink its resources

into?

THAT was planning how to load all of this stuff into a

Corsica.

My mind told me to put a rope around it and drag it to

Bills house and lets have at each other.

My common sense was trying to override all systems by

saying, "two trips, you will need until 4 o'clock and

being alone with Bill for an hour is a fantasy

unfulfilled."

Bill, however somehow, put his penis on hold and was

coming up with a solution.

"Three -7 foot long boxes, 2 -4 footers, and 3 -24

inch square cartons. My mom bought him a whole damn

gym. He'll come home instead of playing racquetball,

that's her deal," he said.

I raised an eyebrow as if to question.

"They have a racquetball court at his office and he

plays 3 times a week to get some exercise. He

absolutely hates racquetball, and the people who use

the facilities. But, he knows he needs the workout,

and it being that handy, he can't pass it up. He HATES

it. He can come home now. My mom is so smart."

He turned and looked at the car, and spun again and

looked at the 8 boxes.

"OK, here's the deal," he began. "We fold down the

back seat, put the 3 long boxes in through the trunk,

put the 2 -4 foot boxes long ways on top of them right

behind our seat to help hold them tight.

The 3 squares will fit just behind the 2 four's if

they go in first. We tie around the 3 that hang out

the back together and then to the loop in the trunk

lid and the frame notch underneath.

If you don't mind freezing on the way back, I think it

all fits."

"Bill Wilson, if it works, you are genius, and you can

warm me up when we get back," I said patting him on

the back.

A dockhand came up and offered to help Bill load. Bill

told him of his plan, and he sort of agreed, making

his reservations known, and asked Bill to back up to

the dock.

In five minutes we were pulling away from the dock,

slowly and cautiously, loaded as Bill prescribed.

"Ha, that guy had his doubts, but my genius proved me

right," Bill shouted raising a fist to the air.

"We're not home yet, Bill. Save it, and don't stop too

fast or you and I will wear this stuff," I said.

"Not to worry, my sweet," still shouting in his Mighty

Mouse voice, "My genius will save you!!"

We laughed at being so goofy together and made the

slow trip through the city, past the semi country of

my house and on to the rural area where the Wilson's

lived. As we got to the turn off to his driveway, I

warned Bill of scraping bottom crossing the dip,but

all was well.

As soon as we backed to the side door of the garage

and the stairs to the study Bill jumped out of the car

and quickly ran upstairs. I lagged way behind trying

to figure his hurry. When I got to the top of the

stairs he was frantically loading the Franklin stove.

"Grab the bellows and hit those coals, I think I can

save my fire from earlier and get some heat in here,

ummm, just in case someone wants to remove any

clothing."

I looked at him with a big question mark on my face.

"Bellows?" I asked.

"Another antique thing of my Moms, she recovered the

lungs on them. You know, to blow on the coals and get

the fire hot," he said as he picked them up and

clapped the handles together aiming the nozzle at the

embers."

"God, I only saw these in 3 Stooges movies," I said as

I took them and began working them on the desired

area. The embers seemed to burst into flames with the

bark of the first pieces of wood Bill had laid in.

"Holy crap," I said. "It's working already, I've got

flame!"

"That's the idea," Bill said. "There's more fires you

can start in a bit," he said winking.

I smiled and blushed at his reference, saying "Putting

them out seems to be more fun, although starting them

is . . ." I stopped as he leaned in and kissed me.

"I think it's started now. Let it be and give me a

hand moving the stuff up," Bill said as he walked to a

trap door on the eaves of the roof pitch. The opening

was 4 by 3 and everything was going to fit in there

fine.

Once we got the long boxes into the stairwell Bill

took the lower end to handle the brunt of fighting the

gravity as we slid the boxes up. The 3 squares he

handled alone, as awkward as they seemed. We pushed

and cajoled the boxes into the crawl space and Bill

looked at his watch.

"Two-fifty five! I believe we had a 3 o'clock

appointment?" Bill said as he curled his arm on his

hip inviting me to hook mine in.



We walked to the slouch couch and sat down side by

side. The fire was just beginning to warm the room as

he put his arm around me.

I tipped my face to his, saying "We make a good team,

huh? I would love doing anything with you."

He curled a lip and dropped an eye to a wink.

Anything?" he asked.

"Anything," I swooned as I pressed my lips to his.

Our hands slid inside each other's coats and went to

our backs, holding our fingers as far apart as

possible and pressing our fingertips hard along the

grooves of our back ribs. We couldn't hold each other

tighter, as big as we tried to make our hands. Our

tongues swashed back and forth over each other as Bill

began to push me back onto the couch. His weight on my

upper body with his fingers pressed into my back was

comforting and delicious.

He pulled his lips from mine and said, "Let me go

close up the car and lock the door downstairs. Get

comfy, OK?"

He could have told me to stand on my hands and walk

down the stairs and I would have, just to get another

kiss like that.

He went down the stairs and I took off my coat. The

fire had definitely taken effect over the room, and

Bills fire had taken its effect on me. We were going

to be totally naked for each other for the second

time. Anticipation overwhelmed me.

Over the past few weeks since our awakening on the

weekend before Thanksgiving, we had expressed

ourselves in many different ways as we said goodnights

in Bills car.

He had gotten me off with his fingers in my panties,

and I by stroking his penis. Of course, there was the

time I bent to take his seed into my mouth, and then a

few times when we sat back and watched each other

masturbate. That's a little kinky, but a lot of fun.

(God, I wanted to, some day, do that on a large bed in

a room washed in a blue light. He on one corner, me on

the other corner of the bed. Ohhh, fantasy.)

Although those times were all good, and we reveled in

the comfort we had with each others genitals, nothing

was quite like being nude together. Our whole bodies

became genitalia then.

Bill was shucking his coat as he came up the stairs.

He smiled as he looked to me in recline on the antique

psychiatrists lounge.

He came and sat on the edge and leaned and began

kissing me again. As his lips moved to my neck, he

began to tug up on my sweater. We parted lips and he

looked at me.

"I don't want to feel you through this at all. I want

to hold your beautiful breasts in my bare hand," he

said as he raised my sweater over my head as I sat up

to accommodate him.

As soon as it came off my arms I reached down and

unsnapped my bra to free what he wanted to hold.

He planted his lips to mine and I lay back again as

his hands held and caressed my breasts while lightly

rubbing over the nipples.

They instantly rose to attention.

Once my nipples were erect, his genteel demeanor

ceased with them. He pinched, not to hurt me, and

twisted them to make them more erect and beg for his

lips.

He sat back and looked at them, then into my eyes.

He dropped his mouth to them, the right, then the

left, and then holding them, as close as he could,

together, tried to touch each with the same lick.

I was running hot in my jeans as he had me on fire in

an instant.

"Take off your shirt too," I said. "I want to feel

your skin next to mine."

He kept one nipple in his mouth as he awkwardly

unbuttoned his shirt. Once complete, he let my nipple

go as he sat up and slid off his shirt. I thought that

I could save some time and use my own actions as a

bellows if I unsnapped my jeans. Upon seeing me do

that, he unsnapped his and I slid mine down my legs as

I kicked off my shoes. He followed suit as if we were

mimicking each other in a mirror.

We both sat in our underwear and looked and smiled at

each other. I put my hands underneath my breasts and

held them out to him as I leaned back onto the lounge.

He didn't need any more of an invitation.

We kissed, cuddled, smooched, squeezed, rubbed and

licked at the exposed parts of each other's bodies. He

finally reclined me back to plant his lips to mine as

he brought his full open hand over my panties on my

pussy.

I thought he would never get there.

Putting the cloth of my underwear to the wetness of my

bare vagina made the gusset soak through in no time. I

was hot and wet and ready for some attention.

Bill, at the same time, had quite a tent going in his

pants as I reached for it. I ran the inner palm over

the top of his penis as if to polish it. He, too, was

leaking anticipatory fluid.

"Let me rid you of these," he said as he hooked his

fingers in the sides of my panty and I lifted my butt

to let them slide off.

He looked at my pussy as if it were the first time. He

squinted, and blew a short breath out through pursed

lips.

"Ouuuu, that's pretty, all shaved and smooth," he said

as he put a hand over my vagina and centered his

middle finger in the groove and stroked upwards over

my clit over my belly and all the way up to my chin.

He held my chin in his fingers as he kissed me and

then waved his tongue over my lips and then retraced

the path his fingers had just taken all the way down

to my pussy.

He licked along the groove and used two fingers to

part the lips and let my clit pop out.

His tongue hit that spot and I was on the roller

coaster in an instant. I hadn't expected him to get so

deeply, so fast, into licking me, but I had no time to

protest.

My body caught up real fast and I was pushing my mons

to his mouth hoping he could devour me.

His tongue had my first orgasm in line waving it's

little hand waiting to be picked, and pick it he did.

I was just about to move to get his cock in my hand

when I got lost in my orgasm.

I was already trying to find the top of the ladder to

jump from. My orgasm came quick and hard. I moaned and

squealed and was already trying to squirm away from

his advances, it hurt so good.

"Wait, wait, Bill," I cried. "Remember the ticket, the

69, lets try that. I want you too," I whined.

He gave up my clit and sat back and motioned me to get

up. I did and he lay back while removing his undies.

He put his hands to each side of himself and said,

"Put your knees here." I did as he said, but I guess I

didn't understand.

"No, turnaround, 69," he said.

I saw right away why he should be on the bottom with

his head up on the incline, my ass and vagina were

right in his face. He was slowly kissing around my

butt cheeks and thighs. I knew he would work his way

to my pussy and I was anticipating it, when I looked

down at what he had for me.

He was fully retracted, erect and shiny, quite ready

for a kiss and a suck. I didn't need an invitation to

drop my mouth over the head and wipe it clean.

His kiss turned into a tongue dart in my pussy.

Between his saliva and my own lube, his tongue shot

like a finger between my lips.

Although I was not able to get much of Bill that deep

in my mouth, I began to bob in rhythm to his licks on

me.

With just one other real session of sex before, we

were doing quite well and confidently with ourselves.

"Soixante-neuf"(fr), or "69," was probably the first

sex act I heard of where I had real wonderment,

instead of disgust. By the time I had heard of it I

knew that giving and receiving oral sex was supposed

to be pleasurable. Of course the first time you hear

of oral sex you are thinking of those private places

being from where you excrete waste, and the thought of

putting your mouth there is repugnant, and all of

those who do so must be perverts. But, the thought of

you both doing it to each other, at the same time, was

somewhat like actual intercourse.

i.e.: Both of you feeling the same sensations

simultaneously.



It did not take long at experiencing the act to get

the hang of it. I remember reading that sometimes you

could feel you were not able to concentrate on your

partner, because you were enjoying his or her

ministrations on you too much.

But, one of the woman's information books I read said

that was overcome when you both got into the same

cadence. Then, you were to imagine you were licking

or tonguing yourself. It seemed a far fetch at the

time, but now that information was serving my

pleasure, quite richly, I might add.

We had gotten deeply into the real sex of our liaison

without much real foreplay today. I should say real

physical foreplay. I think every moment we were

together today was foreplay.

Last night we both had looked forward to the end of my

period so we could fulfill the promise of Friday

night. Bill did get off and I did get to participate,

but a nice shrieking orgasm was due me to feel

fulfilled.

Bills magic fingers never let me down.

After quite a few minutes of co-opted pleasure, the

meter of our mouths began to change as we were each

reaching orgasm. I didn't see how we could cum

together, and apparently, neither did Bill.

He moved his tongue from around my clit to my vulva

and lips, sucking and lightly chewing them. I took

this as a lead to proceed and finish him.

I had been using my hand lightly to stroke him with my

bobbing, because I knew I couldn't go that deep. I

wanted to give him as much pleasure s possible.

With the pre-cum I now tasted, I apparently had done

pretty well. I began to grip him a little tighter and

lengthen my stroke while I shortened the bob of my

mouth. I used my tongue more around the head to give

him more sensations.

The few other previous times I had got him off with my

mouth, he was quite loud and verbose as he approached

orgasm and finally came.

Today, with his mouth in my crotch, that was not the

case, not wanting to give up what he was doing to

announce his orgasm. His exhale became quite

pronounced through his nose as he neared orgasm. I was

preparing to catch all of his liquid love and timing

my swallows so that I wouldn't choke.

Suddenly he moved his head away from my pussy and I

thought he would shout out, but he just moved his

tongue from my vagina to my little butt-hole. He

drilled it hard and I was just about to worry if I was

clean back there when he pulled my hips to his face

and buried his head to my ass crease and tried to put

his tongue up my butt. In that same second, he shot

the first of 3 or 4 bursts of pre-cum and cum into my

mouth.

I was quite prepared to accept and swallow them, even

with his tongue trying to go up my rear. It did feel

fantastic, yet strange to have his tongue there, even

though he had done that before, but I was truly

enthralled in making his orgasm as complete as

possible.

He was through "shooting" in to my mouth but there was

still steady ooze emitting as he continued to tongue

my anus and have long nasal exhales. I was letting

this collect in my mouth because I knew the swallowing

action, over the now super sensitive head of his

penis, would send him recoiling from my

mouth.

I wanted one more swallow as I lolled my tongue gently

back and forth over the little slit at the top of his

pretty penis.

Finally, I was satisfied that I had gotten all of his

ejaculation either in my belly or in my mouth.

I swallowed and sucked hard one more time to clear my

mouth of it. As expected, he violently recoiled for my

mouth as he gripped my hips tightly with his hands.

I let his cock rest to the side of my cheek, as he

could no longer stand it to be in the torture chamber

of my mouth.

What gave him so much pleasure just seconds ago would

make him crazy right now. As he moved his tongue from

my butt-hole back to my vagina, and especially my

clit, I began to tongue the crease beside his balls,

occasionally nipping at them with my tongue. If I

didn't know his body before, after today, I would.

He used his fingers to pull apart my pussy and show my

erect clitoris to his tongue. He flicked it with

earnest and would then cover it with his mouth sucking

at it.

I was crazy with delight and sensation of my impending

orgasm. In this position, on this couch, he was free

to move his hands and fingers about me with

out losing me. He was inclined to the point where I

was being "served" to him.

My clit as totally exposed and he needn't hold

me open any longer to swathe it with his tongue. He

pushed one finger into me, seemingly behind my clit,

and I knew he was going for my G-spot.

With his other hand he put his thumb over my asshole

and was rubbing it backed forth. Not trying to put it

in, but just gliding over it. I don't know how I would

have handled that penetration then. I was in ecstasy.

I knew he was going to my G-spot with his finger. I

didn't know that much about it and what made it do

what it did, but I definitely know I leak a milky

fluid, heavily, when I orgasm from there.

If I got into the rhythm of it, I knew I could spurt

or shoot the fluid. One thing I did know for sure, I

was going to cum, and real soon.

My first waves of spasm were hitting when I felt a

hard jolt coming from deep within me. I tried to keep

my mouth busy with licking and sucking on and around

his sack, but I feared hurting him and I raised my

head to announce my orgasm.

"Urghh urghhh urghh, arghhhhh," I could barely stand

the pressure and pleasure that was surfacing as his

tongue and finger worked in unison.

I held back my climax, that seemed the size of a

softball, to make a bigger wave of orgasm, but then I

had to let it go.

When I did there was a gush of fluid that must have

hit Bill in the face, and before I could move away, a

second hit and splashed out.

"Your finger! Move your finger, Bill," I shouted to

stop the G-spot reflexes.

"I can't stand anymore and I want to feel your

tongue," I commanded.

I don't think I ever before, and rarely ever since,

said anything that could be made out to be words

during an orgasm.

But, on that day, I did, and Bill heeded my urgent

request. He took his finger from my pussy and just

concentrated on my clit with his tongue and wave after

wave or orgasm came over me from deep inside me as

well as right from my clit.

To try to put in words, the vocal emissions I made,

would be fruitless, as spelling such things would be

impossible.

But with my being already shaken by my G-spot O's,

these deep seated orgasms sought to satisfy a few

weeks of longing.

I ground the bald palate of my sexy meal to Bills face

with an abandon I never knew up until that point.

Every muscle in my body turned hard as I tried to meld

my clit with his tongue.

Then, I could no longer stand it for one split of a

second.

I fell forward to my shoulders between Bill legs with

my hands gripping my breasts expelling a long loud

"Ohhhhhhhhhhh."

We lay like that motionless for a few minutes. I

realized his thumb was still on my asshole and had

actually sunk in just to the pad of his thumb.

Not really in, but definitely not out.

Definitely not pushed in, but just accepted by my

body. Perhaps this was the meld I had sought a moment

ago.

The first movement for either of us was Bill removing

that digit from my tight dimple. With it removed I

rolled to my side curled between his legs.

"Waiting for the right time (for this, or any kind of

sex) has it's merits, I would say," I said with a

little chuckle.

"Mmmmm, do you really think that, or are you just

saying it," Bill said facetiously as he sat up and

laid himself over me.

We hugged and cuddled when I realized that the time

must be late. I twisted to see the clock on the wall,

five after four.

"Let me up. I better call my mom and tell her I'll be

a few minutes late," I said.



Bill held up one finger to me and reached out and

walked a step on his hands to the tv stand and grabbed

the cordless phone. I laid back and dialed my number.

"Hi Mom, I'm going to be a few minutes late. We were

doing an errand for Bills mom and we got held up. I'll

be home by 20 minutes after or so. Anything else you

need for dinner, as long as I'm out? . . . OK, I'll

see you soon."

I handed Bill back the phone and he put it on the

floor and I slumped back down to the couch. As he

twisted back up to the couch his mid section was right

in front of me. His beautiful soft uncircumcised penis

was right in front of my face. I took two fingers to

pull back the foreskin and gave the head two long

deep sucks. A drop of semen escaped and went to my

tongue.

"Sorry, couldn't help that, honey. I love you and I

love your penis. We don't spend that much time nude. I

couldn't help it," I apologized.

"No apology necessary baby," he said as he planted big

kisses on my butt cheeks as he got up.

"Uggg, we gotta get you home! I barely feel like

moving," Bill said as he helped me up.

We stood nude and hugged each other, both grabbing

each other's ass. We kissed deeply, and we each

tasted each others sex on our mouths.

"Let's get dressed. We have to stop at the Pik'n'Pay

to get half and half, and some heavy cream. mom thawed

her last pumpkin pie from Thanksgiving and my Dad

won't eat it without whipped cream," I said.

My panties felt cool as they hit my pussy from being

damp from my juices earlier, or maybe my pussy was

still that hot. Either way, it made me a little thrill

each time I shifted to get into

my jeans.

I looked at Bill as he was stuffing his penis into his

pants. I think my last little taste of him may have

inflated the issue.

I was glad we felt so comfortable together.

I really loved this man.

We stopped and bought my Moms last minute dinner

things and were in my driveway by almost 4:30. It was

a short goodbye, but a nice one. I just laid my head

back and let him kiss my super contented face.

"I love you," we said in unison as we laughed at our

bon mot.

"I'll see you in the morning," he whispered as I

scooted over to get out of the car.

"I count the days when we can say "good night," from a

pillow, forever," I said.

"Me too," he said scrunching up his nose.

I dashed through the cold to the warmth of my house

and gave my mom the bag with her stuff in it.

"Sorry I'm late, but we had an errand for Bills Mom,"

I said.

As I sat down to arrange the salads in the bowls I

explained what we had to do for the Wilson's.

Ever being kinky, I wondered if mom could smell the

sex on me, the spurt I shot all over myself, or the

semen Bill shot into my mouth.

I let these thoughts pass as I finally went upstairs

to hang my coat and change for dinner. I put on my

pajamas and robe to prepare for dinner and a night of

studying 2 chapters of English Lit. I hoped I could

keep my mind on things for school.

It was 9:30 when the phone rang and I had just

finished all the review I could stand. If I didn't get

a good mark, it wasn't because I didn't study.

It was Megan Parker on the phone and as soon as I

heard her voice, I thought to myself:

"Oh No, not another pity party over Jimmy Beauchamp.

Come ON, it's been over 3 weeks."

But, she didn't have the whiney cry in her voice that

I had become accustomed too.

"You'll never guess who called me today, Care. My

Jimmy!" Meg said.

"He came crawling back, Carree, really! He realized

what a jerk he was and how much he cared for me." She

went on.

I interrupted her, "Are you sure this wasn't a ploy to

get you in bed again?" I asked.

"No, really. He was a regular repentant puppy. I guess

one of his jerk-o friends fixed him up with a girl

from City Central and they were all supposed to go to

the old water works guard shack on Saturday.

There's a fireplace in there and I guess they put

plywood over the windows and they party there.

He told me, point blank, that this chick was going to

screw him, she was all over him promising him a

blowjob, with his friends cheering him on and

everything.

He realized what an asshole situation it was because

he still cared so much for me, and he walked out.

He said they made him walk back alone and they called

him gay and chickenshit, you know all that macho

animal guy crap," she told me.

"Megan, are you sure? This sounds like a story to me,"

I said.

"I thought so too" Meg said, "And I told him I was

driving up there. He said he would only let me drive

up alone so he followed me in his car. Sure enough,

when I got there, Benny Smiths car was there, as

well as some of the others. When Jimmy pulled up a

couple of them came out and hollered at him, calling

names. They were all drinking beer and there were at

least 3 girls I didn't know

there.

I turned around and left as soon as I got there. Jimmy

was right behind me. I believe him. He came over with

all my stuff this afternoon and we talked and worked

things out.

I'm telling

you that I think he's for real. He was my Jimmy this

afternoon," Meg bubbled.

"Was there an apology with all of this Megan? Does he

know how much he hurt you?" I asked.

"Yes, he apologized over and over, plus he said he

would apologize to you too. He told me that you kicked

his ass for me. Ripped him up on side and down the

other. IS that true?" she asked.

"It is true, Meg. I was pissed at him for hurting you.

It was all because he wanted to be an asshole. How

about the sex stuff? Is that worked out?" I asked.

There was a long pause on the line and she hesitated

before she answered. "Yes, I think we are fine with

everything," she answered.

I blew up, "Megan you didn't spread your legs for him

again did you? Did he come back on your terms or his,

you jerk!!"

"No, No, Carree, I'm not a jerk. Honest. We did other

things to make love. Just let me say there was none of

the old stuff. Don't embarrass me Care. Use your

imagination," she said.

"OK, OK, Meg, I don't need to know or, do I want to

pry. I just wanted to know you didn't end up in bed

with him, give into him to get him back," I chided

her.

"No, everything was great. He understands how I feel.

He knows about my worries about him going away to

college, the whole thing. He's afraid he might need

another half year next year anyway to get all his

credits. He's done poorly in English and Physics labs,

and doesn't think he can hack summer school, with

his job. He's all screwed up right now.

All I know is that he is committed to me and he is

excited about us. Carree, I really am so sure about

him. I knew he had to come back to me.

Umm, tell me, did you really call him a "lowlife piece

of shit" or did he embellish?" Meg asked.

"Geez, I think I really did. I was still upset over

how hurt you were and what a mess you were that

Monday," I said.

"Why, do I need to apologize for that?" I asked.

"No, he said that was the thing that stuck with him

the most. He always really liked you, and you hardly

ever swore at all.

Hearing that come from you gnawed at him all the

time," Meg said.

"Well Meg, you be careful, don't wear your heart on

your sleeve too much. Make sure he's sincere and he's

not goofing on you." I said.

"Carree, don't tell anyone, but he cried like a baby.

He was totally repentant. He knew he was wrong, and he

knows what jerks his friends were." She said.

"Look, its 9:45 and I really have to get to bed. It

was an eventful day for Bill and I too. I am bushed.

We can talk in the morning, OK?" I said as I wished my

goodbyes and good lucks to Meg.

If my little confrontation with Jimmy had done any

good, I was happy.

Contented that I had helped make my friend happy, I

fell asleep as soon as my head hit the pillow.

The next thing I knew my mom was waking me for school.

"Carree, come on. Bill will be here in 45 minutes and

your Dad just got out of the shower. You better get

going." My mom said as she busied herself picking up

my dirty clothesbasket from the corner for Mondays

wash.

I was wiping the cobwebs from my head as mom made

small talk while gathering wash. "The radio says that

a boy from St Pius is in bad shape, grave, according

to the hospital, after a car accident last night. No

seat belt, he was thrown and then run over by his own

car. The boys name was Beechum or something"

The name didn't strike me at first until she carried

on. "Yes, Jimmy Beechum."

"Not JIMMY BEAUCHAMP," I said.

"Yes, that was it. Jimmy Beauchamp. Why do you know

him?" mom asked.

My eyes filled with tears thinking about Megan and how

happy she was last night for she and her Jimmy. Now

this. I had to be sure.

I went to go to call Megan and the phone rang. It was

Megan and she was hysterical. She had heard it on the

radio and called the hospital and had just heard from

Jimmy's brother.

Through her frantic and manic explanation complete

with tears, sobs, sudden screams and nausea, I gleaned

this;

Jimmy had his legs crushed and other major organs

mashed up as well as a head trauma.

It appeared that he lost control of the car and went

off the road and was thrown out. Then the car rolled

over him.

He might have lain out there for a little while before

anyone found him. It was so cold that the temps may

have saved him from bleeding out and dying right

there. He was not in good shape, and was definitely

not stable at all.

The next 24 hours were going to be very critical.

They might have to amputate his legs to save his life.

Meg was home alone when she got the news. Her mom was

taking her Dad to the airport this morning. She was

totally hysterical and mentally unstable. I told her

to sit and be still and I was on my way over. As soon

as I hung up I called and caught Heidi Stewart and had

her go right over to

comfort Meg. I told her she might want to call a

doctor or bring Meg to the Hospital so she could be

treated. She was in a bad condition, maybe shock, and

needed to be sedated. She was that bad.

I no more than hung up the phone and Bills mom called.

She said that Bill was on his way to get me to bring

me to Megs. He had heard the news and tried to call

me, but the phone was busy. He figured I had heard and

knew how close Meg and I were. I no more than hung up

with Mrs. Wilson and Bill drove up. He ran to the

door and my mom let him in.

I just redialed Megs house and Heidi answered. She was

going to bring Meg to the hospital where Jimmy

was to have her looked at, and hopefully sedated.

She agreed that Meg was over the deep end. I told her

that we would meet her at the hospital ASAP.

What a mess today was already. Christmas was in 2 days

and a joyous time was to be had, and now this. I

remember asking what I would do if anything ever

happened to Bill. Little did I know what the future

held for me.

At the hospital Bill and I met Heidi and Meg. Megan

was stupefied by the time she got there. She was

confused over the events of the last 24 hours now. She

was in a shock.

Within a half hour Meg was sedated, as was Jimmy's

Mother, who was as bad. We all sat vigil with Jimmy's

Dad, brother and sister.

Doctors and nurses who came out of ER and surgery gave

us little hope. A decision would have to be made

on his legs soon. Amputation might save his body from

the shock that it was going through because of his

severe leg injury. His chance of walking looked to be

50-50 at best, and his kidneys and liver were going to

need whatever strength his body could muster for

recovery.

They canvassed all of us for blood. Jimmy's brother,

Bill, Heidi and I all gave. Heidi called the school

and asked for more donors when they made

announcements. She thought they were going to let

classes out at noon and have a prayer vigil.

I was panicked altogether by the whole situation and

could only imagine what Jimmy, his family and Megan

were going through. By 11 o'clock or so Megan was able

to be up and they put her in a wheelchair and brought

her down to the waiting room. She was sorting things

out better now and beginning to accept things.

The Cathedral Tower was striking noon downtown next to

the Hospital when an important looking doctor came out

and summoned the family. I thought his was going to be

real bad news, but I saw the eyes of Jimmy's brother

brighten and he let out a deep breath.

It might be good news.

The family came over to brief us. The renal shutdown

of Jimmy's body had subsided and it appeared that his

kidneys were functioning, and what he had left of a

liver was going to work.

There was no spinal damage, and the head trauma was

definitely helped by the immediate cold temperatures.

The build up of fluid around his skull appeared to be

outside the brain as that fluid build up was

responding to treatment. His legs were another

story.

In another time, say 5 or 10 years ago, he would have

lost them without question. A micro surgeon was on his

way from Boston as they spoke and it was felt he may

be able to reconstruct some of the big bone structure

and muscle tissue.

All of this talk meant little to me, as I didn't then

understand about the functions of liver and kidneys. I

only knew that if his heart or brain were severely

damaged, he was in deep trouble.

An intern came over and began to tell all of us about

the possibility of his recovery, what the kidney and

liver problems could have meant, and maybe might still

mean. The big thing was, at the moment, Jimmy

Beauchamp was out of the weeds for now. He had a lot

of bad days ahead of him, and he had few severe

hurdles to cross to insure a life of any kind. But,

right now, he was stable and breathing on his own. His

critical bodily functions were working and he was NOT

in a coma. He was, however being kept under.

The accident somewhat ruined the Holidays for many of

us who knew Megan and Jimmy. We were all thankful that

he had made it this far and we knew there would be

many more Christmas's, but only one Jimmy.

We all made it through this with many lessons learned

and blessings taken to the bank of the heart. Jimmy's

recovery would be long and very tough on him

physically, and on he and Megan as a couple. But they

survived; Megan had been right about Jimmy all

along. Thank God she believed in them and was able to

draw from the strength of their relationship when

things got bad.

Jimmy never graduated from High School until Megan,

Bill and I did. His rehab was a long hard tough road

that took a lot of love from his family, and Megan to

get him through it all.

Plus, he had prayers, lots and lots of prayers.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - -

Moving forward in time, this chapter is about one year

since Jimmy's accident. It is one of the times that

William picked to tell of our sexual adventures.

However, it should be known it is one that I would not

have picked, as it makes me very sad. William had this

in his outline of stories because of the detail I went

into about the preparation for anal sex. When I wrote

in my diary about this I gave the dirty details of the

time leading up to and including the act itself.

As you read you will find another important reason

this was a special time in our lives.

When William and I read erotic stories that included

anal intercourse, he always thought that they made it

sound like it was as easy as sticking your finger in

pudding.

It is not.

It is an act that should not be entered into lightly

or at the spur of the moment. There were times when

passion seemed to over-ride common sense when it came

to anal love, for us. It was a practice we used during

our pre-marital relationship for its intimacy and

personal closeness. It certainly is not for everyone

and requires full consent and trust of both partners.

A little background . . .

For the third straight year, Megan and I took off on a

ski trip the day after Thanksgiving.

We had went to Okemo Ski Area in Vermont and stayed at

The Tyrol all 3 years. They had a motel and a group of

chalets. Our first year, we went with Meg's parents

and stayed in our own chalet. Last year we got a room

in the motel together to cut expenses, as we went

alone.

This year we had saved money to get our own chalet

again.

It was, as usual, perfect timing for both of us to get

away together. This being our senior year, we didn't

know how many more "best friend" trips there would be.

Bill went to Vermont to visit his grandparents and

relatives with his family, as was usual.

While family is important, this was a Holiday week,

and for as long as Bill and I had been together, he

was gone this whole week.

Wanting him around for Thanksgiving was just me being

selfish, I know.

Traditionally he packed up with his parents after

school on Wednesday and came home on Sunday afternoon.

This year, Megs' boyfriend, Jimmy, was still in rehab

after a horrible accident he suffered last Christmas

vacation. It looked like he might be walking on his

own by Christmas this year.

It was a close call for Jimmy.

If he could walk enough without depending on crutches,

walkers or wheelchairs, he would finally finish his

senior year with our class. (Megan had tried to sneak

away with Jimmy last year on this same trip, but

couldn't work it out to get past her parents.)

- - - - - - - - -

and now, back to the story . . .

Bill called me Tuesday night about 10 o'clock from his

writing room over the garage at his place. He was

telling me how nice and cozy it was with the fire in

the Franklin, and the only thing missing was me.

"So you called me just to tell me you were missing me,

you're so sweet," I said. "But you also are going to

end up frustrating me," I scolded him. "I know it's

been a while since we really got it on together."

I wanted to remain a virgin so, Bill and I didn't have

regular intercourse. I really didn't care about it

that much from a physical standpoint.

But, by remaining so, I would never have to lie to my

parents about if I was sleeping with him, and

foremost, I couldn't get pregnant. I just can't tell

you how much I worried about that happening. Bill and

I had major plans for our lives and we had seen what

"doing it" could do to ruin that, if we slipped up.

In its place, we satisfied our urges with mutual

masturbation, either watching each other, or doing

each other, and oral sex. We had decided to save oral

sex for times when we could get together, get naked,

and be uninhibited.

In plain words, no backseats of cars or "hiding behind

the barn." But, our oral sex sessions were pretty

intense and were probably as satisfying as any other

liaison could be.

Our first such oral extravaganza took place just one

year before, in the very room Bill was speaking from.

We had been there a few times since.

"We seem to have time for everything else," Bill said,

"but finding time for us has been impossible. I know

it's not my fault or yours, but lying here looking at

the fire and thinking of you, well . . ."

"Bill you don't have the monster in your hand, do you,

you bad little boy?" I asked.

"No, I don't, really. But, it may end up that way.

Listen to why I called and tell me what you think.

While at my Grandmothers for Thanksgiving, we are

going to take her car home.

She can't drive anymore and she is going to give it to

me. She can't grasp that I have my own car, but my Dad

says to take it and make her happy. She has been

talking about giving it to me for 5 years. It's 8

years old and runs pretty good. Dad says to take it,

fix it up and we can sell it, or sell mine, whichever

is the best option after we work on hers."

"Anyway, I was going to take her car skiing on

Saturday, as I usually do. My parents say that as long

as I am going to drive that far to ski, why don't I

just drive the car the rest of the way home

afterwards, and they will meet me at home on Sunday.

This way they can antique on the way home without me

whining about it.

Plus it gives them more room, without me there, if

they buy more of that old junk.

Now, I usually go to Bromley, but I COULD go to Okemo.

Ummmmmmmmmmm . . . . what do you think of that? And if

you like that idea, how pissed off would Megan get if

you deserted her for a couple, 5 or 6 hours in your

room, or we could get our own?"

"Oh Bill, you are devious," I said.

"This would be Saturday, huh?

That is usually Meg's marathon day. She likes to get

at least 10 runs in on our full day. I don't think it

would be a problem if I weren't there the whole day,

but I would ask her first. See, normally, I won't ski

THAT much. I get wind burnt to easy, and I'm just not

good enough a skier to keep up with her."

"I don't want to horn in if this is a real 'girls'

thing, it just seems like a good opportunity for us to

be alone and, a . . . special.," Bill said.

"It is a great time for us to be together, but she

would hardly notice I was gone, I don't think. Let me

get back to you." I said, and I hung up to call Meg.

Meg didn't have a problem with Bill and I using the

chalet for a love nest. She said she was a little

jealous because she and Jimmy had such a hard time

being alone since the accident.

Besides being in hospital, in the rehab center, and

home with his family taking care of him, there was

almost zero alone time. They committed themselves to

their relationship just before the accident and she

found out right away how tough some commitments were.

I called Bill back and told him that we could work

everything out. I gave him our Chalet number and told

him that Megan should be on her way to the slopes by

10 o'clock that day.

Although I would see him in the morning to ride me to

school, I really wanted to stay on the phone with Bill

all night that Tuesday. I knew he would be gone from

right after school and I wouldn't see him till

Saturday.

We rarely ever went that long without seeing or

touching each other. As we talked I was getting a

little aroused and I let my mind wander about our

Saturday "date".

It was then that I wondered if we should try to open a

new horizon in our sexual lives, anal intercourse. I

wanted to feel him inside me so badly.

Two different times in our love making Bill had

expressed an interest in my butt hole, that is,

tonguing it.

Once, the first time he brought up to his writing room

over the garage (I had showered within a couple hours

before), and another time when we showered together

the first time.

I always worried about being clean for him there when

he would go down on me and I thought he might want to

go lower.

I remember one night when he wanted me to turn over

and show him my ass and I refused. He took it as a

rejection, but I had recently voided myself and was

quite uncomfortable about that. What do you say at a

hot moment like that? There are no gentle words to

keep the moment alive.

We talked about the possibility of anal intercourse a

couple times and let the subject die each time. While

it seemed like an improbability, I remembered the

video Kim showed us where the girl on the screen

absolutely loved the act. Plus, from reading at the

library from The Joy of Sex, Kinsey and other books,

it was something many couples considered.

My entire interest in it stemmed from one thing.

I wanted to feel Bill inside of me.

To feel him within me and to hold him heart to heart

was my wish. However, I was not willing to go through

a lot of pain to accomplish this. Love should not

hurt. A woman says the greatest pain you have is

bearing children, and I want to keep it that way.

If it's painful it is not making love.

I remember Kim told us that her sister preferred anal

over regular intercourse, although it wasn't something

she and her husband did on a regular basis.

To her it was "as intimate as a couple can get."

I suppose she was right.

I wasn't totally sure if I wanted to go through with

this. For that reason, I never made mention of it to

Bill, so as not to disappoint him if I chickened out.

Clearly, from our conversations, he was not interested

in having me go through the pain of it to please him.

But, I know the girl in the video wasn't experiencing

pain, and I know from a tongue in my butt, there are

good feelings to have back there. I went to sleep

Tuesday night weighing my options.

When Bill picked me up for school in the morning he

was clearly excited about our upcoming chalet date. He

said he was going to make sure we had the best time

ever and couldn't wait to shower and hold me naked

under the hot water. Needless to say, I went to first

period with a case of the warmies down below. My

second period that day was a study hall and it was

there I decided I would try to be prepared for butt

sex when Bill came that day. If I changed my mind he

would be none the wiser. I knew the preparation would

be uncomfortable and a little embarrassing to do

together. To properly prepare, consensus was that an

enema was necessary. An enema is, to me at least, a

private thing. When Kim's sister was detailing her

tale about anal love to Kim, she talked about the

doing the enema together, but I couldn't do that.

(My God, she told Kim she gave him oral sex while she

was expelling the enema.)

Some things should be left to privacy.

However, whatever two people do together, that they

both agree upon, is OK, I guess.

From reading different things on the subject, many

couples that do it on a regular basis have said that

the enema is not necessary as long as the female has

had her BM that day. To me, the enema takes away any

chance of an unexpected surprise afterwards. THAT

would certainly ruin any special moment. If I had to

go through a little discomfort for that assurance, so

be it.

It's funny, about human nature. The mention of anal

sex usually conjures up perversion, homosexuality,

etc. But when you think of it with someone you love

and trust it is really a sensuous thought.

I did fear the pain and possible rejection of the idea

by Bill or myself. But to think of that "private

place" as something sexual is easy if you have the

right attitude towards your partner, and making both

he and you happy.

I saw Bill right after school and he said he had to go

right home so they could leave, and if I wanted a

ride, or to use his car while he was gone I had to go

right away with him.

I had errands to run, so I told him I would take his

car. Since I got my license, Bills parents didn't mind

if I used his car for short trips in town, shopping,

errands, etc.

Usually, if he was working I could either ride in with

him or my Dad would drop me off and I could pick it

up. It was just one more thing that we began to share

as two people planning to be together.

Bill drove to his house and we had a long goodbye

parked in front of the garage. As I held him and

kissed him I wondered what the prospects for a wild

lovemaking session held for us. I am sure he was

looking forward to being alone with me, but I think I

was going to surprise him with what I had in mind.

As we stood by the car Bill took his keys off the ring

and he whispered to me "Make sure you save your shower

for me on Saturday. I'll make sure you're squeaky

clean," and with that he gave my breast a caress and

my butt a squeeze.

"BILL!" I said "What if your mom is watching?"

"I just don't care anymore. I love you and I don't

care who knows. If she saw us, she is peeking at

something that isn't her business. Besides, she's busy

inside packing," Bill said.



The words were no more out of his mouth when his mom

came round the corner from the front of the house

where she was packing their car.

"Can you two stop smooching long enough so we can

leave?" she laughed.

"Hi Carree, you look pretty today. Are you letting

your hair grow out? I like the big wave thing you are

doing."

"Thanks Mrs. Wilson. Bill likes it longer, with the

big curls. But come summer I think I'll cut it. I hope

we didn't hold you up. We were just saying goodbye." I

said as I took the keys from Bill and began to get in

the car.

"Oh, you'll see him soon enough. Have a nice

Thanksgiving Carree, and express the same to your

family," Mrs. Wilson said.

I stopped short of sitting in the car to go give

Bill's mom a hug and kiss. The first time I did that.

"You folks have a nice Thanksgiving too. I know it's

special to go and visit your families. That's what the

Holidays are all about," I said turning back to Bill's

car.

"Bill, if your car isn't back when you get home, call

me and I'll bring it right back. But, I think I'll

have my Dad follow me out tomorrow before dinner. I

Love You Bill Wilson," I said as I started the car and

began to back up.

"I Love You too, Carree Kasc" he said with a wink as

he watched me roll passed he and his Mom.



When I got home to change I heard a passing car beep

and it was Bill and his mom riding by on their way to

town to pick up Bills Dad from work and go to Vermont.

My Holiday weekend had begun.

The first thing I had to do was a little shopping for

my "date" with Bill. I needed some things at the

pharmacy. From reading about the act itself, anal

intercourse could be easiest facilitated with

something to dilate myself beforehand. I believe this

was from a book, that I was surprised to find in the

University's library called, Alchemy of Ecstasy. I

read so many I forget which was which. (Amazing how

many sex guides etc., can be found in a psychology

section of a library) I wanted something called a

butt-plug or anal dildo or vibrator.

I was a little paranoid going into the pharmacy to get

the things I needed. I was sure if I bought Fleet

enemas and KY jelly at the same store the clerk would

look at me and say "Oh? a little anal sex this

weekend?"

So, I did go to 2 separate pharmacies to get each.

Then I drove to a third to buy condoms. One of the

books I read said that if the male wore a condom,

initial penetration might be easier because of the

smoother surface. I took the package of small round

discs to the counter, put them down and fumbled in my

purse waiting for the clerk to give me the total.

It may have been the longest 3 seconds of my life, but

soon I was in the car on my way again.

There was one more place I wanted to stop, but I was

sure I would not have the nerve to go in. There was an

adult bookstore just off the main drag on the other

side of town. It wasn't in a bad section, just

definitely off my home turf.

I parked right in front and watched, with the doors

locked, as people went in and out. In 15 minutes I saw

6 people go in and the same 6 come out. I didn't see

anyone else on the street for a block or two, so I got

up my nerve. I got out of the car and went inside.

One entire wall was pornographic movies with explicit

pictures on their covers and the back wall had a

curtain hanging over a door way with a sign that read

"Peep Shows - tokens required."

I looked right and saw a huge glass counter and a

large displays of sex toys on hooks behind it. I was

relieved to see a woman, a little tough looking, but a

woman, behind the counter.

"Hi, I guess I look a little out of place here but, I

need some help. I'm going to a bachelorette party and

want to get a gag gift," I said nervous and sweating.

"Sure honey, we get those requests all the time.

What'll it be, do you have anything specific in mind?"

she asked.

"I'm not sure, something tasteless I guess," I said as

my eyes perused the wall of toys (many of which I did

not WANT to know WHAT they were used for)

How do you ask for a butt plug, I thought to myself as

my eyes searched for the item that it might be.

"For those type of parties rubber cocks and butt plugs

are common, maybe a riding crop?" the woman asked.

"Um . . . I'll take those, . . . . a, what you said,"

I answered hurriedly. I couldn't wait to get out of

here.

"All three? she asked.

"No, . . . umm just the first one, no . . .two. Yes,

those 2 things," I said as I pulled out my wallet from

my purse.

"OK, sweetie, that will be $18 dollars. Do you want

some cock and balls wrapping paper for them too?" she

asked.

"No, just put them in a bag for me" I said as I

counted out my money to her.

We exchanged money, got the bag and I went out the

door in a hurry. I kept my head low and pulled

sunglasses from my purse to disguise myself a little.

No one was on the street and I made a clean get away.

18 dollars!! I thought to myself. They must be making

a fortune in that joint. Then I thought that if I had

the courage to say, "No, just the butt plug," I could

have saved myself $10 dollars.

But, considering that I never, ever, thought I would

be able to get the courage to buy a butt plug, it was

worth it. I might even have a little fun with the

rubber cock.

No, I couldn't do that, could I? That would be

cheating on Bill, right?

I got home and began to run upstairs as my mom met me

at the door.



"Hello dear, she said. What did you buy?"

"Oh, you know, Mom. Just personal items for the ski

trip, my period is due is a couple days. Plus I have

to shave my legs (and my pussy, I thought to myself),"

I answered as I bounded passed her.

"Whats your hurry," my mom said.

"I gotta pee Mom," I said as I went into the upstairs

john.

Just as I went into the bathroom with my bags and all

in my faux pee rush I realized that I hadn't even

looked at what the clerk had given me. I sat on the

lid of the toilet and looked at the bag that I had

stuffed into the pharmacy bag. "Oh God," I thought

to myself, "What if she gave me joke sized toys for my

"gag" gifts?." I reached into the bag afraid of what I

would pull out.

I wrapped my hand around what was a soft, long, full

shafted penis. I pulled it from the bag. It was snow

white and felt like hard jell-o. It was stiff, but

pliable, and just a little bigger than Bill. "What in

Gods name am I doing with this?" I asked myself. I

actually thought of flushing it down the toilet,

except if it plugged things up and a plumber came, I

would be hard pressed to explain. Maybe Bill and I

could graduate to a new level of perversity with this,

I thought. Maybe not.

My mind raced as I took it and wrapped it in one of

the pharmacy bags and thought of a place to keep it

safe from discovery.

I reached into the bag again and through the plastic

wrapper I could tell the butt plug was made of the

same gel like stuff, but was much smaller.

What a relief!!

I pulled it from the bag and

saw a clear azure blue item about 7 total inches long.

It was thin as a pencil eraser on one end and expanded

to at least the girth of Bill's penis and then bulbed

abruptly down to about the size of a broom handle with

a large round disc on the end. It was obviously made

to slip in easily to get past the hard muscle and then

fill the anus, closing down on the skinniest part of

the shaft.

The disc prevented it from sliding all the way in.

It was scary to say the least. My God, what had I got

myself into? I couldn't do this, and I couldn't let

Bill use this on me, it was way too embarrassing, plus

I bet it hurt like hell.

"Carree, are you OK in there," my mom shouted from

downstairs, startling he hell out of me.

"Yes, I just got caught up in a piece I was reading,"

I yelled back.

I quickly rolled the plug in the bag, grabbed the

other bag with the white rubber dick and put them in

the bathroom closet on the top shelf under my extra

sheets. I came out of the bathroom and my mom was

walking by with a pile of my clothes she was going to

put away.

"It's not good to sit on the toilet a long with your

privates all distended like that. You could get

hemorrhoids, and you won't have a problem getting

those after childbirth. No sense in rushing them," she

said matter of factly.

"You sure have a way to keep the joys of life from

creeping over me, Mom," I said laughing.

"Well, you're not a child anymore, and you should

begin taking care of your adult body so it stays

healthy so you can enjoy life and its pleasures," she

said.

"Like sex?" I said to get a reaction from her.

"Yes, like sex, smarty pants. Childbirth, and raising

kids too. You need to be in good shape for all of

that. It's not so sexy to go to bed with your lover if

you have hemorrhoids or other problems down there.

Plus you have to watch your weight.

If you have kids you're bound to gain weight. Your

husband may not like a fatter you. Nature builds our

bodies to expand after having kids. We have wide hips

to carry children on them," she said.

"Mom, Bill will love me no matter what happens to me

or what shape I end up. He LOVES me. ME the spirit,

not the body," I said.

"I hope you're right about him. I'm sure he likes the

body your spirit runs around in," she added.

"Mom, he made googie eyes for me when I was a flat

chested 7th grader too. He loves ME. My body is just a

bonus for him," I said to get some response from her.

"Remember, he doesn't need to buy the cow, if he's

getting the milk for free," she said.

"Do you suppose his mother is telling him that I won't

buy the pig if I get he sausage for free, Mom? Come

on. No need to talk to me in that tone. I am a grown

up woman, and I think I make pretty good decisions,

and I think that WE, Bill and I, make pretty good

decisions. They don't accept dummies at the colleges

we're going to . . .," I said.

"Don't be thinking about getting the sausage young

lady, you have an education to get. That's not quite

the way a young lady talks. Do you think you'll spend

every waking minute mooning over him in college? I

doubt it," my mom snapped back.

"You're the one who thinks I meant penis when I said

sausage, Mom. It wasn't that kind of analogy, but I

like it. . . . Our college lives will be less than 50

miles away from each other Mom. If we both have cars,

that's a half hour each way for us to meet as we wish.

It takes 10 minutes to get to our house now.

Twenty five minutes each way won't make a whole lot of

difference I think we'll be seeing a little of each

other at school," I said to make the point that they

won't know one way or another.

"Carree, my point is; you have a college education to

worry about, and you shouldn't be tied down to a

commitment with a boy. Running every day to meet each

other to do whatever you do will only serve to take

time away from your studies," my mom said.

"Mom, he's no boy, he's a man. He is also the man I

plan to live the rest my life with. So, if I see him

everyday, or every month in college, that won't

change. Mother, (I started to tear up with emotion) I

love Bill. We are not 2 kids who found a new toy,

full of infatuation. In 5 years I hope we can be

married and both have careers. Bill is going to intern

with Time magazine while at school. They are helping

him pay for his college. How many high school students

do you think get that opportunity? He must have

impressed a few more people than just me, . . . huh?

In twelve years we plan to have children. That's how

much we have planned.

Along with you and Dad, he is what I love about my

life. I have 3 people who love me unconditionally.

Please don't speak of him like he is something I am

going to outgrow. (I was crying pretty good now) We

plan to support each other in our studies, and won't

do anything to scuttle our plans for our lives and our

futures. Please give us some credit, Mom. When you

give me that "young lady" crap you do it to show me

you are the boss, not my Mom. I want you to be my Mom,

OK? Treat me like a grown up daughter, because I am,"

I tearfully finished.

Mom came over and hugged me, saying "Carree, I am

sorry if I made you feel that way, I really don't mean

to. I have a hard time thinking of you as anything as

my little girl. We never thought we would have to give

you up to a man so soon, that's all. We want you to

make the right choice. I know your relationship is

more than puppy love. I just don't want to see you

hurt."

"Mom, I trust Bill as much as I trust you to never

hurt me," I said. "I expect you and Dad to trust me to

make the right decisions. Believe me, Bill is the

right decision."

"OK Carree, I'll trust your judgment. And, if it means

anything; your Dad and I really like Bill a lot.

Speaking of your Dad, I better go start dinner. He

wants to go and look at new cars tonight. We have

appointments with 2 dealers. Imagine, the night before

Thanksgiving, he wants to buy a car. The financing

deals end on Saturday and he has to work this weekend.

I'll call you for dinner," she said as she kissed my

cheek and went downstairs.



I was now even more determined to try and make my

Saturday morning with Bill a very special time. With

my mom safely downstairs, I went to the bathroom to

retrieve my sex toys. I put the plug in my pillowcase

so I could see how to use it later. The rubber penis

might never get used, but I did want to leave that

option open. I put it behind the false bottom in my

travel trunk in my closet.

We were supposed to go on a cruise one year when I

was small and my Grandma bought it for my birthday. I

kept my old dolls and doll clothes in it now. I don't

think anyone knew it has a false bottom hiding place

in it.

Dad got home and we had dinner almost as soon as he

walked in the door.



"Sure, we have to hurry so these low life car salesmen

can get home to their families the night before

Thanksgiving. How about me? I have a family too," was

the essence of my Dads mutterings all through dinner.

"Poor Daddy," I said.

"Tomorrow, mom and I will make a special Thanksgiving

for you. Just think you will have your mom and Dad

here, plus your brother. It will be special."

"Thanks pumpkin. I know you and mommy will make it

special," he said as he chugged down his water and

told my mom to leave the dishes for me to do so they

could leave.

"Go ahead, I'll get everything. I can clean up," I

said. "Try to get a red convertible if you can.

Wouldn't I look great driving to college in that?"

"Yes, you would look great, Carree. It's not going to

happen, but you would look great" My dad said grinning

like he played a joke on me.

Then, they were off. I hurried to clear the table and

load the dishwasher. I turned off all the downstairs

lights and went to my room after locking the outside

door. No one could get in unless they knocked. I

needed that privacy.

I went up to my bed and fished the butt plug from my

pillowcase. I lowered my shades, much as I do when I

do my homework, so no questions need be asked if they

came home early. I opened the package and inspected

the rubber gel sex piece. I didn't feel very sexy. I

decided that if I gave myself the little shave I

needed around my vagina, I might feel a little frisky.

I went to the bathroom and grabbed a towel and ran hot

water for a washcloth. I stripped off my jeans and

panties, spread the towel on my bed, grabbed a razor

and sat on the towel. I used the hot wet washcloth to

help soften the week old peach fuzz I had going.

Then, I used some baby lotion as a shaving aid. I had

been shaving myself for about a year now and this was

the routine, once a week.

Shaving gels and creams seemed to irritate me, as

they all had fragrance and other stuff in them.

Shaving my entire bush off made Bill happy, and kept

me a little giggly myself. It was something that made

me feel so feminine. My mom hadn't discovered it yet,

and at this point I really didn't care.

Usually I shaved just before I was going to see Bill,

because it always made me feel so sexy. Tonight was a

different story.

After the shaving and manipulating my private parts to

get a bare, smooth look and feel, I retrieved the KY

jelly and the Little Blue Devil (my butt plug had a

name!) I wasn't really sure how to do this. I had only

touched myself there a few times and Bill has used his

tongue on me a few times. Neither he nor I had

tried to penetrate me there.

I kept my shaving towel on the bed and sat on it

laying back to expose my little ring. I saw no genteel

way to introduce the lubricant other than to rub it in

with my fingers. I played with my pussy a little to

engorge myself. Feeling blood rushing to those parts

generally felt good, and made me more sensitive.

After a few minutes of rubbing while trying to avoid

my clit, so as not to get too hot, I was ready to try

some experimenting. I opened the tube of KY gel and

put a dab on my finger and placed it right on my anus.

COLD! for sure. I put the tube underneath my arm to

try and warm it a little. I rubbed my finger around

over my little hole for a couple minutes and felt it

opening a little, as it did the couple times Bill used

his tongue on it.

I got the KY tube again and put a little more on my

finger and repeated the same massage. I had stalled

long enough and brought my finger to the tube for a

good coating of the gel. I placed it right on my anus

and pushed. Surprisingly it went right in, not

far, but right in. I didn't have the best angle and

then remembered the anal girl in Kim's video and how

she reached it from under rather than over her pussy.

A switch of angles and I was able to reach a lot

deeper, if I wanted to, this way. I held my finger

there for a minute trying to decide if it felt good,

or just different. I worried that the stimulation was

going to make me want to "go," but I had my regular

morning visit and felt that I should be OK. I didn't

want to bother with an enema for this experimenting.

I decided that a finger in my butt hurt a little at

first, but eventually felt good and I continued to

piston it in and out, if only to the second knuckle. I

wasn't sure how much time I had to be alone, so I

removed my finger and got the Blue Devil out. I coated

it liberally with the KY jelly. The thin end was

decidedly a lot thinner than my finger, and that gave

me a little courage. It was also a little softer than

my finger, so I noticed as I placed the tip to my butt

hole.

I was apprehensive at first, but the tip slid right

in. I worked that first inch or two in with no trouble

and began to think how easy this was, even though it

was making me catch my breath because of the new

feelings it was bringing. I began to pump the couple

inches of the plug in and out of my butt. I began to

get braver and let more into myself when, I came to a

stop!

There was a decided muscle that was saying no. I

shortened the stroke and just got the tip past that

muscle and moved it in and out an ever so slight bit

past it (my sphincter, I assumed).

Then on one of the in-strokes on the assault of that

muscle it just slipped past the stop point. All of a

sudden I was stroking about 3 inches back and forth in

my butt. It felt strange, but good, and it was making

me grunt in a pleasure pant. There was no time like

the present, I thought and gave the plug a good push,

and plunged into sharp pain.

I must have been overconfident with my little strokes

and felt this was going to be "that" easy. It wasn't

enough to make me turn around and forget it, but I

wanted to re-lube myself. I placed a dollop on my

finger and brought it to my butt hole and discovered

it was not the impenetrable closed hole it had been a

few minutes ago. It was dilated, ever so slightly,like

the size of a Lifesaver candy hole. I pushed that

dollop in and got one more and pushed that in too. I

brought the plug back and slid it in, with one motion

it went further than it had before and I was beginning

to feel the bulb spread my butt hole.

That was causing me the most discomfort, the

stretching of my anus. Without removing the progress I

had made I wanted to get more lube on the bulb and

around my stretching butt hole. When I relieved the

hand pressure on the plug, my body sent it flying

out past the towel to my bedspread. But something

wonderful happened there.

The feeling of the withdrawal was delicious, and

I craved to be filled again. I grabbed the Blue Devil

and re-inserted it. It was a little painful as I got

it past any previous point of penetration, but nothing

that was going to discourage me now. I was giving

short little strokes, swallowing about half the bulb

when I went for broke and pushed it past the bulb so

only the round flat base remained outside my body. In

plain English, my asshole hurt like hell for a moment

from the assault. I began to writhe from the pain and

was about to clutch my stomach and roll over when that

pain ebbed and I felt myself flush.

It was definitely something I felt whenever I

masturbated, the flush, but it had a different tenor

to it. It felt nice. I touched my clit to relieve

myself a little. As I did I ground my butt into the

bed causing the butt plug in my ass to move from the

friction of the base against the bed. I began to hump

my ass down on the plug as I rubbed my clit.

"Oh, Bill I wish you were here right now," I shouted

out in a high-pitched voice.

I was being double stimulated by my finger, and the

device in my butt. There was definitely something here

to like. A little perversion? . . . for sure, by doing

the forbidden . . . and a physical reaction to anal

stimulation. I flushed once again and suddenly, faster

than I ever remembered,

I was in the caught breath,



turning red as a beet,



raising my butt off the bed,



all muscles tensed mode of

. . . DEEP ORGASM.



I felt my eyes roll back into darkness and felt my

pussy flex in ejaculation. I looked in time to see a

stream shoot from my pussy over my fingers causing it

to splay to both of my legs. It was a good squirt and

felt incredible. It was definitely the best and

biggest quantity of ejaculate fluid I had passed since

the first time Bill licked my butt hole and massaged

my G-spot on the slouch couch in his writing room

almost a year ago. The passing of whatever that is may

be the most pleasant feeling a female can have by

herself. I shuttered quick again, lost my breath and

let one more stream go. I was bouncing on the bed when

this one geysered and it landed on my belly in a pool

near my navel. Not a lot, but enough to fill that

dimple.

Instinctively, I put my finger in it to taste the

fluid that resembled watered down milk.

It was decidedly sweet and not urine.

I had really ejaculated!!

I had ejaculated on at least 3 other occasions, but

with only one of them was I 100 percent sure of the

passing of fluid that was not urine.

I was sure, now, that I was a squirter. A female

ejaculator. It's something that a little more than 6

of 10 are capable of, and only 2 in 10 actually do. I

wondered if it was a blessing or a curse. I might have

stains to explain.

I rested and caught my breath. I needed a drink to

irrigate my mouth from all that heavy breathing I had

done. I got up to go get a drink when I realized I was

still impaled with the butt plug.

Ooooo, it felt good having this invader in my butt as

I moved around. Instead of just going into the

upstairs bathroom to get a cup of water, I decided to

go downstairs to the fridge and get a can of Coke. I

went 3 steps down the stairs when I realized I was

wearing only a smile and the butt plug. I went back to

my room and got my robe, just in case my parents came

home while I was downstairs.

Wouldn't THAT be a shock!!

(Oh Carree, are you aware of something up your butt?)

Going up the stairs gave me as much a thrill as going

down did with the butt plug in me. I threw on the robe

and went back to the refrigerator and found that can

of Coke I longed for.

I guzzled half the can in one long tug on the can. As

I tipped my head back to get the second half down I

arched my back a little causing even more good

feelings from between my butt cheeks.

I set the can down and went to go back upstairs. As I

padded through the darkened house, I stopped to look

out the window.

No one was in sight.

I was back up the stairs in a flash with that constant

pleasure goose hitting me in my core.

I shucked myself from the robe and plopped down on the

bed, being careful not to impact the base of the plug

in my butt. I turned on my side and began to pull and

extract the Blue Devil from me.

As soon as the bulb got halfway out, the whole plug

glided gently from me. What a feeling! Quickly I

pushed the clear blue pleasure shaft back into me.

Wow, what great vibes this had. It slid right in,

swallowing the bulb to rest on the base. I grabbed the

base and began to work it in and out of me. The

feeling of being full, relieved, and refilled by the

plug was, . . . was sheer ecstasy!

I was lying on my hip, on my bed, fucking myself with

an anal dildo!! In one way I felt like I was cheating

on Bill, because he should have been here for this,

but on the other, I remembered HE was going to be

doing this to me in a couple days with his beautiful

hard cock!! A cock I was going to suck until it begged

to put into my warm body. My thoughts turned into

orgasms as I grunted against the butt plug, over and

over and over.

My hand finally grew weary of holding the base of the

plug and thrusting into me, plus I needed to catch my

breath again.

I pulled the plug totally from my ass. WOW, what a

feeling! I was so surprised at the pleasure this toy

had brought me. I only hoped Bill's penis would be as

pleasurable. I then thought of the rubber penis I had

hidden in my doll trunk. Could I take that as easily?

That was about as big as Bill, should I try it?

Oh, . . . why not?

I went to the window and peaked from behind the shade

to be sure their car was not coming up the drive. I

opened the closet and laid the trunk down and undid

the brass clasps. Pinching the center clasp and

pushing the right bottom released the false door and I

grabbed the white rubber penis.

It looked like the real thing, except the veins were

exaggerated a little. I went back to the bed and

squeezed about 3 fingers of KY onto my hand and

stroked the white gel-like cock with it. I tried to

figure the best way to position the cock to get it

into me, I decided to squat over the towel that was

protecting my bed from my workings.

I put the white cock right under me as I lifted my

hips a little. I was going to impale my butt on it!

The first pressure I put on my butt with the dildo

sent it sliding away from my anus and it went about 4

inches right into my pussy. I panicked that I would

break my cherry and bleed right there and ruin a rite

I was saving for Bill. I fell back onto my spine and

pulled the phallus from me. If I bled, surely it would

have shown on the white surface of the dildo. It was

clean! WHEW!!! I thought. But I still wanted to be

filled.

I knelt back up and rocked to a squat and positioned

the white sex toy to my butt hole again. I placed my

fingers protectively over my vagina slit as I teetered

over the white dildo. My balance on the bed in this

squatting position was not too good and I began to

lose it. I was just going to use my hands to make a 3

point stance on the bed, when the white cock slid

right up my ass. Wider than the plug, the hurt and

pain was intensive for a second and I panicked that I

may have hurt myself, but as I settled involuntarily

on it and it filled me and the pain soon ebbed into a

long slow groan.

"Oohhhhh, Ahhhhhhhh, Arrghhht," I exclaimed in

guttural reports from my throat. I was full and I

couldn't wait to move this cock in and out of my ass.

I gave up trying to squat and move on it.

Once again I fell to my hip and reached for the rubber

cock within me. I began to slowly move it in and out

of me. Where with the plug I as able to quick-slide it

in rapid fire, this full sized rubber cock would have

split me if I tried that. I had to move it nice and

slow, in and out, and the feeling was beyond words.

I was loving anal sex. I worked up to one good orgasm,

not quite a grunting, squirting one like before, but a

long satisfying one.

I was about to switch sides to my other hip, when

I heard the growl of an engine outside. Quickly I

bounded to my feet and went to the window and peeled

back the shade. It was mom and Dad.

Just as that thought hit me, the white dildo dropped

from my body leaving me to feel a void, an emptiness.

Quickly I scooped up the white rubber cock from the

floor, noticing a couple very small, but telltale,

brown streaks on it.

I put that together with the butt plug, and the KY

jelly tube and rolled them in the towel I had spread

on the bed. I took the whole mess and put it into the

open doll trunk, closed it with a click, put on my

robe and quickly went downstairs to unlock the outside

door and let mom and Dad in.

They were just on the porch, all lit up from the

sodium light their motion had set off, when I got to

the door.

"Hi Mom, Hi Dad, did you get me that white

convertible?" I asked.



"White? I thought you wanted a red convertible. Well,

either way, no convertible, but a nice two tone, tan

and bronze, Crown Victoria. You will love it when you

see it. If you're a good girl, I'll let you drive it,"

my Dad kidded.

"Oh, Daddy, you know I'm always a good girl. I waited

to get in the shower so I could let you in didn't I? .

. . plus I loaded the dishwasher and cleared the table

and . . . " I said before he interrupted me.



"OK, OK. You were a good girl while we were gone. When

I get it next week, I'll let you drive it." Dad said

and he hugged me.

"Carree, you hurry and finish your shower. I need you

to help prepare some of tomorrows pies and polish the

good silverware for your grandparents," my mom added.

"Okie, Dokie, Mom," I said. "I'll just be few

minutes," and I went running to the bathroom to start

the water.

Once inside I reveled in the empty feeling I had up my

butt. I knew I was just fucked there and I loved it.

Having Bill's penis there was going to be even better.

As I turned on the hot water I wondered how I was

going to be able to stay awake tonight helping Mom. I

was exhausted from my affair with my toys.

After seeing the traces of feces on the white rubber

dick, I was glad I had got the enemas for the big day.

I tied a mental string around my finger to remember to

retrieve my "lovers" from the doll trunk and clean

them up. I might even need to get another tube of KY.

I think I used more than half of the one I bought.

Contrary to what my Dad had thought, I had been a bad

little girl while they were gone. I was a very

satisfied, very well fucked, little girl. I was not

ashamed of anything I did tonight, though.

I was doing it all for my and Bills pleasure and our

love for each other. Saturday was going to awesome.

Bill was going to be inside of me.

Thanksgiving Day was a lot of fun, food and family. I

was so happy to see everyone and I hadn't felt so

alive in a long while.

I credited my outlook and mood to my sexual adventure

the night before. I had worried that today I would be

sore back there and wouldn't want to go through with

the whole thing with Bill.

However in the morning, just after breakfast and

coffee with my Grandparents, who got to town at 10

a.m., I felt the urge to purge and excused myself. As

I sat down on the john I feared a painful BM, but to

my surprise, I had no problems, all systems normal.

Even my little butt hole, that many sex manuals say

can swell from friction, was perfectly normal.

Late in the day I heard from Megan who called to say

she would be picking me up around 6 in the morning

Friday. While my mom and Grandma strategized for Black

Friday shopping, I was packing for my ski trip.

When I knew everyone was busy with one thing or

another, I went to my doll trunk and retrieved the

towel with my goodies in it. I went to the bathroom

and filled the sink with hot soapy water.

I cleaned my sex toys thoroughly and had them ready

for another day. I went to my room and wrapped each in

a long ski sock. I gathered my enemas, condoms and KY

and had my bag set to go. Hey, I even remembered my

skis!

Meg was right on time Friday and we made a beeline to

the Diner to get breakfast and coffee. After eating so

much Thanksgiving, it's hard to believe you could be

hungry, but we were. Plus we knew this would be all we

would eat until tonight when we would surely be tired

from a day on the slopes.

We got to The Tyrol just after 10. Our Chalet wasn't

ready yet, but they let us stow our things in the

pantry and change into ski togs.

We had a great day skiing. The weather was fantastic,

about 30 degrees with bright sunshine. It was crowded

and we only got in about 6 or 7 runs but that gave us

time to talk and ogle guys in the line with us. We had

a blast. Megan is a special friend who I treasure to

this day.

As we were in our last line of the day she told me how

much she envied me, being able to steal some private

time with Bill. I told her that next year she and

Jimmy could get away together.

Megan said she hoped so, but didn't know where he was

planning to go to college. She feared losing him.



"Meg," I said, "After all of the time you have

invested in seeing him after the accident, taking care

of him when he needed help, mothering him when his mom

had to work, and you don't know where he's going? What

in hell is wrong with you?"

"I think his personality has changed, Care," she said.

"Maybe its all the drugs he was given."

"So, What's the reason you've hung around this whole

year with him? Do you feel sorry for him?" I asked.

"Yes, I do, and I don't think he has anyone else. Plus

I gave him my virginity. Shouldn't that mean

something? He treats me like shit, and says he'll give

up if I stop seeing him." She confided.

"Megan, you're my best friend and I love you, but we

have to talk when we get back on Sunday. Something

isn't right here. Let's not ruin our weekend now, but

we have to talk," I suggested.

She looked at me with teary eyes and said "Thanks

Carree, I love you too. You can help me work it out. I

know you can. Thanks," Meg said as she hugged me.

We finished that days run together and got back to our

chalet and showered and changed. We went out for

dinner early and I ate light. It was part of my prep

for tomorrow. I was getting nervous with excitement,

and I also felt I should tell Bill about Wednesday

night. I read where the first time with anal was

always bad no matter what, and I wanted to get it out

of the way. I didn't want Bill to hurt me or turn me

off to something I might eventually like.

Although I never planned on using a full size penis on

myself, it eased a lot of my questions and fears about

the act, and our special day. I talked myself out of

telling Bill about Wednesday night, and I also

relieved a lot of the guilt I felt over it.

Megan promised to be gone from the room by nine thirty

or so Saturday morning. I told her I wanted to shave

and do some personal stuff before Bill got there. She

said she understood. I hoped she did. I wanted to tell

her what I was going to do, but was ashamed to. The

act was an act of love between Bill and I, but I

doubted my friend would look at it that way.

I know that I would have a hard time if it were she.

I woke up about 8:30 on Saturday and heard Megan

padding around the chalet getting her stuff together.

She stuck her head in my room about 5 minutes later

and asked if I was up. I told her I was and she said

she made coffee. She reminded me to take my pill.

"Meg, I'm not on the pill, we don't have intercourse.

Too much risk of pregnancy," I said.

"Geez Carree, what in hell do you do then? Why am I

leaving so early. I thought you were here to get laid,

for Gods sake," Megan said a little peeved.

"Meg, you know I'm a virgin and we don't plan on

having intercourse until we get settled," I scolded

her.

"I know you always say that, but come on. You guys

have been alone more than once in the last year. You

mean to tell me that NOTHING is going on? You have to

be kidding me, right?" she said.

"No, I'm not, We really don't do it, but we make up

for it with other tuff, you know," I eluded.

"Really!! Now THAT'S interesting. I never would have

pictured you doing that," Meg said.

"What's "THAT", Meg?" I asked.

"Well, I imagine jerking him off, blowing him, titty

fucking him, all that safe shit," Meg answered.

"Meg, you didn't mention one thing that he would do

for me, it's not all for him. It's a "we" thing, you

know," I told her.

"Someone as pretty as you shouldn't have to do any of

that stuff, Care," Meg said.

"That's a crock Meg, and you know it. Anything you

both enjoy is OK, and there is not sliding scale of

looks to acts performed. Meg, we have to talk when we

get home, or on the way home. Bill and I have a

tremendous mutual sex life TOGETHER. Now, I really

have to get ready. I'll talk to you later," I said as

I tried to rush her out.

"OK, Carree, have a good time. I'm coming back about 4

o'clock, alright?" she said leaving.

"That's fine Meg, and thanks for the alone time," I

said closing he door and chaining it behind her.

I went to the kitchen nook and poured a cup of coffee,

and put an ice cube in it to cool it down.

Coffee was Pavlovian to my morning routine and me. I

finished that cup of coffee and went off to brush my

teeth and get my stuff together.

I switched on

the radio to check and be sure the weather was OK for

Bill to travel.

In 10 minutes my worries were over, nature called and

I voided myself. I was worried that wouldn't happen,

and worry would be the reason why.

So all was fine. I went back in the nook and found

some bread for toast and peanut butter and I was set

for the morning.

It was closing in on nine thirty. I brought my

overnight bag to the bathroom and got out the first

Fleet enema bottle. I was apprehensive but convinced

myself to grow up and not be such a baby.

The instructions said to use a little lube on the tip

of the applicator and I used my trusty KY. I laid a

towel out on the bathroom floor and laid on my side. I

brought my knee up close to my chest and took the

bottle to find my little butt hole and inserted it.

Damn, it hurt. My God, I had a long way to go to

get Bill in there today. I squeezed the bottle and I

felt the rush of fluid into myself. Its only 8 ounces

so it went quick.

I was relieved to withdraw the tip applicator. How in

Gods name would I take anything bigger there?

It was stupid to wonder that when I knew that;

1) Larger things had come out painlessly,

2) I had done it to myself just 36 hours ago.

I felt nothing for a moment as I lay there, now on my

back. I lifted my legs to stretch and propped up my

lower torso on my shoulders and elbows.

I tried to get my legs flat out over my head bending

myself into a hairpin. Once positioned, I held that

for a minute languishing in the stretch of muscle. I

twisted a little on my shoulder and brought my feet

back up to walk up the wall. I was close to a

handstand, but I knew I couldn't do that. I held this

position for a full minute and then twisted to ease my

legs to the floor.

As soon as I stood up I began to feel urgency in my

bowels. I paced back and forth in the 10 foot confines

of the bathroom. I checked my timer and it had been

exactly 5 minutes. I sat on the john and let the enema

do its thing.

The instructions said that if you were using the

bottles for prep in a medical procedure, to wait 15

minutes in between. I set my timer again and busied

myself in the chalet, picking up to make it look neat

for Bill when he came. I got out the Little Blue Devil

and decided it was best if Bill used this on me to

stretch my butt for him.

Originally I was going to use it prior to his arriving

and hope its effects would last. Now, common sense

told me that he would like to play with me using it,

and its effects should be taken advantage of

immediately.

I heard the timer ring in the bathroom and I went in

and dropped my robe once again, prepared the tip and

repeated the earlier procedure. This one took a few

more minutes to feel the effects of, but it eventually

did its thing.

I took the evidence of the internal cleaning bottles

and wrappings and put them in the bag I brought them

in and walked them to the kitchen trash. I tied off

the bag and set it outside the rear door for

housekeeping to pick up.

Once I thought of housekeeping I reminded myself to

put the "Do Not Disturb" sign out. It was closing in

on ten and I had one more thing to do. I went back to

the john and made sure I had fully lost all the fluid

from the enema. Then with my little hole distended I

forced a few finger tip-fuls of KY inside myself.

Supposedly my body temp would fully liquefy this and

would coat me inside a little.

I was ready for Bill to show up.

As the clock struck 10 bells I heard footsteps outside

on the porch and there was a quick knock. It was Bills

voice I heard accompany the knock, "State Police

ma'am, we're checking for hidden lovers."

"Oh Bill," I said as I flung the door open. "Get in

here and love me up," I said as I jumped into his

arms. It was a long kiss and he held me tightly.



"Oooo, I missed you" he said as he dropped his hand to

give my butt a playful squeeze.

I ground up next to him in response and used my arms

around his neck to pull myself up and wrap my legs

around his waist.



"I guess this means you missed me too, huh," he said

with a smile as he looked into my eyes.

"I'm going to shower, would you like to join me?" I

said playfully as I dismounted from his hips and took

his hand to lead him to the shower.

I stopped to go back and double lock both doors and

use the security chains on each.

We went into the bathroom and I dropped my robe to

show just a thong panty. He hissed at the sight of me

and bit his finger.

"Man. I can never get used to how beautiful you are

Carree, are you sure that you're mine?" he asked

rhetorically.



I took this opportunity to unveil the surprise I had

for him later. His line made the timing perfect. I

turned to the sink counter and slid the towel I had

there over towards us. I lifted it to reveal the

Little Blue Devil, the condom and the KY jelly tube.



"Yes, Bill, I'm sure that I am ALL yours" I said. "And

I want you to be part of me today."

Bill didn't quite know what to say. He just looked at

me, and my serious, pouting look of love.

"Oh my God, Carree, are you sure? I love you and want

to be part of you and I would be a liar if I told you

I hadn't thought of it I . . ." I interrupted his

words with a finger to his lips and a scolding;

"You better hurry and get undressed, or your clothes

will be soaked when I drag you in that stall, ummm . .

.unless you don't want a piece of THIS," I said as I

turned, pulled down my little panty, letting the

gusset stay between my cheeks for a moment.

I wiggled my ass and whisked my underwear to the floor

catching them on my toes. I kicked them up to my hand,

folded them with the gusset on the top and put it to

his nose.

"Do you need this to pick up the scent?" I said

pouting again as I turned to start the water.

I think I had him interested.

This was the first time I really "played" with Bill,

sexually. I think it was because I knew what was in

store for me, if it was as good as Wednesday night.

I finally knew what it was like to act that "whore"

part, behind closed doors, and I liked it. We were

finally that sexually "open", to be one couple in

public, and another behind closed doors. I liked it.

I was under the hot water with the glass door still

open as Bill shed his clothes. He finished and stepped

into the stall with me and I fell into his arms.

The water splashing over us and running down our

bodies was exhilarating. We kissed and battled tongues

as our hands wandered over each other's bodies. He was

aroused already, by the look of the mast he was

raising. His penis was beautiful to me and I

absolutely loved to feel it in my hand and in my

mouth, where I thought it might spend a fair amount of

time today. We kissed as I broke my embrace of his

back, and I put both of my hands between us. One hand

held that cock and the other cupped his balls as we

continued our kiss.

I broke the kiss and said, "I think we need to wash

things up to make sure we're fresh and clean," as I

released his genitals and grabbed the soap.I took the

bar and began to wash his chest, spending time to

massage his nipples and run my fingers through his

body hair. I washed down his torso to his waist and

told him to turn around with one word, "Turn," I

commanded.

I soaped his shoulders and worked my way down his

spine and expanded out over his entire back with my

soapy fingers and nails. He groaned approval to the

certain joy that a hand scratching and washing your

back can bring.

As I finished his back at his waist I stopped and

commanded, "Half turn, pits please."

He turned a half and raised his arm as I attacked his

hairy pits with the soap and my hand.

"Oh man, look at the bugs you got in here," I cutely

said as he giggled at my ministrations.

"OK, full turn, next pit please," I commanded.

He turned on his heel and raised his other arm to

proffer his other pit.

"Ughh, more bugs," I joked as I scrubbed away.

I finished his upper body and stood back.

"Time to go downstairs," I said as I knelt in front of

him.

I started with his feet. I took each foot out of the

spray and set them on my thigh and soaped and rubbed,

even between each toe. As I let each foot go back into

the spray to rinse, I brought it back for a moment to

bring it to my mouth, where I sucked his big toe and

ran my tongue around it; First to his left, and then

to his right. I saw his penis jump each time I did

this.

(The Joy of Sex said that toes were erogenous zones -

our bodies sure are strange)

After finishing his feet I soaped up his leg to high

on his thigh, just shy of next to his ball sack, one

leg then the other.

Then, I reached up and slapped him on the belly and

commanded, "Turn around, big boy."

Bill really had a nice butt. Most guys have flat asses

or wide asses. Bill's was a perfect half way between a

flat and feminine ass. I soaped, beginning at his

waist, down each cheek, rubbing and squeezing to the

cup of his butt. I don't think he expected what I did

next, as I even surprised myself. I took my soapy hand

and ran it right down between his cheeks and washed

his butt split.

I gave him a crack on his right buttock and said,

"Bend forward a little, handsome," and he did as

commanded.

I took the middle three fingers of my soapy hand, my

index and third finger a little behind my middle, and

traced up and down deep in his split, paying special

attention to his cute little butt hole.

Once it was surely clean, I washed it again,

concentrating just my middle finger in it. He was

opening up a little, but I didn't want to stick a

finger in.

I gave him another slap, this on his left cheek, and

said, "Bend more."

He did and before I gave him a chance to think about

what might happen, I pressed my mouth to his cute ass

and quickly tongued his asshole, It had no taste,

well, it had Bill taste, but from the groan and jump

(a jump I expected, so I was grabbing his balls to

countermand the move forward) he enjoyed it. I didn't

linger long, but I wanted him to know that I, too, was

willing and wanted to taste every inch of him.

I sat back on my haunches again and paddled his butt

and said, "Turn around and show me what you have for

me."

He turned and he was not just erect, but erect and

shiney. From my experience with Bill, I knew he was

hurting from being so engorged. I quickly soaped up my

hands and placed them on his penis pulling my one hand

up the shaft while I started the other at the bottom,

still stroking up. One after the other I stroked

it, over and over about 20 times. I was watching

intently at the shaft and head of his penis, when I

looked up and caught his eye.

"Feel better?" I asked .

"Feels incredible," he answered.

"Just wait until I suck it" I smiled.

Then I took my hands from his penis, leaving him

hanging in euphoria and I re-soaped my hands.

I reached with both sudsy hands and grabbed for his

balls. Not hard or mean, mind you, but sliding them in

between his thigh and his sack and then hold them like

a treasure. I worked the lather all over them with a

gentle massage and used my right hand to reach back up

under to get the little piece of skin between his

sack and his butt hole. I pulled that hand all the way

out of its slide, then back in, all the way back, and

then a third time with my middle finger going right up

his butt, just a little so he knew I was there.

I pulled both hands from his balls and placed them in

his belly and pushed him back saying, "Bend, don't

step, lean against the wall. Let the water run down

the front of your body."



He did as instructed and it was perfect. His head went

through the spray and leaned back on the wall while

the spray washed down his front, rinsing his genitals.

As the water rushed over his penis and balls I leaned

forward and bent my head to take his balls into my

mouth, one at a time. I didn't think I would like

doing this because of all the hair he had, but holding

that part of his sack in my mouth with the entire

testicle in my mouth was pretty erotic. I lolled each

ball to his groans and I heard him whisper "I Love

You" more than once. After taking each of his

"boys" in my mouth, I licked at his sack as I held it

out and way from his body.

With no warning I stopped, and using just my mouth

I sought out his cock and sucked the head into my

mouth. This caused him to stand up straight as I ran

my tongue around and around the head. I began to

thrust the head deeper and deeper into my mouth, but I

still knew I could get very little into it.

Just as it began to touch the top of my palette I

could feel the gag reflex. If I held back the

turtleneck that was his foreskin it streamlined him a

little and I could get another little bit in, but I

saw no sense in trying something that was that scary

to me.

I did not want to choke. I developed a rhythm with my

mouth around his cock pumping it just an inch past the

head and back to just below the taper to his pee hole.

The smooth velvet feel of this sliding back and forth

was very pleasurable to me, but my neck was growing

weary. I looked up at him and his look at me was one

of adoration. I managed a smile without losing my

rhythm and again he said "I Love You."

I began to taste a little pre-cum, just a bleachy

report, that told me he was in the ignition stage.

Although I didn't want to, I stopped.

"Ummm, I'm just placing my order now, you can make

delivery later, OK?" I said in my best tease voice,

and I gave him one more big suck at his dick. I stood

up and said, "All Clean!!"

He held me tightly as I stood with him under the

water.

"Now, it's my turn" he said as he grabbed the soap

from the dish to make lather. He gave my breasts,

belly and back as total a cleaning as I had done to

him. He even picked up my lead with the feet, and I

must say, having your big toes sucked, as if they were

a penis is pretty sexy and feels erotic as hell. I was

surprised and knew why his penis jumped when I did it

to him.

He, like I did, saved my butt and genitals for last.

Without having any bush at all I was easy to get

squeaky clean, but it didn't stop him from spending

lots of time there. He had me much in the same

position I had him, with my head and back against the

wall, while the water ran down my genitals with his

tongue running through them.

Bill was an experienced pussy eater now and with my

vulva thrust out like this he was having a feast. I

had spread my legs a little and was turning out my

thighs. He had his tongue absolutely buried in the top

of my slit and on my clit with his middle finger

thrust up like he was trying to meet his tongue

through the wall.

He was on my G-spot. He doesn't always find it, but he

had it today and he was playing it like a banjo.

With the water from the shower my flow was not

detectable, but I was leaking like a cheap faucet. I

felt a BIG orgasm building and knew it was going to be

a squirter. I began to lose my breath and I thought my

heart was going to shut down. I was clearly losing

touch. I couldn't see, my eyeballs rolled back, I

couldn't hear my head so full of blood. The grunt that

came from my throat hurt and the noise that came from

my larynx was indescribable.

I felt like my clit and pussy were sticking out a foot

from my body and I was losing total touch when I

exploded.

Even in the rush of the shower I saw my gush as I

looked down. It was a cloudy wall of fluid that hit

Bill in the face and quickly washed down his chin

and kneeling body. He then put the whole of his mouth

over my entire vagina to catch the next gush and I

heard him choke and then push half of it out his mouth

as he busied his tongue to lap up what he could. I

lost all control and could no longer have anything

touching me, especially my pussy.

I pushed him away

slapping at his face in a windmill motion. My knees

were locked and I couldn't move, I had to move him. He

quickly backed away, amidst a couple unintentional

slaps at his face, and watched the show.

"Holy Jumping Jesus, Carree, are you OK?" he said in a

little panic.

I was huffing and puffing as if I ran 5 miles up hill.

"OK, OK, OK, OK, OK" I chanted as I began to get back

in touch.

"MY GOD, MY GOD, MY GOD, MY GOD, I couldn't stand

anymore" I said still unable to catch my breath.

"You're going to make my heart explode one of these

times, Bill" "So good, soo, good, soooooo fucking

good, oh my God, my pussy, my fucking pussy" I said,

possibly swearing like that for one of the first times

ever in front of Bill or anyone, really.

I finally began to get my breath and I looked at Bill,

and our eyes met and we started laughing.

"You are a freak show when you cum," he said.

"Those G-spot orgasms just make me lose control and I

gush sometimes, but never like that," I said, still

barely able to finish whole sentences in one breath.

"I don't know what that fluid is, but it definitely is

sweet, not entirely pleasant, but sweet." He paused

and said "But, my God Carree, you cum so hard. Are you

sure you can go anymore?"

I sighed and began to force myself to breath normal

catching my breath, breathing through my mouth,

exhaling almost as a whistle.

"Yes, sweet William, I have lots more for you. I just

hadn't planned on having a heart attack orgasm like

that. You found the switch."

My knees finally unlocked and I forced myself to stand

up bringing my head through the water spray and

letting it hit my back.

My vagina was just inches from Bills face in his

kneeling position. He looked at it and I thrust my

hand over it.

"No more of that for now Mister," I said as I turned

on my heel and leaned again to the wall placing my

hands atop each other on the tile to cradle my face.

I was leaned forward with my legs spread a little and

my butt sticking out, right in his face.

"You're almost done washing me, aren't you Bill?" I

asked.

He answered by picking up the soap and cupping it in

his palm with his nails extended, and then rubbing it

in a washing motion up and down my butt cheeks. They

were more than clean as he continued, and then he

stopped.

I felt a soapy hand start at the top of my crease. He

splayed my cheeks apart as he ran his hand in long

strokes up and down my crack. He held the bar of soap

just at the top of my split so the water kept washing

more soap down the crease. His long strokes got

shorter with each pass, until he had just one finger

right at my butt hole, scrubbing, cleaning, and

teasing.

He moved his finger away and replaced it with his

tongue and began to lick at the little notch. I knew I

was spreading open a bit for him. I began to make

noises to let him know how much I liked it.

The hot water tank was a large capacity figuring each

chalet could sleep 6, but our marathon was draining

it.

It was turning less than warm, I freed one hand to

push the lever down to turn off the water. Bill never

stopped his licking, though. I definitely liked his

tongue as it soothed my asshole. He moved his mouth

away and replaced it with his finger. He wiggled it a

few times and it went away, but only for a second. It

came back very wet, so he must have put some saliva on

it. He wasted no time playing now. He twisted the

digit and it slid right in my ass just past his first

knuckle. I jumped, startled, but not in pain. He

wiggled his finger a little and pushed it in a bit

more.

It felt good and now it was helped by the KY I had

pushed up there. He stroked it in and out in short

piston fashion and spoke.

"Are you sure this is what you want, Carree? I don't

want to hurt you. Do you know everything involved and

. . ." he started but I stopped him.

"Bill, did you see the stuff under the towel? You know

I wouldn't tease you if I weren't willing to really

try it," I said looking back over my shoulder.

"The blue thing is . . . a. . . ummm . . . it's been

tested! . . . and it works, . . . ummm, FITS just

fine. I'm sorry you weren't there" I confessed, "But I

had to know because . . ."

"I understand," he said stopping me. "I would never

ask you for this, for that reason. It had to be your

decision."

"Yes, and it is my decision. But you have to

understand that if it doesn't work out, if it's too

painful or uncomfortable, you'll have to stop. OK?" I

warned him.

"I fully understand Carree. The last thing I want to

do is hurt you, baby. You know how I feel. Love isn't

hurting and making love should be all pleasure, not

pain," I said.

" I want to . . ." I started to speak but was

interrupted by his finger sliding past the second

knuckle and more.

"Ohhhhhhhh" I groaned in new pleasure. "I want to feel

you inside of me, and I DO now," I said with a grunt.

He slid his finger in and out a few times and he freed

it out, saying, "Let's move to the bed, where I can

love you proper."

I pushed away from the shower wall and Bill stood up

and he looked at me. We kissed.

I held him close to me and whispered in his ear, " Dry

me off Bill, and take me to bed and fuck me.

Let me feel that cock deep inside of me.

I want you so bad. Fuck me, and spray your seed inside

me.

I know I never talk like this, but I want you to know

how much I passionately love you. Fuck is a word of

passion. My own mother told me that. She told me never

to say it in anger, only in passion.

This is passion, Bill. Fuck me. I wish I could take

you in my vagina where you are supposed to plant your

seeds for our children. But we can't, but I have to

feel you inside of me, to have you take me to total

ecstasy. Fuck me."

I was crying as I finished and we stayed pressed

together with mouths pressed to ears so no one but God

could hear us.

He spoke, "Oh my God Carree, I love you. I WANT to be

inside of you. I want to fuck you, to make passionate

love to you, to fuck you. You are giving me this as a

special gift, and I will love you forever for it.

I want you to spend the rest of your life with me.

Will you? Will you marry me one day and bear our

children? Will you, one day, allow me to put my seed

in your sweet pussy so we can show the world how much

we love each other?"

"You know there is only one answer to that, Bill, . .

err, William. I will call my husband William. Yes,

William, I will spend my life with you and bear your

children. But, for now you are my Bill. And you will

become my William someday. I promise," I said

"Let's go seal the promise we've made," he said

reminding me of a character in Camelot.

We broke our embrace and stepped out of the shower

stall. He picked a towel from the rack and began to

dry and caress me with the towel. He dried every inch

of me finishing with my right arm and down to between

the first two fingers. He stopped and picked up his

pants from the floor. He reached into his pocket and

took something out. I was about to take the towel from

him to dry him off when he grabbed my hand again and

dried the next fingers. Then he slid a diamond ring

onto my finger, saying;

"Funny how our timing is impeccable, I had something

special for you today, too. I was wondering how I

would propose today. You made it easy. You make all my

life easy. I love you Carree"

I was so lost for words that I could barely open my

mouth. I tried and nothing came out, twice. Tears were

running down my cheeks and he stopped me from trying

to vocalize with a finger to my lips.

"Just say the two words I want to hear. That will say

it all," he said.

I knew the words he wanted to hear, "Fuck me," I said.

We both walked arm and arm to the bed. He took the

towel along and dried what hadn't air-dried already.

As I sat on the bed I asked him to get the things from

the bathroom counter.

He returned and walked to the bed, handing me the

things as I extended my hand. I looked up as he stood

before me and reached out and took his penis in my

hand. I bent and brought it to my lips and bathed it

with my mouth. He tasted better than ever, still

oozing some pre-cum. I let his cock fall from my

mouth and crawled on the bed, placing my hands flat

and facing each other.

I rested my head on my hands, careful not to press my

face on the new diamond on my finger. I left my ass,

which he loved so, raised in the air. He needed no

more of an invitation.

He came forward and kissed each cheek and then dove

right for his goal, rinsing his tongue over and over

my rosebud. I heard him pause and then felt the cold

rush of jelly being put in my most private spots.

He rubbed his middle finger over and over the hole

till it dilated by itself and his finger sort of fell

in. Every new move within my bottom brought a catch of

breath from me, most with a tinge of pain, but nothing

so unpleasant to disrupt his ministrations.

He was sawing his middle finger in and out of

me. It felt wonderfully different. Soon he was

kneeling up behind he with his thumb poised over the

hole, it was also bathed in a coating of the jelly. I

groaned and caught my breath as he twisted his thick

thumb up there and I began to wonder if we could skip

the Blue Devil.

But, I remembered how being stretched was so

important, so I allowed him to take his time. When he

pulled his thumb from me I felt empty. Still with my

eyes closed, there was a long pause. I knew he was

lubing up the plug.

Just as I realized that I felt its little rubbery tip

go into me. He played with the skinny end of the butt

plug in my ass for 5 or more minutes until he began

getting to the fat part and pushing the bulb past my

sphincter. I felt him apply more KY around the exposed

part of my private entrance. He then insinuated more

and more of the girth of the bulb past my barrier.

Suddenly, it just snapped in;

Swallowed by the mouth that was my butt-hole.

I brought my head up in a start, made a painful face,

but that was in anticipation of something that didn't

really happen. The fat part of the bulb went easily

past my well-prepared little hole and muscle. I rested

my head back down waiting for his next move. I felt

the bed move as he lay next to me. He tapped me on

my shoulder and I looked up. His cock was right before

my face.

I went to reach for it and he said "No. . .let's try

sixty nine."

We had never done that much before but, I need just

crab walk over him and I could start nipping at his

penis. When I did start to nip and lick at him, I felt

his face bury itself in my pussy. This position was

described in books I read with positions and

practices.

While it seems it would be a sensual high, the female

usually felt that they could not concentrate on either

orgasm, especially their own. I felt that way. I

decided that just keeping the head of his penis in my

mouth kept my genitals right in his face. If I were to

push my mouth over him, I would be pulling them away

from him on each thrust. Soon, I became aware of the

reason he wanted this position. He wanted to see the

plug up close in my behind and play a bit with it.

He concentrated his tongue right on my clit while

using his nose to nudge and push at the base of the

plug. He dropped his head back, allowing me to drop my

head further over his penis, and that also afforded

him a close look and chance to touch and play

with the butt plug.

To me, the plug was there to stretch my muscle to

accommodate him and make the experience more

pleasurable for both of us. As a bonus, the Blue Devil

just felt good and gave him a new kink bonus. He

turned the plug around, taking advantage of the little

nub on the base meant as a crank.

It felt very good as it moved. Occasionally he would

pull at the plug, just getting to the widest part, and

then let it go to find its own way back in. Other

times he would pull it just past the widest part and

it would ooze out past the bulb leaving the shaft

within me.

I think that, once pulled past the bulb and left to

itself, it would drop from me entirely. But Bill

always pushed it back in. The times he did this, I was

getting a taste of what the in and out thrusting of

his penis was going to feel like. The alternating

fullness and then movement past my sphincter was

quite nice, very erotic, and had a delicious effect on

my vaginal orgasm mechanism. Although I barely

understood the G-spot orgasm and the fluid I was

expelling with them, I thought this was going to cause

that to happen.

It could be that the penis, during anal intercourse,

in thrusting, was stimulating the backside of that

mysterious G-spot through the bowel wall.

Although his playing and nibbling, in time with my

sucking and feeling the unique texture of his penis

crown on my tongue, was quite nice and extremely

erotic enough to cause orgasm, I was ready to be

filled with Bill. This was playing and preparation.

The act itself, the fucking, was going to be feeling

my future husband within my body making love to me,

his future wife.

I took his penis from my mouth and raised my head and

turned, thus pulling my genitals from his face. I

looked back at him, his head propped up to afford him

better contact, and said, "Bill, my love, I am ready,"

and I swung my knee over his torso and went back to

laying on my back. Bill turned over and knelt up, and

then crawled to me. He fell to me and we embraced,

kissed, and embraced with his mouth beside my ear.

"You are sure you want to give this for me? I do not

want to hurt you in any way," he said.

"Oh, Bill, there is nothing I want more than to feel

you within me. I don't think there will be any pain.

If so, I can endure it for you, and for me," I said,

slightly changing my original position on the

"hurting" factor.

"Tell me if I am hurting you, scaring you or causing

you to feel anything but what you want from this. . .

Promise?" he said with a quiver to his lower lip.

"Promise," I agreed, as tears filled my eyes. I could

not believe how much I loved this man and wanted to be

consumed by his passion.

Bill knelt back and looked for the tube of lubricating

jelly. Finding it and the condom, he asked;

"Do you want me to use the condom? You said you wanted

to feel ME inside you," he asked confused.

"I didn't go into this blindly Bill. Some places I

read that the smoother texture would make it easier

for me at first and you could lose it once I was

a. . . . opened up. Now, I'm sure I want to feel YOU,"

I said.

He took the cap off the tube and said, "Turn over,

baby."

"No, lover. Face to face, heart to heart," I said.

He smiled and said. "God, you are so special. I could

never deserve you. Not on a million years"

I pouted and whispered as I choked on tears, "You

deserve me, you deserve this, we deserve each other.

There is no doubt God made you for me."

I raised my legs and held them back with my arms,

locking them with my elbows. It opened up my most

private and personal of all places on my being. I

became aware of the lovers toy that was still in me.

While it served a purpose, it seemed silly now

because I was going to have Bill's penis in that spot,

the thing that he used to express his love for me,

what he would deliver his seed for our children

through. I was so ready.

Bill took hold of the flat blue base of the toy and

slowly pulled it from me. I grunted a little as the

fullest part of the bulb was involuntarily pushed from

me. As it left, I felt an emptiness that I craved to

be filled, and it would be soon.

Bill took the Blue Devil and wrapped it in one of the

towels, along with the unused condom and pitched them

across the bed to the floor in front of the bathroom.

He took the KY tube and squeezed a sizable amount onto

his fingertips. He lathered it on his penis like he

was frosting a cake. I don't think he wanted to

stroke it into his penis, just leaving a bare coating;

he wanted to have a thick cover.

I knew that my little hole would catch it all and save

it for each new stroke. Once patted and lathered on

he scraped what remained on his fingers to his leg,

and then scooped it up and reached between my legs and

put it on my asshole. He put a dollop on his middle

finger and brought it to my hole. I felt him push it

in easily. I knew I was dilated and I was making sure

that I did not kegel my hiney shut. He put a second

and then a third dollop in. The third one he pushed in

as far as he could and I gasped as I felt his finger

go that far into me.

He sat back a little and looked at my teary eyed,

pouty, worried face. He smiled and I was reassured,

even though this was my idea.

"Put your beautiful cock inside me lover, my husband,"

I weakly said in a cracking voice.

He scooted a little closer and I pulled my legs back

even tighter to allow better access. He held his penis

by the base and put into the enlarged, stretched

dimple of my ass.

He was not IN me yet, but he was positioned. Our eyes

met and we smiled at each other with tentative smiles.

He pushed a little and I caught my breath and closed

my eyes. He took that for pain.

"Are you OK? Tell me if I hurt you!!" he said.

I let out a breath. "I'm OK." Keep going"

He pushed a little more and I felt him pass my

sphincter with a sharp quick electric pinprick shot of

hurt. I closed my eyes, sucked in a breath and turned

my head quickly to the side.

"HOLD IT, hold it, hold it, hold it, hold it, hold

it," I said as I waited to be sure the pain was gone.

"I'm going to stop, Care, I can't hurt you like this,"

Bill said.

"NO, I'm OK," I said as I pushed to him a little to

show him my determination.

"That was just a quick shot. You caught on my muscle

there for a second. It's OK now. Really, . . . . give

me more. Push till I tell you to stop," I said,

determined.

Bill took my order and pushed, he was passed anything

that could hurt me now. He was only half way in and I

felt full.

I grunted and said "Oh yeah, oh yeah, you are so big,

push it innnnnnnn. Oh Goddddddd, I said on a long

wheezing grunting gritty exhale."

He was all the way inside me, his balls to my ass

cheeks. It felt wonderful to be so full and know it

was Bill Wilson that was filling me. Oh, that

beautiful cock, that dick, that penis!!

"I don't know about you Carree, but this is the most

wonderful feeling I have ever had," Bill said as he

broke out just plain laughing.

"It is for me too lover," I said as I caught his

contagious laughter. "All that work and anxiety was

worth it, huh?"

"Yes, we are fucking, really fucking. Making love. Me

inside of you," he said. "I love you, I love you, I

love you."

"How's this Bill? Umm . . .Fuck me with that cock,

baby," I said, wanting to know how the words would

sound from my mouth.

"I like the sound of it, Carree," Bill said as he

began to move within me.

He began to take small little movements, maybe an inch

long, maybe a little more. He grew bolder as he

continued making his strokes longer.

"Oh baby," I said, "this is the best. Fuck me good,

Bill"

He began to really go at me in earnest making his

strokes longer and longer, where I could feel the head

on that cock lodge right at the entrance to my ass,

and then pummel in. I was getting the fucking of my

life, literally. The best was yet to come, no pun

intended, as an orgasm began to build within me. It

was a totally different orgasm than any I felt before.

It wasn't clitoral, or vaginal, but it was from the

whole of my sexual being. I began to shut down, my

breathing, my muscle coordination. I was going to

lose it for sure. If I didn't have Bills cock stuffed

up my hiney, I was sure I would have shit.

"Ngggggt nggggggt ngggggggggt I tried to snort through

my mouth but my jaw was like froze, my breath came in

short gasps through my nose. My elbows unlocked my

knees and my legs flailed. I stiffened right up and

forced half of Bill out of me. He stopped thrusting

and looked at me. Out eyes met and he said;



"You Ok, Carree? You OK?." He was a little panicked. I

managed a nod but he pulled his cock from me.

"CARREE!" he shouted at me.

He was genuinely worried, but I was "with it," but I

still couldn't draw a breath. I knew I was turning

red. I shoved my hand down to my engorged pussy and

drove my middle finger over my clit and then a splash

of that damn fluid rushed out of me all over Bill and

the bed.

"Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh" I finally managed to voice, and

I could breathe again. I wheezed and grunted sighs of

pleasure for a half-minute or so, and finally I spoke.

"Oh my God Bill, this is getting scary, cumming like

that," as he looked at me like I was some sort of

sideshow.

"Jesus Christ Carree where does that come from? I

don't mean the water or cum or whatever it is, I mean

the orgasm. Does it hurt or feel so good you can't

stand it or what?" Bill asked, still a little

panicked.

"I'm OK Bill, I just come hard and at some point I

can't stand it and can't get in a rhythm of breathing

and moving my body with it and I lock up. The pleasure

from it is, is . . . .is. . . oh, there are no words.

But it's all from you, and how much I love you. I may

look like I'm in pain or panicked or hurting, but I am

in total ecstasy, Bill. . . . The squirt, umm, I guess

it's just like yours, it feels like that. You know how

good it feels and you have no control for a minute.

That's me too."

We caught our breath and then I realized I was wanting

again.

"William, sweet William, put that cock back in me

again. Give it to me in my ass!" I ordered him.

He didn't need any coaxing, as he put the head up my

dilated butt hole. I pulled my legs back again and he

pushed all the way into me without so much as a hitch

or little pinch of hurt.

He began to ram it in me again, big long strokes. I

was beginning to leave reality again and he noticed

and slowed down to calm my urgency.

"That's it Billy boy, tease me. Tease those big

boulder orgasms. Make me have one long one" I said as

he smiled at me, proud that he could make me so happy.

"Oh Bill, I love you fucking my ass so much, we could

do it again and again," I exaggerated.

"Wait until I make love to you in your pussy, Carree.

That will be the best. Keep that in your little

fantasies," Bill said as he saw me getting close to

losing it again.

"Do you want it, Carree, do you want another one," he

said as he quickened and lengthened his stroke.

"Yes, Yes, Yes," I responded with each time his balls

hit my ass cheeks and then I lost it all again, much

the same as I did earlier. The noises that came from

me were from another world or something and then I

would just lock up. When I did that, I would lose

Bill, pushing him from me. I just couldn't take the

continuous orgasm with his stroking already making

another one.

This time when I pushed him out and squirmed away he

quickly buried his face in my vagina almost biting my

clit. He had me totally out of control and I was

squirting that fluid right into his face as he drilled

my clit. I reveled in the orgasm, but then I couldn't

stand it anymore and pushed and slapped at him to

stop, but he held me tightly and wouldn't let me move.

"Uhhng-ooo Uhhng-ooo" I uttered from my windpipe, and

I finally got him away as my orgasm burned with

delighting pleasure.

I squirmed away and turned on my side finally getting

away from his tongue. I was curled in the fetal

position with my ass towards him. I felt him crawl up

beside me and I thought he would hug me. But, he

parted my butt halves and pushed his cock back into

me. This was a new angle and it was like getting

another new toy. He stroked me about 10 or 15 times

and I began to hump at him a little. He pulled out and

put his arm around my waist and turned me totally on

my stomach. He pushed my head down and lifted my

ass to him. He glided his cock back into me from this

side and began fucking me in long determined strokes.

Soon I began to feel familiar rumblings inside as I

clutched at the sheets.

"Do you want it Carree, Do you want another big one??"

he implored.

"Yes, Bill, let me do it" I said, and as I no more

than okayed it, I felt the wave hit. It was an intense

wave, not as long and draining as the others, but just

as good. Bill let me go from the grip he had on my

cheeks and when I was losing control I pulled away

from him and turned on my side with my torso flat, up

facing him. He looked at me in wonder as I turned beet

red, but without the previous histrionics, but I did

feel my pussy leaking again.

No big waves of fluid, I must have been out.

(Where in hell does it come from?)

Bill was looking at me with unfettered adoration.

"I could watch you cum all day, in that state you are

so beautiful," he said. "Now, you watch me cum."



That said, he came over me on all fours. Pushed my

shoulder down flat so I was on my back, put his knees

between my legs and laid right on me, heart to heart.

He lifted a little and said, "put me inside of you."



I smiled at him and reached down between us and found

his raging cock that had given me so much pleasure

today. I took the head and, while turning up my legs a

little, pressed to my butt hole, I had lost some of

the lube, but I was still wide open and very loose.

He pushed in. Once past my big muscle, there was

tightness.

Note: Most men think, as Bill told me, that the

tightness of anal sex is the butt-hole itself. Once

you dilate it, it's loose. The tightness comes from

the snug of the bowel.

He let my arm back up and once again he pressed his

body to mine. Like this, he couldn't go as deep in my

butt as before but he was in and we were heart to

heart.

"Are you sure you want to marry me," he said as he

stroked in and out. "Do you think you could put up

with this for the rest of

your life?"

"Oh yes, yes, yes, yes" I said as I humped at each

word. He began to quicken his pace and I knew the

rhythm of his orgasm. I gripped his back to me as I

began to have one too. He breath quickened and I knew

he was close. I realized that this was to be the first

time he was to cum IN me.

Not my mouth, but in me. I wondered before how the

girl in Kim's video could suck the cock that had been

in her ass? Now I knew. I would suck his cock right

now if he asked me to, so I could get that sperm, his

love juice.



He began to whisper at me that he loved me, he was

going to cum inside me, he loved me, to come with him,

it was soo sexy, that alone would make me come. Then I

felt him stiffen. I felt his cock head begin to swell.

It was like a new cudgel up my inner most being. Then

he swooned and groaned in my ear and I felt the splash

of his seed inside of me. I was sure the first blast

was a big water cannon blast. I had felt enough of

those in my mouth that I knew what it was like. Then,

I was acutely aware of 3 or 4 more splashes inside me,

but then I wasn't sure. It was hard to decipher from

so deep inside me. But I knew I had his warm seed shot

direct from his penis inside me. I was glad I had done

this. I had done this for my husband, the man I loved.

It was fantastic.

Bill lay on top of me with his penis still up my hiney

for quite a while. He was humming in my ear something

like a song, I wasn't sure. I thought that when his

dick softened, it would pop from me. But either it

hadn't softened or he was longer than the distance

between us. He finally sat back and his cock stayed in

my butt. He was still pretty hard.

"Still got some life left, huh?" I said.

"Yeah, just thinking about being in your butt, and it

won't go down," he said.

He started to initiate a little pumping and I stopped

him.

"No, Bill. Please? I'm getting pretty sore and the

lube is about gone," I said as he had a saddened look

on his face.

But, I had a surprise for him as long as he was ready.

"Don't worry, honey, I'm going to suck it dry for you.

I want to taste that sweet cum of yours. It's all I've

been thinking about the last 10 minutes, laying here,"

I said.

He got up to go to the sink, saying, "I'll wash it off

for you."

"No, Bill, let's do it in the shower. Lets wash the

love from each other, I said as I was getting up.



I knelt up on the bed and a big uncontrolled fart left

my behind from all the air he pumped into me.

I was sooooo embarrassed, but he laughed and said I

was one of the guys now. I moved again and another

came out along with a gurgling and a whole load of cum

ran out of my butt hole, down my leg and on the

bedspread, along with more fart sounds.

"I can wait until you're through farting and shitting

the bed so we can shower, but just let me know how

long you'll be.," he said sarcastically laughing like

hell.

I was hurt and embarrassed until I realized he was

kidding and I chased him into the shower throwing

pillows and towels at him. As I walked and ran I

realized I must be walking funny from holding my legs

up, plus my butt hole was pretty sore.

Bill got right in the shower without waiting for me. I

don't know if he couldn't wait to get the smell and

ookiness of my bowels off his penis, or was just

anxious for the sucking I promised him.

The last couple times I had given him oral sex I began

to realize how much I really liked sucking him. I

found it hard to imagine having sex without tasting

him. It was a very personal act that made me feel very

sexy, for some reason. I had done it for the first

time just about a year ago, and we had engaged in it

about 8 or 10 times. It seemed like a lot more, but if

I really sat down and thought about it, 10 would be

the max. It was usually a reciprocal thing, me doing

him and he eating my pussy. We both had real good

orgasms and felt a special satisfaction from it. I

think that stemmed from the fact that we had no

reservations about either act. We both did them out of

love for each other.

Bill had no reservations about kissing or tasting my

mouth afterwards, or my tasting his. Swallowing Bill's

cum was just a natural thing the first time. I don't

"crave" the taste, but it's not repulsive or anything.

But, I do crave having that part of Bill in my mouth.

It's smooth like velvet on the head and you can feel

his heart in the shaft. Knowing the reaction I get

from him makes me want to do it to make him happy.

Plus, there's a power thing involved too.

He always licked and sucked every inch of me,not

having any reservation about putting his tongue way up

inside me or licking my bottom hole.

I am what they call a "squirter."

When properly manipulated and excited, I ejaculate

gushes of a fluid that is a cloudy, sweet to the

taste, and in between urine and an old basement to the

smell.

Sex textbooks all agree on one thing, it is not urine.

It is not Bills goal to taste or swallow my gush, but

he has no reservation to doing so. They are known as

G-spot orgasms and I can have them spontaneously

without direct stimulation of that spot, but that

makes them more intense. From what I read and have

talked about, I am one of few who have discovered this

ejaculation trick at such a young age. I discovered my

ability by accident, it just happened.

I shave all of my pubic hair all of the time to

further enjoy being licked and tongue titillated. Bill

loves my smooth nether lands, and can make my clitoris

engorge and near burst from his teasing.

With the hot water tank revitalized, Bill had it

steamy in no time. By the time I tied up my hair in a

shower cap, he was all sudsy and beginning to rinse

off.

I said, "No fair, I wanted to wash you down," with a

pout.

"Oh, as if you would let me touch you anywhere right

now," Bill said.

"Well, come on, I am a little sensitive in all the

good spots, and you know it takes awhile to recover

after I go off like that," I said.

After a couple G-spot orgasms my clit and outer

opening were tender as hell, plus my poor little hiney

wouldn't appreciate being poked and prodded so soon

after the screwing it just took.

"To tell you the truth," Bill said "I just couldn't

wait for your mouth, and I didn't want to gross you

out with your taste on me."

"I know," I said coyly, "I just wanted to make you

feel guilty for being so selfish."

"Carree, I'm not selfish, I just love you, and the

ways that you love me. You know if I thought there was

a way to love you back right now, I would," Bill said,

so seriously.

"BILL, I wasn't being serious for one second there. I

just told you that I was lying there with you, with

your penis stuck up my butt, fantasizing about having

it in my mouth. I meant that. I was hoping you had a

little life left"

"Why do you suppose that you would think about and

fantasize about that?" Bill wondered aloud.

"I dunno" I answered, shrugging my shoulders trying to

be cute for him. "Maybe I just love you and can't get

enough of you."

"That works for me," Bill said as he pulled me into

the hot spray and hugged me. "You do realize that I

proposed to you today, right?"

"Oh yeah, I almost forgot," I feigned, then added,

"like there has been any doubt that we were not going

to be together forever. Ummm, can I ask you . . .Where

did you get the money to buy that ring, Bill?"

"Geez, already with the wife-like questions," he said.

"I've been saving for a while"

"Wow, how did you get THAT much past your parents? I

thought they were grabbing most of your work check for

a college fund.," I asked.

"When I said a while, I meant it. My nickels, dimes,

pennies, anything, for a long time I saved. Ever since

seventh grade. If you became a nun I was going to

throw you a big going away party.

If you didn't, I was going to marry you. That was my

plan. Thirteen year olds with hard-ons make big plans

with their crazy ideas. After a while, it just

snowballed. A dollar from my allowance each week, half

my snow shoveling money, I saved a little of anything.

I had big ideas. I guess it paid off though," he said

with a tearful smile as he held my finger with the

ring between his fingers.

"Who'de a thunk it," he said in a doofus voice,

scratching his head.

I was impressed that he had really saved all that

time, even if it was a silly adolescent fantasy at the

time. He was just that sweet.

"And the idea for this came from a thirteen year old

with a hard-on?" I asked.

"Well, maybe that hard-on needs to be taken care of" I

said as I grabbed his penis and knelt in the shower

stall.

"That's a long time to have a hard-on. Do you think I

should take care of that 6-year-old problem? . . . Or

do I just look too sexy with this shower cap on?"

"Oh Carree, if you only knew how many times I jerked

off thinking about you. I must have spent gallons down

the sink," he said as he shuttered when my lips went

around the head of his dick.

I took his penis from my mouth and said in my sexiest

voice, "Don't waste a drop of this OK? I'll try to

make it worth the wait. OK, baby?"

I put his cock back on my tongue and looked up at him,

but my sexy pose was wasted. His eyes were rolled back

and were looking at the ceiling. He was enjoying my

kissing and sucking too much. I tried to make it a

special blowjob for him. Just holding the base in my

hand and plunging my lips and tongue over the head and

first inch or so repeatedly with lots of suction. It

gave me a sore neck, but I knew he liked this. It

didn't take long for me to get results though. He was

doing his little dance and cum ritual in a minute.

I pulled my mouth from his cock and kept up the

friction with my hand for a second so I could speak,

"Do you want to cum yet Bill,or do you want to enjoy

some more mouth play, it's up to you. I'm your whore

right now, what do you want?

"Oh, Godddddddddd, Geez, Care, you're NEVER my whore,

don't say that! You're my lover, and will be my wife!

. . . and I want to cum NOW. Don't make me wait,

lover! Hnnnt hnnnnt hnnnnt!!" he grunted as he was

close to his edge.

I was already pissed off at myself for saying that I

was his whore. I knew he wouldn't like that. I didn't

mean it like he thought. The old saying about how a

man "wants a respectable woman in public and a whore

in the bedroom" is what I was alluding to. I would

explain to him later.

"Ooooooooooooooo, cum for me baby. Give me your juice.

Feed me," I said as I plunged the head of his cock

into my sucking mouth.

I worked only the head with no hands with my sucking

in and out. He was close.

A long series of grunts, oooo's and ahhh's accompanied

his biggest shout as I felt his cum hit my tongue. I

planned to hold it all for one big swallow but he was

filling my mouth. I didn't think he could make so

much, so fast, but it was there.

I had to swallow a couple times to get the mouthful

that I wanted to play over my tongue and savor. You

could just swallow it like an unpleasant food, or you

could work it with your tongue like a fine wine.

I chose to do that. I didn't like the taste that much,

but I wanted to know Bill and his taste. A little

kinky, I know, but I loved this man so much. His taste

varied, but there was an underlying flavor that was

really him, and I got it just before the bleachy

aftertaste.

We experimented once with him eating grapefruit and

drinking grapefruit juice one night, and having fresh

pineapple on the morning of a planned "date" in his

writing room after his parents left to go antiquing.

He did taste decidedly much sweeter that day, to the

point where it tasted good. But even then, there was

a Bill taste, and then the bleach flavor.

I finished my licking and sucking Bill and was

confident I had him dry. I finished just kissing the

tip as he was shrinking. I pulled up his skin sheath

and began to stand up. I saw his belly button and the

trail of water going into it. I stuck my tongue in

his navel and it was like a fountain for me. It filled

my mouth with a stream of water. I rinsed my mouth a

couple times and sought out his mouth.

"NOW, we're through," I said as we kissed.

He looked at me a little stern and said, "If anything

you do makes you FEEL like a whore, tell me and we

will STOP IT. You are not my whore. You . . . ."

I stopped him with my finger to his lips and explained

to him what I meant, but promised never to use the

saying or call myself that again. He finished his

rebuke with:

"You're talking about someone I love and want to spend

my life with, who will bear our children."

That made me feel good, and I apologized, even though

I meant no harm by it.

We kissed some more and were necking and calling each

other every pet name you could think of after each

kiss, when we felt the water begin to get a little

less hot.

"You better get washed if you want to, Care, before

it's cold again," Bill said.

I grabbed the soap and did my shaved vagina and turned

to clean my butt and the valley with the little hole.

As I manipulated that little rose I felt the urge to

go.

"Damn, I have to go, umm, back there," I said as I

began to get out of the stall to dry.

He grabbed my arm and said "Just squat over the drain.

It's probably just my cum and lube, right?"

"I don't know, it doesn't feel like, a . . . you

know," I said before he interrupted me.

"God, Carree, just squat and go, it will be harmless.

I'll look the other way," he said. "Then you can clean

up and can finish before it gets cold.

"OK, dammit" I said, "turn your head," I said. I DID

want to be clean back there and not have to go

afterwards. I especially didn't want to wipe with

paper there. I was sensitive enough.

I squatted over the center drain and let loose. I was

so embarrassed. It was another big gurgling fart, more

cum and another fart and then what I guess was the

remains of a half tube of KY jelly.

"It's alright Bill, you were right," I said as he

turned. "All cum and KY, and that damn air!"

"I wouldn't have proposed if I knew you had that gas

problem. You'll blow mw out of bed!! he joked as he

laughed like a banshee.

"Very funny, lover boy. See if I let you in the back

yard to play again.," I mock-scolded him.

"Oh Carree, you play along so good. I think we are

going to have a lot of fun in our life together." Bill

said with a hug.

"I think we will too," I said as I grabbed the soap to

finish washing my bottom. "We better get out and clean

up our messes before Meg gets back and figures out

what went on here today."

. . . . .and that we did. Bill and I got the place

cleaned up and Bill on his way by about 3:45. Meg came

up to the room about 10 minutes later. I apologized

for never meeting her as I planned. She said she saw

Bill leaving in a strange car, and figured it was OK

to come back.

"You can't tell me you're a virgin now," Meg said.

"One look at you and everyone will know you got laid

this afternoon. You are positively glowing. Good for

you," she finished.

I flushed inside, and yes, I was glowing.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

CARREE'S GRADUATION DAY

Bill and I had looked forward to graduation day

together now for over 2 years.

Once we decided that we were an "us" forever with

plans for our future in place, Graduation Day became

the first step. My parents had planned a big party

after the exercises, as Bills did. We both had lots of

family, friends and relatives coming that we wanted

each other to meet. Although we had agreed with

all concerned parties that I would not wear the

engagement ring, we were going to quietly announce it

to some people.

As we prepared to send the invitations out, my Dad, of

all people, made a suggestion.

"Why don't you get with Bill's parents and ask them if

they would mind combining both parties into one big

one here? I'm already getting the big canopy from the

office, and they have an even bigger one that I can

use. The only cost to me is the maintenance men it

will take to set it up, so it would cost me another

hour, tops, to get a bigger cover for us. If we

combine everything we will spend less money, overall,

on food, and have less everything, including

headaches, in the end." Dad explained.

To Bill and I, it made great sense. We had already

talked about how that with the anticipation we had for

the day, we would see little of each other because we

had to "star" at our family parties. The Wilson's

balked at first, but seeing that:

1)Anyone who was coming to their house had to pass

ours on the way,

2)People getting lost or confused was then not an

issue and

3) We had a huge mowed yard that could accommodate the

canopies and the people, it was settled.

My Dad was so thrilled that and idea of his was able

to make Bill and I happy, I thought he would explode.

He told me later that he never thought he convinced me

that he really "approved" of Bill.

I must admit that I thought his affection for him was

feigned to keep his little girl happy. Somehow he saw

how happy Bill made me, and how well he treated me. He

also realized that Bill didn't just spoil me, though.

He saw the reciprocal love and affection from me and

what a team, a cohesive unit we were, as a couple.

While we made final arrangements and all six of us

began decorating at my house, Bill was explaining some

things about the day.

"Right after graduation Jennifer LaMarre's parents

would like as many of our class who want, to come to

Devils Peak for pictures at the overlook. It's not

that far from the Graduation venue and would really be

beautiful for photo's if it's clear. They arranged a

photographer through Jen's fathers business, they're

printers. He has a place picked out for group and

individual shots with the vista of the valley as the

backdrop. It's supposed to show the future in front of

us. His company does these shots

with other schools and colleges all the time. He's

donating a hundred prints to the class. Carree and I

would like to do that individually and together." Bill

explained.

"Jenny said we could get bumped to the front of the

line if there was a crowd," I said.

"She and Rob doubled with us at the movie last week

and when they heard about the big party, she wanted to

make sure we made it for the shoot. I've seen these

pictures done before and they're nice. You're in the

gown, but you hold the mortarboard in your hand and it

makes a statement. She said we can get one together

without the cap or gown, for us," I said looking to my

Bill.

"She's still not seeing that older fellow anymore, is

he," my mom asked. "He looked like trouble."

"No, Mom, that was Rick. Rob is a senior too, only at

City Central. He's nice. I'm sure you would like him."

"So anyway," Bill continued. "After that we are going

to come right back here. We will glad hand and

introduce ourselves to each other's relatives for

about an hour. Then we should make an appearance at

two other parties, Meg Parkers, and Sy Coleman's."

Bills dad stopped stapling crepe paper and said "Who

in hell names a boy Sy?"

"Dad, it's short for Seymour. Now I have to ask, who

names a boy Seymour?" Bill countered.

"Coleman, eehhhh? Do I know him?" Bills Dad continued

questioning.

"You might," Bill said. "He played ball with me all

through grade school and then has been the track stud

at St Pius for the last couple years. We used to be

great friends, well, we still are, but we both have,

umm, "other interests" (he said looking at me) and

haven't hung around much in the last year. But, he

really made a point of wanting Carree and I to stop

by. So, anyway, that should get us back here before 5

o'clock and then we can put out the big food."

"Don't you two leave us hanging, waiting for you," My

mom piped in. "If we get the "big food," as Bill calls

it, out by 5, then the Vermont people will still have

a chance of getting home by dark. Willie said your

grandmother gets nervous in the car after dark. Don't

mess that up."

"No problem, mom Kasc, If we had our way, we wouldn't

leave at all, but these are 2 special ones we should

make. We won't be long, I promise." Bill said.

I sidled up to Bill and asked if he knew Sy's house

was kitty corner to Megs, actually right next to Heidi

Stewarts, and maybe we wouldn't be gone over an hour

as he thought, even with both stops.

"Actually Parkers, Coleman's and Stewarts are all

having one big party and one stop will cover

everything. Gee, that might leave some time to stop at

my room above the garage for some one on one

congratulating," Bill said with a snicker.

"Bill Wilson!!" I said cutely and quietly. "Do you

mean to say that you want to soil our Graduation Day

with some sordid sex act to seal our accomplishment?"

I said.

"That's what I'm saying," Bill said.

"Well, I said sheepishly, "If I HAVE to, I will." I

said with a big smile.

We finished up the decorating at my house and for the

first night in a long time; I was going to spend an

evening at my house without Bill. The eve of

graduation was a special night of memories and

reflecting for my parents and I wanted to make them

happy by staying with them. Tomorrow was to be a big

day. By eleven o'clock I should have my diploma in

hand. In 48 hours, we would be on our way to Six Flags

in New Jersey for our class trip. Bill and I had plans

for those days, too.

Graduation exercises were held at an outdoor

amphitheatre at the foot of the mountains about 30

minutes from town. It was a bit of a ride, but as long

as the weather cooperated, it was always beautiful. It

only took 90 minutes to hear the student honoree's

speak, as well as the Principal and, of course the

Bishop.

The final announcement was to get to Devils Peak as

soon as possible, if you wanted to take part in the

picture taking with Mr. LaMarre, or and return to

school with your caps and gowns and get your deposit.

Parochial schools always have a money edge.

Bill and I were almost the first 2 people there for

pictures. Although I had ridden with my family, and

Bill had taken some aunts and uncles with him to the

ceremony, he and I were alone for the photo trip and

the run back to school to hand in our caps

and gowns.

On the way back from Devils Peak I said to Bill,

"Would you be surprised if I told you that I was extra

free under this gown today?"

"Do you mean you are "al fresco" under that? You

naughty little girl! If I had a place to stop, I would

and just lash you with my tongue," Bill laughed.

"Damn, Carree, you've given me a hard-on just thinking

about it."

"Well, to be honest, Just think about it," I said. "I

really tried to get out of the house with my bra and

panties only underneath, but my mom sort of caught

me."

"Caught you?" Bill asked.

"I was just dropping the gown over my head as she came

into my room to check my hair. She saw from, just

below my crotch and below, disappear as it fell. Man,

she was nuts, "CARREE YOU HAVE TO WEAR SOMETHING UNDER

THAT!!" she shouted at me. I told her not to get too

excited, I was just making sure it was long enough. I

guess she believed me. I really was going to give you

a show on the way back to school. Gee, I could still

give suck you under your gown if you put the seat

back." I said to get Bill all hot and bothered.

"Carree, why do you insist on saying things like that

to get me all flustered?" Bill said in exasperation.

"Oh you know it's me just being a little devil. I

hardly think that a moving car is the place to make

love, or even give a blowjob. I just wanted to get you

a little hot for our meeting later," I said.

"You are something Care. For the past year you have

gotten to be the hottest thing I have ever known or

known of. You know how to turn me on with a few words

or actions dropped in the right places. You love to

push my buttons, don't you? . . . . and you know I

hate the term "blowjob" when you are referring to

yourself making love to my penis with your mouth. I AM

sorry, it really bothers me." Bill scolded me.

"Billy, it's just another button I like to push, to

make sure your little friend there is always standing

up when he sees me. You may not like the term blowjob,

but you have to admit, it arouses you," I said

knowingly.

Bill reached over and touched my leg through my gown

"Don't you worry about that. Just the thought of you

gives me an erection all the time. Just think. We wake

up together this Saturday and Sunday mornings, not to

mention going to sleep together. I love you so much,

and I think I may love you more by the end of the

weekend."

His touch was all I needed to get my juices flowing. I

don't know why we teased each other with words so

much. We certainly didn't need any impetus to get

aroused by each other. We had enough opportunity for

the limited kinds of sex we had. Mostly we masturbated

each other, or for each other. During Thanksgiving

last year when we were able to meet at a vacation

chalet in Vermont we experienced anal sex. It was a

great rewarding act of love that we hadn't repeated

again. It wasn't that we didn't like it, but the time

and preparation to do it properly made it hard.

It was still the defining moment in our sexual lives;

he had been inside me, making passionate love.

We still saved oral sex for times when we could be

free, alone and naked. Stealing away to the car and

hiding to go down on each other seemed cheap and

little more than just, getting off. We preferred

making love to each other. I used to tell Bill then

that we had married couple status, when it came to

good sex. We might go a week or 10 days with our

interplay being no more than hello and goodbye hugs

and kisses. There was always playful touching,

"accidental" grab-ass, goosing, etc. But, frank sex,

something you could call an "act," became less

frequent, better, and more serialized, where we would

go at each other 5 times in 2 days. It was during the

period since our anal affair, where he was really

"inside" me, taking my body's virginity, up until now,

that we had made our sex sessions special.

We could be together and do things, or just talk, or

just hold hands during a drive, where we enjoyed the

bond we shared. Our weekend coming up was going to be

romantic, and a bit wild. By not being at each other

all of the time, our special alone times became a

little wanton, where we could really express passion.

Now, with the promise of an hour or so alone this

afternoon in Bills private "study" over their garage,

we were priming ourselves for a hot, albeit short,

time.

When we got back to St Pius there was already a crowd

there exchanging their uniform of the day for their

deposit. This was actually the last real function we

had, at the school. I wished I could say there was a

sadness to it all, but after all the years there, I

was glad to get out. I had suffered emotional scars

from the nuns telling the whole school, it seemed,

that little Carree had a religious vocation and not to

do anything to change that, because God would punish

you.

It was a cloud over my head that I was barely aware

of, from sixth grade until late in my sophomore

year. Friends and faculty were never 100 percent

honest with me about almost anything, because I was

"going to be married to God." I am thankful for

friends like Megan and Bill who treated me more

honestly and unconditionally, who got me through

discovering the cloud over me and eradicating it.

But now we were free!!

Waiting to turn in our caps and gowns we had nice

chit-chats with people that we would see little of,

for probably, the rest of our lives. I am sure many of

these people would cross our paths again in the future

in one way or another. But, for now it was goodbye.

We got our deposits and headed back to my house for

the party. We were sure that the guests were there

already having a good time.

The intermingling of our families was going to be a

good thing, just the early discomfort of it was not

being looked forward to.

At the house there were at least 100 people there, and

there were 2 tables for gifts with baskets for

envelopes. Bill and I both hoped there would be enough

cash within the envelopes to cover first year

incidental expenses at school. We mingled, together

and apart, introducing each other and ourselves to

everyone we did not know. From the comments we got

from everyone, news of our engagement had "leaked"

out. The one good thing was that we received a lot of

congratulatory envelopes with gifts inside.

Bill, at one point poked me and said, "If I knew we

would get gifts, I would've put it in the paper, . . .

and on billboards."

After an hour of mingling, we begged off saying we had

other commitments but would be back in and hour or so,

and to save the "big food" for our return. Everyone

understood the situation.

Actually it seemed funny, leaving some of our friends

there to mingle with people they didn't know, so we

could go be with friends.

We made an appearance at the big party at Parkers.

Heidi and Meg's mom really did a lot, food wise, and

the Coleman's provided lots of punch, soda and the

entertainment. They hired a band, plus they had a big

pool. With the 3 yards melding to one party, it was a

great time, but we had to go shortly after arriving.

After barely a half hour we snuck off knowing we had

seen the people we had to see to make the "appearance"

official.

We were off to Bills house, having to go the long way

to avoid driving past my house. Once we pulled up the

drive, knowing there was no one around, we finally

took our first time to relax for the day. As soon as

Bill shut off the car, he exhaled and looked at me.

"Congratulations, Ms. Kasc, at completing the first 12

years of your education. Now if you don't mind, get in

the student loan line so you can make the next 4 to 6

years just as miserable." Bill joked.

"Bill, we finally made it! These last 4 years seemed

to go by so slow. Thank God I had you to get me

through it, especially the last couple years, where we

really became us. If I didn't have your love, Bill, I

don't know how I would have done it. You got me

through it all."

"Geez Care, I have to give you as much credit. You

forced me to be a man and face the big issues in my

life. You kicked my butt over the fact I never

confronted you about going into the convent. You made

me open up and express my feelings to you when I was a

spine-less little weasel. Thank you for having enough

faith in me about that whole situation. You didn't

have to give yourself so much. You could have dumped

me for one of the other thousand guys that wanted to

date you," Bill said.

"But Bill honey," I said "They weren't you. I loved

you. I knew you were the one all along. I just had to

hit you over the head and show what to do. THEN, I

find out you read all those studies and sex reports

and already knew what to do. You were just a big

chicken shit."

"Carree, I prefer shy. Just say I was shy," Bill

pouted.

I hugged Bill and held onto him for dear life, then

whispered in his ear. "Take me upstairs and show me

how shy you're not, OK?"

We both rushed out of the car and headed for the side

door and stairway up to the study room. Bill stopped

to bolt the door, and then took the stairs 2 at a time

to catch up to me and grab my ass. I screamed, but I

totally expected it.

Walking in front of Bill on stairs insured me of

having his attention, and getting my butt either

pinched, grabbed or cupped. Ummm, you can tell I hated

it, right?

When we got to the top of the stairs I quickly turned

to Bill.

"Oh my God, you'll never guess what I saw this

morning!!" I exclaimed.

"You're right, I'll never guess," Bill said.

"I walked in on my mom in the bathroom when I went to

grab my deodorant and she was putting a strip in her

panties. . ."

"Oh PLEASE" Bill interrupted. "More information than I

needed!!!!"

"No No, that's not it, SHE'S SHAVED!! She is as bald

as me down there. No wonder that she never called me

out on it, unless she's never seen that I'm shaved,

but . . ." I said.

"So I guess I don't know what the big deal is. She

shaves, maybe she does it for the same reason you do,

to make it finger lickin' good." Bill said with a

smirk.

"Bill, do you really think they do that?" I said.

"Tell me Care, what year do you stop letting ME eat

YOURS? Come ON. Your mom and Dad are in their early

forties. I would hope they still do all the things

they ever did. Maybe your horniness is inherited."

Bill said with a chuckle.

"You think I'm horny?" I said. "I'm not horny, I'm

desirous of my lover. If you weren't here right now,

do you think I would have sex with who ever might be

here?" I asked.

"No silly, I was just making a joke, Carree. Are you

THAT self-conscious about that? Nothing wrong with

having hot pants for your man." Bill said trying to

ease my pain.



But I was hurt. He made me feel cheap.

"Bill, if I WAS horny 5 minutes ago, I'm not now. You

make me feel cheap" I said indignantly.

"Carree, you take all of this way too serious. I meant

you were horny for me, not just anyone. Maybe your mom

is the same way, hot for her man. When I said your mom

might be horny, I didn't mean she was sleeping with

the mailman." Bill said apologetically.

I guess I did take him out of context, but I don't

like being referred to as cheap or promiscuous. Maybe

being blonde has something to do with that. I may be

blonde, but I am not, by any stretch of the

imagination, stupid or shallow. I went and sat on

the antique psychiatrists couch (Bill calls it the

slouch couch) in his room and pouted.

"Is this really from referring to you as horny?" Bill

asked.

"How can you be such a strong, passionate, dedicated

lover and partner to me, and then think I would say

something that would demean you or put you down? My

God Carree, you trusted me enough to let me have anal

intercourse with you. You are being VERY thin skinned.

They were only words. Accurate words. You are horny,

just like I am. We are horny for each other. It's a

slang term. Do you think that I have a perception of

you where I guess I'm lucky I'm the next guy you see

when the "mood" hits you?

If that's the case maybe we should rethink some

things. I thought we trusted each other a lot more

than that. Neither mine, nor your, sexual

gratification is not a ransom for the ring I gave you,

or the one I have from you that's in my heart. You're

being a jerk over a word." Bill said and then sighed.

"Let's go back to the party, I'll be in the car."

He turned and went down the stairs. I sat there

dumbfounded. How could I be so stupid to be offended

by such an innocuous statement? "Maybe your horniness

is inherited" is what he said that pissed me off. Why

in God's name did I let that bother me?

But it did set off my anger as soon as he said it.

When I hear someone say they are horny I take it to

mean they want to satisfy a sexual urge for the

pleasure of it, not the love factor.

But, this was Bill I was talking about and mad at for

saying it. What is wrong with me? Where did the anger

come from? I do associate loose talk about one's

sexual needs in public with being cheap and petty, and

"blonde," too.

But, my own pettiness had just hurt the one person in

the world that I love unconditionally. Plus, put a

condition on it; I let words take precedence over

action, thought or deed. Bill put me on a pedestal,

and I was trying to make it seem that I was even

more special. I was wrong; so wrong that groveling on

my hands and knees would seem petty as a penance. How

did I let myself take this so far? I needed to knock

myself down a few pegs.

I went down the stairs and went to the drivers' side

door of the car.

"Bill, I'm so sorry. I was wrong. I showed you the

worst side of me. Being petty. My parents treat me

special because they love me. You treat me even more

special, because you love me. You spoil me rotten.

Spoiled rotten to the point where I let a word, and my

own mis-placed perception of that word, hurt you.

Bill, I never want to hurt you, and I trust you so

much that I know you would never hurt me. Yet, I just

let that trust fail me upstairs.

I don't deserve that ring from you, but I want it. Not

the ring itself, but the meaning that goes with it.

You always say that the ring I give you in return for

your diamond is in your heart. You should throw that

away, because I didn't live up to the meaning of it. A

ring has no beginning, no end. Forgive me Bill.

The spike I put in your heart is right through mine,

too.

Come with me upstairs and let's renew what the meaning

of our rings are; never ending love." I said, having

poured out my heart.

"Goddamn it Carree! At least you realize WHAT you did

and why it hurt me so. I'm sitting here thinking to

myself HOW? HOW could she think I would say anything

to hurt HER? Where did this come from? I love to kiss

your ass, but I will not KISS YOUR ASS to earn a trust

I thought we were built on. The trust was supposed to

be there to build everything else on." Bill said

accepting my apology while pointing out and

emphasizing what I knew I did.

He opened the car door and looked at me. He had tears

forming in both eyes and a look of quiet resolve on

his face.

"Don't ever doubt my love for you Carree." He said.

I reached out and hugged and held him tightly to me.

"I won't and I never did, Bill. I was being stupid. I

know what I mean to you, and you to me. Forgive me and

I will never make you doubt me again, you have my

heart on that one." I said, crying.

Bill put his arm around me and walked me to my side of

the car and opened the door.

I looked up at him and said with a grin, "you don't

want to go upstairs? I'm still horny for you, if

you're still horny for me."

"You are a little shit, sometimes," Bill said as he

closed the car door and took me by the hand leading me

upstairs. He stopped and bolted the door, and once

again took the stairs 2 at a time to get a chance to

give my butt a squeeze before I got to the

top. Everything was back to normal.

I went to the slouch couch and sat down. I curled a

finger motioning him over. He sat beside me and we

kissed, deep and passionate. I took his hand and

brought it to my mouth. I sucked his middle finger in

and went down on it 3 or 4 times. I took his hand and

bent back the other 3 fingers leaving the middle digit

standing alone. I took the hand and brought it under

my dress to my shaven, uncovered pussy, and pushed it

in.

"No panties now, just for you. Ohhhhh! (I shuttered)

Don't go too deep with that big finger," I said.

Bill glued his lips to mine and laid me back on the

sofa. In one move he spread my legs, knelt between

them and bent to kiss my bald slit. I was more than

half way to orgasm. How could I have doubted this man

for a nano-second?

He pulled his finger from me and settled into a lick

and nibble on my clit. I let out another big swoon and

he sat up.

"What's wrong?' I said, startled he quit so soon.

"Let's strip. I want to see that beautiful body while

I eat it." He said as he started to undo his belt.

We were nude before you knew it and I laid back once

again on the sofa. He came to me and lay beside me

showering me with kisses while caressing my breasts.

Before he was through I think he covered every inch of

me with his mouth, but the attention he paid to eating

my clit and pussy was the best ever. He used less

fingers than usual trying to hold off my climax for as

long as possible. He also wanted to avoid my G-spot,

as that always led to a quicker end. G-spot orgasms

left me physically drained, not that I didn't like

them. Even without fingers, his tongue had me singing

my song of ecstasy and holding his mouth to my vagina.

Soon I would be trying to push him away as my clit got

so sensitive, I thought I would pass out.

"Please Bill, please, no more, no more!!" my voice

echoed in the room and he finally relented as I turned

to my side to protect myself from his magic tongue. Of

course this opened me to be assaulted from the rear as

he kissed and nibbled on my ass cheeks, working his

way to lick and tease at my butt hole with his tongue.

I was always self-conscious about how hygienic I was

back there, because with Bill that was always a target

for his tongue.

But after the first lick, it never seemed to matter.

It was a private hidden place, but Bill had shown me

the joys of playing back there. Once my pussy began to

flow again from the good feelings he was giving me in

my rear, I turned and pushed him away.

"Bill, I can't wait any longer to taste and suck on

your cock. I need to feel it in my mouth. Let me taste

it and make you crazy." I said not wanting to wait one

more second.

Oral sex had become a real comfort to me. I remember

when I first heard about it when I was in, maybe eight

grade; I thought how aberrant a behavior it was. Then

you heard more and more about it and it seemed to be a

common sex practice for girls who wanted to be

popular. But after seeing it done in a video that Kim

had gotten and played for us girls, you began to see a

sexiness to it.

Firstly, because you realized it was a compliment to

having it performed on YOU.

Secondly, because of the tremendous feelings it gave

the receiver and the power it instilled in the giver.

It was comforting to hear my friends Kim and Megan

tell us that their sisters, all who were older and

some married, say that it was a regular and common

part of their lovemaking. It was not an aberrant act

at all. With me, it gave me a closeness that I

couldn't feel in any other way with Bill. I remember

the first time I was confronted with the possibility

of putting it in my mouth, how excited I was to want

to feel it there. But, there was also my panic, when I

realized that he was going to ejaculate and my mouth

became first option for a receptacle.

Did I want that in my mouth, would it make me sick,

would it be awful?

In my case I had a prior opportunity to taste a little

of his sperm and, although it wasn't a big enough

sample to draw a tasting review, it was not repugnant

in taste or smell. Before I had a chance to decide

much more, it was shooting in my mouth.

Quickly I decided that the best option was to swallow

and get rid of it, if only for reasons of neatness.

But as I continued to feel him writhe in my mouth and

see what pleasure I was bringing him, I sensed not a

bad taste, not unpleasant, but not what you would

order a bowl of or put on a salad either. To me it was

Bill, and I remember how proud I was to have him in my

tummy. The only time I didn't like it was when we were

on our third try in a short time. His cum was thick

and almost a snotty consistency.

That felt repugnant in my mouth and I could not

swallow that.

Later we found that citrus, like grapefruit, and most

especially pineapple, when eaten the night before,

made him taste sweet to where I could savor his

flavor. Feeling him stiff in my mouth with all the

nerve endings he has there, as well as how sensory the

mouth is, is a tremendous turn on. I can feel his

heart beat, even as it quickens towards orgasm. Later

on, in one of the few times I compared notes with

close girlfriends about such personal things, did I

find my experience to be different in that way. They

said the felt a throb from time to time, but I swear

could take Bills pulse, it seemed.

Bill had rolled off the slouch couch when I finally

had to push him away from my sex. I had already become

too sensitive in my vagina, and his oral wanderings

around my anus and perineum had relit that earlier

glow.

So, another 3 alarmer would leave me a writhing mess

and I didn't want that to ruin my night. I lay back in

the couch to catch my breath and I looked down at

the kneeling Bill on the floor. I smiled at him and

asked if he had anything for me. He stood and expected

me to get up and let me kneel over him, but I reached

out to his penis and urged him to my lying form. I

went to the edge of the couch where it curved up to

support a relaxing patient and guided Bill to my

mouth.

He was able to rest his knees on the edge. By

supporting my head, when needed, with my left arm or

hand, I could easily play with his sack and balls with

my right, while I sucked him. I still hadn't conquered

taking him deep into my mouth, but surely the 3 or so

inches he was able to easily slide over my lips and

tongue satisfied him more than he could ever expect.

We took turns, it seemed, he thrusting to my mouth and

me going down on him, and sometimes a combo of both.

Either way, we both felt urgency, him to climax, and

me to taste his seed and satisfy my hunger for him.

His little groans, hums, and gasps of satisfaction

made me happy to know I was repaying him for the

same joys he gave me. It seemed we were stuck in the

same rhythm for a time when I finally sensed a taste

in my mouth.

He always had a pre-cum leak with a bleachy report.

His first lubricating watery spurt had that strong

odor and flavor. It left a bit if that flavor in the

rest of his ejaculate, but it was familiar to me.

Just after getting that first taste I knew he was not

far from climax. His thrust quickened and shortened

and he always moved to use his hand to jerk it into my

mouth.

Sometimes I would let him, other times I would push

his hand away and do it myself, or clamp tighter with

my mouth.

The height he was at today made it good for his

thrusts, and he knew never to scare me by pushing too

deeply. I pushed his hand away when he went to make

that move and tightened my mouth down and sucked a

nice vacuum for him.

When I pushed his hand away he shook both arms and

bobbed at the knee emoting "Ahhhhhhh, hut, Ahhhhhhh"

like he wanted to jerk it, but my mouth was even

better. Either way, he wasn't coming back from where

he was going now.

He sucked in air with a hollow scream as he came. The

first watery blast was huge, telling me he had been

boiling this for a while, probably since my tease in

the car after graduation. I swallowed that quickly

knowing he would deposit a second and third blast in

the back of my throat, and that he did. I swallowed

those and curled my tongue up to catch any more shots.

I wanted it to run underneath my tongue so I could

swish it around to taste it. The fourth pulse was

weaker than the others and then he oozed.

I kept the suction up and moved my tongue around the

head, knowing that when he finally couldn't take

anymore and pulled from me, I could get a good-bye

spurt from him. It happened as I expected with Bill

withdrawing from the warmth of my mouth and he

grabbing his cock as if to protect it.

He would hold he head in the palm of his hand,

squeezing it and shuttering.

I was running my tongue over the front of my teeth to

push all of his cum to the top of my tongue so I could

swallow and eat his loving spoonful.

"Oh my baby!! Ohh God Carree!" Bill exclaimed. "THAT

was the best ever. You sunk in the top of my head that

time. God, you love me so good with your mouth." He

said as he bent to kiss me.

Our kiss was a long and tonguing one where he

eventually slipped into the couch and we hugged and

felt each other's naked forms in our arms.

I felt his penis touch my vagina and wondered at that

possibility someday. My God, how I loved the thought

of him being inside of me. I might have to plan for

some butt sex on our trip this weekend to satisfy that

urge. But, I also worried that one errant little

spermie might find a way inside of me from his casual

brush against me.

I abruptly ended our kiss and said we were late and

had to go.

God, I am sooo paranoid.

We leisurely got dressed and spoke of the next few

nights and mornings when we would fall asleep and wake

in each other's arms.

You couldn't have wiped the smiles off our faces with

jackhammers.

We finished dressing, freshened our breaths and tried

to look "glowy," but not too after "sex-ish," for our

return to the party at my house.

We were 10 minutes later than we had said, and helped

the starving guests get served. The food was great and

we all had a wonderful time. Bill and I cracked little

jokes between us about having already eaten, being

full so soon etc. Thinking back on it now, everyone

probably knew what we were talking about, probably

having done the same thing at one time.

My lasting memory was the look on Bills face as I

asked him in front of his mother, "Did you bring any

of that special sauce that goes with the meat?"

Good Lord, we had fun together!



THE GRADUATION TRIP

a little background . . . .

At St. Pius X High School they have always planned the

Senior Prom to be on Graduation Weekend. Instead of

caps and gowns, men always wore Tux's, and women white

gowns to the ceremony, and then wore the same, if they

chose to, for the Prom.

Tuition was always high at St. Pius, and I think they

figured it was a way to save a few bucks for the

parents and students.

However, in this particular year our senior class had

saved quite a treasury from car wash's, and selling

Christmas cards that we made ourselves using class

original artwork.

An alumnus of St. Pius ran a printing company in town

and his daughter was a senior. Her dad had suggested

this as a class project and it steam rolled. We got

nearly all the printing supplies donated from other

alumnus and we made a lot of money. So much money, in

fact, that we planned a class trip.

After the plans had been made, the school decided they

would not sanction it. We finally came to a compromise

and held the Prom earlier and had the trip after

graduation without it being under the guidelines of

St. Pius. This also meant that no chaperones need be

supplied by, or was liable by or for, St Pius.

The trip was to be to Six Flags in New Jersey.

We would leave the day after graduation, a Friday and

we would return on Sunday. Of the entire class of just

over 100 seniors, almost 80 of us were going. We had

50 rooms booked in 2 hotels in that area. The one

thing we agreed to do was, sign a paper for our

parents that there would be no male/female sleeping

arrangements in those motels.

The only thing we came up short on was money for a

second bus. Only 50 could go on a bus, the rest would

have to find their own transportation. We charged the

bus riders 5 dollars each for the ride and used that

money to pay for the gas for the 8 cars that would

drive the rest.

We hired and paid for our own chaperones, Heidi

Stewart, who actually worked at the school, and Bill

Fuller, an alumnus who was the manager of a local

travel agency who made a lot of the arrangements for

us. They were to make curfew and bed checks and report

back to parents who wanted to know.

The night before our graduation we met with both my

and Bills parents to lay a bomb on them . . . . . .



THE GRADUATION TRIP

Bill was nervous but he spoke first, "Mom and Dad, Mr.

and Mrs. Kasc, you know that we are going away on this

senior trip on Friday, and that Carree and I are going

to drive another couple to Jersey. You also know that

we signed a paper that we wouldn't stay "together" in

those motels. Uhhh, Carree and I have gotten another

room in another motel and plan to spend the night

together."

I spoke up on cue, "I know this may not make you

happy, but I think if you found out we were sneaking

around to do this it would make you even unhappier.

You know, and both approve of, our engagement. You

also know we do not plan to get married until after we

have finished college. We are not going to do ANYTHING

to jeopardize those plans. I hope I am making that

clear"

Bills father was the first to speak. "I really don't

approve of the 2 of you alone for a night in some

motel room out of state, with a bunch of wild

teenagers."

"Dad," Bill spoke up firmly, "I think you know that

neither Carree not I are big partiers, meaning, we

don't go out and drink at parties and we don't do

drugs. If we have ever done any drinking, it has been

at our house or your house (shifting his look to my

parents) when we were not going to drive. And, we

certainly do not get drunk. We simply want to spend

some alone time with each other in the last summer we

will have to be alone together."

I piped in before either parents could, "Bill and I

have been engaged for 6 or 7 months and have never

been away together. We would like this chance. We both

start college in a few months and that will be 4 years

of stress. During that time we will be close enough

that we will be able to visit each other at our dorms,

or meet at a motel half way, whenever we like.

So, your forbidding this will only put off the

inevitable. All four of you know that my intentions

and Bills intentions are honorable.

We are engaged and do plan on getting married and

living our lives together. Our union is so special. We

would not do anything to hurt that, or that would

change our plans."

"What we want here," Bill said, "Is the blessing of

all four of you on this. I love Carree, and she loves

me. I can see not one reason why you wouldn't trust us

to do the right thing"

My father was the next to speak up.

"Well, I don't like it, because that's my little girl

there. But, Bill, you have proved to me how much you

love her, and I know that you are a man of your word.

I trust you. You have earned that trust. Don't do

anything to make me doubt you. I love my little girl"

My Dads words made me cry and I hugged him. My mom

said, "I feel about the same way Carl does. I know

Billy is a good boy. (she hesitated knowing she picked

her words wrong) Oh, I know Carree, BILL is a good

MAN, but I can't stop thinking of you both as kids.

I'll trust you Bill, to not get Carree in trouble or

lead her on. For Gods sake don't tell anyone," and she

hugged me and then gave Bill a kiss.

Bills parents stood up. His Dad spoke.

"I don't know which of my sons, "Bill", you two are

talking about, but he must be a different boy than I

have in my house. I have a hard time thinking of Billy

as a man, he will always be my little boy. I know he

spends all of his time up in his study, working, or

with Carree.

I think Carree is a good girl. I may be more worried

about them being away, out of state, than I am them

being together. But, remember, you aren't married yet,

and won't be for a while. Some things are supposed to

be left to the sanctity of marriage. The two of you

say that your intentions are honorable. I don't see

that. I think this is an invitation to trouble. How

can you keep your hands off each other away like that

in a room together."

I looked at Bill and held up a finger signaling that I

should answer.

Mr. Wilson, what Bill and I do behind closed doors,

whether it's in New Jersey, or at my house, or right

up there in Bills study, is NOBODYS business but ours.

We know that the four of you may not approve, and, we

don't ask you too, because, quite frankly, it is none

of your business.

I don't say that in a smart tone or to be smart. We

are adults and we have been asked to make adult

decisions with our lives as far as college and career

choices. If we were at war, Bill would be draft-able,

maybe even me, too.

We are also old enough to vote. We are both 19 and

considered adults. As adults we can make adult

decisions. If we make bad ones, WE will pay for them,

we will learn by them. We don't think this is a bad

one.

One thing that is none of your business that I WILL

tell you, and it's against Bills wishes that I tell

you, and I have discussed at length with my parents,

is that, . . . I am a virgin. Bill and I have not had

sexual intercourse, and I have known no other men.

Nor do we plan to have sexual intercourse until the

right time.

We feel the risk is too great. While we love each

other so much that we might want to, we also love each

other so much that we won't.

But, we do long to be alone together.

Please do not make us feel that we have disappointed

you by doing this. We want your blessing, and your

trust.

Bills mom was the next to speak, as I think I let all

the doubting air out of Mr. Wilson's balloon.

"With you being so frank, and showing me, at least,

that you have thought about this and know what you

want, I will say OK.

Carree, it took a lot of courage to say those things

to us, and you are right, NONE of it was any of our

business. When I was 19 I was out of school and going

to rock concerts across the country in a VW microbus

doing things that, well . . . will go unsaid.

But suffice it to say I didn't have the grasp on the

future you two do."

She looked to Bills Dad, "Willie, do you agree with me

or is baring her soul not enough?"

"Do I have to like it to give my blessing? I would

feel better if you were going to a motel just outside

of town. I don't like the New York City mess and all

of Jersey is a dump," Bills Dad said.

My Dad piped in two cents worth. "Willie, I happen to

have traveled that area a lot last year and I can tell

you that there are 4 hotels, all close to each other

with a big lot with shuttle buses that go to the

amusement park all day long. They can park their car

at the Hotel and never have to move it.

Bill," he said turning to us, "is your hotel one of

those 4 that are together near the Park?"

"I think so" Bill answered, it has about the same

address as the Holiday Inn and the HoJo's. It's the

Marriott"

"Yes, that's one of the 4 that corner there. I stayed

there," my Dad added.

"Promise me that there will be no side trips into New

York City or anything like that, would you?" Willie

Wilson asked.

"Sure thing Mr. Wilson," I said.

"You have my word Dad," Bill concurred.

"Well then if the 3 of you all think they will be OK

and will not do anything against their word, I won't

be a stick in the mud," Bill's Dad said as a smile

crawled over his face.

"OK, you have my approval. BUT (he grew stern), let's

not make a habit of this hotel and motel thing. I was

a 19 once too, you know."

I went over and hugged Mr. Wilson and whispered in his

ear so no one else could hear, "Don't worry about us.

We take good care of each other. I love Bill as much

as you do."

When I hugged Bills mom I whispered almost the same

thing. When I let go of her I saw Bill shaking hands

with my Dad and hugging my Mom.

This turned out a lot better than I thought it would.

As we all got up to go into the Wilson kitchen for

coffee, my Dad took me aside.

"You will make sure that both chaperones will know

where you are staying and when you leave the group,

right?"

"I'll do that for you Dad, I promise," I said.

While we had coffee, I snuck out to the phone and

called Heidi Stewart right then and told her what we

planned to do. I gave her the option of talking to my

Dad if she wanted corroboration.



"Carree, you're 19, Bill's 19, I think I can trust you

here. Plus you will both technically be out of school

by then, but I know where you will be and how to get

hold of you. That's all that is required." Heidi said.

"Thanks Heidi, I would like to stop by some day at

your house and talk about stuff, OK?" I said.



"I would like that Carree, just call ahead, Ok? Bye."

Heidi said as she hung up.

I rejoined the group and sidled up to my Dad and

talked in a low register under my breath.

"Promise taken care of. Chaperones have all the info

and are OK with arrangement if you are."

Dad looked in his coffee and then smiled at me and

winked. He offered his coffee as a toast, but I had

nothing to lift.

"Consider yourself clinked," I said as he smiled

again.

I was surprised how easy it was to get our parents to

agree with our arrangement in New Jersey, even if I

had to tell everyone that Bill and I were virgins when

it came to intercourse. Bill thought it was a sacred

secret and didn't want me to use that card, but I was

not ashamed of it. Our parents ranged from 41 to 45,

so it wasn't like we were dealing with senior

citizens. They all graduated in the early seventies,

so you have to figure they were pretty loose then,

too. Memories of their high school days may have

scared them about us. But all was OK, now.

For all of us going on the trip, we sort of promised

ourselves to behave as far as drinking and partying on

Graduation night.

Puking hangovers would not be welcomed on the bus, and

many family parties were held the weekend before and

many the weeks after. Parties on Graduation night were

supposed to be dry, supervised events. From the looks

of everyone at the bus on Friday morning, everyone was

OK.

My parents had a party for me at the house with Bill

and I inviting friends, as well as Bill's parents

asking all of the Vermont relatives who could make it,

to please stop by. It was nice to have so many friends

together, and to meet some of Bills relatives, and

Bill mine. Both our parents asked me not to wear the

engagement ring, so relatives would not ask a million

questions.

We respected that wish. We wanted to talk about our

college futures, not getting married.

By the time we reached the scheduled leaving time for

the bus, we had everyone who signed up for the trip.

We were amazed. Kim and her boyfriend Brad were riding

with us. I had hoped to have Meg and Jimmy, but the

Bus was better suited for Jimmy as he was still not

fully recovered enough from his accident to be cramped

into a back seat for 3 or 4 hours. Not that I didn't

like Kim, she was one of my best girlfriends, but we

wanted to talk with Meg and Jimmy.

Kim knew that Bill and I were engaged, but she was one

of the few. As far as we knew, it was our parents,

Megan, Kim and their boyfriends, we suspected, and

maybe a few others. Before we went away to college we

planned on letting everyone know, we just didn't want

to make a big deal about it while we were in school.

The talk was small on the way down. I think there was

a certain amount of anticipation to the trip for Bill

and I, plus I am sure Kim and Brad planned to sneak

off together too. Heidi Stewart had said that there

would be no boy / girl arrangements at the two

hotels that were officially with the schools bus. I am

sure she would enforce that, and she had her

lieutenants who would snitch at any deviation of the

rules. We did sign a letter saying that there would be

no hanky panky in the school-selected hotels. That

was why Bill and I stayed at the Marriott, just to

keep that rule. I don't think even Kim knew that Bill

and I were going to shack.

We all made small talk on the way to Six Flags, mostly

about school, college and friends. I had been in

school with Kim since about grade 8 and there were

times when we were best girl friends. I think she

considered Meg her closest friend, as I did.

As we were passing the City skyline I could see Brad

nudging Kim about something and Kim resisting.

Finally I turned around and said "OK, you two. Are we

going to have to stop the car? What is it you want to

ask me or us, Brad?"

Kim say up, "Brad is such a jerk, he wants me to ask

if you and Bill are going to sneak off in a room alone

and can you help us do the same. I keep telling him

it's none of our business."

Bill was smiling and answered her, "Brad, we signed a

paper committing ourselves to not having any hanky

panky in those two motels. So we have reservations in

another, a third one. If you guys signed that form,

you ought to honor it. You wouldn't want the last

thing you do with the school that might have to

recommend you for a college to be something dishonest

or against school policy. I know that's a pretty

straight answer that you didn't want to hear, but it's

your word you are talking about. I am sure you will be

able to find someplace at Six Flags to be alone for a

bit, or even at the hotel outside of the rooms for a

while."

Kim was mad. "He wants to get me alone and spend the

night and I don't see how we can do it. Maybe we can

get OUR own room for a night, Brad. Why don't we check

out the Marriott when we get there. See if we can get

in for a night"

"They have weekender rates if you stay Friday and

Saturday, its just $40 more than one night," I said.

"But, remember, if you stay together and are missed,

the chaperones will report you. You have to let Heidi

Stewart know before hand.

"Well, forget it then," Brad said. "Heidi and my mom

are good friends and she would surely tell her"

"Ummmm, don't be so sure of that," I said. "As long as

you are planning to be safe, sexually, she might look

the other way"

"What's she gonna do, come up and check us out," Brad

said with an attitude.

Kim tried to calm the situation. "Heidi looks out for

us, tries to keep us out of the maternity ward, Brad.

If we told her out and out we were going to screw all

weekend, she would have a hard time with it. If I got

pregnant, she would blame herself"

She hit a soft spot with Brad "IF YOU GOT PREGNANT IT

WOULD BE THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION," he shouted to

her.

"I sense some hostility here," I said. "I think you

two need to do some talking"

"No, we need to do some FUCKING is what we need to

do," Brad said, all pissed off.

Kim blew up "BRAD, THERE WAS NO NEED FOR THAT AND THAT

LANGUAGE. Carree and Bill, I apologize for my Cro-

Magnon boyfriend. He seems to think that his dick is

the most important thing on the planet. I do what I

can to keep him happy, but he wants to do the big

one."

"Listen," I said, "If you guys are serious about each

other you are going to have to work out the sex thing.

Actual intercourse is not the way to go, if you are

not ready to have children or get married right away.

(Brad had a bull headed look on his face with his arm

crossed and was watching the skyline go by)

But, there are lots of other things you can do to

enjoy each others bodies, if you are committed to each

other and don't see anyone else"

"Carree, I've talked to him about all of that and he

won't accept what I offer," Kim said.

"Have you listened to him and seen what he wants to

offer, it's a two way street. You don't hold all the

sexual goodies, you know. It can't be just what YOU

agree to, it has to be what you BOTH agree to." I said

to Kim.

"But, you both have to confess to any cheating you

might have done with anyone, if you have. Exchanging

any bodily fluids with another person, makes safe sex

an impossibility," I preached.

Brad softened up and so did Kim. In a few minutes they

were stretched out on the seat whispering to each

other and seeming to make compromises. We turned up

the radio to give them privacy.Bill squeezed my hand

and said in a low voice "Thank you Dr, Ruth"

We all met at the Holiday Inn parking lot and did a

head count and we all made it within 20 minutes of

each other. Heidi and Bill gave out room assignments

and allowed mutual swaps as long as they were not

boy/girl. They promised a bed check at least once a

night.

"If anyone sleeps with a teddy bear" Heidi started,

"Or in the nude," Bill laughingly added, "Please be

sure your secrets will be safe with us," Heidi

finished.

I have a coded key that will get into all of the girls

rooms and Bill the boys. We can set the bolt

electronically with a code from the outside and

you will all be safe. DO NOT SET THE BOLTS. If we get

to a room and the bolt is set, it will be assumed you

are violating and your 6 flags pass will be revoked

and you will be reported on our return. No matter how

old you are, you did sign an agreement. Don't ruin

your trip by being stupid."

I always wondered what those electronic locks were

capable of, now I knew. I would be setting the chain

on our door at the Marriott.

"The busses to Six Flags leave from the west parking

lot every hour, on the hour. There is a safe walkway

for each hotel. Officially we will leave as a group at

3 o'clock today, 10 o'clock tomorrow. If you don't

leave with us, you won't have the ticket to get in. We

will return on the 9 o'clock bus each night.

It's 2 o'clock now, Go to your rooms and get settled,

and be here at 3:00 to leave in that parking lot."

Everyone began to disperse, boys with Bill Fuller to

one hotel, girls with Heidi Stewart to the other. I

caught Heidi's eye and gave her a mini-wave with 2

fingers.

She winked and mouthed, "Be good," to me.

Bill fished Kim and Brad's stuff from our trunk. We

agreed to meet them at nine thirty for dinner at the

Marriott that night.

We were NOT going to the amusement park today, and we

doubted tomorrow.

Bill went into the Marriott to check in as I gathered

things in the car that had to go inside with us. He

came out with a smirk on his face and I stopped what I

was doing and dropped my hands to my side then brought

them up akimbo.

"What is so funny Bill?" I said, "Walking out here

with that smug smirky smile?"

"The clerk had me show ID that I was over 18 and was

checking my credit card and telling me about the

amenities of our room.

All the time he was doing it I could see he was

distracted by something out here. After he said, "I

hope you and Mrs. Wilson enjoy your stay" I turned

around and saw what he was so distracted about," Bill

explained.

"What!" I said.

He laughed and said, "You were bending over the trunk

and your ass was just a picture to see. Those pants

are so tight when you bend over, and I don't think you

are wearing any underwear, well, they don't leave much

to the imagination."

I blushed and said, "So you think someone ogling my

butt is funny?"

"No, I think the fact that I'm going to be squeezing,

kissing and caressing that ass, while he jerks off

over it, is funny," he said.

His words gave me a warm start between my legs,

telling me that I was a little randy already. I was

hoping that this would not be a 48-hour sex fest and

we could just spend SOME quiet time holding each

other. But, I would let nature take its course.

I wanted Bill right now, right in the parking lot. I

suppose I could wait a few minutes. I turned to finish

my gathering of things in the trunk.

Was it a coincidence that the next bag contained the

lube and sex toys?

We gathered our stuff and headed for the lobby to take

the elevator.

The Desk clerk asked Bill, "Are you SURE you don't

want the bellman to get those for you, Mr. Wilson?"

"No," Bill said. There's only a couple bags and some

personal things, we can get them."

I made sure I showed my ass real good to the desk

clerk as I walked by. I also made sure that I cued

Bill to catch him staring at me. We laughed like hell

on the elevator at his embarrassment.

I never, ever flaunted myself like that. Well maybe

alone with Bill, but never in public. This was fun. I

would never make a habit of it, but this lecher had it

coming. I hate guys who stare at my breasts or my

butt.

I certainly don't blame them for looking, just like I

look at an attractive guy. I find a second look at me

to be flattering. But to stare and live out little

fantasies in your mind is rude and inappropriate,

especially for someone who meets the public as much as

he.

Bill had pushed the button for the seventh and top

floor of the hotel and the elevator was smooth and

slow to the floor. I noticed Bill had to use the room

card, after the elevator stopped, to open the door.

That was weird. I expected the door to open in a

hallway with a row of doors lining both sides.

Instead, the door opened and there were 4 foyers, each

with a red carpet leading up to them, and then a short

hallway with 4 more foyers with the same set-up.

"Bill, what kind of room do we have? These are like

meeting rooms. I thought you had a weekender rate," I

said.

"No, silly" he said, "They're suites. I have a

honeymoon suite as a surprise for you. I used part of

my graduation money for it. I wanted it to be special,

for a special time for us. The first time we sleep

together, and you know I mean sleep."

"My Lord Bill, so extravagant. Can we really afford

this," I said incredulously waiting for the door to

open.

Bill set down the bags, and took the things I had from

me and set them in front of the door. He put his arms

around me and picked me up and squeezed me hard,

swinging me around. He whispered in my ear.

"You are so special and I love you so much, there is

nothing too good for you, in my eyes. We won't have

the time or money for these things in college. We

deserve this. This is the first of many honeymoons for

us. It's my gift to you, Carree, from my heart, with

all my love."

His hug lasted a long time. I could tell he was

leaking around his eyes.



(If I may step out of the story for a moment: When it

came to his love for me, he was so sensitive. He never

thought he deserved me, but I also thought that way

about him. I suppose he thought I was as special as I

did he. I miss him so greatly that it hurts. I hope

each reader has a love that is so great and so deep

that words cannot describe your feelings. If I seem

lost for descriptive words at times, that is why.

Please understand)

Bill was embarrassed when his emotions got the best of

him and his eyes would well up. He didn't like me to

see him that way, like it would make me think he was

less a man.

Au Contraire, I thought it made him a bigger man.

He finally put me down and slid the card into the

reader and the little light turned green. You heard

the bolt slide and the door automatically jarred. Bill

again picked me up, this time with an arm around my

back and another right under my butt. He was going

to carry me over the threshold! How sweet!

He swept me up and used my foot to push the door open

and we walked through. There was a huge living room

with large sofa that sat in front of a huge picture

window. It had a full kitchen off to the right and 2

rooms off the left side of the living room.

Behind us on the same wall the entrance was, there was

a writing table and small dinner table with a bowl of

fresh flowers on it. He didn't put me down yet. Where

the right wall met the picture window there was a

glass door with a light switch near it. You couldn't

see into the glass-doored room until you pushed the

button on the light switch. He pressed it with his

shoulder and fluorescent lighting lit up a room with

another picture window and a pool. A real indoor pool!

It was only about 15 by 10 feet, but it was like 3

foot deep on one end and it dropped to about 6 foot at

the other. Small, not for real swimming, but real,

real cool!

"Bill, you got this for us?" I said flabbergasted.

"No," he said, "Carree this is for you. I wanted you

to be so happy this weekend. I knew you would flip

out. I obviously will enjoy it, but I did it for you.

Making you happy makes me delirious. I love you.

Consider this an engagement party, happy graduation

party weekend. The only people invited are you and me.

Dress is optional."

As he said that he put me down and opened his arms for

the hug I wanted to give him. We hugged and kissed at

the door of the pool for 5 minutes. We finally broke

our kiss and I thought of our bags outside the door.

"Let's get our stuff and start enjoying the room and

each others company," I said like a little kid who

found the key to the candy store.

Bill went to he still jarred door and got our stuff

and brought it in and put it in the master bedroom. It

was a huge round bed with a mirror over it. I was

simply giddy and giggly. He took my hand and brought

me to the other bedroom, and it was a king size

waterbed.

"OoooBABY!! This can be sex Disneyland this weekend!!"

I told Bill as I grabbed his hand and arm and jumped

around the room waving them with mine.

I stopped my jumping and turned to him putting my

arm around the back of his head, drawing him as close

as I could without kissing.

"Not just Sex either, LOVE SEX. I can have sex with

anyone, I can only "make love" to you, and you will be

the only man I ever make love to."

I pulled away from him and put my hands to his belt

and quickly undid it. I unbuttoned his pants and drew

down his zipper. He made no effort to help or stop me.

He just smiled at me, each time our eyes met. I

squatted and pulled his pants down. He was wearing

boxers with lipstick lips all over them, except for

one spot.

Right over his penis! There was an outline where lips

were supposed to be, but it was blank and had the

words beside it "stay within the lines."

"You dirty old man," I said, "How did you know I was

going to go for this first?"

"I didn't, I just thought they were cute when I saw

them at the sex shop the other day," Bill said.

"Oh, really, and just what were you getting in the sex

shop," I asked half serious, half joking.

"Ummm, these shorts and a few other surprises. You

know when you can't put the big spoon in the soup to

taste it, you have to find other ways to sample it."

"You're a naughty boy. Do you know what I do with

naughty boys?" I asked.

"No, but I'll take my chances," he said.

I reached inside the front opening of his shorts and

took out his hardening cock. It had a little life, but

was not yet up to full mast yet. Without hesitating I

took the head into my mouth with the foreskin still

over it. I slipped my tongue into the top of the

opening and gave the head a swirl and then a long

suck, pushing the foreskin back with my lips. It began

to expand in my mouth. It was the first time I ever

felt him engorging and growing in my mouth. I hummed

my approval and he pumped blood and brought his dick

to full staff in my mouth.

"Oooo, that's exciting to feel it grow in my mouth,

Bill. I love the feel of your penis in my mouth, and

the taste of the cream that covers the head when it

gets under your sheath. Do you want to play for a

while, or do you want me to make you cum right

away."

"Wow, what a choice. I think I'm gonna cum a lot this

weekend, lets hold off on that for a while, at least

15 or 20 minutes. That might classify as "right away"

huh? Let's go to the bed," he said.

"As you wish" I said and I dragged him out of the

waterbed room in to the round-bed room.

I stopped him at the door and said,

"New policy, no clothes allowed in the bedroom."

With that I took off my sweater top off and revealed

my skimpy bra, a sleeping bra that let my nipples be

themselves in a single layer silk cup. I dropped my

black cotton stretch pants to reveal a G-String that I

quickly stepped out of, as well as my little pumps.

I did a spin in front of him and said, "If you want

that cock sucked you better strip and meet me in the

big bed, real soon!"

With that Bill, with his pants already around his

knees, stepped out of them, or at least tried. He then

kicked off his loafers and his pants fell off. He

stripped off his 2-button pullover and was right

behind me getting on the bed.

"I better call the desk clerk and tell him how

beautiful that ass looks in the nude," Bill said.

"You might want to tell him that you might even be

fucking it this weekend, if you play your cards

right," I said with a tease in my voice.

"God, Carree, I'm gonna cum right here with talk like

that," he said.

As much as Bill didn't like it when I told him I was

his "whore" when we were behind closed doors, he sure

liked it when I talked like one. I never even said

"damn" or "hell" in public, but certain words like

suck, fuck, cock, ass, and pussy really pushed his

buttons.

Although we were "making love" to each other, I always

felt there was an animal instinct, sort of, flavor to

all sex acts. Once you opened the door to each event,

the rough language only made your partner hotter.

I had knelt on the bed and waited for Bill to join me.

When he hopped up, he stood, and I waited for him to

flop down, but he didn't. He walked up to my kneeling

form and stopped in front of me. I reached out to grab

his penis, now fully erect.

"Mmmmmmm," I said. "This looks nice today Bill. I

think you might be going home with a sore dick," said

with glint in my eye as I positioned my mouth to take

in his penis.

I let just the head in and lolled my tongue over it

and then with just the head in my mouth I began short

stroking it, in and out with my lips never going past

the ring behind the head. This clearly was to Bills

liking, but I also knew he wanted to shove it right

down my throat. I knew he wouldn't do that though. We

both knew the value of a long, patient, orgasm.

"Ooo, Ooo Carree. That is so nice. You're so good to

me. Ah! Ah! Good God! You're going to make me cum so

fast," Bill said.

I reached up with my thumb and forefinger to his cock

head to simulate the motion of my lips so I could

speak without losing him, "Do you want to cum fast

honey? . . . or do you want to slow it down and we can

play. It's your call, baby. You won't be selfish,

because your cumming will just about put me over the

top," I asked.

"Get me off now, otherwise I may just shoot while

we're playing" he said as I replaced my lips over the

head of his beautiful dick.

Our last alone and private moment was up in the

writing room. He had licked me from head to toe and

was cornering my pussy and butt hole for their tongue-

bath when he groaned and just shot off

in the air. There was cum everywhere, including my

hair, his shoes, on the floor, and lots on the slouch

couch. We had started a 69 that day, but he just went

nuts with his tongue all over me.

I had his penis teased up pretty good when he pulled

from my mouth and began my body bath. He must have

been past the hot anticipation stage and he just

couldn't hold it back.

I didn't want a premature or spontaneous ejaculation

today. I wanted to taste and feel that explosion.

I no more than replaced my lips over his head when I

began to taste the leakage he was experiencing. We

were not far from blast off. I hadn't given him a

total "lips only" orgasm and was hoping to complete it

this way. I had both of my hands between my legs with

my lips between my stiff forefingers, sawing back and

forth.

At one point he tipped his head back to groan and he

saw the mirrored ceiling.

"Oh man, what a sexy show" he said as he saw me

sucking his cock head from a new angle.

I looked up the best I could, I WAS a little busy, but

saw the show he was watching. Seeing me with a penis

in my mouth was a new sight. It clearly made him hot

and thrust him right to the edge of his orgasm.

"Uttttt, Uttttt, Orrrtt, ho, ho, ho, . . .heww!" he

expounded uncontrollably. "Use your hand, Care, stroke

it!!"

"Unt Uhhhh," I hummed. I was determined to finish him

off with lips only. Besides, my hands were busy.

I knew he was going to be out of control in a second

so I reached up with my hands and grabbed his and

placed the 4 hands on his butt. As the first big

watery shot hit the back of my throat he began to pump

his dick in and out of my mouth, way past any depth

I had ever tried before.

"Heewww, Heewww, Heewww, Heewww, he bellowed as he

thrust to get the friction he wanted to draw the cum

from his balls. But, he didn't need any help. He was

filling my mouth with his semen as fast as I could

swallow it. Four jets and four quick swallows had

me ready for more. We had a rhythm of pump - shoot -

swallow that I could have kept up until I was full.

But the jets stopped, and he was just oozing now. I

was able to taste this much better, and I knew he had

eaten his pineapple last night.

We had read that pineapple made semen taste sweeter

and more pleasant. Well, it was true! So whenever we

planned an alone moment, he loaded up with the

Hawaiian fruit.

He had stopped thrusting to my mouth and was letting

me just hum and lick and suck the final oozing from

his orgasm. The shutters were beginning, where he

couldn't stand my tongue and lips on his super

sensitive penis.

When he was out of patience with me he just fell back

and flopped down, pulling the head from my mouth.

I wasn't done yet, though. I grabbed that cock and

gave it one more squeeze and a huge blob of cum oozed

out the hole and began to run down the sides. I thrust

my mouth over him once more to suck this off. He tried

to push me away, but I could not be denied. I lay

between his legs, is balls just an inch from my

chin and both hands on his penis. I squeezed one more

and a little drop appeared. He wiped it from the head

and held the finger out to me.

I licked it and then bit the finger keeping it in my

teeth. With it in my teeth I got up on all fours and

crawled up to his mouth. I dropped the finger from my

mouth and pushed my mouth over his and had a long

tonguing kiss. Then we both fell back into the bed.

I think we might be tired enough for a little nap.

I remember being half awake and letting things run

through my mind. I was thinking about our sex life,

and how much I loved Bill. My mind wandered . . .

At the end of my driveway, where we usually parked and

said our goodnights, we spent a lot of time with our

hands in each other's pants. We were fully charged as

a couple, but we limited our sex play to getting each

other off with our hands, and masturbating in front of

each other. We saved oral sex for occasion when we

could be alone, free, and naked.

Somehow, it felt dirty in the car, plus you had to

keep looking out to be sure we weren't being spied on.

Making love should be free and easy expression.

We had tried anal sex once and we both greatly enjoyed

it. The preparation and time it took to do properly

and expressively, restricted us from doing it since.

We thought we might have the time this weekend, if we

felt so moved. It did have drawbacks that could ruin

some of the quality alone time we had. We would let

the chips fall, as they say.

The stress of the trip and the mouth fucking I had

given Bill earlier had worn him out, as well as me. It

was the first time I had given him a full oral

session, a blowjob, if you will, without him

reciprocating. I wasn't disappointed; we had just

collapsed and fell asleep. God, I loved having his

penis in my mouth. How expressive an act that is, and

pornographers have made it a dirty degrading thing.

To feel him fully erect at the peak of his passion on

my tongue, in my mouth was just incredible.

Your mouth can feel every little nuance of anything

that it touches or senses.

The flesh, gums, inner lips and tongue surface of the

mouth are 18 to 24 square inches of surface, if

stretched out. If you get a piece of hair, or fleck

sand in it, you can feel it. No wonder it makes such a

good orifice for sex. You can hold your lovers most

sensitive organ in your mouth and feel every little

thing about it, including the beat of his heart. The

fact that your fine sensory instincts can tell the

difference in taste of his penis, as opposed to his

finger, tells you that there is something special

there. Plus, being uncircumcised, when his glans has

been inside the sheath, it develops a light creamy

layer that has a distinctive taste.

When unwashed for a long time, like 24 hours, I have

learned that this becomes quite unpleasant in smell

and taste. But, we are always clean for each other and

just hygienic people, overall.

I am sure he appreciates me being hygienic, as much as

I do he. He loves to lick and suck at my vagina, both

over it and in it.

His tongue truly drives me crazy. I am totally shaved

between my legs, shedding all of the hair above,

around and on my genitals.

I originally did it for me, to make me feel more free

and sensual, on the advice of a girlfriend. But, now I

also do it for Bill, who just loves the feel of my

smooth pussy on his tongue.

He truly tries to lick and suck at every inch he can

reach, including my little butt hole and the sensitive

areas around it.

He just drives me crazy, especially when, after

sensitizing that whole area with his tongue, he

centers on my clitoris, licking, sucking and biting at

it.

After all these ministrations, my clit is fully

engorged and swollen. He makes me cum so hard, and I

get so wet.

He is a student and fan of the G-spot and he found

mine early on, once we started having any sort of

intimate relations. It is about one and a half inches

in from the upper wall of my vagina, behind my clit.

When he stimulates it with his finger I just go off

like you would not believe. I squirt an ejaculate

fluid that is thin, milky and sweet to the taste,

although the aftertaste of it is like a musty

basement.

When I squeeze that out, I have no or little control

over myself. My breathing stops and starts, I lose

coordination and think I even pass out sometimes. I

have, at times, fully violently slapped Bill to get

him off the spot. Not to hurt him, but there is no

other reaction I can have to get him to stop.

No other ways of communication are working. I'm told

I'm blessed to have this ability, but I'm convinced it

is Bill who activates it. He is such a knowledgeable

lover. The only time I had one of these G-spot orgasms

without direct stimulation inside my vagina, was

during anal sex.

I was on my back with my legs up. I believe his penis

was rubbing the G-spot area through my intestine wall.

I was simply without control over any function or

myself at that time. My orgasms are all truly

incredible, and all of them are different.

This is why sex is so special to me. It is a new

experience, no matter where or when it takes place.

I remember thinking of all these things about our sex

lives through the haze of exhaustion and then I

realized where I was, and whom I was with. I was

fluttering my eyes awake and looking straight up at my

reflection, in the nude with Bill spooned in

the same state of undress, behind me. We were away

from home, alone, together. Oh what a great feeling.

We had each other, all to each other. I saw something

move and suddenly I felt my breast being caressed.

Fully awake and focused I saw Bill in the mirror

massaging my breast.

"Ohh, that's nice." I said as I touched his hand that

was caressing me, "I've been in a haze thinking about

us, about our sex, our love, just so many things in

general about our love life. Kind of like a dream

where I was explaining it all to someone or myself.

Yes, it was a dream," I said as I realized how

out of it I really was a few seconds ago.

Bill pulled me closer to him and I felt his softened

penis right against my bare vulva. It had been there

right along, but his movement renewed my awareness.

God, how I wished he could just slide that beautiful

penis up inside of me.

How much could it matter if he just did it for a

minute or two?

It was then I realized that I was sliding back into my

sexual reverie. My temptation was an alarm to wake me

fully again. This was why alcohol and sex didn't mix

well. It was easy to talk yourself into things. Here I

was totally sober, but weakened by my state of reverie

and I was ready to give Bill my virginity. I forced

myself awake again.

"Mmmm your penis fits nicely right here huh? You fit

nicely all over. THIS is making love. Just holding

each other knowing we are one," I said accompanied by

a contented sigh.

"I was thinking the same thing," Bill said. "This is

just like doing it. The satisfaction is the same. I

feel like we are the only two people in the world, and

even though we aren't, I don't care about anything

else right now."

"Mmmmm you are taking the words from my mouth. This is

making love," I said as I patted his hand on my breast

again.

"However, really making love would be nice. I would

love for you to be inside of me this weekend. You know

. . . deep inside, back there? I want to feel you

there. It would be so complete for us if you think we

should. We need to get to a pharmacy, though."

"Oooo, that sounds nice. Are you sure you're up to it?

The last time it seemed to take a lot out of you," he

said.

"I know," I replied. "But, the last time I had skied

the whole day before and was tired and scared before

we started. Now I'm in better shape, running track

with the team helped a lot. I'm glad they let me run

with them."

"I'll say you're in good shape. Do you think that desk

clerk was drooling at nothing? You could pose for any

magazine there is. You could be a model, easy. Plus

all those models have 22 or 24-inch waists, with a 30-

inch bust. You must be a 36, and your tits are

perfect. Maybe I'll take some pictures of YOU," Bill

said.

"You won't take pictures of ME, you can see me

whenever you wish. I am not a display piece. I'm yours

and yours alone. For your, and only your, information,

I just went to a 36 C bra and am 36- 22 - 35. I really

don't think I'm pretty enough to be a model, but

thanks for the compliment, lover boy. One more thing,

they are not tits, they are breasts, or even my boobs.

Strippers have fake tits. I have nice breasts. Know

the difference." I explained.

"Gee, Carree, don't get mad. I was just joking about

the pictures; I don't even have a camera anymore. On

the other, believe me, I know yours are breasts, and

they are absolutely perfect. I didn't mean to say

anything to hurt you," Bill backpedaled.

"I know, Bill. I'm just a little sensitive about my

body. More and more I realize that it gets stared at.

I don't mind an appreciative gaze, but I don't like

being mentally undressed. It's an invasion of my, and

your, privacy. What you see here is yours, as well as

mine. I expect you to respect that," I said.

"I do, Carree, and you know it. Never doubt me. I

would never hold you up to be a spectacle," Bill

assured me.

"Bill, if I didn't know or think that, do you think I

would have said I would marry you?" I said as I patted

him on the thigh.



He began to slide away from me saying "I'm going to

shower, OK?"

"If that's what you want to do," I said. "We have no

plans."

"Yeah, I'm going to shower" he said stopping and

dropping his head between my legs.

"I'm going to shower your pussy with kisses."

Before I had a chance to prepare myself he had his

tongue swishing up my slit and I was bouncing on the

bed.



"Bill, wait! Let me lay back with a pillow," I asked.

But he had me sideways (if you can be sideways on a

round bed) on the bed on my stomach with his head

burrowed up my crotch laying wide swaths of tongue on

me. He managed to turn over so he was on his stomach

and his mouth on my upturned crotch. Soon he had me

pulled up to my knees and he was kneeling behind me

eating my pussy and asshole. I wasn't 100 percent sure

about him eating my ass, it had been 6 hours or more

since my shower, but he had tongued me there enough

now that if there was anything unpleasant there, he

had his chance to stop.

He slid his finger deep and far up my pussy while he

licked at my clit, making me simply crazy.

Just when I would get into a rhythm to develop an

orgasm he would stop and switch. He was making me a

little crazy, until I realized he was doing it

intentionally to build up the electricity of my event.

Finally he had me on my knees with my face buried in

the bed. He was on his back with just his face under

me, licking at my pussy and clit.

I could feel him bring his hand to his mouth and I

wondered what he was doing. Then I felt his thumb go

to my asshole and wipe a generous wad of spit there.

Then he was at his mouth again, as he stopped his

licking to load up the thumb.

After he did this a third time, I finally said.

"Please don't stop licking me Bill, just keep going,

you have had me so close."

I felt the third thumb of spit go to my asshole and he

dove into my clit with a vengeance. He rolled his

thumb over and through the dimple of my upturned ass

to the point where it felt almost like his wet tongue

there. Then he trapped my clit between his teeth, not

biting, but certainly not letting me get it away

painlessly, and he attacked it with his tongue. I was

at the edge of coming, drawing quick breaths and

catching my breaths in my throat. Just as I was about

to go off, he sunk his thumb, as far as it would go,

up my ass. All hell broke loose as I humped his face

in an uncontrolled spasm of orgasm.

His thumb up my ass hurt like hell for a second and

then the fire turned into warmth and I wanted more of

his tongue and thumb. I finally caught my breath as he

stopped licking my clit, but kept the sawing motion of

his thumb in my ass. I felt the thumb turn all the way

over, and then I realized he was turned over and

coaxing me too. But he would not let me off his thumb.

I moved myself to my back, his thumb buried in my

bowels, my legs on either side of him. He pulled me

toward him until my cheeks rested in his lap, just

over his penis. He could bend over and kiss my pussy

and lick my clit. Any squirm I made, I felt in my ass

as he now had his hand under me with its thumb up my

ass and my pussy between that and his mouth. If I

moved I was fucking myself on his thumb.

He kissed and licked more on my pussy. I got ready to

come again and tried to rise up off his thumb, but I

couldn't, unless I could get his face out of my pussy,

and didn't want that.

Finally my big orgasm came and he let me go right over

the top with a big hard one. I was gasping, digging it

real good, when finally I had to dislodge his tongue

from my pussy or I was going to explode.

"Please Bill, No more, Please, no more, PLEEEEEZE," I

begged.

And he stopped. "All you had to do was ask," he said

cutely as I laid there huffing and puffing, my orgasm

ebbing away, coming back like a wave in the sand,

every couple minutes. . . .until it finally was calm.

"Ohhhhhhh Bill, you are a bad boy. Assaulting my ass

without telling me. Naughty naughty." I scolded him.

"You never told me to take it out, you never said to

stop," I said.

"If you had stopped, I would have been more crazy. It

was great!!" I told him.

It was the first time he penetrated my butt when it

was not my idea, and I didn't know it was coming. It

hurt a lot at first, but it went away quick. I should

have been mad, but I wasn't. If I had shrieked when he

did it, I am sure he would have stopped. I was in that

"after orgasm" state when I realized his thumb was

still buried in my butt. Thumbs don't lose interest

and get soft like a penis does.

"Umm, Bill, do you think we could take your thumb out

of my butt now," I said with a smile.

"What would you think if we just grabbed the lube and

did up my cock and replaced my thumb with it? You ARE

all stretched out. THIS would be spontaneous." He

said, trying to convince me of something I would have

normally turned away in a second.

"Bill! That first time I took a long time to prepare,

cleaned myself out, filled myself with lube. I don't

know," I hedged.

"You are on the bed, I am on the bed. I have a hard

on. You have a stretched out little hole. You must be

clean, because I can feel nothing up there. I can

reach the bag with the lube from here. In a couple

minutes, I can have this big

hard,

stiff,

cock,

lubed,

and sliding,

inside,

your cute ass.

I say it's worth a try," he said emphasizing the key

words of his proposition.

"Ok, Bill" I said resigning myself to his wishes. "If

it hurts any more than it should, you'll stop when I

ask?"

"I promise," he said.

"Fuck my ass, or should I say TRY to fuck my ass"

With that Bill scooted over, keeping his thumb in

place, to the edge of the bed where the bags lay. He

reached inside and pulled

out the new and old tubes of KY. He slipped off the

cap of the old and motioned me to flip over. He kept

his thumb in as I did. He started fucking his thumb in

and out of me and I could feel the cold KY surround

the digit. Soon he was better lubed and pushing

his thumb with greater ease, in and out, in and out.

I can tell you I was turned on, but afraid. He was

busying himself behind me, and I assumed he was lubing

his cock.

"Just about ready, baby. Lots and lots of lube for

you," he said.

I heard the sticky slop and glop of lube as he stroked

it to his cock.

"Ok, in a second, I'm going to take my thumb out. When

I do I'll squeeze some more lube up there and then we

will turn you on your back, so you can face me again.

Ok?" he said.

"All Right Bill, just be sure we have enough lube.," I

insisted.

I felt him pulling his thumb from my butt. I wanted

to be careful not to kegel at all, so I wouldn't close

up. His thumb popped from my butt, and I was somewhat

missing it from the second it left. I waited for the

cool ooze of KY jelly to go into me.

Then from nowhere Bill placed the head of his KY

coated dick to the ring of my asshole and shoved in

the head and another inch in one shot.

"BILL, What are you doing? You were going to turn me

over. Take it out!!" I yelled

"Let me try it, right here, right now. Tell me it

hurts we'll stop. I promise, I wanted to catch you off

guard and relaxed" Bill pleaded.

"We shouldn't, you might hurt me. Although it doesn't

really hurt now," I cried.

"Let's be spontaneous, lets try it. If it doesn't

work, I'll stop," he said, still not moving his cock

from my asshole where he still had painless pressure

on me.

"Ok, Bill, be careful and don't hurt me," I pleaded.

"Carree, imagine me hurting you on purpose," he said.



With those words, I trusted him, because I couldn't

imagine him hurting me on purpose.

He put more pressure on my butt hole and I tried to

let him in. The pain began to build and I was going to

stop him when he broke through. I caught my breath in

short spurts over and over as he found his way to my

big muscle. He held his dick there for a moment or two

and then began to move, not much more than the length

of an eye blink, back and forth. I felt pressure on

the muscle, but I did not feel it give, or relax. He

kept the mini strokes up on me and finally it let him

past about an inch. I startled for a second and

panicked.

"Stop!!" I said, followed by, "OK, Ok ok, ok, try to

put a little more in."

Bill chuckled, "I'm up to my balls inside you Carree.

I'm going to fuck you now."

I laughed with Bill when I realized he was all the way

in me. Between his thumb and my orgasm, I must have

just opened up. He knew it, he had felt it, but I had

no way of knowing. All the nerve endings are in the

ring and the sphincter. After that I was feeling

mostly on instinct.

Bill pulled from me a little and pushed back in. It

was wonderful. I knew I wasn't as loose and free as

the first time we did this, but it was still nice, and

in some ways even better. We had a little more

friction going, so I felt more when he was sawing at

me. I also knew that meant I would be more sore unless

we went fast, or he would have to stop and re-lube.

Bill realized the same thing. He held me close and

bent over me and grabbed my breasts and put his mouth

by my ear.

"I think you are opened up pretty good now. Why don't

we switch positions so I can face you and hold you,

but when I come out I'll have to put more KY inside,

OK?" he reasoned.

Mmmmm, whatever you say," I said, "as long as I can

feel you inside of me."

Bill pulled his penis from me and patted me on the

ass. I turned over and brought my legs up and locked

them with my elbows. Bill opened the new tube of KY

and was filling his fingertips with it

and pushing it in my dilated butt hole. I was trying

to sneak a peek at his penis to make sure here wasn't

any "unpleasantness" on it. If it was there, I didn't

see it.

Bill put more lube on his penis and put the tip at my

upturned little hole. He looked up at me and smiled.

"Someday, I will be pushing this into your pussy, and

I can't wait for the day. I think of that every time I

sit in front of you like this. You are a sight, so

beautiful" he said.

Then he pushed into me. I grunted a little at the

sudden re-intrusion, but there was no pain, just the

feeling of being full, full of Bill and his love.

Facing each other like this we started long strokes

right away. I was getting close to an orgasm in no

time and I knew it was going to be a dandy. I was

beginning to leave everything behind, my breathing

shortened, I was flailing my legs. I looked at Bill

and he was breathing hard through clenched teeth and

making as many weird breathing and panting noises as I

was.

We were going to come together. As soon as the

realization of such hit me, I went off. My breathing

stopped and started, my heart raced and I turned red

with 2 quick volleys of gush coming from my pussy.

Bill was pumping like nuts into my bowels, as he

was cumming too. His thrusts were making me go off

more and I had to stop him in order to breathe again.

- - - - - - - -

The next thing I knew Bill was mopping my forehead

with a cool towel and calling my name. I woke up with

a start.

"I passed out? Oh No, am I Ok? How long was I out?" I

asked panicked.

"Easy Carree, easy. You scared the crap out of me too,

but you've only been out for 20 or 30 seconds. I just

got the towel. You're fine."

The last thing I remember was, my eyes rolling back in

their sockets and thinking to myself that I had to get

Bill to stop his fucking because my G-spot was over-

stimulated and making me into a writhing mess. I knew

he was cumming and stopping him would be impossible

and quite impolite, sexually. I remember thinking the

first time we did this, that if he weren't in my ass,

I would have shit on the spot. I was that out of

control again.

I filled my lungs with air and made a cleansing

breath, followed by more of the same to bring me back

to total reality.

"I guess I'm alright, I said. Gawwwwwwd that was such

a huge orgasm and I had no control. That little G spot

has a mind of its own. I never thought what would

happen if you came at the same time. Did you finish

your orgasm?" I asked.

"Wow, I guess I did. You must be flooded inside. Don't

try to move until I get you a towel. They wouldn't

appreciate you pooping cum all over the bedspread. I

only hope we can get your ejaculation out of it," he

said as he pointed to two big wet spots on the spread.

"Wow, I'm sorry, Bill. I have no control," I offered.

"I know, silly. Don't worry about it," he rebuffed.

Then I noticed he had a towel over his genitals. I

looked at it, and then at him. "Problem?" I said.

"Yeah, a little. There IS something to you doing all

the preparing for butt-sex. You know, unpleasantness?

. . . ."

"Ohhhhhh, I understand. Why don't you get me a towel,

so I can get to the toilet, and then you jump in the

shower? Where is the bathroom, come to think of it?" I

asked not believing we had been there 3 hours or so

and not yet had to look for it.

"There's one in each bedroom, but this one is the

master, with a whirlpool, a commode and a bidet'.

Pretty cool, huh?" he said.

"I don't feel so cool. I'm trying real hard to pucker

and I may be leaking." I said as he took the towel

from his genitals and gave it to me and rushed to get

another one for me.

He just came around the corner with the second towel

when I was walking towards the bathroom already, on

weak legs I might add, the towel he gave me held up

like a diaper.

"Let me through, Bill" I said as I rushed past him and

sat on the john and let things run out of me. There

was cum and KY, but traces of BM too.

"That's the last time we will do that without the

prep. As usual, you were right," Bill said sheepishly

as he watched me.

"Are you enjoying the show, Bill? How about privacy?"

I said.

"For Gods sake Carree, you just had my penis in your

ass, and your mouth. I had my tongue in your ass and

your pussy. What's private? Bill reasoned.

"I suppose you're right," I said as I reached for the

paper.

"Why don't you use the bidet? It will clean you and

you can pat dry instead of having to rub that

sensitive little hole." Bill said.

"I suppose that's one of the reasons half the world

uses these things," I said as I straddled the unit and

figured how to use it.

"I'm getting in the shower," Bill said leaving me to

play with the fountain flow.

I finished and patted dry, only to realized I was

going to be getting into the shower with Bill in a

moment.

I was about to gather clothes for afterward when I

remembered we were "clothing optional" still.

I went into the room beside the commode and bidet

where the huge shower stall was, a giant round tub and

a whirlpool. I could live like this. The whole room

said sex. Bill in the shower washing his penis looked

like he was jerking off. THAT gave me a warmie

right in my sex. Gee Whiz, was there no satisfying me?

"Are you sure its clean?" I said.

"The difference between washing and jerking off is

state of mind, you know."

"Very funny. I don't think I need to jerk off as long

as I have you around. I can't make the cum fast enough

for you," he laughed.

"Please word your complaint properly so management can

understand your problem," I said coldly, and then

turned showing him my ass and smiling.

"I could call you a cock-tease, but that would mean I

didn't like it," he said.

I reached out and held his balls in my hand, saying

"it's only teasing if I didn't come through. After

giving you a blowjob and letting you fuck my butt, not

too many courts would convict me of being a tease."

"Point taken, counselor" he said as he tipped his face

to kiss me.

It was a long slow tonguing kiss under the shower. Me,

holding his balls, he massaging my breasts, we were

both ready for another round of love. Good Lord, I

loved this man. I could not get enough of him. When

the kiss broke, I bent and took his soft, sheathed,

penis into my mouth, bathed it best I could with my

tongue and took it out. I held it in my hand and spoke

right to it, "Sorry if I gave you the shitty end

before."

Bill laughed and kissed me again. "I think he likes

you," he said pointing down at his newly rising dick.

I shook my head and said "Is there no satisfying you?

I only have one hole left, and you're not getting that

one quite yet."

"You were the one who put it in your mouth," he said.

"I know. Blame it on me," I resigned myself to being

the martyr.

"I'll tell you what. If he's that randy, jerk him off.

I'll be there for the finish. I do love that cock."

Bill smiled and said. "Let's see if he goes away by

the end of the shower," and we finished washing each

other.

In the 10 minutes it took to wash our bodies and our

hair, Little Bill didn't go away.

"If you want to get him off, get started honey," I

said.

He grabbed his cock and ran his hand up and down the

length. He pressed his lips to mine and pinned me to

the shower wall.

"You want my cum again, do you? But you don't think

you can get it yourself. I'll jerk it off for you, my

sweet" he whispered.

My lips were a little sore from the "lips only"

sucking I had given him earlier, and I didn't want to

have swollen lips to go out with later, let alone walk

funny from being butt stuffed earlier.

But, if he had to cum, I was ready to feel it in my

mouth.

I started watching Bill jerk his dick off. I began to

add some inspiration for him by reminding him of the

times I sucked him before, let him fuck my butt. He

was getting hot.

"Remember the first time I swallowed your whole load,

Bill. You were jerking off, just like now and I just

couldn't help myself.

I put my lips right over that beautiful cock as it

shot and I felt those spurts hit me right in the bac .

. . . ." I was saying when he yelled.

"I'm gonna cum, I'm gonna cum, Oh God, I'm gonna cum"

I went to my knees in the shower and put my mouth over

the head of his cock as he began to moan and groan in

orgasm.

I looked up just in time to see him throw his head

back to give up his seed. I felt him spurt once on my

tongue and then ooze more out. I held all of it in my

mouth as I tongued the under side of the head. I kept

this up until he could stand no more, and pulled away,

a last little spasm sending just a bit more of thick,

almost curd like, thick cum into my mouth.

I hated the way that felt, I didn't want to swallow

that. But for his third orgasm in as many hours I

guess I couldn't expect "grade A" stuff. He grabbed

his penis and turned away to protect it from me.

I took this opportunity to spit this thick, almost

lumpy sperm from my mouth down the drain. I managed to

keep some of the more liquid part to taste and satisfy

my urge to enjoy his orgasm.

"Man, we are going to kill each other, if we stay in

this room" he said.

"What a way to go, though," I said, "But we ought to

get you cleaned up so we can get some clothes on you

and go outside a bit"

"ME! Cleaned up? I just have a few late spermies on my

pee pee. HOW ABOUT YOU? Man, you have to brush your

teeth, too," he laughed at me.

"What," I spat back "Just whose cum do you think you

smell on my breath?"

We both laughed at each other and finished our shower,

without further event.

Even after just a few hours of honeymooning, I could

see that we were going to be sex crazed all weekend,

trying to make up for past and future lost time.

We had to resist our urges a little, or the rest of

the sex for the weekend would be painful and

rubbed raw sex. We had to contain ourselves until at

least when we went to bed tonight.

As we dressed I was running through my mind the things

we could do that afternoon. There was not a whole lot

of shopping right around here, not compared to the big

malls in and near the City.

But, we had promised no side trips to that area so I

thought we might ask the desk clerk or concierge where

we might shop locally. I wanted to get to a pharmacy

and maybe get some supplies for doing the butt nasty

again. I wasn't sore back there, and thought I might

be game for another round. This might be our last

chance for a while.

(As hideous an act as anal intercourse seems when you

think about someone else doing it, it was really quite

pleasurable, intimate and personal. It can be messy

and painful. A girlfriend of mine tells me that it is

quite common in adult films now, and men just stick it

in the girl, never showing the prep. It is just not

that easy. The prep is most important and should not

be glossed over)

I don't know what Bill was thinking as I watched him

getting dressed. Neither of us spoke and I assumed he

was running events and plans through his head too. Too

much sex can be a problem too, I guess. I just wanted

each time we made love to be special.

How I wish I could take him into my vagina. I am

betting I wouldn't have such a G-spot problem then.

Imagine, I'm complaining about too many, or too wild

orgasms. In regular vaginal intercourse I am betting

you get less direct stimulation of the spot. I also

wonder how sensitive it would be if Bill hadn't looked

for it and found it. Did he wake it up? I was thinking

that I might have to spend more time in the library in

order to have a better sex life.

Bill went to the mirror to straighten his collar and I

came up behind him and picked lint from his pant leg,

and fixed his collar. He turned around and I told him

he was handsome.



He said, "Great, because you are beautiful, so we must

make a great couple. Watch out, here come the Bill

Wilsons."

"Thank God your parents didn't call YOU Willie, like

your Dad," I said.

"I have aunts and uncles who call me Little Willie,"

Bill said with a devious smile.

I patted his crotch and said "This is the only Little

Willie in THIS family, and by the only standard I

know, he's not exactly little. C'mon Mr. Wilson lets

get out in public where we have to keep our hormones

in check."

"OK," he said as he showed me to the door and we

called the elevator.

The concierge showed us easy ways to get to the local

malls and there were a lot more than we thought. As

much as we thought we were in the middle of nowhere,

we were still in a populace area of New Jersey. We had

a great time walking through the malls, hitting snack

bars for drinks, pretzels, ice cream, and the like.

We fed each other, holding hands, hugging, kissing and

joking and generally acting what we were; a young

couple in love who wanted to sweep through their day

so they could spend their night alone in each other's

arms.

If this was the life a young married couple would

lead, we were well suited. We were quite aware, as

well, of the other worries that young marrieds had

with finances, financial and social stability,

working, and providing a roof over our heads. We

thought our college plans and the promise to wait

until they were complete before marriage, made a lot

of sense. But we also knew what a job it would be to

not be tempted to run off and get married without the

safety nets we needed in place. The lure of being

alone together with nothing to worry about but sex was

great. We were both strong in our resistance of that

"fun now, pay later" attitude and were aware of how

blind it was for those who chose it.

We found a multiplex cinema at the second mall we got

to. We decided to take in a movie to wile the

afternoon away. It was almost five o'clock and we had

planned on meeting Kim and Brad for dinner at 9:30.

We saw Sharon Stone in Sliver. It was kind of a "scary

sexy thriller" that never really lived up to any of

those descriptions. It was OK, but not on my list of

movies to rent later on.

We got back to the Hotel about 7:45 and went up to our

suite. I thought I would try out the pool. When Bill

let us in I went right for the bedroom and started to

strip.

"Let's go skinny dipping!" I said as I shook off my

clothes.

"My lord," Bill said, "We truly are hillbilly folk in

flatlander territory."

Bill also stripped down and was just behind me when I

opened the door to the private pool. Although it was

small, the water was nice, and for 2 people, just

large enough to give you the feel of being in a pool,

rather than a big bath tub. I was just about to jump

in when I stopped and thought aloud.

"If I get in there and get my hair wet and chlorined,

I'll have to shower again"

"So we'll have to shower again, what are you afraid

of, getting wet," Bill said.

"Well, I guess you have a point there," I said as I

jumped in the water.

It was hard to be nude in a pool and not be sexual, or

at least think sexual. Bill watched me for a few

minutes and he was raising his flag.

"Bill, have you no control at all?" I asked.

"I'm sorry Carree, but you may not realize it, but you

have a body that could give a statue a hard on," Bill

defended.

"Well, as much as I would love another session with

you, I was really hoping we could go to bed tonight

and be randy together.

If we get off now, we are going to be getting in the

"do it till it hurts" stage. My "shooter" is a little

sore right now. We should wait," I assessed.

"I agree," Bill said. "I don't have to relieve myself

every time it goes up. I'll be OK. The longer I wait

after being aroused, the more stuff I'll produce"

"Oooo really," I said. "So if I keep you on ice till

morning, I won't have to order breakfast?"

"You, CARREE, are a pervert sometimes. It's a good

thing you quit the nuns, they wouldn't put up with

your eating habits," Bill sarcastically joked.

I came over to Bill and reached into the water

grabbing his penis, saying, "If the nuns ever got a

taste of this, the convent would be empty." I gave his

little head a squeeze and said, "He can wait till a

little later. If I can, he can."

We generally laughed and played in the water, making

sex jokes, and sometimes talking seriously until I saw

it was a quarter to nine.

"We better get going if we have to meet them in 45

minutes," I said.

"Let me go and shower ahead of you so I can control

myself, then you can get in. If you're nice, I may dry

your hair for you," Bill said.

Bill jumped out of the pool and went to shower leaving

me alone. I hopped out of the pool and began to dry

off. I was thinking how enjoyable the last couple

hours were alone with Bill. THIS, besides the sex, was

the alone time we talked about needing. Just being

ourselves, with ourselves. The time flew by. Life was

good.

Our life together would be good. I generally puttered

around the big suite until I heard Bill call me to the

shower.

I walked into the boudoir and Bill was just getting

dried off and was putting on that big thick robe they

give you to use.

"We're just dressing casual for dinner, right? Khaki's

and sport shirt?" Bill said as we passed stopped and

kissed.

I went into the shower, but turned as I walked in.

Bill was watching my ass as I walked away.

"You never turn it off do you, Bill," I laughed and

said.

"I will never get enough of looking at that ass," he

answered with a big grin.

"Holy Cow, Bill. You've screwed it and you still have

to look at it all the time?" I asked.

"I told you, I'll never get enough," he said.

"Men!" I said, "and their fascination with tits and

asses" as I closed the shower stall.

By the time I got out of the shower Bill was dressed

and ready.

"Oooo, you smell good. I might pick you up tonight," I

said as I passed by.

I was still in underwear and searching for a blouse I

had bought today. Bill went to the window and said he

saw the Six Flags bus pull in the lot. Kim and Brad

would be on time.

At nine thirty Bill and I stepped out of the elevator

right beside the restaurant in the hotel. Kim and Brad

were just walking in. They were fried from the day at

the amusement park.

"You missed nothing today, Carree. It was hot as hell

and the lines were unbelievable. You guys look fresh

and ready to go out," Kim said.

"I hate places like that Kim. We had a nice time, went

shopping and even took a dip in the pool," I said.

Brad had a disgusted look on his face saying, "I bet

that's all you did," with a snicker.

Dinner was nice and by the time we were looking at the

dessert menu, we were the only 4 left in the place.

Our waiter came over and asked if we wanted anything

else, and we asked if they were closing.

"Well, not really. The bar area is attached and we

were just going to close the entrance to the bar. I'm

assuming you are all underage for the bar, so I was

going to tell you that you could stay here and talk

for a while, as long as you settle up and have

everything you're going to need. Once the Chef has the

kitchen closed and cleaned I call the manager who

takes care of closing up. He can let you out. Plus you

could get out through the bar."

"That sounds nice," Bill said as he gave his room key

to put it on our tab. "Leave a pitcher of ice water

and we are all set. Thanks for the consideration."

"Bill, I can't let you pay for all this," Brad said.

"You settle up with cash with me now and I'll pay for

the whole thing when we check out, OK?" Bill said.

Brad reached in his wallet and gave Bill cash to take

care of things and the tip. The waiter brought the

check and the water. Bill signed the tab and suddenly

we were alone.

"It's eleven," Brad said. "What time do they make bed

checks?"

Kim perked up from her doldrums "They gave no specific

time. I left a note for Heidi just saying I was with

Brad and NOT in either hotel. That will have to be

good enough for her."

"If she and Mr. Fuller compare notes, I think they

will give you some slack," I added. "So, ummm, have

you guys worked out your little spat on the way down

here today? It's bad to argue about sex. It's supposed

to be something that draws you together, not make you

fight."

Kim was first to answer. "I can't believe you want to

dole out sex advice, Care."

"I,. . .WE just hated to see you fight and be so

combative, over sex!!" I said. "Just think about the

fun you two have together as a couple and the future

you might have, but those possibilities can't be

explored because you have put this wall in between

you.

And, what is the wall made of? Resentment about sex!

Sex, the one communication line that needs no words.

The one line of give and take that communicates, your

spirits, your beings, your feelings, to each other.

Kim, there is a lot of give and take with sex,

especially when you don't want to have ANY risk if

pregnancy or disease.

Brad, "getting laid" is not making love. You could

walk over to the bar there and find a mate for the

night right now.

But, tomorrow morning all you will have is a wet spot

on your mattress. You say you love Kim and the only

proof of that is to have her consent to intercourse.

Would you really enjoy it, knowing she didn't want to

do it?

Kim, I know we have talked about sex, girl talk. I

know you are reluctant to open up. You may have to

rethink that, or reevaluate how you feel about Brad.

If you don't want to open up and advance the

relationship, maybe Brad is a convenience to you.

Brad, this same thing applies to you. If you are

willing to accept nothing short of "getting laid,"

maybe you ought to revalue the situation. Maybe Kim is

your convenience.

I know you are both, probably, mad at me for shooting

from the hip. You may also think I am meddling. But

Kim is my friend. We have had private girl talk

moments since the eighth grade and we know each other

pretty well. I hate to see her hurt or taken

advantage of. With college coming on, and I hate to

say this, we may never see each other again. If I

didn't say this, I would always wonder how things

would have turned out if I did. Sorry for being so

frank. Brad, I love Kim and don't want to see her

hurt. Be fair with her."

I was sorry that I rambled on so and lectured my own

friend. But, once I got started I really let my

feelings out. I know that Kim really loves Brad, but

his caveman act about sex was pushing her away. Kim

was not without fault either. She would neck and kiss

with him for hours with Brad rustling in her pants to

get her off. She talked about how he could make her so

hot and have orgasms. When he wanted reciprocal

action, she would do little more than rub him through

his pants. She had yet to show him her naked form, and

she wouldn't let him take it out. It got boring fast

with them. Brad hung in there thinking he was always

close, plus they went so well together. Now, his

frustration was showing. Kim really had to commit

something to the relationship sexually.

Kim looked at Brad and then at me and Bill. "I don't

know what to say. You really summed it up. A lot of

things, I am embarrassed to talk about, afraid to talk

about. I mean; I really want to do it, and do it with

Brad (she reached for his hand). I love him.

But I want it to be special, not just my legs up in

the back seat of a car. I also want to be ready for

pregnancy if we take that risk. I don't mean condoms

or the pill, I mean marriage and emotional stability.

So, how do you guys do it. Shacking up for a couple

days, and you can tell me you're not screwing. I know

you're engaged but . . . ."

Bill was totally embarrassed at this point; he thought

I was going to lay it all out. I wasn't.

"Kim, and Brad, when you are alone together, you have

to use your imaginations a little, like we do. You

have to open yourselves up, yet keep your promise to

each other that you won't fall to temptation for

intercourse.

Brad, I might tell you that the stories you might hear

your friends tell about their conquests, are, 9 in 10,

just that, stories. Don't think you are missing

something that everyone else is doing. There are many

ways you can show each other how much you care for

each other."

At that point the evening drinks had worked their

magic, I had to pee. I got up and excused myself, and

of course, Kim joined me.



Brad said, "Hey, no fair ganging up on me in the

ladies room."

I turned and said to Brad so Kim couldn't hear "Easy

Brad, I'm more on your side than you think, on this."

As soon as the ladies room door closed Kim smiled and

said, "So what do you two do all day in that room? You

say you're not screwing, but you must do something?"

"Kim, tell me, if you and Brad had a room alone,

together, would you strip your clothes off and walk

around au natural' for Brad. Would you be disgusted if

he did?"

"Walk around naked? No, he's never seen me naked. Why

would I do that?" Kim railed.

"Because it's giving to the one you love. If you truly

love him would you love him any less if he saw you

nude, or you saw him nude?" I asked.

"I don't want to see any naked man running round in

front of me" Kim protested.

"Well then, maybe this conversation on this subject is

over. If you truly loved Brad, it seems to me that you

would want to share as much as you could with him, and

want him to share with you. Your body is all you come

into the world with, you have nothing else to share."

I said as I closed a stall door and sat to pee.

"But, he might try to fuck me," Kim defended.

"Gee Kim, I would kind of hope he might want to make

love to you, if he saw how beautiful the woman he

loves looked unclothed. If the only thing you think

two people can do in the nude is screw, you have to

look at things a little differently. If you're both

satisfied, and both know the score with each other,

you won't have him acting like a caveman and having to

worry he would throw you down and rape you if he saw

you nude. If you starve a person for 3 days and put a

steak in from of him and tell him not to eat it, what

do you think happens? As much as YOU want sexual

satisfaction from the relationship, remember he does

too. After a night out, do you go home and a . . .

take care of business? I assume you do. Don't you

think he's doing the same thing? If you both truly

care about each other, what sense does that make?"

"I AM still a virgin. Yet, I rarely even wear panties

when I go out with Bill. If we have any alone moments,

we are nude. You were the one who convinced me to

shave myself, that makes me feel more open and free

with my body. Yet it's only for Bill. The moment we

walk into our suite upstairs the first thing we do is

strip." I confessed.

"Suite, you have a suite?" Kim asked.

"Ummm Hmmmm We do. It has a living room, a kitchen,

even a pool, and a whirlpool and a waterbed, plus a

big round bed with a mirror over it. It says sex, and

we walk around, and swim in the nude. Yet, amazingly,

I'm still a virgin. Kim, you are going to lose that

guy if you don't wake up. If you truly cannot bring

yourself to be more open about sex with him, maybe you

aren't in love with him. Have you thought about that?"

"Yes, that has crossed my mind too. Maybe he is a

convenience, my Saturday night date." Kim admitted.

"You better decide if you're fooling yourself with

this or not. You're my friend and I love you Kim, and

I think Brad is a pretty nice guy. I am not going to

encourage you to do anything that you don't want to

do. But, if you really love him, it seems to me at

least, you might really want to please him, and that

he would want please you.

Come on, Brad knows we're talking about him already,

so lets not make him paranoid," I said as I finished

my lecture.

Without any real pre-planning I found out later that

Bill and Brad had about the same conversation. It

started with Brad telling Bill what a lucky man he

was, Lucky, because I was so good looking. Bill asked

if he didn't think Kim was as pretty, and he thought

she was. But then Bill started about how looks were a

big plus, but being happy and confident in your

relationship was a lot more important, the trust, the

same whole deal Kim and I talked about. In the end,

Brad was sure that Kim was not just a Saturday night

guarantee for a date. He really cared for her, but was

frustrated in her reluctance to seek mutual

satisfaction. He felt he was always trying to find the

point of making her happy mentally, so the physical

stuff would happen. Now, he just was frustrated and

wanted to end it all rather than have to keep himself

out of circulation at college.

He saw no reason why he should worry bout being true

to Kim, if she made no commitments to the

relationship. The anger he showed in the car was pure

frustration. Bill related a lot of the things I did,

that intercourse didn't have to be the only way to

make love.

As soon as we got back to the table Brad stood up, on

Bills cue, when the 2 ladies got to the table.

"I'm sure the two of you had a nice time ripping me to

shreds in there," Brad said politely.

"Not only that," I said, "I ripped her to shreds too,

if it makes you feel any better."

"You two," Bill said speaking to Brad and Kim, "have a

lot of talking to do if you want to make your

relationship work out."

Brad and Kim just looked at each other, and

surprisingly, they smiled. You could see there was

some real affection there. I pushed my chair back, and

that was kind of a cue to break our little foursome

up.

"It's almost midnight, we should retire," I said. "Who

is your roommate Brad?"

"It was supposed to be Jimmy Beauchamp, but Holiday

Inn switched him to a first floor room with all

handicap stuff, so I don't know who it is, now. He

didn't even ask for the switch, they just did it, and

Meg sort of made him go along with it, so she wouldn't

have to worry about him. He claims he has no special

needs where he needs an aid. So, who knows, maybe

there was a screw up and I have some hot chick in

there," he said winking and looking at Kim.

Kim pouted and said, "There better not be, I'm not

giving you up that easy."

The doorway to the lobby was locked so we had to exit

through the bar/nightclub area. We could do it without

going into the club proper by just moving some of

those velvet red ropes near the entrance from the

restaurant. We were just walking to the lobby when we

heard a voice call us.

"Kim, Carree, leaving so early??" It was Heidi

Stewart. She was coming from the nightclub. "Aren't

you guys going to stay up and party? Well, maybe you

can't get in the club if you're underage."

"Thanks," Kim said, "but we have to get back for bed

checks and curfew."

"There aren't going to be any bed checks, so don't

worry about that. We just wanted to make sure everyone

thought about that before doing something stupid. The

HoJo's doesn't even have electronic locks, so a bed

check would be so noisy, fumbling with key locks. Even

at the Holiday Inn, Bill was just knocking on doors at

eleven o'clock and telling them to set their bolts if

they were in for good. We hope we are dealing with

adults here, but we know who to watch."

There was a pause in the conversation and then Heidi

said, "Kim, I need to talk to you."

Kim and Heidi went to a corner of the lobby and talked

a minute and they came back.

"Well, I have a couple cute guys on the line inside. I

haven't been out dancing in years. And, uhhh, I'm just

kidding about having guys on the line, don't start any

rumors," Heidi added.

Heidi disappeared inside and Kim took me aside saying,

"Wow, you won't believe what she just told me. She

said Brad didn't have a roommate and I should be back

in my room for wake-up calls, and to behave myself."

I was a little incredulous but told her, "This is up

to you, Kim. Just be sure you talk it over with Brad

and set ground rules, if you want any . . . or just go

to bed in your own room and not say a word. My lips

are sealed either way."

"OK, you two," Bill said. "This isn't fair to either

of us, we can't help but think you're talking about

us."

"It's girl talk," I insisted, "You wouldn't want to

know what was said. You know girlie stuff."

They took us at our word and we all went outside.

"What a beautiful night," Brad said. "Who wants to go

for a walk?"

"Not us," Bill said. "We have a bed that is calling my

name loud and clear. I AM tired. It's been a long

day."

Kim took the cue and gave us each a peck and hug. Brad

shook Bills hand and said thanks and then gave me a

little kiss, saying "goodnight." Then he offered his

arm to Kim who took it and they strolled down the

walkway toward the walking bridge that took them

across the street to the other hotels. I hope they had

a good night, even if they just talked and got each

other's heads straightened out.

Bill looked at me and said "Would you care to

accompany me to the bedroom?"

"I thought you would never ask," I said.

When we got up to the room I went right to the window

to see if I could see if Kim was going with Brad to

the Holiday Inn, or back to her own room. I was

curious. Bill went right to the bathroom, as he said

he had to relieve himself. When he came out, he was

stripped down and had on the big thick robe.

With a smirk on his face saying in his best Thurston

Howell, "Ladybug, would you care to join me on the

sofa for a Pepsi and a bit of tv before retiring."

"Enchante'," I replied as I went into the bath to

recover my robe. I undressed and hated the lines my

brassiere had left on my chest. I was glad to have a

couple minutes before retiring to let them work out

before Bill seeing me. He had seen me a hundred times

before, but I liked being perfect for him.

As I came out of the bath, fully robed, I saw an ice

bucket on the dining nook in the kitchen area, with a

bottle in it.

"Bill," I said as I walked toward it, "What's this?"

It was a bottle of Champagne with a card, "Compliments

of management, Enjoy your Stay."

Bill pulled the bottle from the ice and said, "I guess

the fact that we are underage means little to them. Oh

Well . . ."

"I like bubbly if its not too dry," I told him and he

agreed.

Being "only" children, we got to share certain things

with our parents, and champagne was one of them. For

an anniversary or birthday or new years, if there was

a bottle to celebrate, we were always asked if we

wanted to try it. So we both had a little taste for

it.

Bill opened the bottle like a master, obviously well

trained in the art of cork pulling, with just a dash

of foam escaping. We felt like big shots with our

champagne glasses and comfy robes.

We toasted each other and swapped glasses, entwining

hands, downing the sampling Bill poured. I held out my

glass for another and Bill complied. He filled his own

and took my arm to take me to the sofa. We flipped on

the tv and rode the channels to an HBO movie that was

a little steamy. We watched that for a few minutes

and then turned our attention to each other. We made

small talk about the day, and tomorrow. I said I

wanted to do something special for tomorrow night, if

he wanted to be patient with me and the prep.

He knew what I meant. We both felt that, while anal

sex was not always the most pleasant and perfect sex,

it was as close as we could come to really making

natural love with him inside of me. After 2

experiences with it, I was not as afraid of the pain,

as I was the potential mess. But, I quickly changed

the subject.

"Tonight will be a big first for us, our first night

sleeping together. Holding each other as we fall

asleep and share a dream, and waking together to greet

the day with a kiss," I said whimsically.

"Is it as romantic as you make it sound?" Bill

wondered aloud.

"Oh, Bill, don't you think so? I long for the day when

we can wake each morning together. This will be one of

the best nights and mornings of my life! I can't

believe you're not excited," I scolded.

"Oh, I am, I'm just teasing you. It is a chick thing

though, don't you think?" Bill asked.

"Stop it Bill, I know you look forward to it," I said

as I thought he was letting the bubbles get to him. He

had already told me after he made the reservation it

was the one thing he really looked forward to.

He reached out and pulled me to him and we kissed. He

took his glass and gulped it down and looked to me to

take my glass.

"Finished?" he asked.

I swallowed the final bit in my glass and handed it to

him. He put both glasses on the end table and turned

to me and took me in his arms. We hugged and went to a

kiss, but stopped when we saw the lovers on the

screen. It wasn't an X rated movie, but was close. The

girl was topless and obviously had underwear on, the

guy was dressed, but his pants were about a third way

down his butt. But, they were humping in a car trying

to make us believe they were having sex.

"Great special effects, huh?" Bill asked.

"Oh yeah," I replied. "My Dad probably has better

Polaroid's of us than that movie."

Bill turned to me again and this time we kissed

deeply. He pulled me closer and was definitely

affected by the alcohol. He was a romantic kisser, but

this was extra good, nice and slow. He was giving me

hot pants, if I had any on. He slipped a hand into my

robe and held my whole right breast in his hand, and

then squeezed down to the nipple, rolling it between

his thumb and forefinger. He had me ready to go. I was

going to push him back and tell him that we should go

to bed when I looked down. His robe was not open, but

his penis had popped through the opening, almost like

a puppet watching us.

"Oh, look honey," I said. "We must have made too much

noise and woke one of the kids."

Bill looked down and said, "Looks like little Willie

wants to play."

I grabbed his penis and looked up at Bill and said,

"I'll just give him a kiss and hope he gets back to

sleep soon, OK?"

I bent and took his cock on my mouth and took him as

deep as I could, which is not very, and went up and

down about 5 times. The last time I came up I turned

my face up toward his and twisted down so I could run

my tongue under the head, swabbing it over and over.

"There!!" I said straightening up. "That should hold

the little guy until we get settled in bed."

"Oh my God Carree, you are so hot, and turn me on so

much. I could cum in 30 seconds if you kept up. You

are so beautiful and sexy with my dick in your mouth."

he said.

I took him by the hand and we stood up. We walked to

the door, arm and arm, making sure it was locked. Then

we went off to our round bedroom.

Upon arriving and putting on the light we were shocked

to see the bed turned down, with a Hershey Kiss on

each pillow. When we had been on the bed before, we

stayed on top of the spread and never saw the sheets

or pillows. The pillows were a bright pink and the

sheets a deep red satin. The bedspread had been neatly

folded down to the bottom of the bed.

"I hope they didn't see my squirt stains on there yet.

I want to try and clean them up." I said.

"It looks like a different spread, almost, from this

side," Bill said.

"Wasn't the one this afternoon a maroon with gold

designs?" I asked.

"Yes, I'm certain of that." Bill said.

"Well, this one is a deep pink, with no designs. Wow,

they take care of everything. Look, even our clothes

from earlier are laid out on the dressing butler." I

marveled.

I wasn't so sure that I liked someone in our room, but

I did feel pampered.

"Lets get back to the task at hand, Carree. Lets go to

bed," Bill motioned to the turned down sheets.

We slipped in beside each other and luxuriated in the

feeling of the satin and our skin touching each other.

"Do you know how hard it is going to be to resist just

rolling onto you and slipping my cock into your

pussy?" Bill said.

"Took the words right out of my mouth," I said.

"Just a nice gentle slow screw. Oh, to be inside of

you" Bill lamented.

"Well, you can be inside of me, but it hardly seems

like the gentle togetherness of real fucking," I said.

"At least the kind that this atmosphere dictates."

"Maybe not. We couldn't do it tonight, but there are a

couple positions in Kinsey, or maybe Hite that talks

about being close to real vaginal sex." Bill recalled.

"You and those sex manuals. OH WAIT, I know, I know.

They were best selling books and NOT really books

written for little boys to jerk off to, right?

You've told me before. So anyway, what are the

positions, and if I have to be tied up, forget it," I

said trying to be a wise-ass.

"If you don't appreciate the things I learned and

showed you so far . . . ." Bill kidded.

"They've been awesome. What positions?" I questioned.

"After preparation, . .ahem. . . and preferably with a

dilator, like your toy, the woman gets on her stomach,

flat, with her legs together. I straddle your legs and

butt and slide into you, between your cheeks which are

pressed together a bit by my knees. I can't go as deep

and it supposedly feels more natural to you.

The other position is simply to spoon. I think we have

done that, but not from start to finish, we haven't.

But if we'd do it the first way, I bet I wouldn't

stimulate your G-spot as much. I know you love

orgasms, but aren't they a little much every time??

(I was shaking my head YES) It seems you could enjoy

the thrusting longer without interruption." He

explained.

"Well, yes, the preparation is a pain in the . . .

I won't even go there. Let's just say it's an

inconvenience, but worth it. Then I would go to bed

with the plug, huh? That makes sense. You want to

make it easy. If it goes without a hitch, it might be

nice. Granted you won't be laying on top of me, rather

on back of me, but, we could kiss and whisper. It does

sound gentler and sexier than the other. As much as I

like those monster O's, they do take the gentleness

out of the moment. Not that I didn't like those other

times, mind you.

But, I do take exception with your deception when you

just shoved yourself up my butt earlier. . ." I

reminded him.

"Oh, come on, Care, you were ready and were stalling.

I may have been wrong about the preparation, but I was

right about being spontaneous. I could have stuck a

finger up your butt without touching the sides. That's

how much you were open. I would never do anything to

hurt you on purpose, and everything was just right

for that. Tell me you didn't like it. You just wanted

to be in control, and with that kind of sex, you

should be. But, I used my best judgment. If I may add,

you did pass out from the orgasm." He defended.

"Alright, you win that one, it wasn't so bad, you just

startled me. It only hurt for a second, and probably,

ultimately, less than if you did what I asked. It's

one for your side." I conceded. "So, tomorrow, if

everything goes alright, lets get up here earlier than

tonight and do the prep, and I think I prefer to do it

alone (he interjected with an under the breath "that's

not fair") and we can have a nice romantic evening.

What do you mean, "It's not fair," Bill? It's

personal!!"

"Sure it's personal, and so are you to me. Don't you

think I want to be with you and share those feelings?

I can help you with the hard parts. Some of it could

be sexy to do together," Bill whined.

"If you want to do that, you can be with me when I

pass the enemas, too. Is that sexy?" I asked.

"Carree, anything to do with your butt can be sexy,"

he said.

"You are so damn cute, Bill Wilson, I can't believe

you want to watch me shit," I laughed.

"I watched you poop out my cum and fart up a storm,

and I thought that was cute," he defended.

"You win, Bill. You can help me, and, you know what.

You will surely find a way to make it sexy," I gave in

and added, "Another argument that I can't tell anyone

else about, that is just priceless. Enemas, butt

plugs, shit and butt sex. How would I explain that?" I

mused.

We each fell off the elbows we were sitting up on as

we mock battled nose to nose.

"God, I love you," I said.

"Me too," he answered as we kissed.

This kiss was a good one and I could tell Bill was

still amorous. As we cuddled, though, I noticed that

the big erection I had in my mouth a few minutes ago

was gone. Our one on one about today's episode had

distracted him.

The feel of the satin sheets, the feel of his bare

skin against mine, really had me feeling sexy. I

finished my kiss with him and hugged him close

whispering in his ear, "I love you" and let him go, as

I slid down the front of him while we still lay on our

sides together. I kissed his chest and belly in a

straight line as I easily slid down the satin sheets.

In no time I was at his cock.

I put my mouth to it and found it was still semi-soft

and sheathed with his foreskin. I put my lips around

his foreskin and put my tongue in the opening. In no

time I felt the skin pulling back on my mouth as the

plum of his head literally filled my mouth, pushing my

tongue back. It was like he ballooned in my mouth. I

washed my tongue over the head and then took as much

as I could, as deep as I could. I was making no

progress with that. I heard Bill moaning about how

good it felt in my mouth.

I hugged my arms around his upper thighs pulling his

body on its side toward me. Bill got the idea right

away and started to thrust, gently, into my mouth. He

couldn't have been moving more than a couple inches,

as his hip churned lightly toward my mouth.

I held my mouth still with a light suction while he,

literally, fucked my mouth.

What a sexy way to please him with my mouth. I could

never grow tired from this and manufacturing more

saliva was easy, as I didn't have to constantly suck

and breathe through my mouth. I closed my eyes and

dreamed of him fucking my vagina, just like this.

After a few minutes more of this I felt him speeding

up and deepening his stroke a little. I didn't want to

be stuffed with his penis, so I pushed back a little

with my hands. He seemed to get my meaning and stopped

trying to go deeper, but he was going faster. Soon, I

heard him breathing heavier and moaning a little.

He was definitely in an orgasm. I sensed that he knew

I wanted no part of a wild thrashing orgasm with him

punching his penis to the back of my throat. I simply

wanted him to have a nice orgasm, in my mouth where I

could suck on him and swallow and please him . . .till

he could take no more.

I need wait no longer. In his faster paced rhythm he

shot his cum into my mouth still pumping as he had

been for he past few minutes. The big blast of watery

fluid told me he anticipated this for a time, he had

lots of stuff built up. Then he let go with one blast

that went right down my throat in my normal swallow.

It hit the back of my throat and if I wasn't already

getting rid of the former blast, it may have choked

me. The next two pulses of sperm were not shot, but

oozed out. When I had sufficient enough to swallow, I

did. He had been cumming for 30 seconds and had still

not stopped his rhythmic pumping at my mouth. It was

then I decided to use my tongue and lips to suck at

him.

That did it!! He pulled back and grabbed for his

private part.

"Ohhh, what are you doing, trying to bite it off?" he

said.

"Oh, Bill, I would never bite him off. Look at the fun

I would miss," I said as I made one last suck at his

dick.

He jumped away and I pushed my head up above the

covers.

"Oh Bill, that was nice and sensuous. Wow, did I enjoy

that blowjob, I hope you did. It was the sexiest. It

made me wet as hell," I said.

"I wish you wouldn't say "blowjob," it sounds so

cheap, so . . I don't know, like I paid you for it!"

Bill said.

"Oh Bill, don't get attached to words and what you

think they might mean! YOU KNOW I made love to you

just now. It's a blowjob, a suck off, a sucking, a

head job, but because I did it to YOU, have no doubts.

I made love to you, but can't we talk frankly? Do

you want me to cuddle up and ask you if I can perform

fellatio on you?" I said.

"OK, you win this one. I was being silly. It's not

like you talk that way, or I talk that way, in front

of other people. It's just you and me. I want you to

be my perfect little angel. . . and . . you know,"

Bill explained.

"It's just us baby, I just want to be sexy for you," I

cooed.

"And I want to be sexy for you," he said as he climbed

right onto me.

I felt his softening penis right up against my vulva

as he kissed my mouth and opened his to tongue

whatever taste of him I had left there. If he was hard

all I need do was push up at him and he would have

went into me.

He finished his long wet kiss and began his journey

down to my pussy. He made side trips to my breasts,

giving them quite a sucking and chewing. By the time

he got to my pussy my nipples ached to be twisted

again and I took care of that. He stopped abruptly at

his tonguing and laughed.

"I left something here that I thought was yours," he

said.

I felt him use a wide tongue stroke to the right side

of my engorged vulva and he brought his face up to

mine. At then end of his tongue was a white blob of

his cum. It must have leaked out when he was lying

against me.

I stuck out my tongue and he dropped his mouth to

mine, and we played and swapped with the leftover cum.

This was about the sexiest thing I had seen him do,

besides the sex itself. He was such a sexual creature

with no doubts about his own sexuality.

We finished the cum swap and he went back down to

finish what he started. He lapped at every shaved inch

of my pussy, delving as deep as he could with his

tongue. There was no fingering, no licking away from

my vagina. It was just a great big tongue bath for my

pussy, ending with an all out assault on my clit. I

was flowing lots of lube for him to lap up and my

pussy was screaming for release. I began to breathe

heavy and I was climbing to the top of my orgasm. I

couldn't wait to dive off. He moved his head and tried

to drive his tongue into my clitoris, and I went over.

I pushed my mons at his face to feebly try and push

him away. He licked harder. I had my hand on the top

of his head and he tried to force more of his tongue

into me. I needed to get him way from my super

sensitive clit.

"Ohh Bill," I said with a cry in my voice. "Please!!"

I knew saying it that way would get him to relent. He

knew what pleased me, he also knew what made me happy,

he also knew when I had enough.

He stayed underneath the sheets while I turned over to

keep him out of my pussy. Of course, with my butt

cheeks in his face, I knew what came next, he was

kissing and licking them.

"Bill, get you face up here, leave my ass alone," I

said in mock indignation.

He surfaced and we kissed and I could taste myself on

him now. We had swapped sex fluids and tasted each

others love. It was good.

We were exhausted. After we broke the kiss I turned

into a spoon position and we fell asleep like that.

Life was good. What a special feeling to be with the

man I loved, curled in sexual exhaustion.

We slept until I was awakened by sunlight in my face.

I looked around and saw the clock radio on the bed

stand. It said nine forty-five. Wow, that was the

latest I had slept in a long time, at least a year.

I turned over and Bill was in the same position as

when I fell asleep with him in. I suspect I moved away

during the night, as I got hot, being next to him. I

contemplated waking him, but instead just watched him

sleep in our reflection on the ceiling mirror.

I heard the clock in the living room strike 11 times

and I realized I had dozed again. A look up to the

mirror showed me that Bill hadn't moved. I was about

to change that.

The satin sheets made it easy to slide around

undetected. I slid underneath until I was faced with

his shrunken penis. I opened my mouth wide to take as

much of the fat sheathed head of him as I could. I

closed my mouth around him and used my tongue to push

back as much of his foreskin as I could. It was harder

to do without his penis growing. But I did have his

entire head in my mouth, tasting of old sex, yechhh,

with his rolled back foreskin against my lips.

I just lolled the head with my tongue, and wouldn't

you know it, it responded, and he still wasn't awake.

I felt him grow into my mouth, and I sucked a little

on him, hoping to just give him a surprise awakening.

He moved a little and I heard him speak, "Oh Carree,

you are such a sweet little tart. Do you know how many

men dream of being awakened like this? You don't

really want me so early, do you?"

I stuck my head above the sheets and said "I'd have

you anytime, but this was just a wake up, unless you

really want it. It would be fresher and livelier

later, huh?"

"Carree, I would love to have your mouth any and all

the time, you know that. But, we should save our

strength for the big finish tonight. Let's busy up

ourselves so we don't waste the day licking each

other, not that would be a waste. But, you can get

too much of good thing," Bill reasoned.



I told him he was right. Four times, was it, on

Friday? But, just being together was all we needed. We

called down and ordered up breakfast. They told us we

just made the cut-off of 11:30. Orange juice, eggs and

sausages with lots of toast made the morning perfect.

Bill went to the fridge and pulled the rest of the

bottle of champagne out, and we made mimosas to go

with it. The paper came up with breakfast, and Bill

called down for a couple others they might have.

Before we finished breakfast, in our big white robes,

he had the Bergan Record, New York Times, and the

two city tabloids, the News and Post. Bill, the news

junkie, was in his glory.

I just watched him read and pore over every story, it

seemed. He might read one, and then cross reference

back to another, then go back to where he started. I

finished the last of the carafe' of OJ and wished we

had more champagne. We had finished the bottle.

I was ready to shower and get out. It looked beautiful

out the window. Then after that we could laze by the

pool, or maybe go for a walk in a mall again. I wanted

to hook up with Kim today to talk a bit, and we also

wanted to see if we could meet Megan and Jimmy for

dinner. I was hoping they would be back early from the

amusement park today. We couldn't do a nine-thirty

dinner again tonight. Bill reasoned that Jimmy

probably couldn't handle a whole day there anyway,

especially not two in a row.

It was past noon and I thought I remembered Kim saying

that most of them were going on the one o'clock bus. I

rang the HoJos and asked for Megan's room, but her

roommate said she had been gone a while. I tried

Jimmy's room at the Holiday Inn and she answered. We

made small talk and she let me know that Heidi had

been a little lax with her rules with Megan too. She

had spent most of the night with Jimmy, but had to

wake up at her own room.

She said they were going to go on the 1 p.m. bus and

come back on 5 p.m. bus. The sun and the running

around had really taken a toll on Jimmy. He had to use

the wheelchair all night. Then Meg giggled, and said

"Well, most all night."

I said "Good for you, I know how hard it has been to

get alone for such a long time."

"Carree, we mostly cried, but finally had the time to

. . . you know. . .each other. He can't move that well

and . . I can explain later. Let me just tell you. It

was wonderful." Meg said.

I asked her about dinner at 7 o'clock. She went away

and came back saying it would be perfect. I told her

that Bill and I wanted to buy she and Jimmy dinner,

and not to argue about it. We had doubled so many

times, and since the accident we had barely seen them,

besides at he hospital, the rehab or Jimmy's house.

She agreed and was crying. She was so happy Jimmy had

made so much of a recovery from his accident.

So, our day was set. We would be the happy couple all

day. The phone rang and it was housekeeping, wanting

to know when they could get to the room. I told them 2

o'clock, and they said that was fine. They could do

Saturday checkouts first. Now, I needed to budge Mr.

Wilson from his newspapers. He never lifted an

eyebrow when I spoke on the phone with Megan. He

didn't flinch when the phone rang. I had to resort to

drastic actions. I dropped my robe and stood bare-

assed looking out the window.

In 2 seconds I heard, "Carree, you have the most

incredible ass I have ever, or will ever see."

I turned and said "now that I have your attention,

lets take a shower and I'll tell you the plans for the

day, OK?"

"Are we playing in the shower, hon?" he said.

"If you're a good boy, maybe. You might need to save

your strength for later, baby." I said teasing.

"For your ass, honey, I won't need any coaxing," he

assured me.

We got into the shower together and began to wash

ourselves at first. Then Bill put the soap down and

grabbed me to hug from behind. He whispered in my ear

what a great time it had been spending so much time

together, just he and I. We figured previously the

most we had spent was 14 hours together in a row.

He massaged my soapy breasts and worked his hands down

to my vagina. As he slipped a finger into me, he let

go of my back and went down on one knee in front of

me. Soon he had a second finger into my pussy.

Before I had a chance to wonder if he weren't going in

too deep, he was.

If I was physically intact, as far as being a virgin,

I wasn't now. I didn't really know what my hymen was

or how deep it was. For the longest time I was afraid

to touch or find out, and My God, you wouldn't dare

ask anyone (sarcasm here). Actually, I did ask my

mother and she told me that she never had one and

recalled her mother telling her the same. I often

imagined that I did have one and it was deep within

me, 5 or 6 inches. My gynecologist assured me that I

didn't have it a long time ago, but preconceived ideas

die hard.

I was really enjoying having my vagina full with his

fore and middle fingers slippy-sliding in and out of

me when he added a third. As he thrust into me he used

his thumb to jolt my clit a little. I had vaginal

orgasms before from light and shallow finger play, but

he was going for both clitoral and vaginal, it seemed.

His hand thrusting made me make sounds I never made

before, making loud and vocal Oh's, Ahh's, Ho's, all

in my regular voice, just in an excited stage. My

usual sounds were grunts, squeaks, and gut wrenching

noises, but these were less violent sounding.

Was it possible that I was going to have a different

kind of orgasm?

What a wonderful, glorious thing this SEX was.

So many questions are caused and answered by the

experience of its many acts itself. I was headed to an

all-new type of pleasure with his fingers within me.

Apparently he either never suspected or knew right

away that I had no hymen, judging by the way he was

thrusting his fingers into me.

I began to get weak in the knee as my orgasm

approached and backed to the wall of the stall. I was

losing my footing and Bill let me slide to the floor.

My eyes were locked into his, while making my vocal

exclamations, and he knew I was getting something

different. My vagina never felt so full or pleased. My

orgasm was rising within me and it was a new and

different feeling. Sort of like the little satisfying

vaginal orgasms I would get from wiggling my fingertip

in it, but magnified by a lot, a real lot!!

I scared myself with the loud vocal that accompanied

the surge of pleasure within me. It was a series of

loud Ohh's, Ahh's, and calling Bills name, and "oh my

pussy oh my pussy," but the kicker was the volume. I

was sure someone else would call the police or at

least the desk.

With other orgasms my clit would get supersensitive

and I would have to push him away. Since I slid

down to the floor he lost the thumb angle on my clit

and was just thrusting 3 fingers into me, and not

really making direct contact with the little bud. I

would say I was having multiple orgasms, but it never

seemed to end.

Finally the wave ended and I wanted to rest my voice

and kiss the face of this man who was bringing me

these joys. I moved away from him and he let his

fingers fall from me. I sensed he was tired to, at

least his arm.

"I've got my own little amusement park right here,"

Bill whispered to me. "Where does this all come from

Carree? I know how to make you happy, but you just go

over the edge. Your orgasms make me so happy, to know

I'm pleasing you," he said as I caught my breath.

I looked at him through adoring eyes and got to where

I could speak.

"I don't know where it comes from, I really have to

ask my mother if she is . . . I don't know . . . it's

just . . .God, I'm not complaining, although . . haha

. . .the other guests in the hotel might. Ohhhhh! Bill

Wilson you are a menace to my body.

Where do you keep finding this stuff? God, if I knew

you could get that deep I would have given you the

rubber cock."

"My COCK is getting into your pussy before THAT is, at

least it BETTER," Bill protested.

"Don't worry, I have no aspirations for that journey

yet, . . . with the rubber one at least!" I assured

him.

We got to our feet and continued our shower, almost in

slow motion. I told him to save his penis for last.

Once we both got all shined up, our hair washed and

rinsed, I turned and took the soap and lathered.

"Come here, lover boy. I'll show you how I can beat

that meat," I teased as I turned off the now ever

cooling water.

His penis was already hard and, I think, needed some

attention. I ran my lathered hands up and down its

length being careful not to grip it too hard and move

the skin. I wanted the friction on the outside of him,

not with his retracted foreskin. I got a nice swing

going in my arm as I moved behind him and put a hand

on his ass as I stroked his cock. I worked my other

soapy hand down between his cheeks and found his

little butt hole. Previously he had protested when I

went here, except for the time I kissed it for him.

I began to massage his butt hole in the stroke of my

hand on his cock.

As I sensed he was getting close to his orgasm, I

penetrated him. He groaned but went along with me.

Then I began my tease.

"You like MY ass so much, is it OK if I like yours

too? Maybe I want to fuck YOU there?" I said.



He had a worried look on his face.

"Don't worry honey, the toys are mine. I'm just

teasing," I whispered. (There is a limit to my

kinkiness, but he didn't know that, at least then.)

Bill gave me no indication that he didn't like my

finger up there though. I had a mind to look for his

prostrate, but decided to save it for another time. I

would have lost my stroke if I did that now, anyway.

"I'm gonna shoot baby, I'm gonna shoot," he cried out.

"Do you want my mouth, Bill, do you?" I asked in a low

calm voice in his ear.

"Yes, ohh please. Suck me, let me come in your

mouth." He said.

"Can I get a pretty please? Don't let it shoot yet,

because I do want a pretty please," I said as a

teasing bitch.

"Ohh, pretty please, and pretty PLEASE , . . .HURRY"

he pleaded.

I stopped the stroke as I knew one more pump and he

was lost. I bent and fit his cock head into my mouth.

He shot off.

Not 2,3,or 4 volleys, but one good shot, one BIG one.

My mouth was full. I kept it in my mouth but didn't

suck anymore. I put my tongue to the underside of his

penis head and wiggled my tongue just once.

It was more than he could take, and he pulled from me.

"Arghhh, Ohhhhhh" he said as he grabbed his cock to

protect it from me. His cum came running out of my

mouth, down my chin, to my breasts, as I stood up

straight.

I stood there with cum all over me as Bill cowered in

the corner protecting his cock, shuttering every few

seconds.

"Oh, Bill, we make each other cum so good," I panted.

"Geez, look at me," I said.

Bill stood up straight himself and saw me covered with

his cum.

"Wow, I did that! How did you miss it?" he questioned.

"I was saving it in my mouth and you ripped the plug

out," I said acting hurt.

"I know you, you hit my electric spot and THEN, were

going to suck the head. That would have KILLED me,

that's why I jumped!" he said.

"Kill you? I don't think so. It just feels so good you

can't stand it, that's all" I said. "And I know that

feeling really well, G-spot boy."

"Let's get rinsed off and get going," Bill said,

"before we ruin our plans for tonight."

"Rinse off?" I said. "We don't we lick it off?"

"Wow, Care, not that much. I don't mind tasting

myself, but, WOW, that was quite a load," he said.

"Umm, you wanted me to eat it, . . . but that was OK?"

I asked trapping him.

"Ok," he said with a big sigh, "I'll lick it up with

you, but the next time you gush off and I catch a

mouthful, you're going to get it," he said.

"Yewww, no way," I said. "Touche" you made your

point."

"Man, you can be mean sometimes Carree. You swallowing

my cum was never my idea," Bill said seriously.

"Billlll, I was just playing games with you, c'mon." I

whined."How can you say I can be mean?" I pouted.

"But I was serious!" Bill defended.

"The stuff about using your rubber dick on yourself,

or me, and then the thing with me, having to eat my

own cum. I don't expect kidding around in fits of

passion. What if you told me to fuck you in a fit of

passion and I just stuck it up you, and you were

kidding?" he protested.

"Bill, you're being too serious and taking this the

wrong way," I said.

"Are you sure?" he said. "You had me worried there for

a second."

"Bill, who are you talking to?" I asked, as I always

do when he would take things the wrong way with my

eclectic sense of humor and his serious demenaor.

"Carree Kasc, I know," he answered sing-songie.

"Would Carree Kasc treat you that way?" I asked.

He smiled big because he knew I was right, and always

was when he took things too seriously.

"No she wouldn't. You're right. God, I love you." He

answered

We hugged and then got cum all over each other.



"Shit, I hope that water is a little hot," I said as I

realized we had to rinse again.

The water was a little warm and we got the stuff off

of us and then dried off so we could get outside to

start our day. We had a day full of diddly stuff to do

to pass the time before dinner with Meg and Jimmy.

Plus we were both anxious for our night of hot sex

later.

Bill and his sex books, the studies and reports, were

probably the basis for half the stuff he knew, besides

looking at his Dad's videos alone in his room. I'm

sure he fantasized about me a lot. What he read and

saw taught him enough to make me happy.

Tonight we were trying an anal position that was

supposed to feel like vaginal sex, almost, to both

partners. I was willing to try, but I didn't have to

believe it. If we could get to a library today, I

would love to see if he could find The Kinsey Report,

The Hite Report or Masters and Johnson, and show me

some of that stuff. Or, maybe I should just let him

surprise me.

One thing I do know, we had kept our promise not to

risk pregnancy with intercourse, AND had been able to

fully satisfy both of us.

I chalked up our little tiff in the shower to sexual

tension. I think both were thinking ahead to tonight

and our planned liaison.

Maybe that's what made the day go by so fast.

We barely made it back to the Marriott to meet Meg and

Jimmy for dinner.



I had been frustrated all day because things didn't

"happen" for me this morning. Usually I am clockwork

when it comes to my constitutional, but being away

from home, (my Dad always blames strange water), left

me without my morning trip to the john. I was sure at

that point that I had worried myself into this

predicament. I didn't want to do anything tonight,

back there, without some evacuation. The small bottled

enemas we planned on using were more for cleansing the

lower bowel, than evacuation of the system.

After dinner, I was going to have to tell Bill.

Dinner with Jimmy and Meg was just like old times. Not

that we went out to dinner before, but just sitting

and talking. I think we were impressed that Jimmy was

a senior and we were sophomores a couple years ago.

Then he had Math and English problems, where he had to

make up a half year, then the car accident and

suddenly we were all together.

He was only a few months older than Bill and I.

We laughed and had a good time talking, joking and

general carrying on. Meg had been worried that Jimmy

wasn't the same person any more.

But, after a few days out with his friends and getting

back into social circulation, Meg assured me all was

well with them when we talked in the ladies room. She

promised details later.

As we sat and waited for the waiter to bring our

desserts (we had seen them on the cart and saved room

for them, they looked yummy)I got a familiar feeling

and excused myself. Tonight was going to happen after

all.

Everyone at the table thought I had gotten my period

when I made my quick exit to the ladies room. They

made jokes with Bill about the flag going up, not

having to sacrifice another rabbit. Bill was

oblivious, but I just kept my mouth shut and acted

embarrassed.

By 8:30 we were winding down and saying our goodbyes.

Meg wanted us to come over for a drink (Jimmy had a

bottle), but we insisted that we were tired and wanted

to leave early tomorrow. Meg never pushed, because she

thought I was not feeling well because I had just

gotten my period.

We got off the elevator and Bill hadn't stopped

talking about how well Jimmy had recovered.

He finally stopped talking about them for a second as

the door opened and he asked me, "What was the joke I

wasn't a party to downstairs, anyway?"

"You won't believe this," I said. "I hadn't taken a

dump all day and I was afraid I was going to have to

scuttle our plans for tonight. I guess the relaxing

with them, or the coffee, or something, just made

things happen.

The way I got up so quickly and took off, Megan

thought I had just got my period. She told

Jimmy and they both figured you knew."

"Oh, that's what the jokes were, the rabbit and all

that." I was confused. I thought you just had to go to

the bathroom. Silly me.

You hadn't told me that your ship didn't come in this

morning, and to tell you the truth, I hadn't thought

about it." Bill said.

"Well, I didn't want to worry you, or have you asking

me all day," I said. "That would have made me more

nervous all day."

Bill opened the door to the suite and we slipped

inside. Bill went to go about getting undressed and I

stopped him.

"Bill, let's talk about getting ready for this.

I'm serious when I say I would rather be alone, but I

understand you want to help and comfort me. It's not

all that awful and I will be OK alone.

But, if you really want to be a part of it, and want

to be with me, I understand. I suppose if it was you,

I would insist too."

"Carree, there are no kinky ulterior motives. I just

want to be with you and see what you need to do and

want to help you if I can. I'm with you. I love you,

no matter what," Bill said sincerely.

"I know, little honey stick," I said to him, calling

him one of my scores of pet names I had for him.

We went to the bedroom and got undressed and I

collected my bag from the pharmacy, as well as my

ditty bag with my 2 sex toys and lubricants. I went

into the bath boudoir with Bill in tow, arm and arm.

I straddled the bidet to clean myself up proper before

the prep. I think Bill felt a little embarrassed as he

looked away and wouldn't make eye contact.

I told him that if he changed his mind, I would have

no qualms.

He shook his head.

I took the first Fleet bottle from the bag and opened

it and prepared the applicator with a little KY. I

handed him the tube and told him I needed a little on

me too. There was a 3 step stool for getting things

from the bath pantry. It was convenient for me to

kneel on the second step and bend forward for him.

Bill took the hint and presented his finger with a

dollop of the cool jelly to my butt hole.

"Do you want it inside?" He asked, "Or just on the

outside."

"The outside should be fine Bill, I'm not clean inside

right now," I reminded him.

I went to the long, partial padded, marble counter

that ran the most of the length of the room. I think a

part served as a baby changing area, it was padded and

a little curved on the edge. I sat up on it and faced

the wall, tucking my knees up to my chest

as instructed on the bottle.

"I might be the biggest baby ever on this changing

table, but the last time I laid on the floor at the

chalet to get a private place near a toilet, so this

is good. A . . . . well, go ahead," I said with a big

sigh.

Bill came over and began stroking my side to comfort

me. He spoke about how much he loved me and how well

he was going to love me, tonight and every night. He

moved his stroking hand to my buttock and pulled it

apart a little, exposing my private place.

I felt the cold tip of the enema applicator touch me.

I told Bill to put it in a couple inches and squeeze

gently to start it, and then to squash up the bottle

good to get everything out of it. He did as I asked,

and before I knew it he was pulling the tip out of me,

and kissing me.

I turned on the table to run my legs up the wall, to

get my torso up to make sure the fluid went as deep as

it could. After staying that way without saying

anything, I spun my butt to the edge and hopped off.

"Give me ten minutes on your watch Bill. I don't know

if I can hold it that long, but I'll try." I said.

We made small talk and I got towels together for our

showers. I took out the "Little Blue Devil" plug and

washed it with soap and water.

"Amazing how that tip on the bottle was a tight

squeeze and in a few minutes this damn thing (holding

up the blue butt plug) will fit in there without too

much problem, huh?" I said.

"Just as long as we can do it without hurting you.

That's the thing that bothers me the most. IF you have

to endure even a little pain, to me, it is too much.

But, I also realize that a little pain can be a turn-

on, and not in a kinky sort of way. Pain and pleasure

are sensations that are related. This looks like it

would hurt, but I suppose I am bigger than this." Bill

said.

"But," I reminded him, "There is a give to your flesh,

this is as big as it is. But, and don't be mad now,

I've had the whole rubber penis in there, and it was

OK."

Bill picked the white dildo from the bag and looked at

me, a little disturbed.

"You had this whole thing in there? When? Was there a

time I left you that unsatisfied?" he said, a little

edgy.

"No Bill, don't be silly. That's why I have to NOT

tell you some things."

I looked at him with a look of understanding that I

hoped he took the right way.

"The night before our first try at this I used the

blue one to see if I could do it. I wasn't going

to allow you to fail. If it didn't work, I wouldn't

have brought the possibility of butt sex up.

Anyway, the blue one went so easy, I had to know if

you would feel that much bigger. It was only for a

second or two, my mom and dad came home while I did

it, so it wasn't like I had a chance to fall in love.

C'mon Bill. You know I tell you everything that's

important," I explained.

Bill looked at his watch and said it was over 10

minutes. I told him that I had been fighting it off

for a minute or so anyway. I went to go to the commode

and he came with me. DAMN, I felt funny. I sat and he

held my hand. I looked down, almost ashamed to face

him.

"Relax Carree, it's only natural" he said.

I looked up to get a take on his face, but he was

looking away to ease my embarrassment. My expulsion

seemed to be all fluid anyway, with no embarrassing

noises. Once I was sure I was done I pulled on him for

support and moved to the bidet to clean myself.

The second bottle went much as the first after we

wiled away the 15 minutes in between with small talk.

Once complete, I took his hand and we went to the

shower stall. We washed each other without incident.

We clearly were focused on making love in the bed.

We dried each other off and applied any deodorants we

normally used. I gave Bill the lube tube and asked him

to get some inside me. I knelt on the utility steps

once again and he put a little on my asshole and

wiggled and played till he got his lubed finger

in. It hurt like hell, but I said nothing, but my

labored breathing let him know I was not comfortable.

He started putting dollops on and pushing them in, the

best he could. Then he took the tube and put the end

right to my hole and squeezed some in.

"I think that's enough. I don't want so much in there

that I'll urge to expel it before it melts. You know

what I mean?" I asked.

He answered with a quick "umm, hmmm."

I went to the changing counter and got the Blue Devil

saying, "Let's do this right here on the changing

table and not risk getting a mess on the sheets or

anything."

I was nervous about having this toy in me again. I

knew Bill would try to make it as erotic as possible.

I hopped up on the table again and laid on my side,

much as I had done for the

enema.

This time Bill was full of kisses and rubbing and

touching as he bent to hold me, caress me, and make

this as erotic as it should be. He whispered in my ear

all sorts of sweet things while he caressed my

breasts, and played with my nipples. He put his

other hand went down between my legs as I lay away

from him. He had all 4 fingers covering my pussy

stroking it and insinuated his middle finger in the

groove of my labia. That was all I needed to get

flowing and in the mood. He sensed I wanted to get

this part over with and pulled his hand further back

to my butt and anus area. I rolled forward a little to

open up for him a bit. I felt a greased finger

introduce itself and rub, then explore my little hole.

He pushed in a little and I began to relax. I knew he

was moving around behind me and his finger came out

and the cold gel of the introduction end of the plug

was at my door. There was lots of lube on it and he

pushed it right in.

From here on it was just introduction, reduction, and

re-introduction of size and pressure. It started way

smaller than his finger, and the widest part of the

bulb was bigger than Bill.

So, introduction, reduction, and re-introduction of

size and pressure was the way to go.

After about 7 or 8 minutes of this play he was finally

working on getting the fattest part of the bulb past

my big muscle. All the while he was kissing and

caressing me, relaxing me, telling me he was going to

be inside of me.

I grew impatient with the pressure he was creating and

I reached back and put my hand over his and pushed the

final bit in. It settled in and I felt myself opening

up.

"Uhhh, that's done," I said as I rolled to my back on

the changing area and tucked my knees up. He asked if

I was OK.

"Oh yeah, I'm more than OK right now. I feel a lot of

warmth spreading out from that spot. It feels good,

Bill. You did great. Thanks for being so patient."

I didn't tell him that the last push hurt a lot, but

the pain faded quickly.

He smiled and stepped up to kiss me. As he bent I saw

he had a major hard on. He finished his kiss and I

curled a finger to motion him closer. I turned on my

side close to the edge of the table and I was just the

right height to take his penis into my mouth. I did,

and shuttered at the good taste and feel of him in

my mouth. I really loved his penis, its taste, its

texture and how happy it made me. Right then I longed

for him to spray his cum in my mouth so I could taste

him and finish the sensation.

But I knew that was not in the plans tonight.

I took him from my mouth and kissed the tip, as I

looked in Bills eyes.

"Let's go to the living room and make our way to bed,"

I said.

I got up and let my feet hit the floor. I was chilly

and looked

for my robe. That warmed me, although I knew it was a

nervous chill. We went to the living room and tried to

act as casual as we could, but we both knew what was

coming.

The phone rang and that broke the tension. Bill

answered it and I saw him smile, saying, "That would

be quite fine."

"Someone sent a bottle of champagne to us and they

wanted to know if we were here to accept it. Geez, I

hope they know we're underage. I wonder who it's

from?"

We heard the elevator arrive and the accompanying

knock on the door. Bill answered it and came in with a

bucket. I got up to see who sent it. Each step with

the plug in me was more erotic than the next. I found

myself catching my breath more than once with

the sensational feelings in my lower self.

"It's from Kim and Brad. It says "Thanks for

everything, Enjoy. Your pals Brad AND Kim" Why is the

AND capitalized and underlined?" Bill wondered.

"I think it means they are together, they worked

things out, maybe," I said. "I hope so."

"Open it, Bill, I could use a drink right now, ya

know??"

"Something to take and edge off, or something to

intensify a moment?" he asked.

"I'm not sure which, to tell you the truth Bill, but I

know this little thing is magic and has a mind of its

own when I walk," I said.

"I hope I can put more magic in you, baby," he said as

he kissed me.

Bill got the towel, undid the cage over the cork and

managed to pop the top without losing a drop of the

bubbly. He poured a couple glasses and we toasted to a

good evening. For the second time in my life, I was

actually looking forward to being sodomized!

Screwed!

Fucked in my ass!

It seemed so natural, so normal right now, and even

when I think back on it later, I'll feel uncomfortable

about it.

We each downed a couple of flutes of the champagne and

I proclaimed myself ready. Bill stood and offered his

hand. I stood and Bill swept me from my feet into his

arms. His strong arms held me as he whisked me to the

bedroom. His arm supporting my legs pulled on my robe

a little, forcing the plug a little deeper. I had a

whisper of an orgasm as he brought me to our bed.

I hugged and nipped his neck just before he set me

down.

Bill retrieved a bath towel and a couple hand towels

from the pantry and came to me. He put the bath towel

across the exposed red satin sheet approximately where

my mid-section was going to lie. He took the tube of

KY and put that in the one wash towel and set that

aside and put the other towel, destined to hold the

Blue Devil, beside it.

"Are we ready, Carree? Having any second thoughts?

(I was shaking my head "no")

If not, let's begin by showing me your beautiful

body," he said as he extended a hand to help me up so

I could

drop my robe.

I dropped it and did a turn for him.

"You make me feel so beautiful, so special, Bill. I

hope I make you as happy as you make me." I said.

"My God Carree" Bill said with tears forming in his

eyes, "I thank God everyday for you and your being so

breathtakingly beautiful is only a bonus. You make me

deliriously happy!!"

"I hope so," I said as I reached for the tie on his

robe. I pushed it off his shoulders and it fell to the

floor. I sat back on the bed, but the pressure in my

butt was too much. I twisted my torso up and swung to

my knees on the bed. I fell to all fours and looked up

at Bill.

"Feed me your beautiful penis Bill. Let me lick it,

suck it, and make it as hard as it can get. Then you

can fuck me as you wish." I whispered to him.

Bill came to the edge of the bed and I dropped my head

over his cock. His head felt bigger than ever and

tasted delicious. Little drops of anticipation pre-cum

had been on it, I could taste their residue. I lifted

his cock with my right hand and dipped my mouth

down to lick and take his testicles in my mouth, one

at a time.

He groaned as I held each one on my mouth and ran my

tongue around it. I was flushed with passion. I let

him drop from my mouth and looked straight into his

navel. I put my tongue in it and licked. Looking up, I

asked him to turn around. He did.

"Bend over, sweet. Please? For me?" I asked.

I ran my tongue down the crease of his butt and

luxuriated in his manly smell. It was an aphrodisiac

and my nostrils flared. I licked and probed my lover's

asshole with my tongue. He moaned approval, but I was

through here.

"More cock, please," I said as he stood and turned.

Once more I took him into my mouth and took him as

deep as I could. I felt him at the back of my throat.

I remembered reading how to deep throat and wished I

could. I tried to stifle my gag reflex and swallow

him, but it didn't work. I coughed and took him out

for a second. I put the head back in and lolled the

head, until he pulled away.

"I want to fuck you, to make love to you, Carree. Let

me take your ass for mine, and your, pleasure. Let me

show you how much I love you. Give me yourself, your

gorgeous ass that you know I love so much." He said.

I didn't know quite what to say in answer to him,

except to turn on all fours and face the front of the

bed over the towel.

I went to lie down and Bill said,"Just rest your head

on the bed for now. Let me lick your pussy."

I was hoping he would give me some tongue beforehand,

I always long to be eaten by him. With my ass stuck so

far in the air he was able to get at me good and he

was licking and chewing on my vulva and lips. He

settled his tongue into the top of my slot and found

my clit. He sucked and teased at that until I began to

shutter and have little tremors.

He said, "I think we have a lot of those left for the

night, may be we shouldn't waste them so soon."

"Oh please Bill, put me over, just once before you

fuck me," I whined impatiently.

He tipped his head to tongue directly at my clit. As

he did this, he began to pull and play with the Blue

Devil, pulling the bulb up half way and letting it

snap back into me and then rolling it over.

My orgasm was quick and complete. I felt it run from

just beside my butt hole all the way to my chest. It

took my breath for a second and it was gone, leaving

warmies in its path. I slouched and began to fall to

the towel we had waiting for me.

I laid straight out and brought my legs together. I

rested my head on a little of the pillow and had my

hands, fingers out straight, right under my chin.

I felt Bill straddled me with his legs as he knelt on

the bed behind my prone figure. We were about knee to

knee at his point. I felt him take hold of the base of

the plug and begin to work it in and out a little.

After a few minutes of wild anticipation by me he

began to pull it all the way out. I felt the bulb

getting bigger and bigger stretching me more and more.

Then he held it there, leaving the widest part to

dilate me. He let go for a second and it popped back

in.

"Don't do that Bill, it hurts," I cried.

"I'm sorry, are you OK? I didn't know it would do

that. Are you OK?" he asked a little panicked.

"I'm OK, I know it wasn't intentional. Put some more

lube in there now, OK?" I said.

He put more lube around the base and then began to

pull it out again. At the widest point he paused

again, but held it with his hand. He let it stay there

for about a half-minute or more, and then finally he

pulled a little and my muscles pushed it right

out.

"Oooohhhh," I moaned with a certain relief, but also a

certain wanting. "Fill me up Bill," I said in a

growling whisper.

Bill scooted up till his knees were just below the cup

of my butt cheeks.

His cock was directly over my butt hole. He knelt

straight up and I felt one hand with his thumb and

forefinger open my butt halves to show my little hole.

He squirted a big dollop of

cool jelly there. He dropped the tube and took his

cock in his hand.

Still kneeling straight he held that opening with his

fingers and aimed his cock right between them. I know

he wanted to make a good aim, because he was afraid of

sliding off my rosebud and going up my vagina.

(I knew you could do this from my experimenting with

the rubber cock)

I felt his head go right in my ass, I was dilated

good.

I caught my breath and bucked in excitement. "No pain,

no pain, keep going," I urged him.

With the next inch that went into me, it was apparent

that he was just that, in! He removed his hand holding

the notch open, and took his other hand off from his

cock. He leaned forward a little and I knew he was

wiping his hands of the lubricant. He leaned all the

way forward until his mouth was next to my ear.

"I'm fucking my lover, right now, right in her ass,"

he whispered to me.

"Ohhh God, Your hard cock feels so good right now, up

my ass. Lay with me and let me feel you," I said.

He put his weight on me and the last few inches of his

cock were into me. This did feel different that the

other two times I had taken him here. He was not as

deep as the other times, but I now had the sensation

of his cock sliding between my squeezed together

cheeks. It was awesome and a new most erotic feeling.

He was laying with all of his weight on me and his

cock pushed all the way into me. I loved being fucked

by my lover.

He began to stroke in and out just a little to see

what he could do, without getting lost, I think he was

afraid of pulling out on a big backstroke, but he was

doing fine. This DID feel like he was inside of me,

but not exactly in my ass, although I knew WHERE he

was. If this was close to vaginal sex, it was going to

be the best when it happened. Bill was clawing at

something with his foot and I was about to ask him

what when he reached back and got the satin sheet to

pull up over us.

There we were laying together, he inside me, with the

satin

sheets pulled up over us. This is what he wished we

could do the first night together. Bill began to pump

slowly within me at a nice pace. Occasionally I felt

him speed up and begin to go at me. When he did, he

was getting pretty deep. I guess my butt cheeks were

giving in a little to his thrusts. But, for the most

part he was doing me at a nice slower pace that our

usual (if 2 other times can be called usual) pace.

His knees and elbows were able to take just enough of

his weight off of me so I could breath, but there was

enough weight on me to make me know I was being loved,

and being fucked.

I loved being fucked, even this way. We were like two

kids with a new toy. We whispered in each other's ear,

telling each other how good it felt, what to do, how

hard to go, it was special.

In the sheer joy of being penetrated and feeling him

inside of me I almost forgot about my orgasm, but I

felt it creeping up in me.

I began to push back at him a little and I felt my

breath quicken. I began to have little jolts of

pleasure, causing me to catch my breath in my throat,

and these continued for some time.

Then I felt a big wave begin to overtake me. It felt

like one of my G-spot O's, but then again it didn't.

It was definitely devouring me, and suddenly I

couldn't catch a breath, and I was bouncing my butt

back at Bill like a jackhammer. I realized he had

stopped thrusting and was letting me do myself. I

finally gathered a big cleansing chest full of air and

began to pant in rhythm with my thrusts. Another wave

of spasm and orgasm hit me and then quickly left, I

was still.

Bill was still balls deep in my butt, but he was

rested on me as I came down from my high.

"Oh, baby. That was nice. Thanks for letting me ride

it home. God it was good. This is the best you ever

felt inside me." I said, hardly able to contain my

happiness.

"I need to get mine now, OK Care? Are you ready for

me?" Bill

asked.

"Baby, go for it. Fuck me good. Have you ever heard me

say that so much? Fuck me." I moaned at him.

Bill sat up on his elbows a little and began to pump

away at me.

God, he felt good. I know there was a lot of lube

jelly inside me, and he was really slip-sliding pretty

good. I began to click off little jolts of pleasure

when he began to breathe hard in my ear. He really

started slamming me, harder than he had all night.

"Ooooooooooooooo, Ahhhhhhhhhhhhhhh, Baaaabbbbbbyyyyy,"

he wailed in my ear as he got to his orgasm and then

"Ughhhh, Ughhhhh," as he pumped hard over and over.

With each slam another shot of cum entered me, and

then I suppose he just oozed into me back there.

We lay there for 5 minutes, maybe more, without

moving. He began to roll off me and I asked him to

stay in me. He did and I pushed him into a spoon

position. He stayed inside me for a long time.

I woke from my sexual exhaustion and reverie when I

heard the phone ring. I couldn't place where I was or

anything and then heard Bills voice say "Hello?"

The phone was on the shelf in the round bed stand that

wrapped the front end of the bed. Bill was able to

grab it without moving too much. I was trying to

disseminate what he was talking about as I woke and

unclouded myself.

"Oh yeah, Hi." . . . . . "Sort of. Uhhhh watching a

movie." . . ."No, she's sleeping." . . . ."That's what

made us sleep." . . ."We can, that's not a problem." .

. . . "We can do nine." . . ."I will. See you then,

Bye."

Bill flopped his head back down on the bed and rubbed

his eyes. He looked at me and he smiled and talked

softly.



"Hi baby, sorry if that woke you. How are you? (Then

he sighed) God, I love you."

I was still a little away at the moment, but I managed

a smile for Bill. I was back on my stomach, having

rolled there after our spoon "broke" when we fell

asleep.

"Hi lover." I said in a low voice. "I think I'm fine.

I love you too, and a lot more. I've never felt so

satisfied, so happy."

I sighed again and caught my breath to cleans my lungs

and wake a little more.

"What time is it and who was on the phone?"

Bill rolled to my side, pulling the satin sheet up

over our shoulders and resting his head right at my

ear.

"Umm Lemme see, It's 10 o'clock, and that was Kim.

They expected to hear from us about leaving in the

morning. She knew she had awakened me and I said we

were watching a movie and dozed after too much of the

champagne they sent. They wanted to know if we could

get going by 10 tomorrow. I said it wasn't a problem

and we would meet them for breakfast at 9. Is that OK

with you?"

I tried to register everything he said, and thought I

had it all. I thought about our lovemaking and the

fact we hadn't got up yet.

"Do we have a mess here?" I asked. "As much as I hate

to say this, we ought to get up and clean up."

"You stay there, and I'll assess the situation," he

said as he knelt back taking the sheets with him.

"Umm, your ass is still the cutest ever. The towel is

still under you, your ass is still quite amazing, you

leaked some and your ass is still beautiful!" he said

as he leaned over and kissed each cheek on my butt.

"Great assessment, Bill. Help me up?" I asked.

He took the end of the towel under me and brought it

up over my butt like a diaper. He tucked the ends

under me and wrapped the end of the part under my

tummy back. He asked me to roll over and

when I did he scooped me up in his arms, stood up on

the bed, with me in his arms and stepped off the bed

and brought me to the bath boudoir.

He laid me down on the padded changing table section

of the counter where he had prepared me for sex

earlier.

"If I change and powder you, do you promise to be a

good girl and sleep through the night?" He asked me,

trying to joke.

"Depends," I said. "Do you want a good girl, or a bad

one?"

I stretched out on the table and Bill undid the towel.

He took the corners of it and wiped around my crotch.

He said it looked like most of his cum had run out,

but there didn't appear to be any other mess. He did

say the towel was soaked.

I sat up and brought my butt to the edge of the table

and scooted off. My legs were rubbery and Bill caught

me.

"Get me too the toilet, Bill," I asked him, and he led

me the 3 steps where I sat. I had the urge to purge

from back there, but it was mostly air, and I let out

a stream of big farts.

Bill just stood there shaking his head saying, "We'll

have to tweak your diet a little if you want to out go

in public."

His joke eased my embarrassment, but then I let more

air out and a stream of, what felt like, lube jelly

and probably cum. Once I was sure I was done I moved

to the bidet and cleaned up.

"Bill, here's your dream job. Would you look at my

butt hole and make sure it's not red or bruised or

anything? Those are two things that can happen, and

although we didn't have a problem, I just want to

check."

"Gladly," he said smiling. "Step into my office."

I patted myself dry and went over to the changing

counter and bent over it. Bill squatted behind me and

pulled my cheeks apart and looked. He brought his

finger to my hole and said it looked fine, and quite

edible, and did he want me to see if it was sore."

I told him it didn't feel sore, but to introduce his

finger a little. He poked a little around my hole and

I told him, all felt normal. We must have used plenty

of lube and stuff, I had no trauma at all. I stood

back up and turned and held Bill.

"That was the most wonderful sex we have ever shared,

Bill. I can't imagine sex ever getting better. Yet, I

know it will be. I am without words to describe

tonight."

We just stared in each other's eyes and you could have

written a book with the unsaid words our minds said to

each other through our eyes. It was a moment that I

will always remember. We were so close, so tuned in,

never one doubt about our life's together. It was all

there. If we both died right here on the spot, our

life would have been complete and defined.

Bill wrapped his arm around me and we slipped out of

the bath to the living room. We sat on the sofa where

the leftovers of the champagne remained in the ice

bucket.

"Pour me some?" I said to Bill.

"We really did it tonight. You really made love to me.

Not that you didn't before, but tonight was so

physical, so mental, so, almost surreal. By the time

you put your penis into me I was so tuned in to you. I

can't find the words. It never felt like you were in

my ass, you were just in me, in my love. I'm beginning

to sound stupid, because I can't come up with words."

I stumbled.

Bill held his glass up to me for a toast. "Don't try

to put into words what we did tonight. We were

completely tuned into something different than ever

before."

We sat there sipping the wine and thinking about the

experience of the night. Tomorrow was the end of our

"honeymoon." It had been a wonderful few days, getting

to know each other even better. I think we even

learned a little more about our sexual likes and

dislikes. I was surprised at how giving that both of

us were sexually. Making our partner happy was always

number one.

After sipping the rest of the bottle Bill asked if I

was ready for bed. I told him I was ready for

anything.

"Anything?" he asked.

"Anything," I said.

"Well if you really want to get a . . . "personal"

again, we ought to shower, don't you think?" Bill

asked.

"I really don't feel like going through that again.

Umm, would you be mad if I told you to just wash off

your penis?" I asked sheepishly.

"I won't be mad, but you'll have to scrub it for me,"

he said with a big smile.

"C'mon you manipulating pervert, I'll scrub it," I

said with a glint in my eye.

"Ummmmmmm never mind, I think I'll do it myself," he

said as he ran to the bathroom.

I chased him, but was too slow to catch him before he

locked the door. I guess he really didn't trust me to

scrub him up fairly. When he came out I was already in

bed.

We did get each other off one more time before we

slipped away into dreamland. I just had to taste Bill

one more time. We masturbated for each other, but I

wrapped my mouth around his cock head when he came.

There were no complaints.

We fell asleep in each other's arms after making a

wake-up call for 8 a.m.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

I thought that for a couple of 19-year-old high

schoolers, we were pretty mature and sexually

responsible. We both enjoyed sex to the fullest, but

treated each other as lovers and not things.

For as sexually immature we may have been, we both

were inquisitive enough to find answers to our

questions without having to resort to street lessons.

In many ways, we were alike.

Both in our fascination about sex, and our lack of

fear of it, once we discovered our mutual allure. Bill

worked my body like he had an owner's manual.

My girlfriend Jennifer once told me about girls who

squirt, or gush, from a G-spot orgasm. It was

something I had never heard of. Bill found and

manipulated that spot the first chance he had. He knew

of positions and practices that concurred with things

I had read. When two people agree on a subject and the

facts surrounding it, your fears are allayed. That was

a big part of our awakening.

The fact that I was very orgasmic made Bill a more

confident lover. He KNEW I was being pleased, A LOT!

My own sexual desire for him, and his penis, was

brought out by the fact that HE was shy to bring up

the subject. I found out what he wouldn't show me

when I saw Kim's X-rated video at Megs house. That

opened up my mind, as well as my mouth.

The young girl we saw in that video was in love with

her partner and had no qualms about taking him in her

mouth. I knew I loved my man as much as that, once he

proved he was a man. I looked beyond the physical act

of oral sex and swallowing semen, to the act of love

that it is. When we desired something sexually, we

were not afraid to ask each other, or to experiment.

The thing that made all of this easy was, we loved and

trusted each other. Even when we were innocent kids

who weren't sure what to do with our genitalia, we

still loved and trusted each other and had a goal of

being together forever, very early on.

- - - - - - - - - - - - -

Our First Getaway from college
- - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

The final few days leading up to our departure to

college was supposed to be a sex filled romp that

would hold us over until we saw each other again. Ha,

think again!

The details of life and love are totally different

than those of life and school as you prepare to leave

home for the first time. So many people you had to

see, so many details you had to attend to. Not to

mention, packing, deciding what to bring, and what not

to bring.

Turning your life's switch from "care free, fun and

love filled," to "student, first semester, scared as

hell," took both hands and all the strength you could

muster.

As we got down to the final days of our summer it

became increasingly obvious that we were not going to

be able to make up for future lost time filling our

cups from each others sex fonts. "Too busy" became the

mantra of each cancelled meeting.

In the end, at our last late night phone conversation,

we decided that since our Upstate New York schools

were only 72 miles apart we could meet on the first

Sunday before classes to say our official goodbyes.

(Read -sex) Later, we were to find that there was a

reason that freshmen students were summoned on the

Wednesday before classes were to start, and those 5

days were still not going to be enough time to adjust

to campus life, and life with new roommates;

The roommates of which you had no choosing.

I was to live in a suite style dorm room. There were 3

small rooms and one larger common area. In the common

area we could share refrigerator, stereo and the few

pieces of furniture they provided. My roommates were

to be Henny and Maria.

I asked upon our first meeting if "Henny" was short

for Henrietta, I was given a cold, "No - guess again."

I never ventured another guess, but by the end of the

first weekend, I heard the same question asked, and

same answer given about 100 times. You would have

thought she would have a better answer than that. She

acted like it was a stupid question, but I didn't

think it was. Although it was a little thing, she was

off on the wrong foot with me.

Just before my first Residence Life Council meeting,

on Saturday night, I had to make a call to Bill and

tell him that our planned meeting on Sunday would be

impossible, unless he could make the trip all the way

Upstate. There was no way I was going to be able to

rent a car and drive the halfway to meet him. Bill had

given me $50 and a phone number to rent a car for just

such a liaison. Freshmen were not allowed to have a

car on campus. Bill thought the rented car would give

me transportation to see him, as well as a way to get

any last minute odds and ends I might need.

His good intentions were for naught. It seemed that

both our campuses made it impossible to find free time

for any such high jinx. I had spent all of Saturday

scouting down, and waiting in lines for, my books for

the first day of classes.

When I got back to my room Henny was reading a campus

guide and without looking up said;

"Karen, a boy called and left a message for you to

call him. I lost the number, sorry. In the future,

please try to have an answering machine pick up your

calls."

I stopped for a second to see if Henny was trying to

be funny, or snotty. I was in the mood for neither. I

couldn't decide whether to take her snottiness, or to

confront it now. The pressure of being away from Bill

and home got the best of me.

"Well, fuck you too, Henny Penny. My name is Carree,

and you know it is. It's on the fucking door. There

are just 3 of us behind that goddamn door and looking

out for each other shouldn't be all that hard. Taking

a phone message shouldn't kill you; I would have done

it for you, or anyone under these new circumstances.

If you had left the phone to ring more than 5 times,

it would have picked up itself, and how could you have

lost the number, I bet you haven't left the room," I

said in an even voiced mini-tirade.

"Listen blondie," she countered. "If you think I'm

going to be your booking agent for every guy you want

to meet or date, you're wrong. I didn't have a pen and

by the time I found one, I forgot it. With your looks,

I don't imagine you'll have to wait long for another

call."

I wanted to rip her face off, but that wasn't me. I

decided to take the high road and take the blame for

getting off on the wrong foot.

"Listen Henny, I called you a name, you called me one.

Let's end it right here. We should be able to get

along. I'll look after your calls if you're not here,

if you can do the same for Maria and I.

So, One might sense you have an issue with my being

blonde and want to stereo type me. THAT, is stupid.

Also, I'll only have one caller, which will be Bill,

my future husband. He goes to school about 75 miles

from here and if we remain roommates for more than few

weeks, you'll meet him.

If we have a problem, let's get it out in the open

now. I don't know what I possible could have done to

cause you to treat me like I am some burden on you,"

I said, as I put all my cards on the table.

"I'm sorry for being so rotten, but MY boyfriend

hasn't called me yet and I'm here 3 days now. He's not

away at school, he's at home, and I sense NOT missing

me. He's the best friend I have. I don't have the

blonde hair, the big boobs, the confidant air that you

do, to get another lover so easy," Henny sort of

apologized.

"Well Henny, you would think that I flaunted myself or

my situation, and I haven't." I started in. "We've

barely talked." I concluded, and then continued.

"If what you perceive as my "confidant air" offends

you, I am sorry. But, I must tell you, I am scared

shitless and about as far from confidant as possible.

The only thing I have that is sure is my relationship

with my fiance. The fact that you lost his number

pisses me off, but does not deter or diminish that

confidence. We are forever. So if the fact that your

boyfriend hasn't called has made you think that

breaking me up with mine will make you feel better,

try again. Like I said, we are forever. Take my phone,

call your boyfriend on my dime, and ask him why he

hasn't called you. When you get the answer, you will

know and maybe you won't be so pissy. THEN maybe we

can get off on the right foot and we can become

friends, as long as we are going to live together."

That said, I turned, handed her my phone, went into my

cubicle and closed the door.

I knew Bill would call me back, and I suspected that

he was going to tell me the same thing I was going to

tell him, that is was too hectic to get away. My

asking him to drive all the way here would be selfish,

and if he did come, I don't know when he and I would

have time together, besides the evening, and I didn't

want him getting back to his campus dorm late. His

classes began Monday morning as well.

I had about a half hour to relax before my next pre

planned "freshman welcome" event put on by the Student

Life Dept. I was chosen to take part in a program to

help other frosh with problems. It was a 4-year thing

of helping students get along with campus life. Those

in the fourth year of the program were indoctrinating

potential new members. We were chosen from personality

profiles that were taken at orientation. I wasn't in

love with being picked, and could have turned it down,

but the Residence Life guide from orientation weekend

said it cold open a lot of other doors for you.

So, I would try it.

I had just lay back on the hardest bed I would ever

sleep on and I heard a knock on the window. It was may

other roommate, Maria.

Maria was a thin, dark haired Brooklyn Italian girl

who clicked with me when we roomed on Orientation

Weekend. We had hoped to be paired for the year and

made the request when we mailed our registration forms

in. Our pairing showed the good sense it was to attend

the orientation. We both missed boyfriends that

weekend, we both were in committed relationships, and

we were 2 peas in a pod in many ways.

There would be few conflicts with us.

I opened the blinds to answer her knock.

"Is Henny still here, still in a lousy mood, waiting

for the phone to ring?" she asked.

"Yes, and I assume you had a run in with her, too. I

just used more swear words than I had said in 4 years

of high school, all in just one sentence with her.

She's taking her boyfriends inattentiveness out on us,

I guess," I said.

"I gave her my phone and told her to call on my dime,

but I don't know if she will. The least she can do is

sit in her own room. She's out in the common room, and

I sure as hell don't want to sit out there with her,

if all she is going to do is piss and moan."

"Tell you what," Maria said, "I'll come in, and you

and I can both try to get her off the dime to call

him, or forget about it for now."

"It's worth a try," I said, "I'll meet you in there

in a second."

I shut the window and gave Maria 10 seconds to go

through the main door. We both opened the common room

together, and Maria shouted out.

"That's it Henny, your roommates are sick of you

moping. Let's call the boyfriend and get his story

before he drives you nuts and makes the 3 of us crazy.

How can 3 girls have fun on this campus if one of us

is miserable?"

Henny sat up startled, at first mad, then she smiled.

"I guess I've been a real cunt to the two of you. I'm

really sorry. My relationship can be a pain in the

ass, and I knew he could do this. God only knows what

he might be up to. We don't have a big commitment to

each other in that way."

Maria blushed. "Henny, I swear a little and don't care

if you do, but that "C" word is just not one I like,

it's really demeaning to women in general. I'm no

activist, but please refrain from that one word, OK?"

"Ditto from here," I added.

"Geez, sorry. I guess it is a little rough, and I

don't really use it that much, only to describe the

kind of female I have been today." Henny said, and

smiled and cocked her head, saying, "Do you really

think I should call him? I WOULD freak him out."

"Sure, go ahead, it wouldn't hurt. Tell him you're the

only girl in the dorm not to hear from her guy," Maria

said.

Henny laughed, "He said he wouldn't call until the

goodbye sex wore off. Maybe it hasn't."

"It's been 4 days Henny, no girl is that good, unless

you have special talents," Maria said. "Call him and

tell him it wore off you. Make him worry a little."

I was a little surprised at Maria saying that to

Henny, but apparently she liked the idea, she was

dialing the phone. We heard her ask for Nick, and she

flushed when someone picked up. I motioned Maria to my

room and let Henny have her privacy.

We sat on the bed and shook hands; glad we nipped a

problem in the bud.

"Hello sex is better than goodbye sex, any way" Maria

confided. "I didn't see Jack for 5 minutes in my last

3 days home, he was so busy getting ready too. I don't

think I'll see him until Columbus Day or something,

but the phone will have to do."

"It is a hard time to have a commitment, when you know

you'll be apart. Sex is he last thing I worry about,

well not the last thing," I laughed, "But, you know

just seeing him, holding him, talking to him, you

know, sharing the wavelengths. He makes me whole," I

said.

"Oh, that's so nice a sentiment," Maria said. "Jack

and I are a lot like that. I just wish he were a bit

less serious at times. He forgets we are still kids,

at heart."

"Bill can be serious too, and almost too much. But, he

does open up. When we're alone we have so much fun." I

said, blushing as soon as I said it.

"I didn't mean that kind of alone, not that he's not

fun then. Oh' hell. You know what I mean Maria." I

said trying to stop from getting any deeper into our

personal stuff.

There was a knock on the door, it was Henny, and she

wanted to talk.

"Well, I'm glad I called. I guess my phone doesn't

work, he tried to call," she said. " I got this from

his roommate, and he says he is on his way up here.

It's only about 3 hours. I think he wants to stay the

night. I should tell you guys that he and I are in no

big love affair; we've just been handy to each other.

He's a great guy, sort of like a brother I never had,

ummm. . . that I sleep with."

"Whoa, slow down," Maria said. "As far as rules, I

don't know anything about overnight guests. I think

it's OK. As far as I'm concerned, I just want him out

of here in the morning so I can get showered and

everything. Come on, this is our room. Our bathroom is

off the common room; it's going to be real hard to

have guests. Do we all agree, and don't be afraid to

speak your minds. I'll go along with a majority."

"Umm, this is going to be tough," I said. "I would

like Bill to be able to stay here from time to time,

but most times when he comes, I hope we can get a

room. You know, maybe we can plan around the others

going home or getting a room. But, if the 3 of us are

here, boyfriends will have to be off limits for the

most part. I think that's only fair."



"Yeah, I fully understand. I would never think of

having him here in the morning, unless you guys were

gone and I was going to be alone. I like my privacy,

too. He, or any other guy who stays, will have to get

out during the night, or very early in the morning. I

think that's fair," Henny said.

"Well," Maria began, "I'll go along with it this

weekend Henny, sort of a test, like. But, yes, he does

have to be out early. I like my privacy."

As Maria finished, my phone rang. It was Bill. As I

suspected, his coming to see me, or me going halfway

to meet him, was going to be out this weekend. We

both bit off more than we could chew thinking we could

prepare for school and see each other.

"Each other" was not a problem and didn't need any

work. The school part was where we needed to

concentrate. We made no bones about the fact we would

miss each other this weekend.

The pressure of school was already a burden on our

relationship. We would be testing how strong we were

as a couple.

I went to my Residence Life Facilitator training

seminar, Maria scouted out for more books, and Henny

went in search of the women's sports director. Women's

Soccer and Field Hockey were looking for walk-ons and

she wanted to sign up. I asked her to get any Track

info for me. Hopefully I could a least work out with

the team and be a second for some events, at least

enough to keep me in shape. I liked this better than

any exercise class or self-induced physical regimen.

Doing it as a team member made it much easier for me

to stay in shape. I knew I was not kidding myself to

think I was really good enough to compete on a week-

to-week basis with the real athletes. I was fairly

quick afoot and had decent stamina. The only thing I

lacked was that real sports competitive edge. The best

thing about the running was that it kept my legs and

my butt firm, my belly flat, and my shoulders and

upper back from slouching, thus keeping my breasts up

and out there. I wanted Bills plate to be full, and he

kept in shape for me. We had both given each other

gold medals for OUR marathons.

We finished our meeting at Residence Life about 8:45

and as we left the meeting hall, there was a sticky

note on the meeting room doors little peek window,

"Carree, meet Maria at Newman Quad, called 8:30."

I went out to check with the "go-fer and pointer" who

worked that hall, but she apparently left her post

sometime after the call. Who could blame her, sitting

there all day showing freshman where to go and what to

do.

I rushed over to the Newman Quad and there sat Maria

with 2 piles of books and a forlorn look on her face.

"Carree, thank God you made it. Can you help me with

these? I feel so stupid. My art classes required so

many books and workbooks! I had no idea. While I was

waiting in lines and putting together the pile I had a

little cart they let me take, but then they told me I

couldn't leave the building with it. I tried to carry

them, but I only made it this far, and there was a

phone here. Do you hate me?" Maria said, near tears,

it seemed.

I laughed at her frustration. "What were you going to

do if I didn't show up?" I asked.

"I don't know. Unbutton my blouse a few buttons and

roll my waist up a few inches to show some leg I

guess," she laughed.



"I'm surprised some guy hasn't come along to offer

help without all that," I said.

"Everyone else is buried in books too," she said.

"Matter of fact, a guy said he had to come by here

around 9 and if I was still here, he would help. Can

you please help me Carree?" Maria was exasperated and

embarrassed.

We divvied up the pile into 2 loads and made our way

back to our dorm. She couldn't found a place further

from our room to call and wait for me. We were just

about 500 yards from "home" when we came upon Henny

and Nick, her boyfriend. They were walking toward the

same building from the other direction.

We saw Henny point and Nick ran ahead to meet us.

"Hen says you're her roomies and need some help. Let

me take those." Nick said in a voice that would have

melted butter. He was a dream.

"I can't let you take all of them," Maria said.

'You're so nice to help."

Nick looked Maria in the eye and you could see he was

melting her defenses right away. This guy was a hound,

and had all the moves, looks, voice and demeanor to

pull it off.

"I wasn't negotiating," Nick said.

"I can take them, it's not a problem."

With that, he knelt and put the books from Maria's

arms on a knee, arranging them from biggest to

smallest, using the smaller ones to make a square

load, and then he disarmed me with his eyes.

"Now yours, angel" he said as I bent to let him take

them from me one at a time. He built one large square

load on his knee, and then hefted them up.

"I'll meet you at the door of the building," he said

as he hurried with his large load in tow.

Henny was just catching up to us.

"Isn't he a dreamboat, and he's like that naturally,

without trying," Henny said.

"Henny, he IS a dish, and you say he's like a brother

to you?" Maria said.

The 3 of us turned to walk up and meet Nick at the

door as Henny spoke.

"We were in daycare together as babies and every grade

in school. He's had girlfriends, and I've had

boyfriends and when we are in between, besides always

being friends, we sleep together. I know it's weird.

It's probably why I never can keep a boyfriend for a

long time. They feel threatened. But any girl who

wants him, has to accept me too. We're friends. We'll

always be friends," Henny said as she stopped to make

a point with us.

"Umm, don't get the wrong idea. If he has a

girlfriend, or me a boyfriend, or anything, we don't

"do it" then. We aren't swingers or anything. Nothing

weird like that. I know it's a strange relationship.

I'll explain more as we get to know each other, OK?"

Henny said.

Maria and I didn't know what to make of Henny and her

arrangement, but I knew Nick was a hunk, and he looked

like the type to be sniffing butt holes and humping

legs, in a dog sense. (That's so unfair for me to

categorize like that, but that's what it reminds me

of) But, his looks and whole package were disarming.

Henny was good looking in a frumpy-sexy sort of way.

She certainly would have no problem finding a guy to

be interested in her. But Nick, here was a guy who

could have most any girl he wanted. My own first

impression said he and Henny were in love and just too

jaded by the "friendship" thing to come to grips with

it.

We got to the door of our Hall and Nick sat patiently

waiting for us. I think he went so swiftly ahead to be

sure Henny had a chance to explain a little about

them.

"Nick, thank's so much for bailing me out," Maria

said. "My name is Maria," she said as she shook hands.

Henny piped up, "And this is Carree. She's the one who

let me use her phone when I found mine was dead."

Nick turned and took my hand to shake it, and his

eyes, oh my god, those eyes, just unraveled me.

"So nice to meet you Carree." Nick said, "Hen said her

roommates were special, but I had no idea," as he

picked up the load of books to go with the load of

crap he just shoveled.

We got inside the common room and Nick was pointed to

Maria's door and he set the books on her bed. We each

went to our rooms and left Nick alone in the common as

we freshened up. Maria and I may have seen Nick as a

hound, but we made sure we looked good for him. Ahh,

vanity.

Soon the four of us were sitting in the common room

chit-chatting about school and life's experiences.

Nick was going to Community college back home and

planned to join Henny here at the SUNY school with the

lesser expensive CC credits he needed to get started

on his major. All the while we talked Henny snuggled

close to Nick and you could see she was either really

missing him, homesick, or horny. It may very well have

been all three. I was pretty well convinced that the 2

of them were just afraid to commit to each other. I've

had guy friends who were special and so very close,

like Jerry Bennett, who I went all through all grades

of school with, but the thought of sleeping with them

was not an option.

"I don't know about the rest of you, but I am starved"

Maria said, "And the last meal is served at Frazier

Hall at 9:55, if you aren't in line by then, sorry, no

food. We have 20 minutes to get there."

"You and Carree go ahead," Henny said, not waiting to

find if I was hungry too."Nick and I just shared a

pizza he brought from home in his van. It was cold,

but it was home."

I was a little affamato, but not starved, but was

willing to let them have time alone. Knowing Nick had

a van, I kind of knew where he would sleep once he

left Henny's bed.

Maria and I went to Frazier and had a bountiful dinner

of salad and Jell-O. We would have had more, but it

was all that was left. As the school year went on,

they had more and more food left over each day, as

students began to grow weary of college food. But

tonight, the pickings were slim.

After our sumptuous dinner we strolled back to our

dorm stopping at 2 frosh parties on campus. Both

parties had signs up telling where the booze parties,

off campus, were. As tempting as it sounded, tonight

was to be an early night for me, and Maria as well.

With just Sunday to prepare for our first full week of

classes, a hangover was not in the mix, plus my drink

of choice was champagne. Those keg parties were pretty

much champagne free.

As we let ourselves into our room it was dark. We put

on the lights and saw Henny's door was closed. We were

not sure whether to assume they were in there, it was

only 11:15, or were checking out parties on or off

campus. We put on the tv to catch the end of the news

and SNL. We whispered back and forth deciding whether

we were alone, or if dirty deeds were quietly being

done behind Henny's door. I reminded Maria that it was

none of our business, but it didn't keep me from

wondering.

By midnight I was nodding off and caught Maria doing

the same. I told her "goodnight" and went off to my

room, closing the door after visiting the community

john. I heard Maria turn off the tv and saw the light

go out in the common room and heard her door click

shut. In the stone silence of the room, I heard loud

whispering from the other side of Henny's wall. It was

hard to make out what was being said, but in a few

minutes there was no doubt what they were doing.

That night, assuming, they had already "done it" once

before we got back, Henny got her self good and fucked

at least 2 more times. It's hard to believe I could

have slept through one of them, but I was that tired.

Henny was as loud as I am when I cum at the end of

Bills tongue, and she made no effort to stifle it.

Nick kept giving her loud shushes, but she apparently

had little or no control. I assume the last time I

heard Henny, she was on her knees, getting it from

behind, with her hands on my wall. She was announcing

her orgasm, almost in my ear. Needless to say, it made

me horny to hear the sex from the other side. I missed

Bill and this was going to have to do.

She was not listening to Nick when he was shushing

her, nor did she care. My fingers were deep in my

pussy, while my other thumb and forefinger milked my

clit. I came quietly, much as I did at home, when I

was alone in my room. Trying not to get excited and

influenced by their screwing was impossible. I was

tense and I missed Bill already.

By the time I came the second time on Henny's third

screw, I was wishing to have Bills cock to play with

and suck on. To feel that hard cock in my mouth as it

shot its load to the back of my throat was what I was

wishing for.

I worried for a second that my craving made me a

pervert, but I realized that it was only Bill I

craved. For a split second I thought of myself with

Nick, and as hunky, and as much as he made my loins

ache earlier with just his eyes and smile, the thought

of anyone else's penis but Bills made me chill.

I missed, not just A penis, but Bills, and the way

Bill loved me. To be sure, the image of 2 people

screwing on the other side of my wall made me hot, and

got me to orgasm.

But it was Bill that I wanted. My second orgasm,

caused by Henny almost shouting sexual cheers in my

ear, my third overall, wore me to a frazzle and I

drifted off into deep sleep.

I heard some noises a few hours later in the common

room that woke me. As deep a sleep as my finger play

had gotten me into, sleeping in a strange bed kept my

senses wary. I cleared my head and realized it was

Nick leaving. A glance at my clock told me it was 5:15

a.m. I was glad Nick had enough common sense and

decency to be gone when we all got up.

I heard them argue a little, with Nick saying he

definitely had to go, and Henny wanting him to stay

longer. God, hadn't she had enough? Then I heard the

door swing open and then close, followed by the outer

door to our Hall, both open and close.

I just closed my eyes when I heard our door open and

close again and the outer door do the same. My

interest was piqued.

I parted 2 slats of the Venetians and saw Henny, in

pajamas, running to Nick, who was no more than 100

feet from the door. They embraced and kissed for a

long time. Apparently Henny was not going to see him

for a while, and frankly, if Bill had to leave in the

middle of the night, I wouldn't want him to go either.

What happened next made me feel like the dirty voyeur,

but I couldn't turn away.

Henny broke her kiss with Nick, and in the pre dawn

light I saw her squat down and unzip his jeans. Henny

looked around to make sure no one was else was

stirring (who stirs at 5:15 in the morning?) She drew

out his penis and proceeded to give him a blowjob

right there in between the Halls.

I wondered if she was going to finish him right there,

but then she stood and turned around, lowering her

bottoms and bending over.

Nick, still fully dressed, with only his cock out,

slammed into her pussy, but Henny was quiet this time,

realizing that waking the Quad to see her screwing

just might be embarrassing.

Nick came in about 20 seconds, obviously primed by her

sucking. Henny went from a bend to a squat, and I

assume she was letting Nick's cum run out of her. He

went to the front of her and she took his penis back

in her mouth, apparently cleaning it for the ride

home.

She finished doing that and Nick stuffed it back in

his pants, while she continued to squat. Nick reached

into his pocket and took out a napkin, or his

handkerchief and handed it to her. She wiped herself

and pulled up her bottoms and kissed Nick again.

They hugged and he was on his way. She stood, with

arms folded in the cool morning air just before the

sun broke the horizon, waving goodbye to her friend.

She walked, albeit a little funny, back up to the Hall

entrance. Through my open window I could hear keys

jiggling in her hand, and her humming a song of

contentment.

In a way, I was astonished at what I saw, in a way I

was jealous. I was happy for Henny. She was the most

homesick of the 3 of us, the most insecure of the

three.

But she knew that she was the one who was satiated the

most right now. She was the first to get off with her

guy at school and face the first week of school with a

smile on her face. I had another orgasm in her honor.

In the morning I was the first up about 10:30 and

Maria followed about a half hour later. We made some

small talk and she finally got a shit-eating grin on

her face and asked:

"Did their cavorting keep you awake last night? If

not, you must sleep like the dead. Apparently she

doesn't care who hears her. Wow, it was quite a show."

"Oh Yeah, I heard them. God Bless her. It was quite

inspirational." I said.

"Believe me, I know what you mean. I miss Jack too."

Maria intimated.

"You didn't happen to see them when they left together

this morning, did you?" Maria asked.

I was embarrassed to say that I spied.

"No, I didn't. I figured he left early, why?"

"She did him again, outside, not fifty yards away from

the building. I couldn't fully see both of them, all

of the time, from my window, but it was obvious what

was going on. I looked out when I heard her leave

about 10 seconds after he did," Maria said.

"Well," I said, "One of us will be in a good mood

today. God, I miss Bill, but the inspiration was

welcome last night," I admitted.

"Yes, we can be naughty little creatures can't we,"

Maria said agreeing with me.

Frazier didn't open until noon for breakfast (I'm

sorry, back home we call that LUNCH), so I decided to

shower, but just as I was going in Maria passed me.

Now we had 2 stalls, but I wasn't ready for community

nudity yet. I realized that some days it was going to

be unavoidable. But, today, I let Maria finish. When

she was done I went in took my shower, with Maria

agreeing to wait and go to Frazier with me.

I was halfway through my shower when Henny paraded in

to shower herself.

"Hi Carree. Umm, sorry if we got a little loud last

night, I really needed it. I won't be seeing him for a

while. So . . . . . Hey, nice shave job! You go

baldie for your boyfriend, or do it for your self?"

Henny asked, giving my nude body the once over.

"Ah . . Um . .It's for both of us," I said

uncomfortably as I turned away.

"Hey, don't go shy on me, Carree. Living together like

this, we have to get used to it. Nothing is private.

You're beautiful and have nothing to be ashamed of,"

Henny paused, then added. "I say nothing is private

because, . . Nick said you were watching us screw in

the Quad this morning. He saw the blinds part. Don't

be embarrassed. If I cared I wouldn't have done it

outside."

I was stunned and embarrassed, almost to tears.

"I am so sorry, Henny. I just looked out to make sure

everything was OK, and then one thing led to another

and . . ."

"Don't sweat it, Carree. I needed a good dicking, and

I got it. I don't do those things with every guy I go

out with, just Nick. He's special. Please understand,

I'm no slut or whore." Henny defended herself.

I was still uncomfortable. "I can't judge you Henny,

and I don't." I said. "What you two did was private,

and I was a bad person to keep looking. I even denied

it to Maria, who also saw you. So, lets just drop it,

OK?"

There was a long pause as Henny thought about our

words, standing there in the nude watching my backside

as I spoke.

"Thanks Carree," Henny said. She paused a long time

and I turned to hear the rest of what I knew she

wanted to say.

"Thanks for not judging me, and letting it drop with

Maria. I appreciate it. It was one of the few times I

didn't feel guilty about sex, up until Nick said you

were peeking. Now, it all feels good again."

I smiled at her, "Take a shower and come to breakfast

with us, OK?"

She smiled and said "Sure!"

I finished my shower and met Maria in the common room

and asked her to wait for Henny, too. We all went to

breakfast and the incident was never brought up again.

Nick came and stayed over one other time before

Columbus Day. Maria and I went to a party that night

and stayed out until 3 a.m. When we got back, all

as quiet in Henny's room and in the morning, when we

got up, Nick was gone and no one heard a thing, except

the walls.

I had not seen Bill since August 31st, the Wednesday

before Labor Day. It was now October 7th and we had

our first break for, of all things, Columbus Day. We

had classes on Labor Day and get Columbus Day off.

Go figure New York State schools!

All of the plans Bill and I had made, to get together

on weekends from time to time were dashed by studies

and Bills internship with Time, Inc. Using the school

computers he was able to get pieces to edit, and was

submitting "Campus Life" articles, which was a monthly

feature, and "Youth in America" articles, a twice

monthly feature. He hadn't been published yet, but

felt he was close. He was excited that the critiquing

of his pieces had gotten less and less negative and

more positive. He had one "contributing to" credit in

the magazine, and I missed it at the newsstand. I

ferreted it out of the library to make sure I had it

to show him that I had seen it. He was so proud.

The whole week leading up to Friday the 7th I cringed

every time the phone rang, in fear it was Bill

canceling again. I know he missed me like crazy. We

had phone sex a couple times, and he told me about all

the times he was frustrated and horny, missing me,

jerking off.

My story about Henny in the Quad got him off as well

as it did me. But we needed the real thing. He called

on Thursday night as promised. I held my breath not

wanting to hear a change in plans, but he said,

"I've got a surprise for you!!"

The sound of his voice had me hot, but his words made

me hotter.

"I just got off the phone from 3 phone calls. Number

one, I talked to your mom and Dad and said I was going

to bring you home for the weekend, and they need not

bother coming for you. I will deliver you early

Saturday afternoon. I spoke to my mom and Dad and told

them to expect me Saturday afternoon. Then I also

spoke to a real nice hotel in Syracuse and told them

that we would be arriving in the early evening on

Friday for a nice stay in their honeymoon suite, and

would be returning on Monday night in a regular room

with a king size bed.

Since your first class isn't until 11:00 on Monday,

and mine isn't until noon, we can leave at 7 on

Monday and get you to school in plenty of time, and I

can do the same. But, that's 2 whole nights alone,

just you and me. What do you think?"

"Oh Bill, I have my hands in my pants already. I NEED

you so bad right now. We can never go this long again.

It's not just the sex; it's just seeing YOU. God, I

need to hold you! (I was starting to cry) I need to

hear your voice, to feel your skin against mine, and

then, IT'S THE SEX!! But I don't want anyone but you.

Ever since I saw Henny in the Quad with her boyfriend,

I have ached for you," I said.

Bill paused at my words and said, "I thought you made

that story up, just to get me hot and we could do it

on the phone together!"

"No, I couldn't make something like that up. It

happened!! It made you as hot as it did me. We did it

on the phone when I was telling you; imagine what I

was doing when I watched them. But, I need you now.

You can take me now, Bill. I don't want to wait till

we are married." I admitted.

"Carree, think about what you're saying. You know I

would love to be inside you, inside your pussy, making

you happy, making me happy. But, we've waited this

long, let's keep waiting making it as special as it

should be. Plus, you never know the consequences. I

got a note from Jerry Bennett, and Julie is pregnant.

He wants your email, but I told him we would see him

this weekend. Julie's prep school may not let her

carry to term at school. The only thing saving her is

that she's a second year student. But, she still may

have to leave before the semester finishes. They are

screwed," Bill said.

Bills words grounded me, and took me out of my horny

little dream. Jerry Bennett was my oldest pal in

school. Julie was a year older and went to a 2 year

Prep school to get ready for a Law degree. What would

happen to her plans now, . . their plans now?

I didn't know Julie all that well, but I knew Jerry

was playing in his band almost every weekend to help

save money for his own college. He confided that they

would get married after his fourth year and then work

while she got her Masters. All their plans were shot

to shit, unless she did something about the baby, and

I doubted Jerry would let that happen. I left Bill

with a long pause on the phone.

"Oh shit, Bill. That's awful. In the paper mom sent me

about the Columbus Day Parade, Jerry's band is playing

at The Aud on Sunday. I'm looking forward to hearing

them and seeing him. Damn, this can't be true, can it?

I asked.



"That's what he told me Tuesday night and in my mind,

I was so proud, that we had been so good, Care. We

don't have to do it to make love. God, you know I want

to. But this one is hitting home. I wasn't even going

to tell you until we were home. Come on, let's be the

hot virgins, we know we can make each other hot and

happy." Bill told me.

"Oh, I know you're right, and now I really know you're

right. I probably would have changed my mind anyway,"

I said.

"Yeah, you big tease!" Bill kidded, always finding

away to make me smile.

"Let's cut this call short and save some bucks, and

I'll see you after your last class on Friday, 3:20

right? Be packed and ready to go! I love you, madly,"

Bill said.

"Oh, I love you even "madly-er." Take THAT you English

Lit major. Work on putting fuck in the dictionary, I

expect to use it a lot times on Friday night, OK?

Yes, 3:20 is the end of my last class. Follow the

signs to Hall Hall. I'll be looking for you," I

finished.

"Goodbye, my sweet," he said as he hung the phone up.

I went to bed that night knowing that the next night I

would be wrapped around Bill, feeling him, tasting

him, him tasting me. I wasn't sure if I wanted to fool

with the butt-sex, it would be nice, but you always

run the risk of being sore or uncomfortable the next

day. So far, I had been pretty lucky. Bill had packed

the toys with his stuff when we left. I insisted he

take them, I didn't want to be tempted to use them on

myself when I was alone.

If he brought them tomorrow, I guess it would mean

that he wanted to get in me, uhh . . . Back there.

We have to come up with a sexier name that anal sex,

butt-sex or up the ass. Those names all sound so dirty

and tawdry. It can be so beautiful. Yes, it is messy

to prepare and can have some embarrassing

consequences, but we have mostly followed all the

rules and not had a problem when we did it. The one

time we didn't follow the rules, we paid with, as Bill

called it, unpleasantness. As long as I was with Bill,

it made no difference. I could just hug him and hold

him and I'm sure I would orgasm and float through the

weekend. Every person should feel this much love at

least once in his or her lives.

My alarm was set an hour early so I could have time to

pack in the morning. Nick was coming to get Henny and

Maria's Jack was flying into Syracuse and driving up

to spend the long weekend in our dorm. If we timed it

right, and it would be close, everyone would meet

everyone by 3:30 tomorrow. Faces would go with all the

names we had used in our conversations with our loves.

I slept like a hibernating bear on Thursday night. My

lover was coming to rescue me.

Friday's classes flew by in a complete turnaround of

what I expected. I was sure it would be the longest

day of my life. My English Prof asked my permission

for her to read my paper I had done on Life in New

York State.

We each had to draw subjects from a hat and submit

composition that would make the reader want to go out

of his way to find additional information on your

random subject. When I got it, I hated it because it

seemed so "high school," but she said mine was the

only one that intrigued her and wanted to show

examples in my style. As much as I was proud, I was

embarrassed. It felt like high school. The other 2

classes I had, a Lit appreciation class that I

stumbled into to fill my credits has turned to be a

great class, and finally my art class. Art is

something where I feel I have a bit of talent, but the

prof really knows how to make you feel good about

yourself and brings a lot out of you. I can draw

still life pretty well. I don't know where this will

lead me, but I am keeping my major open. Today we

mostly talked and "appreciated" each others work. It

was only a couple minutes after 3 when he told us to

bag the day, and enjoy the weekend. I think I did a

sprint across campus to get to Hall Hall. (If your

name was Hall, shouldn't you be exempt from having

them name a Hall after you. It's like Street Street)

I couldn't wait to get in my room, change into clean

clothes and move my stuff outside to wait for Bill. I

opened the door to the common room and there sat

Maria, and I assume her friend Jack, Henny and Nick,

and in the corner, BILL.

I looked at everyone as an unending smile crossed my

face. I looked again at Bill, and without a word ran

and jumped in his arms. I never held him so tight as I

did then.

I never knew how much I missed him. To hold him, smell

him, feel the warmth from his body.

"On my God, Oh my God, Oh my God, I missed you!!" I

whispered in his ear so low only he could hear. I was

crying, and I would not let go. How a man could have

that effect on me was beyond my wildest dream. His

gripped hug across my back loosened, but I would not

relent. I waited so long for this.

"Carree, I'm here, you're here, and everything is

perfect. I'm not going anywhere. Introduce me to your

friends" Bill whispered to me.

I let Bill go, and I realized I was all wet-eyed and

red faced, embarrassed I had made a scene, but I

really didn't care.

"I'm sorry, everyone. You probably already know, this

is Bill, and I really love him a lot. This is Maria,

and I assume John, Henny, and Nick" I said.

Maria and John stood up and Maria said "Carree, this

is John, but we always use Jack. When I talk about him

if he is not around I always say John, I don't know

why, but he's my Jack," Maria said as she hugged him.



I extended my hand and we shook hands. Jack was quite

handsome and sort of rugged looking, maybe an athlete.

He and Maria looked like the cover of a fitness

magazine.

Henny stood up and hugged Maria and then me. "It is so

great to finally meet the guys you have been talking

about these first couple months up here in God's

country. I'm the only one to have a visitor here so

far and I was beginning to wonder if Jack and Bill

existed," Henny chuckled.

Dreamboat Nick stood up and said "I knew girls as

pretty as the both of you had to have boyfriends, no

matter what Henny says. Hey, I hate to be the party

spoiler here, but Hen, we should get rolling. Your mom

said she would hold dinner till 7 o'clock unless she

heard otherwise. If we leave now, we should make it

OK."

"Nick doesn't get home cooked meals at his frat, so my

Mom is it for him" Henny said. "Umm, Nicks parents

split up and his mom moved away, and his Dad lives

at the VA home, he's got big time medical problems.

It's a long story."

I had wondered why if Nick was "home," he lived in the

frat, I guess that explained it all. I'm sure Henny

would let more of his story out as we got to know each

other. But, for now, Bill was anxious to get a move on

too.

"Yeah, babydoll, let's get your stuff out to the car

and we can head out too. It was nice to meet each of

you; I think I've heard all the stories. Carree likes

to fill me in." Bill said.

I think each couple wanted to get out and be alone

with each other. There was a tension that can only be

broken when you finally get alone. With Henny and

Nick, it was hard to tell which one of them was the

one who wouldn't admit to really being in love with

the other, while both denied it. There were times when

Henny acted the part, and other times Nick. They were

a good couple and I hoped they both admitted their

love to each other. They couldn't be just friends. No

way.

I imagine Maria and John, . . .er Jack, were going to

be spending the bulk of time in the room after we

left. They wouldn't be together again until Christmas,

for sure.

Bill and I piled each other up with my things and we

trekked to his car. I don't think I shut up for the

next ten minutes, telling Bill how much I missed him

and what I had done that day. Nervous energy had to be

expended if I was going to have to sit in the car for

a little over 2 hours to Syracuse.

Once the car was loaded and I got in the front seat, I

scooted over and hugged Bill again and kissed him over

and over. I didn't want to neck, because I would have

to have him right here, and I wanted to wait until we

got situated in our room. Bill finally got me to move

over so he had room to drive the unfamiliar road. We

talked about everything in our lives for the whole 2

hours and that made the time go by in a whisper.

We were just pulling to a stop in the Hotel parking

lot when I cuddled up to Bill and asked him, "Did you

bring our toys. Do you want to get that frisky, doing

it in my . . . umm "back there," or are we going be

tame this time and just love each other like crazy?" I

said kissing his lips.

"I have a little preparation kit for anal, if you want

to use it, Carree." Bill said as he sat back. He

turned in the seat and hugged and squeezed me. "I want

so much to be inside of you Carree. But, only if you

feel OK and everything is right. Believe me, just

holding you all night would be enough. I love you so

much."

Bill hadn't shown a lot of emotion ever since I first

saw him back at the dorm. I knew he had something on

his mind, and I feared it was school or internship

related. I didn't want something weighing on his mind.

He finally spilled.

"Ever since you said you wanted to give it up for us

last night on the phone, I've thought about being

inside you Care. I know, and you know that can't

happen yet. The risks are too great. I think the fact

we put so much emphasis on it makes it harder to

ignore. But, I love you so much, I just want to do it

as much as you. This other way, this way seems so

nasty . . . I don't know. So, . . . dear God, I can't

even think of a word. But, when we actually do it, it

is so beautiful. I'm just afraid that when we do it,

that you . . .you think."

"Bill stop!" I interrupted. "I go through the same

things with it, but it is right for us, and I do want

it to, and I don't think anything bad about you or us

when it happens. God, we've spent too much time away

from each other, I think. We used to talk about these

things so free and easy. Even alone in my bed last

night, thinking about our possibilities this weekend,

I struggled with this same thing. Remember, whatever

we do, as long as we both go along, is OK. We talk, we

communicate. We need to get back into our own little

world. Remember we have seen each other almost

everyday for the past, what, 8 years? Now, for the

past 3 years we have become real intimate lovers, and

again, seeing each other almost everyday. Except now,

we are ONE, Bill. That hasn't changed." I implored to

him.

"No, Carree, that hasn't changed, we ARE one. I guess

I let too much of the world into my life in the past

few months. I have to let go of some of that and make

more room for you. Anything we do is right, baby. As

long as we are together, that's all that counts. I'm

already beginning to think like we did last summer at

the Six Flags Marriott. What an incredible time that

was. No man could experience that much love with any

woman, except you Carree." Bill finished as he leant

over and kissed me, hot and deep.

"Come on, I want to show you off, lets go check in

together, Mrs. Wilson." Bill said so proudly.

"Right behind you Mr. Wilson," I said as I slid out

Bills door right behind him.

We could be so serious, so silly, or so sexy all in a

minute's time. As we strutted into the lobby of the

Hotel I felt eyes looking at us, and I knew they were

all envious of the obvious love we shared, arm and

arm, giggling and laughing. From the corner of my eye

it seemed every shard of light caught in my ring and

sent a glitter off of us. I was so proud to be with my

Bill.

We checked in and made a wake up call, or actually a

do not disturb call, for one o'clock. That was the

latest we wanted to leave, so he made sure the maid

service knew to do our room as one of the last.

We went to the car and got our things. I forgot to

pack a one-night bag like Bill did, so I had to bring

both my bags up. Bill said he better get a good tip

for the extra work. I told him not to worry; he

would be tipped just fine. Ha Ha.

To get to the suites, you had to ride an escalator to

the concourse and then take a special elevator that

only went to the top floor of the building. When the

door finally opened on the elevator we only saw four

doors for the whole floor. Bill thought some of suites

or penthouses on the floor below must have had lofts

that took up space on our floor. When he opened the

door to our suite, we saw it was huge, no matter what.

It was more opulent than the last place we had. There

was champagne cooling in a bucket (I guess the

drinking laws don't pertain to newlyweds in honeymoon

suites. By reserving as Mr. and Mrs., they must assume

you are legal age), a huge bath boudoir, 3 bedrooms,

one a large round bed with a mirror, a four poster

with canopy and, of course, a waterbed. It included a

decent size kitchen and bar. We hadn't finished our

own little tour when a knock came to the door.

Upon opening the door a waiter wheeled in a cart with

shrimp cocktails, and various little hot and cold

snacks.

"Compliments of the management, Mr. and Mrs. Wilson.

Our best wishes." Said the waiter.



Bill tipped him and turned to me, a little red-faced.

"I guess I told them we just got married when I made

the reservations. Uhh, pretty cool, right?"

"Yeah, pretty cool lover boy. If a violinist shows up,

mid orgasm, to play the anniversary waltz, I'm outta

here," I joked.

"Let me lock and chain the door and we can make our

night a "clothing optional" affair. How does that

sound?" Bill said.

I crossed my hands and grabbed the bottom of my

sweater and whisked it over my head. I think I gave

him an answer for his question.

Bill turned from the door and saw me in my bra and

slacks and smiled. He came up to me and kissed me

lightly on the lips and turned me around, wrapping his

arms just under my breasts.

"Oh, how I've waited to hold you, Carree," he said as

he found the front snap on my brassiere and let my

breasts free. His crossed hands slid up, held and

fondled them. His voice was breaking as he whispered

to me.

"Carree, you are the most beautiful woman on earth and

I thank God everyday for bringing you to me. But, I

have missed you so, so much." His hug intensified as I

brought my head back to lie on his shoulder and let

him hug me tighter.

"Shhh, Bill. No words." I said. "None are needed. Your

touch, your body against mine is all I need to know

how you feel. Lets get out of our clothes and take a

shower and wash, touch, and taste each other. Does

that sound good?" I asked.

Bills hand fell to the snap of my slacks and he slid

his hand down over my stomach to the very top of my

vagina. As he tongued my neck he touched my clit.

"You better stop me now," Bill said, "Otherwise we'll

be on the carpet here in a second."

"Don't think that doesn't sound good either," I said

as I pulled away from him.

"But, I'd rather be on the shower floor where we can

slide round without carpet burns" I said while

swishing my hips towards the bath boudoir. Bill was

close behind.

The bath was huge with many lights and mirrors

strategically placed around the room. There were 2

make -up tables, like you would see back-stage at a

theatre, with the little round lights around them, and

a long counter that ran 12 feet or better. It had

little set-ups of soaps and towels, make-up, wipes and

tissues, and at the end, a long roll of a plastic wrap

with netting in it. It was a gown saver. It explained

how to roll it out on this counter and how to lay your

wedding gown into it, and wrap it. I closed my eyes

and dreamed of the day. Bill caught my little daydream

and kissed the back of my neck.

"Penny for your thoughts" he said.

"Ask me to marry you everyday, OK? I love how great I

feel when I keep saying yes," I told him.

He laughed. His smile and his eyes were all I needed

to know that I was asked again.

I reached out and started to unbutton his shirt, but

he stepped away.

"Let me watch you finish while you watch me," he said

while his eyes glued to my body, and mine to his.

We stripped off each piece of clothing and then stood

before each other at about 6 feet or so apart. He

motioned for me to twirl, and I did.

"You have got the most beautiful bottom, most gorgeous

ass, in the universe. I could stand here and cum

without touching myself, just looking at it" he said.

"Penny for YOUR thoughts," I said giggling as I looked

at his erect penis, the skin already retracted back

past the beautiful head. I wanted it in my mouth right

then, but promised myself to restrain until we got

into the shower.

Bill took my hand and walked me to the shower, and

what a huge shower it was.

Three shower heads in a round glass and mirror

cylinder. Bill went in and turned on 2 of the heads

and then extended a hand to me. There were pull bars

and handles on the walls that I was sure weren't there

for the handicapped. We hugged under the flow of one

of the showers.

"Three shower heads," I said. "Is this going to make

me extra clean?"

"I only put on two of them, I want you to be a little

dirty," Bill said with a grin.

"You are a nasty man," I said, "and I wouldn't want

you any other way."

I pushed Bill back so his head went into the spray and

he got his hair wet, and he pulled me under too. We

hugged and danced around under the water of the 2

sprays. Finally I saw the soap dish and grabbed a bar

and unwrapped it. I began to soap Bills chest. Once it

was good and sudsy, I hugged my breasts to him and

backed away. He then used the suds to wash me. This

was going to be fun.

It didn't take long before we got to genitals and butt

holes, and that certainly made things interesting. I

took the shampoo sample and poured some onto Bills

hand, and he to mine. We lathered each other's hair

until the soap began to run into our eyes. Then we

washed our own hair in earnest so we could move on. We

each took a shower spray for rinsing and Bill was done

before me. He wasted no time.

I felt a hand come up between my legs and a long

finger go right up my pussy. I wanted to duck away

from the sexual rush I felt, but I was still rinsing

soap. His finger went right up behind my clit, and I

know he wanted to hit my special spot.

Once the soap was gone I was able to open my eyes and

see he was kneeling down behind me and his hand was

palm forward with the pad of his middle finger right

behind my button. He used his other hand on my back to

show me to bend over.

As soon as I did his tongue was at my butt hole and I

was sucking breaths trying to allay the too good, too

soon feelings.

Just as my breath became caught in my throat, Bill

stopped his fingering and put his arms around my hips

and pulled me back off my feet right on top of him.

Here both sprays were hitting us and he maneuvered

around so his face was right under my pussy in a 69

position. He didn't need an invitation to assault my

vagina from top to bottom with his tongue. While my

back was arched in ecstasy, I knew what he had for me

below.

There was the beautiful penis I had missed for the

past couple months. Although I am no deep throater, I

wedged as much as I could into my mouth and to the

breach of my throat, just to where I had to fight the

gag, and then I sucked it right to the tip. As he

lapped and tried to get his tongue into my pussy, I

tried to polish the head of that tasty cock with my

tongue. He snaked his left thumb behind my clit and

attacked my pussy with his tongue. I would have to

give up his cock in a moment to make sure I didn't

bite him during my orgasm.

"Ughhh, Urghhh, Urghhh" I grunted while I stroked his

cock, my orgasm hitting hard, but then Bill relented.

He licked the length of my pussy again and kissed my

little butt, then asked me to hold on while he rolled

over.

Now he was on top and had more control. He dove right

into my pussy and then slid a finger at the top of my

slot behind my clit, leaving enough room for his

tongue.

I put his cock into my mouth and before I could start

to move on him he began gentle thrusting. I was being

fingered, licked and mouth fucked at the same time. I

wasn't going to last long.

My G-spot orgasms really knock me out and I squirt

pretty well when they are intense. I thought these

were going to be extra intense, I was almost afraid of

passing out, as I had done before. I climbed the

ladder on this big O, very fast and lingered at the

top ready to dive off for a count of 5 or 10. I was

without breath or even a grunt for that moment,

then . . .URGHHHHHHHH.

I felt the blood run from my head and I thought I was

going to pass out but I forced my lungs full again

through my nose and around the cock in my mouth. Bills

gentle thrusting never wavered a bit and made sure he

was not choking me or forcing himself down my throat.

My orgasm was his goal and he was right to the task. I

was sure he could coax a few more from me, but I

wanted him to get his.

Before I could take control of sucking him though, he

drilled once again into my clit and pushed from behind

it to get my spot.

One Mississippi, two Mississippi, three Mississippi, I

thought to myself timing my breathing and then,

"URGHHHHHHHH." I came with a vengeance again, and this

time with a long hard squirt that must have caught

Bill right in the face. Playing in the spray of the

shower, he must have barely felt it, but he must have

tasted it. I knew one more would send me to black out;

I had to roll from under him.

My move from under him was a violent one, but drastic

times require drastic measures.

"Oh God Bill, are you trying to KILL me? That was so

awesome, but you're going to make me pass out," I said

as I panted like I had just ran 4 miles.



Bill was puffing too as he had stayed in position on

his knees and elbow as if I were still under him in

the spray. He sat back on his knees and haunches and

grinned at me.

"I had to make sure you had the orgasm you've wanted

for the past 2 months, didn't I? Was it worth the

wait?"

"Oooo you could add up all the cums I had at school

together, alone in bed thinking about you, and they

wouldn't equal that one. But I don't want to wait

that long again," I said as I crawled on just my

elbows in the spray until I was looking straight into

his genitals.

His low hanging balls and erect cock were right in

front of my face. I pushed myself up a little on my

elbows to get an angle to sink his cock into my mouth.

I dropped my head over it and moved my jaw up and

down, taking about 3 or 4 inches in and out with a

steady rhythm. I could have done little things to make

this sexier, I thought about licking at his sack and

tickling the underside of his cock head with my tongue

tip. But, I was selfish; I wanted his cum in my mouth

and belly, now.

I don't think I made more than 10 or 15 pumps with my

mouth before he began to lose control and coo at me.

"Carree, Carree, I'm gonna cum, you're gonna make me

cum, Oooo, Oooo, Ohhh, hut Mmmmmmmmmmmmm Ahhh."

My mouth filled with a watery shot and then pulse

after pulse of semen. I kept swallowing to avoid

choking as at least 3 shots hit the back of my throat.

It seems I can never get ready for those. Then he

continued to pulse cum into my mouth as I swallowed.

It seemed like 5 minutes I sucked at the head of his

cock, although I know it was probably just 15 or 20

seconds.

He was shuddering and I knew he would have to push me

away. He was already all chicken skinned. I pushed as

much of his softening penis into my mouth as I could

and formed a tight O for the trip back up. It slipped

from my mouth with a loud kiss and a final pulse of

cum to my tongue and lips.

I don't love the taste, but it is definitely Bill, and

I love swallowing him like that. It's my love

communion. To know I brought him off with my mouth, in

my mouth, is so personal, so sexy. I'll never grow

tired of this act. Can anything be more personal than

mouth to genital sex for either of us?

I sat back on my haunches in a mirror image of he. I

smiled at him, and he at me.

"God, I miss you," we said in unison and he knee

walked to me and crushed his face to mine tasting the

drops of semen left on my lips as we kissed.

Our kiss was long and deep as we held each other.

Finally it was becoming apparent that the water had

lost its warmness and we broke the kiss for Bill to

get up and turn off the sprays.

"I hope this room has its own hot water tank. If not,

my apologies to the rest of the guests." Then he

laughed uncontrollably at his feeble joke.

I laughed too, but at him more than anything.

We got out of the shower module and began drying off

as Bill searched for robes.

"These places always have those big oversized terry

robes," he said as he opened a mirrored pantry.

"And here they are!" he said as he pulled one from its

hanger.

"For you milady," he said as he opened it and held it

for me.

Then he slipped into the other and we went arm and arm

into the living room. The city skyline was more

pronounced now that the sun was almost down and as we

stepped up to look at it, we saw there was a Jacuzzi

in the floor where you stepped up to the terrace to

see the view. We hadn't got that far in our

uncontrolled horny state earlier.

"Even this dumpy city is pretty when you're with the

one you love, looking over it like this," Bill said.

I just held Bill tighter to show my agreement.

"How about shrimp and champagne, Care? Sound good?"

Bill said.



"Sounds wonderful, can we do them in the Jacuzzi?" I

suggested.

"Why not?" he said as he left my side to go and

prepare our opulent feast.

I found the controls on the Jacuzzi tub and got it

going. It was amazingly quiet after all of the outdoor

models I had heard. This was going to be really nice.

I knelt to feel the jets, and the water coming out was

warm and although the standing water was not what you

would call cold, the whole tub would be quite warm in

no time. I found a defoamer, added that and watched

the swirling water.

As Bill began to walk from the bar area with a tray, I

dropped my robe and stepped down the steps of the tub

to pick my corner.

"How am I supposed to keep my mind on anything when

you drop your robe, Carree?" Bill said as he stopped

in his tracks to watch me descend into the tub.

"Do you mean that you're going to spend the rest of

your life with a hard-on if I walk around nude?" I

asked.

"Carree, frigging statues will have hard-ons if you

walk around nude." Bill said.

"You fail to realize that you have a perfect body, one

that Playboy and Penthouse magazines would drool to

have in its pages. It's not that I view you as just an

object, but I guess I just can't believe that you're

going to be my wife AND you're so beautiful." Bill

added.

Bills words flattered me and made me blush. I rarely

dressed to show off my body, although I knew it was in

good shape. Later on in life I would find I easily

could make money modeling bathing suits, but I would

never consider nude sittings. All of my photos have

been shot outside, on location, to be true to the

resorts and agencies I write for, and only for those

agencies and resorts.

Bill set the tray down beside the tub on a lip

specifically made for such things. He picked up the

bottle and popped the cork and began to pour into the

flutes he had put on the tray.

He stood and was just about to drop his robe when he

winked at me and ran to our room. He came back with

our little blue anal toy and a tube of colored gel.

He smiled at me and said, "Just in case we get so

inclined for a little play."

"Geez Bill," I said, "we should have done the rest of

the prep things before we came out here and had food

and drinks."

That wiped the smile off his face. I was sorry I had

said something, I could have just let things progress

along, although we would have to stop somewhere along

the line, and I would rather not do it after eating.

"Oh Shit, you're right. Lets just forget about it for

tonight, we can catch up to it in the morning or when

we come back. I don't want to ruin this moment" Bill

said, a little dejected but not totally bummed.

"No, Bill. I really was looking forward to being extra

naughty and having you stuffed up inside me. It's been

2 months since I saw you and even longer since we did

this. Lets cut our losses. Put the shrimp back in the

fridge, put the hot things in the oven and lets bring

the wine you poured into the boudoir." I suggested.

"Damn, I was going to skip the hot things so we could

be together faster. I'll put them in the oven on real

low, and leave the champagne in the ice bucket" he

said.

"See," I said as I was getting out of the Jacuzzi, "we

can make it work. I'll make you smile again, you pouty

little brat."

"Pouty little brat? I don't think I would be calling

the person who's going to be putting things up your

butt any names right away, missy! Remember I was the

one who was willing to wait." Bill whined.

"I saw that look on your face." I said as he handed me

a towel. "It was a pout!. . . and you wouldn't really

do anything to hurt my cute little butt would you?" I

said with a naughty smile.

"Never, I love that butt," he said as he gave it a

playful crack. "Well, I might give it a little

spanking."

I turned my bottom away from him and pulled my robe up

over my shoulders.

"Forget about that, you dirty college boy. I'm not

into spankings," I said as I picked up my bubbly and

headed to the bath boudoir.

Bill came in right behind me and went to a bag he had

on the counter. He pulled out 2 Fleet enema bottles

and a spare tube of lube gel. He also had some baby-

wipes that I had mentioned the last time might be nice

to have. He's so damn thoughtful.

Bill crooked his finger and motioned me over to the

counter. As I got there I told him that this was the

part I hated and I just wanted to get it over with.

"It doesn't have to be so bad" he said as he slipped

my robe off my shoulders and spread it on the counter.



I went to bend over it and he said to sit instead. He

shucked off his robe and sat beside me and handed me

my champagne back.

He held up his glass and said, "Cheers! To my wife,

who I love more than anything."

We sipped our wine and smooched like a couple nervous

kids on a first date.

He definitely had me relaxing, and on the empty

stomach, my wine was going right to my head, one of

the things I loved about champagne.

"You wouldn't want to wait until Monday night anyway

Billy, there won't be a bidet in a regular room, and I

like the bidet. It makes me feel cleaner," I said.

"You called me Billy. Are you just being cute or are

the bubbles hitting the gray matter?" he asked.

"I'm always cute Bill, so it must have been the

bubbles," I said with a giggle.

I hopped down from the counter and got in front of

Bill spreading his legs to stand in between them. He

was already getting hard again. I put my head to his

chest, hugging him.

"I love you Bill. Someday I want to give you myself,

my vagina, my pussy, no matter how you want to say it,

to have and make love to, and I can love you back

and maybe even have a family. Until then we have this.

I need you inside me. Let's start." I said as I gave

him one more squeeze and then a kiss right on his

chin.

There was a little step stool under the counter and I

pulled it out, stood on it and bent over the counter

with my butt in the air. I heard Bill fiddle with the

packaging.

"OK baby, Ohhhh you have such a cute ass, . . . . a

little cool gel coming babe," he said as I spiked up a

little as the coolness hit my most private place.

He didn't play or poke, he just laid on a dollop of

gel. A second later, I felt the tip of the little

enema bottle, with more gel on it, go inside me. The

thin tip was not much of an intrusion, but it did burn

a little at first.

"It's OK baby" I said giving Bill the go ahead.

Bill squeezed the bottle gently and I felt the water

enter me, and after about half was in, he squeezed

hard to empty it. I groaned, but was glad to have it

over.

He slid the tip from me and I stood up on the step

stool.

"Pour me a little more champagne and put 5 minutes on

the timer," I said.

There was an infrared light timer on the wall beside

the shower and he set that. He then took my glass and

went to the bar to check on the hot food and pour me a

little more. I sat back up on the counter and turned

to let my legs walk up the wall.



I don't know if being upside down help the Fleet work,

but I wanted it to be thorough. By the time Bill came

back I was just turning back upright.

"Here" he said as he handed me the flute, "lets take a

quick tour of the rest of the suite" as he offered his

arm.

We were quiet and said little as we looked in each

bedroom. He asked me where I wanted to sleep that

night, but my mind was beginning to be consumed by

keeping the fluid in me.

"Ask me later, I'm trying to concentrate on other

things right now, and we better get back in here," I

said as I turned him towards the boudoir again.

Just as we went into the bath we heard the timer stop

and the infrared lights go out. I eased over to the

toilet and sat down.



"This is so embarrassing Bill" I said as I let go. He

just stood beside me and stroked my hair.

"Don't be embarrassed," he comforted me. "I would be

embarrassed if you were hiding in here alone doing it.

We are together for the rest of our lives. This is

nothing."

I flushed the john, pointed my finger to the bidet and

he took my elbow to lead me. He went to get the second

bottle ready as I ministered to myself.

Half done, Bill had made it a lot easier and more

pleasant. I never would have thought I would allow

anyone, even Bill, be with me while I did THAT. But I

guess this is different. I dried myself a little,

careful not to rub too much, and went back over to the

step stool and took my position. Bill reached around

me and hugged, kissing my back and giving my nipples a

little tweak. We kissed and whispered to each other

until we were satisfied 15 minutes had passed between

enemas.

"I love you Carree. You look like a lamb going to

slaughter. This is your idea, honey. We can stop."

Bill said in his gentle reassuring voice.

"NOOOO, I WANT to do it, it's just getting this part

over with. No matter if you are here or not, it's

embarrassing, but you DO make it easier. In less than

10 minutes we'll be out in the Jacuzzi and all of this

will be behind us. Can I get more champagne?" I said,

very matter of fact-ly to Bill.

"No more wine, until we eat, OK, Care. All right, turn

around and bend over and get ready for more cool gel."

He said applying a little more to my pucker.

Now, here comes again, baby," Bill said as he began to

insert and squeeze the second bottle.

The second bottle went in quick and I was up in a

second. I asked Bill to bring me to the kitchen and

see what there was to eat right away. I didn't want

him to think I was bitchy, but I had drunk too much

wine, but not that much. A few bites of food and I

knew I would be OK.

I found a couple pieces of garlic toast. I washed my

hands in the kitchen sink, and then gobbled them down.

Almost instantly I felt better. I just needed

something in my tummy to soak up the alcohol, plus, I

feel silly saying it but, Bill did cum an awful lot

earlier. Just his orgasm, and the wine in my stomach,

made me a little uncomfortable.

Once the bread was in me I instantly felt better. I

saw a small egg roll on the platter in the oven and

grabbed that too. I ate that and washed everything

down with a little water.

I told Bill I felt 100 percent better and he motioned

me back into the bath boudoir. He said it had been 5

minutes already.

I didn't feel any urgency yet, so I wanted to get

upside down if I had the chance.

While Bill told me how unnecessary it was, I hopped up

on the counter and spun and walked my feet up the

mirror until I was inverted.

The urgency, there it was!!

After just a few seconds being inverted, I was ready

to expel the second bottle and get into the Jacuzzi.

Bill helped me down from the counter and helped me

sit. He stroked my hair, as before, while I expelled

the fluid and flushed. Bill asked if I was ready and

offered his arm to lead me to the bidet. He was such a

sweetheart to me.

He brought me the baby wipes and said he would see me

in the tub.

I looked forward to the relaxing waters of the

Jacuzzi, and to being ravished by Bill.

Despite the embarrassment and discomfort of the prep

for anal sex, it was still our next best alternative,

and I did find it quite enjoyable and fulfilling.

When I came out of the bath Bill was waiting with

fresh pours of bubbly and a tray of cool shrimp and

more hot snacks. I dropped my robe and went right down

the steps into the bath and sat in front of the food.

Bill joined me and we ate what we would call our

dinner.

The conversation was light, and mostly about being

married someday and the changes that even nights like

this would go through.

Would we bother with all this, if we could have

regular sex? Would we still get honeymoon suites when

we stayed at hotels as real marrieds?

If my eyes were as full of wonder as Bills, I'm

sure the excitement of someday being married was

filling him. Being with that person you plan to spend

your life with was very special. I never felt more

loved than I did at this moment.

We finished eating, and the rest of the champagne as

we hugged and kissed.

I settled back into one of the seats and adjusted the

jets. Bill sat right next to me and relaxed. We made

small talk for a few minutes about the tub and having

our own one-day.

Then I noticed he was at full staff. His beautiful

cock was standing right up as he sat talking to me. I

looked him in the eye and then the crotch and motioned

him over. He stood up and his penis was right to my

mouth level. I nibbled and then sucked it right in my

mouth. It felt a little cold to my tongue, so I knew

my mouth felt warm to him. He groaned approval. I

didn't suck on him long, I was just trying to tease

him a little.

"I really want to feel this inside me" I said as I

held it up, just before kissing his ball sack. Then I

stood up and turned and knelt on the seat in the tub.

My butt was just out of the water enough to be taken,

once I leaned over the apron of the tub.

I barely had time to think what might happen next when

Bills tongue snaked into my butt hole. It felt

glorious after the applicators had violated me

earlier.

He brought up his hand to cup my shaved mound and he

nestled his fingers around it and his middle finger in

the groove with its tip just touching my clit.

His tongue was flicking my butt hole and then he would

drill it every few seconds. I guess you call it anal-

lingus, and Bill Wilson did it like he invented it.

Finally his tongue left my notch and he was biting and

licking my butt cheeks. He removed his hand from my

pussy and he was busy reaching for our blue butt toy

and the lube gel. All the play paused as he opened the

lube and he applied a dollop to my little hole, that

he gently pushed in with his finger.

I sucked in air at the intrusion and was about to

complain of the intrusion, when it felt REAL good.

He kept just the first knuckle in and turned and

rolled it around a little. It escaped and he reapplied

lube and brought it back a little deeper. It was

making me real hot, for sure. He picked up the blue

anal butt plug toy that he had placed on my back and I

knew he was lubing it up.

The tip was very thin and went in real easy. I waited

for its intrusion. I placed my hands over each other

on the apron of the tub and rested my head on them,

waiting for Bill.

The little tip found its way into me. It was soft, but

insistent as Bill used about 3 inches in and out of me

to about a 1-inch diameter of the toy. He fucked me

gently for a minute or two like this until I knew he

was coaxing more into me. He was hitting resistance

from my big muscle, as I called it, (must be my

sphincter), but every two or three pushes it would

sneak by a little. The last time it snuck by, Bill

continued to push another 2 inches of the little blue

devil butt plug into me and it was past the big muscle

and the end had me dilated about an inch and a half

and I could feel the bulb on my asshole. I knew Bill

would pause before he pushed the bulb past my ring,

and he did.

He was using more gel around the ring of my butt to

get me ready for the big push. So far this had been

pleasurable. Bill turned the devil in little circles

seeming to get ready for the big push and I was about

to encourage him when he did it. The bulb shot past my

hole and I was full!! It hurt a tiny bit but the

sensation of being full was real, real nice.

"Oh God Bill, Oh Baby. That's so nice. Don't touch it.

Let it rest a second," I pleaded with him.

He kissed both cheeks of my ass and brought his tongue

to my crack and then right up my spine, while

encircling his arms around me encouraging me to kneel

up, and I did. While I felt full from the toy, his

hard penis was almost between my legs as he kissed my

neck and I turned my face to lock my lips with his.

The fullness in my butt and the anticipation of being

fucked there had me hot as hell. I thought I was going

to suck his tongue out of his mouth.

Our kiss was long and deep as the dildo was up my

butt. Suddenly, I had an urge.

"Sit down Bill, I want to suck your cock. I want it in

my mouth. I want to feel what's going in my ass in a

minute. I want it, I want it," I said like a crazed

woman.

I just wanted to feel that in my mouth. So full at

both ends, it was the strangest urge, but I wanted it.

Bill stood on the seat I had earlier and turned to sit

on the edge of the tub. He wasn't all the way sitting

before I was bent and sucking on him.

I wished again that I could deep throat because I

really wanted him deep, but this was fine. I just held

him in my mouth. I didn't want to move too much, I

didn't want him to cum yet. I just had to have the

feel.

I was naturally nursing that cock, massaging it with

my tongue and I knew I was going to have to give it

up. I could have sucked him dry right there, but we

had other plans.

I stood up and took Bills hand and pulled him to his

feet and we turned, switching places while kissing. I

broke the kiss, and knelt on the seat. I placed my

hands on the apron as before and rested my head on

them.

My ass was there for Bill to take.

He moved the devil around a few times and pulled at

the flat piece that kept it from going all the way

into me. He pulled the bulb out and I tensed at the

shock, and he pushed it right back into me. I had

picked my head off my hands and drew a breath but was

lowering my head again when he repeated it. In-out-in-

out until finally the bulb was gliding to and from my

well-stretched hole. I was loving this, but wanted him

in there. Although my eyes were closed I sensed him

reaching to the side of me for the lube to do his

penis. He playing with the little blue devil plug had

ceased.

"I'm going to be inside you baby," he said as I felt

myself smile and flush.

"Are you ready for me to be inside you?" he said.

"I am soooo ready, Bill. Fuck me good. Make love to

me. Fill me with cum. I want your cock," I said

wantonly as I heard the sloppy slick stroking he was

doing to spread the gel on himself.

He took a napkin to wipe his hands and I knew we were

close. I felt him pull at the dildo and it slid past

the bulb and as it left me it felt a foot long, though

it was only half that. He rolled it in a towel he had

prepared and I felt his penis at the crevice of my

butt. I was ready, as was he.

He simple laid it on the opening of my butt and pushed

slowly right up into me, without hesitation, all the

way to his balls.

"Ohhhh, Ohhhh, Ahhhhhh," I cooed as I felt the welcome

intrusion.

I was totally open and there was no pain at all. My

legs were between his, causing my cheeks to snuggle

him a bit, and as he told me later, gave him a great

picture. I would normally have asked him to hold there

while I grew accustomed to his size, but today I

needn't. He could have me as he wished.

My Bill, my lover was inside me in my most private

intimate place. We were one. We were making love.

He began to move ever so slightly in me and I felt my

first orgasm building. I knew I would have to manage

them well or I would be passed out from his fucking.

His little short strokes were building to long plunges

already as he began to get excited.

"Easy Bill" I said. "This isn't a race. I know you're

excited but . . . don't make me lose myself."

Bill slowed down, but kept a steady long stroke in me.

My orgasm was building from deep within me. I just

reached back with one hand and touched my clit and I

went off. I bucked, and grunted and groaned, but Bill

never stopped pace. Long, slow, and steady strokes. I

was beginning to feel my G-spot tingle. I couldn't let

this one consume me. Easy to say. I was tensing up as

this one built. Before I knew it my palms were face

down on the apron of the tub and my elbows were in

the air like I was doing a push up. I was bracing for

a big one and it mowed me down.

"Urghhhhhhhhhhh, Ohhhhhhhhhh" I grunted like an animal

and my pussy gushed fluid.

"Urghhhhhhhhhhh, Ohhhhhhhhhh" I repeated as I actually

tried to free myself from him.

Two more big gushes left my vagina and I was at the

edge of going out. I forced myself to fill my lungs

with air. I was not going to pass out!!

Bill sensed I was fighting myself and he stopped on

the backstroke leaving just the fat plum of his penis

in me. I drew three huge deep guttural breaths into my

lungs that burned and hurt, but revived me. I let my

arms down and rested on my hands again as Bill thread

his cock back up into my bowels and began to fuck me

again.

My pussy began to click off orgasms one after another.

Just short quick jolts that made me jump and vibrate.

This was incredible. Then Bill began to pick the pace

up and I knew he could hold back no longer. I pushed

back to him to break my own orgasm string. The quick

jolts died off, but a new deep one was brewing.

Bill could hold off no more as he shouted my name.

"CARREE, I'm cumming inside you, Ohh, Ohh, Ohh, Ohh,

Ohh, Ohh, Ohh, Ohh, Ohh," he shouted as he slammed

into me filling my ass with cum.

I felt one of the spurts but the rest was a blur. I

had my own orgasm to deal with as I clenched fists and

crossed my arms underneath me. It was exquisite to

have Bill pulsing inside me as this deep vaginal/anal

orgasm hit me, and suddenly it was over. Bill laid on

my back, wasted, his semi hard penis still within my

channel. He was whispering his love and dedication to

me, over an over, blathering on and on.

He was clearly in a state, as was I.

I don't know how long we stayed there, but suddenly my

knees ached from the kneeling and Bills weight on me.

"Bill?" I questioned.

"Mmmmmmmmmmm" was all he could muster.

"As much as I would love to have you inside me all

night, my knees are killing me" I implored.

Bill took his weight off me and as he stood up, he was

light headed and he staggered, pulling from my bowels.

It sounded like a wet kiss. The sudden emptiness

stunned me.

I saw a towel set aside and I grabbed it as I knew

there was semen ready to run out of my dilated rectum.

I stuffed it between my legs and staggered up the step

to my feet. I bent at the waist holding the towel

between my legs, waiting for the blood to

redistribute.

Satisfied I could walk, I went to the bidet and let

things run out of me. As I let the bidet rinse me I

saw one of the Fleet bottles on the counter and

waddled over to get it. I filled it with warm water

and gave myself a quick inner rinse. I expelled it

over the bidet, and used the baby wipes to freshen

myself.

The chlorine in the tap water I squeezed into me

helped to tighten me up again so I could walk with

confidence and get back into the Jacuzzi.

When I got back there Bill was sitting on the opposite

side of where I had been, on the seat. His eyes were

open and his hand was on his penis, rubbing it.

"That was so awesome Care. We are some lovers, huh?"

he said in a stare.

I smiled at him and tousled his hair.

"You are some lover, Bill. You are a fine man and my

husband in every way. I love you forever." I said as I

knelt in the bottom of the tub and reached for his

soft penis.

I tugged at it a few times, and Bill knew what I

wanted. He stood up, slowly, and I put that shrunken

perfect cock in my mouth to taste and titillate. I

licked and sucked it and took it out.

"That's it. That's what I wanted. Just to let you and

him know how much I loved you both. OK?" I asked.

"There's still some life left in him, if you want to

play," Bill said. "Anytime he goes into your mouth

he's going to go to work."

Sure enough it was rising up. The man was insatiable.

I've heard that men couldn't perform like this when

they get older. I better take advantage of it.

"Jerk him off for me Bill, I help you make him cum one

more time" I said with a renewed lust. God, our sex

was great.

Bill stroked his dick and it was as big as ever before

I knew it. He stroked it and I took the head in my

mouth and tickled the underside with my tongue. While

I thought it would take him forever to cum, he was a

superman. He was telling me in a couple minutes he was

close. I sat back on my haunches in the water and

watched him jerk off.

"Tell me when he's ready Bill, I want it," I said.

He continued stroking and I heard him groan and his

breathing quicken. I didn't wait for his word, I put

my mouth over the head and waited. My mouth was

apparently all it took, and he came for me. It was a

thick snotty like semen that I really hate to swallow,

but I was doing this for him, not me. I pushed it as

deep as I could and let it run down my throat. I

stopped to gag once, not from cum, but we hit my

reflex.

I put it back into my mouth and kept it there until he

began to soften for good. I was so happy and

satisfied, as was Bill. He finally pulled from my

mouth.He smiled down at me.

"Lets rinse off and go to bed," he said a he led me to

the shower. Our rinse was quick and just that, a

rinse, except when he lathered his hand and put it on

my shaven vagina.



"Get this spanking clean, I'm eating it before I go to

sleep" he said surprising me.

His words gave me a tingle, but nowhere near the

tingle he gave me when he did eat me, quite

thoroughly, just a few minutes later. We both fell

asleep exhausted and satisfied.

Early the next morning we sixty-nined again and napped

until around 10 o'clock. We quickly showered and hit

the road far earlier than we had expected. We were

AFO, all fucked out. We were home by noon, Bill

delivering me to my parents as promised. My mom said

school must agree with me, I was glowing. Should I

tell her that it might not be the school? Nahh!

Our first break from school was not supposed to be 2

months in, and by then we really missed each other, a

lot!! Fortunately we were able to get together more

often during the rest of that school year. While

getting honeymoon suites made some of our escapades

real special, and made us realize how special our

relationship was, they were expensive and on our

budgets, at the time, more than we could really

afford.

This time was one where Bill really wanted to show how

much he missed me and wanted everything perfect.

Gladly, it was!!

As much as we liked anal sex, it was something we

saved for special occasions. We didn't want the

special-ness of it to wear off.

The one time that we tried it on consecutive days, I

had a problem later that wasn't directly related, but

contributed. So we kept it as a special, rare part of

our lovemaking. It definitely kept our vow of avoiding

regular intercourse a lot easier to keep.

We had a great time that Columbus Day Weekend, seeing

lots of other friend's, also home for the long

weekend. Our towns Columbus Day Parade is one of the

biggest anywhere, always a big deal, locally. We saw

Jerry Bennett's band on Saturday night and got to talk

with he and Julie about their problem. Her pregnancy

was really going to mess up their plans, but they had

to deal with it and had made plans to make everything

work out.

Later, in her sixth month, Julie went into labor and

lost the baby. She was an undiagnosed diabetic, and

that caused the early labor. She and Jerry did marry 2

years later, while still in school, and became

pregnant right away, this time on purpose. They had a

healthy baby and are doing great.

Bill and I said goodbye to everyone on Monday morning

and were off to Syracuse and spent the day shopping

and being alone together in our room. God only knows

how many times we made love to each other, and how

many times we just lay together holding each other.

After dinner we finally retired to our room and spent

the night saying goodbye to each other. We got out of

town early on Tuesday and I made my first class

without a hitch, as did Bill.

Henny and Maria both had the same glow that I did, so

I know their weekends went as well as mine.

My first year in college was definitely the best of

all.

My memories of that year will live forever, especially

the time I spent with Bill when we would run off to

meet in some hideaway, or he would visit when my

roommates would be gone for a weekend.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

Our love continued to flourish and grow and provide

much excitement in our lives. We now dealt with the

prospect of starting our Junior year in college. That

brought us that much closer to finally getting married

and beginning our lives together as a couple.

After explaining my relationship with my roommates,

this chapter of our lives begins with just a few

months left in our Junior year.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

Thinking about the end of our junior year I had hoped

that I could get an internship in or near New York

City so that Bill and I could spend our last summer

before graduation together, as a couple. I became

obsessed with what a special time this was to be.

Never again would we have the opportunity to be free

and on our own before crossing the threshold into

adulthood, a career, marriage, and hopefully

parenthood.

Beyond that, things seemed to be great all around as

my relationship with my roommates Maria and Henny

could not be any better. This was our third year

together and we had bonded nicely. My dearest friends

from high school, Megan, Kim, and Jennifer were still

dear to my heart, but actually living with and sharing

thoughts with these 2 young women had drawn us close

together.

We were advised early on in our first year that

finding and keeping a good roommate would be hard, yet

the 3 of us clicked pretty well the first year. Maria

was never a problem, and Henny was more a worry than

anything. While we got along, she had a habit of

bringing home guys she barely knew to spend the night.

Although they were gone in the morning, Maria always

worried and was wary for Henny and us. We were both

much more comfortable when her "friend" Nick came

around. They both acted like a real couple in love,

but Henny made a point of saying that he was just a

friend she slept with, and without fail, on the day

Nick left, she brought home a new lover for that

night, as if to make an exclamation point to her

"friend only" status.

Nick was handsome beyond words, and looked like an

Italian movie star. He didn't play down his looks, as

he should have. Without the jewelry or the tight pants

and the perfect hair, Nick would have been beautiful.

Maria and I called him Dreamboat, and he actually was

the only guy who really made me sweat, besides Bill,

but Nick always exuded a certain sleaziness because of

the wrong "trim."

Between her bad "boy" habits and her warnings from

school, it didn't seem that she would be asked to

return the following year. Then, that freshman year,

when we all came back from Presidents Day holiday

weekend, Henny returned a changed woman. There was

some sort of epiphany in her life. Part was due to a

change in her relationship with Nick.

Bill and I had arranged to pick Maria up at the

airport in Syracuse. She was flying in from seeing her

guy, Jack, who had bought her the ticket for her

visit. So, we were all together when we walked in the

dorm that February day in our freshmen year.

Hen and Nick were curled up on the community sofa.

Nick was in a pocket T and jeans, no jewelry and cut

dry hair. No big waves, no gels, just "au natural."

(God, he wasn't a dreamboat anymore, he was a stone

fox!) Henny, who had a habit of talking before

thinking, and doing a lot of talking, looked at Nick.

"You tell them, they'll never believe me." She said.

I was afraid that something had happened. I knew Nick

had lots of family problems. If not for the frat he

lived at and Hen's Mom, he would have no place to

sleep or eat.

"We got each other to admit that," Nick said pausing,

"We're in love, and have been for a long time. We

always thought of ourselves as brother and sister,

best pals and never gave ourselves the chance that we

could really be compatible as a couple. We always

abused each other's feeling as some kind of way to try

and shoo the other away. We had a breakthrough this

weekend. I can't go into a lot of it, but . . . "

"Just like that," I said, "Over the weekend, you

figured all this out?"

Henny sat up and had a tear forming in her eyes and

for the first time her stone exterior melted away.

"I've always known it, well for the last 4 or 5 years.

I was afraid to say it to him, thinking I would lose

him. This weekend I quit being an asshole, but only

for a few minutes - don't get your hopes up, and had

to admit it to Nick, as well as coming to a lot of

other crossroads in my life.

Ummm, Nick's reaction was positive. . . . and told me

that he couldn't stand it any longer either. He was on

the verge of telling me the same thing too. I feel

like a new person and have lost a big weight off my

shoulders. I'm going to declare a major tomorrow, and

make the deans list every semester the rest of my time

here. I promise that to myself."

"Henny," said Maria, "you can't just turn it off and

on like that. I know your GPA, and you have a lot of

work to do just to get asked back. I love you and will

help you all I can, but it will take a lot of work.

Just reciting the words won't do, let's face it, doing

school work has not been your priority."

Henny looked at both of us, then at Nick and put a

stern look on her face.

"Just watch me! But, I need you guys to believe in me,

though. Can I depend on you?"

Maria and I both agreed to do what we could to get her

in better study habits. Whatever happened at her home

that weekend had a profound lasting effect because;

she did just what she said she would do. Now, midway

though our junior year she had the 4.0 GPA, still had

Nick, who turned out to be an awesome guy for her, a

perfect match. They met as infants in daycare and have

basically never really been apart.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

I had put my student advisor hot of the trail of a New

York City internship and she came to me with 3. She

had assured me that these would not be posted anywhere

until I had followed up on her initial contacts with

them. The only problem was, there were 2 other girls

on campus vying for the same positions.

Two were for television networks and consisted of 20-

25 hours of unpaid intern work and 30 hours of paid

secretarial type of work. They included living

stipends that could be used at a set of double

occupancy flats that the networks held for interns.

The third was with an international publisher of

financial, travel, and health newsletters. My advisor

pushed me towards this one because of the requirements

list. "Must have an interest in marketing, writing,

editing, advertising, human resources, or graphic

design. Must be energetic, analytical, work well under

deadlines, and are able to juggle many projects." She

thought it sounded like me and this firm was just

opening up in New York, expanding from their Baltimore

base. I had become interested in the travel industry,

actually trying to set up my own agency, ever since I

had taken a cruise last summer with Megan and Kim to

the Caribbean. While there, I was scouting places for

a possible honeymoon spot for Bill and I. I asked a

lot of questions, got to know a lot of people, and

before I knew it, I was intrigued by it all. I had

expressed that to my SA and she added it to my resume.

This juncture was the first piece of fate that I

encountered that advanced and decided my career. The

contact for the publisher was someone I had met and

heavily questioned while in St. Thomas. We had shared

a drink and later met at her hotels private beach with

Meg and Kim, treating us to a roast and party her

company sponsored on the beach. I never knew the name

of her firm and assumed that when I never contacted

her back, it was the last I would hear from her.

Maria ended up being one of the other 2 applicants for

the network positions. It happened that one of the

internships fell through, a victim of Nielsen ratings.

The other did end up going to Maria. I always thought

the fact she lived in the city was the deciding

factor, and who could blame them. We had found that tv

production staffs pinched pennies on help, because

they were so extravagant with everything else, I

guess.

I stayed in daily contact with my advisor about the

final internship in New York that I wanted. There

might be others available later, but I wanted this one

to be nailed down right away to ease my mind about

being near Bill for the summer.

Plus, this position would earn me college credits that

I could turn in towards tuition or keep, should I

decide to continue my education.

In the end I got the position, but my connection at

the firm, the woman I had met in St Thomas, Miranda

Fond, wanted me in Baltimore, not New York.

(Later their expansion to NYC was scuttled anyway)

Although normally they worked only with Maryland

colleges for these positions, she really wanted me on

their staff. I was actually mad at myself for being so

damn likeable and personable. While my student

advisor, my family and Bill were so happy and

supportive about getting this plum position, I hid the

fact that I hated everything about it. It would ruin

my dream summer with my love, Bill Wilson.

I will tell you now of the other twist of fate

concerning this job, this firm and my life's

direction.

At the end of that summer's internship I was asked to

do work during my senior year for the firm. I could

get a retainer for services and extend my internship.

I was offered a firm position upon my graduation.

During that summer I was given a project of a mock

advertising newsletter. Using photos from my

vacation and information I had, as well as adding

their required elements, I supervised a mock team of 2

other interns in producing the piece. (FATE)

Somewhere along the line my mock project was sent to a

client resort in the Caribbean chain, (probably sent

by another intern) which the resort accepted as a real

prospectus. Later, they were notified that the mailing

was an error.

However, they were expanding their resorts and were

going to start their own in-house agency.

Long story short, after graduation I became a big part

of the roll out of that string of resorts and their

agency. Since then, I have run my own agency and later

free lanced and done retainer work for different

resorts and magazines. All started by a secretaries

mailing gaff.

I do not deny that my looks have also opened a lot of

doors for me. I enjoy working on photo shoots outside

at different resorts and like seeing my picture in my

work. (William loved me in azure blue swimwear, my

blonde hair and complexion lend well to it. It's the

only color I appear in.)

I have done some bathing suit modeling for a connected

company of one of our clients, and even considered a

career in that, should I want to stop the traveling I

HAVE to do. (I fly a lot, but do not enjoy it)

Although the modeling is legit and above board, it

seems sleazy to me, even though William was quite OK

with it.

Armed with this bit of background, on with the story .

. . . . .

Getting back to classes after an Easter weekend break,

a break that only students who live close enough to

commute can fully take advantage of, was hard on me.

I had spent the break with Bill and our families, plus

we had plenty of alone time.

Although I was there with Bill, part of me was in a

far off place. I was just coming to grips with what

was shaping up for our summers. On the surface I was

supposed to be happy for Bill and myself with the

internships we had earned, but inside I was being

selfish, wanting to wrap Bill in my arms and whisk him

away for only me to enjoy.

I was the first of the three of us to arrive back

inside our dorm room. Bill was close behind with my

overnighter and boxes of items from home for the,

hopefully, upcoming warmer weather. The cloth bags of

clothes slung over my shoulder rested at my feet as I

fumbled with the keys.

"Right behind you, move it Care. This is getting

heavier by the minute. Remember, you're not marrying

an athlete," Bill said as he was stumbling the

last few steps with his over burdened arms.

"Hey, if I don't get the key in the hole the door

doesn't open. Besides, no one told you to bring it all

in one trip," I chided Bill as the key finally went in

the hole and I got the door opened.

I kicked my bags of clothes aside so Bill could get by

without having to stop. He just made it to the

community sofa where he dropped his load.

I went over to him and wrapped my arms around him from

the back.

"You're athlete enough for me. Admittedly better in

some sports than others." I said as I kissed his neck.



He let himself slouch into my frame and dropped his

head back to my shoulder.

"You wait until we get all the way back here to

finally say something overtly sexual this weekend?" he

said, hurting my feelings a little.

"WHAT?" I said. "I wasn't sexy this weekend? I really

enjoyed all of our alone time, and as I remember your

moans and groans as you filled my belly with your

juice, you seemed to like something."

"No, I guess it came out wrong," Bill said. "You were

certainly sexy and all, but you seemed to be in

another place at times. I was worried you were a

little bored with us. You know, a little slump."

I pulled Bill even closer and bit at his neck.

"Bill" I said, "I could never be bored with you and if

I was bored with anything, or had a problem about us,

I would say so."

As the words came out of my mouth I knew I was lying

and being less than forthright. Thoughts of summer and

those months apart were weighing heavy on me. But, the

internships were so important to Bill; I would never

express my disappointment aloud.

"Geez, did you have to make that "filled my belly with

juice" comment? Just thinking about you and me with

our faces buried in each others sex has got me going

again." Bill said as he reached a hand around to

squeeze my ass.

"I wasn't trying to get sexy Bill. It's just you say

that I didn't say anything overtly sexual, and the

first thing that pops into my head is me making love

to you with my mouth and swallowing your cum. If that

isn't overtly sexual . . . ., as well as all the other

lovemaking we did. I mean, when you have your tongue

on my clit and 2 fingers stuffed up my butt I'm not

exactly ready to come up with any sexy one liners." I

said defending myself.

"OK, OK! My remark was out of line. You were as sexy

as ever." Bill admitted.

"It's just being preoccupied with school and work, I

guess, has got me a little nuts too. I just love to

hear you say those words that drive me crazy, and I

didn't hear them this weekend. But you said them all,

just not verbally. You know what I mean, right?" he

said, sort of apologizing.

Bill turned himself around and took me in his arms and

held me like he knows I like. With his head pressed

against mine, and his mouth right next to my ear. He

whispers so low, as if even God isn't supposed to hear

him.

"You know how much I love you, right?" he whispered.

"You know how much I care. Don't let my stupid little

comment bother you. We both know how sexy we were in

the last 3 days."

His whispered words were honest and from his heart.

Tears formed at my eyes as I thanked God for his love

and how deep it was. I was mad at myself for not being

forthcoming about my feelings about the summer. But

the thoughts of our lovemaking in the past 3 days

erased everything for the time being.

We were able to spend Saturday night together, all

night, in his room over the garage. parents be damned,

we just told them we needed time together like that.

My mom said she wasn't happy about it, but would speak

no more of the matter. My Dad was the same. Bills

parents worried what my parents would think of their

judgment.

He assured them that the decision was ours and ours

alone. We were adults, and we were going to be married

and we held our promise to each set of parents that

pregnancy would not happen.

When Bill told his parents of our intention to spend

the night in his study/writing room his Dad challenged

his decision.

Bill just said,"Fine, we'll be in the Budget Inn near

the interstate, if you need us."

We were spending the night together with or without

their approval. His Dad gave up and said it was OK,

that he should save his money. They could really ask

no more of us as a couple, and as members of their

family. We fully functioned as members of both

families, taking part in all of the family affairs

together as a couple. When they looked around at other

young adults our age, they had to know how lucky they

were they we had found each other.

I pulled Bill into my room and closed the door behind

us. I took my sweatshirt off and hugged my braless

breasts to his chest while kissing his face.

"Show me one more time how much you love me," I said,

poutily.

Bill wrapped his arms around my bare back and held me

tight to him. He rested his head on my shoulder while

taking the side of my neck into his mouth. He swathed

his tongue over and over that spot and then gave it a

deathsuck.

"No hickeys, no hickeys," I said, pulling away

violently. Bill just smiled and planted his lips to

mine, giving me a big kiss. He pulled back his face

and looked at me.

"You didn't get enough of me this weekend, baby?" he

asked.

"Never, and I hope you never have enough of me." I

said

"Don't worry, Care. The only way to get too much is to

get me to pass out, and then I'm afraid what you would

do with me, while I was out." He smiled to me.

He turned me around and pressed his loins to my

backside while running his hands up my nude chest. He

held my breasts fully in each hand and tipped his

head inviting me to kiss him, and I did. I ground back

at him with my ass, trying to feel his penis through

his pants. If he let me go right then I would have

turned and dropped to my knees to unzip him and give

his penis a big wet kiss to relieve the lump I felt.

Before I could make that move he dropped one hand to

my waist and unsnapped my jeans. He slid the zipper

down the track and slid his hand down my jeans,

between the jean and my panty. He cupped my pussy and

held it in his hand. I broke the kiss and just looked

into his eyes and let out a long breath.

I wanted him.

He drew his hand from my jeans and hooked both thumbs

in the side of them. He pushed them down past my butt,

along with my panties. He put his hand to the center

of my back and pushed me forward, making me bend over

my bed, that I was standing in front of. He ran his

hands over and over the cheeks of my ass, telling me

how beautiful it was. I didn't know quite what to

expect. I thought he might want to eat my pussy, and I

was looking forward to that, but then I heard him

undoing his belt and zipper. I went to stand up, I

wanted to turn around and see him, but he again placed

his hand on my back and pushed a knee behind mine

to force my knees forward to the edge of the bed. As I

looked between my legs I saw his pants drop and then

his underwear went down. He stepped up to me and I

was first afraid he was just going to fuck me and get

it over with, enough of being a virgin.

But he wouldn't do that without talking it over first.

Suddenly I felt his penis go between my butt halves

and I panicked. Surely he wouldn't try to skewer me in

my butt with no lube, or wetness whatsoever!!

I was about to protest when I felt the length of him

settle into the crease of my ass. He bent at the knees

and was laid right in the part of my cheeks. He began

to slide up and down in that valley a few strokes and

then I felt wetness drop from his mouth to my ass and

his penis. I was in sort of an awkward position, but

his rubbing felt good. He was just touching my butt

hole enough to create a sensation.

He had done this whole little sex act, one that we had

never done, without a word, until he said, "Touch

yourself."

I shifted a little to steady myself to raise a hand to

my pussy. I didn't know if he had enough friction to

get off like this or not. But, he was stroking at me

like he meant business, even though I didn't think he

had enough contact.

"Someday, I'll fuck you like this Care," accentuating

his long strokes.

"I'll make love to you in every room of the house and

in every way I can think of, but especially your ass,

or I should say, so I can see your ass. It's so

beautiful.

Ughh, I could come just looking at it.

Ughh, oh baby I love sliding my cock up and down your

crack, such a sweet ass. I wish I was inside it, but

we can save that for another time.

Ohh, I'm gonna cum, gonna cum, gonna cum,.

Ohhhhh Ohhhh,"

Then he grunted heavily as I felt cum splashing on my

back. As he came he held his hand firm in the center

of my back, letting me half think that he didn't want

me to turn and finish him with my mouth, as he knew I

would.

My fingers in my pussy were leaving me happy, but the

feel of his seed splashing on my back and the smell of

it and the sex in the room, pushed me over the edge.

It wasn't a deep, gripping orgasm, just a nice

spontaneous orgasm.

I was happy.

Bill backed away from me and asked me to stand still,

he would get a towel to clean me up, as he fished into

my clothes bags on the floor.

I stood and felt the cum roll down my back, one little

trail making a path right between my ass. It made me

shudder and tweaked a little orgasm from me.

"I asked you to hold still so it wouldn't run down

like that," Bill said smiling at me as the look on my

face gave away the sperm play on my back.

I just smiled and said, "Come here," as I squat down

to be level with his dripping penis.

He knew I wanted his cock in my mouth and he knew it

was mine. He turned to me.

I opened my mouth as far as I could and clamped down

on him and sucked right up to the tip to clean him. I

felt him shiver and a little new dribble go onto my

tongue.

That was it, I just wanted to taste him and give him

that little rush. I took his cock from my mouth and

kissed the topside of it and then held the side of my

face to his pubic bone.

"How do I live without you when we have to go back to

school like this," I said.

Although it was a rhetorical question, he answered it

right away.

"By knowing how good it will be when we finally see

each other again and knowing how much we love each

other. Carree, if I didn't have the continuing

promise of your love, both the mental and physical

side of it, I would have no reason to work as hard as

I do to make things right for our future. You are my

life."

It was like he had rehearsed the answer and waited for

the question, but I knew that wasn't Bill. He felt

that in his heart. Those words would hold me and make

me strong when I thought of the hopelessness of a

summer away from him.

I stood and helped him get his shorts and pants up,

being careful to gently tuck his precious penis in

without hurting it.

When I finished I turned and bent so Bill could mop up

his mess from my back. He pulled apart my butt and

wiped me dry in there, leaving me sticky. I, too,

still had my underwear and pants around my ankles and

he pulled them up, patting my hairless mound a few

times and rubbing circles and playful slaps on my ass,

before pulling up my jeans. He reached around the

front of me and snapped them and yanked up my zipper.

He then held my breasts in his hands and kissed my

neck.

"I really have to go. I'm supposed to log into TIME in

less than 2 hours. I'll end up being awake half the

night with them, but they give my evaluation to the

college tomorrow for this half semester. My internship

could be worth more credits with a good review. I'll

call you, I'll miss you, and I'll always love you.

One more thing, . . . . put your sweatshirt on. I

don't need the guys here seeing what great boobs you

have." He said as he gave my nipple a little pinch.

I just got my sweatshirt over my head when the door

flew open.

"Pants up everyone!! We're here to study, not to

screw!!"

It was Henny, who else. She always had a way to make

an entrance, and was never afraid to speak what was on

her mind.



I smiled and gave her a hug, as did Bill. She had

really missed me by how hard she hugged.

After hugging Bill she said, "You showed this girl a

good time didn't you, she gets awfully lonely some

nights. I think she buys batteries by the case now."

Bill chuckled, but Henny laughed at her little joke.

Bill gave me a final kiss and hug and he was off. I

watched him jog down the quad and then stop to hug

someone. It was Maria. We had all gotten back at the

same time. I was sure we would have a good time

telling each other about our weekends.

Maria came in the door and Henny ran to give her a

hug. The transformed Henny was one who appreciated her

friends, but she was still crass as hell.

"Watch when you hug Carree, she wreaks of cum, and so

did Bill, so watch where you sit. " Henny said loudly

to Maria.

I was mortified, but that was Henny.

"You can sit ANYWHERE," I said. The girl doesn't know

what she's talking about." I yelled. "Besides we were

in MY bedroom."

Such was life with Henny. She kept Maria and I on our

toes. She had become someone special in both of our

lives, yet she kept somewhat in a shell about her

love Nick (the dreamboat) and her intense studies. She

was just an average student upon arriving and had a

4.0 GPA and deans listed since second semester

mid-terms in our freshman year. As close as we had

gotten, sharing intimate girl talk and personal things

you just talk about with those closest, whose opinions

you trust, Henny never spilled the beans about her

rebirth as a student, and her new obsession with

career. Maria was sure that she had an abortion that

weekend and this was her personal penance. I

discounted that, but had not counted it out.

Whatever it was, it did Henny a lot of personal good

and she never told any of those closest to her at

school what it was that drove her.

For the first time in my life as a student at any

level, schoolwork was beginning to back up on me, take

a toll on me. My heavy class workload was wearing thin

as projects, thesis, and half-grade papers became due,

seemingly at once.

The only redeeming factor was that spring break was

just a week away. While most schools had taken theirs

the week before or after Easter, Upstate SUNY schools

were going to be 2 weeks after the late March Easter.

I was burdened to the max with work, but I saw it all

being done on schedule, but not without burning a

little midnight oil. Knowing that finishing everything

on time, and doing it right, would leave my mind clear

to enjoy the break with my love, Bill.

He promised me a great week, having reservations in

Atlantic City for a few nights and tickets for two

shows. My body tingled when I thought of being away

with Bill, knowing how fulfilling similar excursions

were.

I hurried to get back to my dorm on the Tuesday before

the break. I had to proofread and assemble a term

paper for a Corporate Law elective. I was excited

because I had been so behind on it and was ready to

bag it. Then I got a burst of thought and it really

fell together. Besides, it was something I really

needed if ever planned to start my own business,

especially with the international implications it

would involve.

When I opened the door there was an envelope addressed

to me from my SA. I quickly opened it and my face must

have fallen to the floor. It seems the publishing firm

was expecting me for at least 2 days during the break

for indoctrination for my internship. They were to

show me where I would live, how to travel in the area.

I was supposed to have set it up weeks ago and it just

slipped my mind.

I called my SA right away and she was quite pissed

off at me. She had to have an answer by 2 pm that day

and she took the liberty of making arrangements for me

to fly to Baltimore on Tuesday morning and return

Thursday night. One more roadblock was thrown in my

quest to be alone with my love. Now I had to call Bill

and tell him our plans were probably shot to hell.

Just as I went to dial his number Maria came in the

door.

"Did you get a hold of Bill? He called for you

earlier and wanted you to get back to him ASAP. I

would have left you a note but I thought I would beat

you back here." She said.

"Oh, I hurried from my art class to get back and do my

term for Law. I'm calling him now about something

else. I'll tell you Maria; I'm about to explode. The

whole fucking world is against Bill and I, it seems."

I said as I dialed.

"Perspective girl, perspective," Maria said as she

went into her own room shaking her head.

"Hi lover, I heard you called me," I said as I

recognized his voice.

Bill was obviously not in a good mood when he answered

me. "Hi, this is really going to stink and you're

going to freak out, so sit down."

"Your news can't be any worse than mine," I answered

him, "Let me go first. I have to be at the airport on

Tuesday morning to fly to Baltimore for an intern

orientation, sort of a final approval stage for both

of us. FUCK!! I hate to do this to you Bill, but if I

don't go my SA thinks Arens and Ponds will pull the

internship from me. They already are doing me a favor,

so they say, by having me in the home office and they

pulled strings to get me student housing, even though

I'm not a Maryland resident. Goddamn it Bill, I want a

career, but I want it when I want it. All I want now

is to be alone with you!"

Personally, at that point I would have scuttled the

whole thing to have a week alone with Bill. That was

how much I wanted him, how much I missed him, how

much I wanted to make up for the summer I wasn't going

to have for with him.

As important as the internship was, nothing made me

feel like Bill did. Love is a terrible addiction at

times; to feel love, to give love. Could a being have

a real existence without it?

"When are you coming back? Your news dovetails with

mine. I have to go to New York on Monday and I won't

be home until Wednesday night. I have an intern

orientation too. Jesus God! I've interned for these

shitheads for almost 3 years, but to walk on their

hallowed floors for a summer I have to come to the

city and be treated like wet baby. They show you the

city, where you live, how to get around, what to do to

pass the time without doing something stupid, and

above all not hurt their name. The only positive is

that they will offer me a job, that's almost

guaranteed." Bill rattled out.

So Bill was gone for the same days as me. "I come back

on Thursday night. At least we have the 2 weekends to

be together. This is some spring break." I complained.

"Well, the news from here is still not good. I can't

get out of here until Sunday. I'm finishing a piece as

a contributor with 2 other student writers, one near

Chicago and one on the West Coast. We put it together

and hopefully, to bed on Sunday via conference call.

Here we are, writing about spring break and its

effects on perceptions of the youth and all that

bullshit, and we can't even take one." Bill said,

further frustrating me.

"So, how do I get home, Bill? When were you going to

tell me about this?"

"For God's sake, Carree! Cool your jets! Do you think

this has been on MY schedule for weeks? I thought we

were supposed to do it AFTER the break, using our

experiences, but it has to be on the newsstand during

the break. So, get a pass to stay on campus past

Friday and I'll be there Sunday night to fetch you,

OK? If you really want to get out, see if a friend can

bring you home or if your parents will come up. I'm

sorry, I can't do it any earlier. I would come and get

you Friday and have you stay with me, but if campus

police saw you, I would get screwed around. It's not

worth the risk." Bill explained.

"Don't get mad at me, Bill. I just want to get home

and be with you. I don't want to stay here until

Sunday. I'll check around for a ride or something.

Plan on getting me on Sunday unless you hear from me,

OK?" I said.

"OK baby. Lets just not hang up mad." Bill reasoned.

"We're both mad at things we have no control of and

are taking it out on each other, agreed?"

"Agreed." I added. " I love you Bill. We can figure

something out, OK? I just want to hold you and make

everything in my world right."

"I know, Care. We're both a little short fused. We

will get through this. I love you, Bye." And Bill hung

up.

Seeing how I had to fly out on Tuesday morning, I

really wanted to get home before Sunday night. If Bill

and I went home on Sunday night I would want to stay

with him and that would cause another ruckus with our

parents. It really wasn't a big deal with them, but

they did enough to make us feel uncomfortable.

I was going to try and hook up with a ride if I could.

My Dad would come and get me if I asked, but I hated

to bother him. Plus, I want him to know I can take

care of myself.

There were 2 guys in my art class that I had become

friendly with, Russell and Mark. They were mildly

geeky, but both were cute and seemed like nice people.

If I was at Frazier Hall for a meal or just for

coffee, one of them usually made it a point to come

over and keep me company. Now, there were guys who

would do the same trying to hit on me, asking me out,

inviting me to pot parties or keggers too, but from

our conversations Russ and Mark knew I was engaged and

not interested in any other kind of relationship.

Mark had a girlfriend back home, near Buffalo, I

think. Russell said he never had any serious

relationships, but was into parties and "got hooked

up" a lot. I don't know if that meant he got drunk

and picked up a date or not. I never really asked, I

just know he was a sweet guy to me, and even studied

together at the library for some History class last

year and went there once to look at some published

free hand drawings for Art.

Right after I got off the phone with Bill I had to try

and catch a couple coffees at Frazier for the long

night of work ahead. One solid night and I knew I cold

finish my Corporate Law term paper. Once I got to

Frazier and got in line I felt a tap on my shoulder,

and it was Mark. He pointed to a table over in the

last rays of sun for the day. There sat Russell, and

he waved.

"You look stressed out. Come on over and talk about it

for a few." Mark said.

"You know, I really can't Mark. I have a term paper

due tomorrow and I'm going to get a couple coffees to

go and get back to work on it," I said.

"Get 2 to go and one for here. Sit down and take a

load off your mind for a minute. Besides the one you

drink here will have the most caffeine. Those 2 you

reheat later will have had part of the caffeine eaten

up by tannic acid." Mark said.

"Oh, . . . OK Mr. Wizard, thanks for sharing your

experiment." I laughed, "I'll be over."

I set my tray down with 2 cups to go and my fresh

black coffee on their table.

Russell piped up, "If you don't smooth out that furrow

on your forehead your stress will never leak out, ya

know." He said smiling.

"God, is it THAT obvious?" I asked. "Things are not

going well on all fronts. Actually finishing this term

paper tonight will ease part of my load and let me

deal with personal problems a little more unclouded."

"Any thing you can talk about? The boy Wonder isn't

giving you a hard time is he?" Mark laughed.

"NOO, and don't call him that. I know I probably build

him up a little, but he is the least of my worries.

Getting home to see him is a problem though." I said.

I explained the situation and the in and outs of it

all. When I got through, Russell smiled at me.

"I'm going to Lake George on Friday, I can drop you

off on the way." He said.

"No, it sounds like you're going to have a real Spring

Break up there and I'll be the flat tire on the party

bus." I said.

Actually I was worried about being in a car with a

bunch of guys going to Break, drinking, smoking etc.

"No please, Carree, it's not that at all. I LIVE in

Lake George, and I'm going alone. It's no big deal if

you want a ride." He said.

I told him I would sleep on it. I really had no

problem with accepting the ride, I just wondered what

Bill would think, if I told him. I just added that to

the growing list of things to stress on. What would

Bill think of me having a male friend? What would he

think of me being alone with him in a car for a couple

hours? God! I was so paranoid!

I decided to tell Bill that I was going back with

someone in Art class, and if he asked if it was a guy,

I would tell him. It ended up that Bill was so

consumed with his internship work and school studies

that he only answered "Great!" when I told him I had a

ride home on Friday.

He said he would call me on Sunday night when he got

back. I couldn't wait get home to sleep in my own bed

for a night or so and try to put my life back into

perspective. Not that I didn't look forward to seeing

Bill on Sunday night, but I knew our time together

would be brief, if he had to be in New York City early

on Monday.

Our love, our lives and our studies were spread thin

on a cracker we called life. All of the things that

people told us would be a problem about long distance

relationships, being apart while being engaged, and

balancing love and school were all coming true.

Getting through the summer apart and getting back to

school would put us on the home stretch to graduation.

Seeing the big light at the end of the tunnel would

HAVE to make this easier.

With little trepidation, I accepted the ride with

Russell. I found Russell and Mark at Frazier on

Thursday morning as usual for coffee. Our Art class

was in Magur Hall right next door so it was a regular

meeting place. Russell seemed glad to have the company

and swore that I wouldn't bring back too much stuff

with me. I told him he had never traveled with a

woman, so to be prepared. We bring everything. He

laughed it off and excused himself early. He had to

meet with "Doc," our Art teacher before class.

Once Russ left Mark smiled at me, saying, "I know you

have a couple worries about going with Russ, but let

me tell you, you couldn't find a nicer, more

trusting guy. If you have any second thoughts, put

them away. I went home with him at Christmas when

Buffalo got snowed in and I was snowed out. His house

was like "Leave it to Beaver." His Dad even wanted to

drive me home once the roads got open out there, and

that's like 8 hours away. I was there for 3 days,

including Christmas. They even had presents for me. I

know that you "know" him, but may have a worry that

you don't really KNOW him. Let me assure you,

he's cool."

Marks words allayed any fears of ending up at the

bottom of a ravine raped and strangled (You didn't

believe I was paranoid, huh?) Even so, I wrote down

his car make and model with license number and mailed

it to myself at home. If anything happened, I wanted

to leave a clue.

Everything ended up fine with my ride back home on

Friday night with Russell. He was a good sounding

board for a lot of things and we made nice

conversation.

I feel guilty saying that I enjoyed spending time with

another man, not Bill. But, there was a whole new

perspective to my sitting in the passenger seat

watching someone else at the wheel and how they

reacted to what I said. For part of the trip I was

curling up in a ball, holding my knees to my chest, or

sitting on my legs, all nervous habits that I usually

used to expend sexual energy, waiting to be alone with

Bill.

I realized I was putting myself in provocative

positions and Russell was sneaking an eyeful every now

and then. While he watched the road, I was watching

him, and couldn't help but notice he had an erection

at one point.

I was acting as if I was with Bill, so I straightened

out in the seat for the last half, just talking. I

didn't want to give Russ any ideas. I was just acting

a little too familiar. I was happy to be going home.

Getting home without Bill as my number one priority

was a good thing for me. I realized how much I missed

my parents, my home, my bed and my friends. I wasn't

home for more than 10 minutes when Meg called and said

she was getting together with Jenny and Kim for a

while Friday, and did I want to join them. Meg and Kim

were finishing their spring break and were going back

on Sunday. So this was a last chance to all get

together. We had a great time talking and filling each

other in on school and love and life.

The 3 of them had plans to go to Saratoga to hear a

band on Saturday and urged me to join them. The club

was huge, where the band was, and we ran into other

people we went to school with. I realized what fun I

was missing sometimes, by not being "out there." But,

when we were together nothing topped being with Bill.

This was fun, but being with Bill was such a great

feeling of confidence and assurance. I loved being in

love.

While finishing a dance with the girls I felt a tap on

my shoulder, and I chose to ignore it. Jenny saw the

move and leaned in to whisper to me above the crowd.



"Turn around, he's cute. It's just a dance, he doesn't

want to fuck you . . . . . yet!" she finished with a

giggle.



I gave Jenny one of THOSE looks and continued to

ignore the guy when he persisted and tapped me again.

I was pissed and turned to tell him not to touch me

and I saw it was Russell. Saratoga was no further from

his home than mine. I shocked Jenny and the others by

smiling back to Russell and going to the dance floor

with him. We danced a few songs and when he walked me

back to my table I kissed him on the cheek.

"Wow, WHO was THAT," Megan asked.

"I don't know, some guy," I answered coyly.

Kim freaked out. "Are you having an affair??"

I couldn't hold a straight face any longer.

"No, don't be silly. It's Russell, a guy from school.

He's in my art class and he gave me a ride home this

weekend. He lives in Lake George. He's just a buddy.

We dance at parties while everyone else gets drunk.

That's the first time I ever kissed him, it was for

your benefit." I said having a good laugh.

"Man, he's pretty cute," Meg said. "Tell Bill to watch

out!"

"I guess he was cute," Jenny said. "He also had a

hard-on."

"No kidding," Kim said sarcastically, "Who could miss

it?"

"Well, I did. I was dancing with him and I never

looked down there." I said.

"I look down there on every guy," Jenny said. If they

can check my boobs and butt, I can make lump checks."

"Amen," Kim and Meg chimed in.

"You didn't see that salami in his pants?" Megan said.

"No, I didn't, ummmm . . at least not NOW. On the way

home, in the car he was checking out my tight jeans

and I saw it then, though." I said as we all giggled

like high schoolers. It was fun being out with the

girls again.

Sunday went by and I never heard a word from Bill. I

went over and over in my mind to make sure that I

called him to tell him I didn't need a ride today, and

I was sure I called him. I called his number at school

and the phone rang and rang. About 6 o'clock I began

to worry about him. I called his house and his mom

said she didn't expect him until late, maybe after

10:00 or later, he had a problem at school with the

computers.

Damn, why hadn't he called me!! Probably, because he

was sick of hearing me bitch about his school and

work.

I began to tell myself that if I didn't lay off him,

he might bolt from me. My paranoia was not taking a

vacation from me.

I was about to ask my Dad if I could take the car when

the phone rang. It was Meg Parker. She asked to get

together, saying it was really important. I was

surprised to hear from her, I thought she had went

back to school, but she had but one late class on a

Monday, so she decided to stay back and drive out in

the morning. I told my mom that if Bill called to try

me at Parkers.

I was sick of waiting for him to call. I felt like

high school sometimes, I could be so immature at

times. This was one of those times. I assured my Dad

that I was only going to Parkers and hadn't planned to

take his car anywhere else. I drove right to Megs,

sure that Bill would call while I was gone.

When I got to Megs she answered the door with a funny

look on her face, and I asked he what was up.

She assured me that nothing was going on and led

me into the kitchen where we always sat and talked

while her parents watched TV.

I turned the corner to the kitchen and there stood

Bill.

"When did you get to town?" I said as I ran to hug

him. I backed away and slapped at his arm. "You big

shit, you had me worried!"

"I know, I know, I should have called you earlier but

every time I tried it was busy. So I called Meg, and

she said to stop by and she would get you over here."

He explained.

"I appreciate the surprise, but why so secretive?" I

wondered.

"My mom and Dad don't want you to spend the night in

my room tonight. I know I hadn't even asked you, but I

figured you would want to. They began to give me crap

about having to leave early tomorrow and my career and

internship being important and I could find time for

you when I got back. So I was going to get you here

and go out someplace." He explained.

"But, I got to thinking," Megan kicked in, "My parents

are in Florida, the house is empty, and I'm going out.

Use my room for a love nest."

"Oh God, I couldn't Meg, . . . we couldn't," I

protested.

Meg stood up.

"Look, I'm going to a movie with Heidi in about 10

minutes. The house is empty. Just clean up after

yourselves. When I leave in the morning I want to

leave a clean house for mom and Dad to come home to.

When they left on Thursday they figured I would have

parties and leave the house a shambles. Even Judy,

Terry and their husbands are with them. You have

nothing to worry about. Hey, Jimmy and I know about

finding stray moments together, take this one."

Bill looked at me.

"If I get home after 10 my mom and Dad will be none

the wiser. I won't have to get them mad at me for

running right out with you after I get home. They'll

be happy I came home and spent some time with them."

He had figured.

"OK, then." I went to hug Meg. "You still are my best

buddy. Looking out for me."

"Well, after you hit on that guy in Saratoga last

night, I figured you needed some loving," she said

cackling.

My face sank as I looked at Bill. "You hit on a guy?"

he said looking puzzled at me.

"No, not at all. There as a guy from school who lives

close by, he was there. We danced a couple times. He

takes care of me at parties if I go." I sheepishly

explained.

"He was excited though, Bill. We all commented on the

woody he was sporting, but Carree said she didn't see

it." Meg blabbed.

"Meg, you have a big mouth. Why don't you just shut

up! Bill, there is nothing going on." I said.

"Hmmm, that's pretty defensive for nothing going on,"

Bill said tipping an eyebrow.

I freaked out. "Bill, I just danced with him I . . . "

"I'M KIDDING for Gods sake," Bill shouted to me.

"KeeRist Almighty Carree, this is me, Bill. I trust

you. God, how many guys wouldn't get a hard on dancing

with you?"

"That's it! That's my cue to leave, boyfriends rating

"hard on" quotients is past my level of personal

involvement." Meg said as she headed out.

"If it means anything Meg, your "walk away" gets a

pretty high rating." Bill shouted.

"How do I get him to stop looking at other girls

ass's, Meg," I jokingly hollered as the door clicked

shut.

My shout to Meg went unanswered, as the house was

suddenly silent. It was just Bill and I.

"Can I answer that question for you," Bill said. "I'll

stop looking at others when I see one more beautiful

than yours, and that will never happen. Maybe if I had

my fill of yours. You know, licking, kissing,

squeezing and sometimes some real nasty stuff. Maybe

then I would stop."

"Bill, it feels so weird, being alone in this house

with you. I spent a lot of nights here with Megan when

we were little girls, and then slumber parties with

all the girls. We talked about having sex, and boys

and all that ookey stuff girls talk about. Now to be

alone with you here, it seems so naughty. Oooooo, I

like it!" I said.

"Jesus, Carree I missed you. There really was a time

today that I thought I wouldn't see you until Thursday

night or Friday. After thinking I was going to see you

last Friday, I couldn't wait. I want to fall asleep

with you every night." Bill said as he wrapped his

arms around me and hugged me real hard.

I felt his erection as I pushed my ass to him to have

the most body-to-body contact. He bent back and took

me off my feet and slowly walked toward the stairs.

When we got to the base of the stairs he let me down

and I turned to go up, holding his hand.

I got as far as the third stair when I felt both hands

grab my hips. His sudden move forced me to trip and go

down on my knees on the step. I went to stand up, but

he put a hand in the center of my back. I stayed down.

He snaked a hand around to my front and undid my

pants, and pulled them just over my butt. He kissed my

bare cheeks over and over, licking as he went along.

I was getting real wet.

"Bill, lets go upstairs" I said impatiently, but he

continued by slipping his finger through the gusset of

my panty and making a pull loop of it, exposing my

whole crotch.

He tipped his head and took the whole of my mound in

his mouth, flicking his tongue on my clit a few times

before sucking my wings out of there hiding. He

nibbled, chewed and licked as he drove me crazy.

I was running like a faucet down there and I heard, as

well as felt, his sticky wet face change positions. He

was licking me thoroughly and deep at times. Finally

he had just my clit in his mouth. It felt like he was

writing his name with his tongue on it. I was just one

long slow orgasm. When the wet pad of his index finger

went to my asshole, it seemed to swallow it right in.

I lost my breath and held on for an orgasm.

"Ohhhhh," I yelled a little franticly, as it hit

quick, but was followed by another, then another.

With his finger buried up my butt and his tongue

suctioned to my clit, I was all his, a big ball of

orgasm, sort of paralyzed on the steps with my pants

around my knees, I wanted him to stop, I never wanted

him to stop, my mind went in circles.

Finally I had a big jolt that came from deep inside

me. It was definitely a vaginal orgasm, not clitoral.

It felt like I was pushing a softball out my pussy.

That jolt pulled my pussy from his mouth.

"No more, no more, no more!! Can't breath, can't

breath" I said twisting my butt so I was sitting on

the step.

I was gasping for breath, clenching my arms to my

chest bending into a ball on the steps. Suddenly I

realized I was leaking on the carpet of the steps and

I stood up.



I was still shuddering when I said to Bill, "I'm

getting the carpet wet, I'm making a mess."

"It'll dry and never show, it's no big deal, sit down

and enjoy it." Bill said.



I did slump back down and continue to finish my ride

off the orgasm. I was shivering. I don't think I ever

released that much tension at one time. All the

worries and fears I had of losing Bill for the summer

were gone. They lay as the form of wetness on Meg

Parkers stairway.

I was still in a sitting fetal ball, relieved of

tensions when it hit me.

A hunger.

"Take it out, Bill. Take it out. I want it. Feed it to

me" I said.

I needed to see his beautiful penis, to smell it, to

taste it, to feel it smooth and alive in my mouth. I

was still sliding down my orgasmic spiral, but I felt

certain emptiness.

Bill offered me a hand, but I pushed it away.

"No! Now, right here, please Bill. I want you now."

"Let's go upstairs, Care, c'mon," Bill insisted.

"No, I said," slapping at his hand. "Don't make me

wait Bill, I have you here NOW, I want you NOW. I long

for you all the time, and can't have you."

I looked at Bill and he looked at me with a worried

look on his face.

"What's the matter, Carree? Are you OK?" Bill asked.

"I'M fine Bill, except my lover is keeping me away

from what I have wanted for the past two weeks. I just

want to hold him, and taste him. I want to feel him in

my mouth. He's always too busy; I'm always too busy.

Now is now." I explained.

Bill came up 2 stairs and stood with his waist at my

eye level. I uncurled my arms from myself and hugged

him around his hips and held my face to his loins. I

hugged my face to him; nose first into his crotch,

then one side of my face, then the other. I reached

and felt the outline of his erection.

"Is it so wrong that I want you? You couldn't wait to

have me. I can't wait to have you." I said looking up

at him with tearful eyes.

"So many times I think I'm going to see you, and you

have to cancel. I thought we would have the summer,

and that appears gone too."

Bill looked down at me. "I'm so sorry for the times I

didn't make it. You knew that was going to be the

case. I knew that was going to be the case. The

summer, we really don't know about." He reasoned.

"Miranda is going to get me that job, I know she is.

She's stuck her neck out so far with her partners and

got the State Grants for Students rules waived for me

to live there in Maryland student housing, because she

told them I was going to move there after graduation.

I'm in, Bill. But, lets forget that now." I said as I

ran my fingertips over his bulge.

"OK, we can leave that to later. You look so sexy

there, pouting. I didn't think anyone could love

anyone, more than I love you. But I guess we're even

there, huh? I can't believe anyone as beautiful, as

smart, as sexy as you would love me. You're always my

dream." He said.

I looked up at him one more time, pouty, and put my

finger to my lips.

"Shhhhhhh," I said.

His erection was on the right side of his zipper. My

cheek was hugged to the left side. I reached in

between and undid his button and pulled down his

zipper. I pulled my face away and took either side of

the pant top and peeled it down until his penis rolled

free, still in his shorts. I smiled when I saw it and

looked up at him.

"Oooooooo," I mouthed to him.

He tipped his eyes to the ceiling in anticipation.

I pulled the band of his shorts out and peeked over

the top. I reached in with one hand and pulled down

the front of his shorts with the other. Gracious, did

he smell good, so manly, so Bill. I took his penis in

both hands and rubbed and squeezed it. It was alive.

"Oh God, Carree. What you do to me! It's, . . it's,

umm. . .Oh. No words, no words for it." He stammered.

I put both hands on it and drew both of them up to the

top trying to run the blood into the head. It was so

beautiful. I took it in my hand and opened my mouth. I

stuck out my tongue and dropped the underside of the

head of his penis right on my tongue, and I licked at

it, dropped it again with a plop, and flicked again.

"Ooooo, Ohhhhh" he reacted to my tongue play.

I could wait no more and put the whole head in my

mouth and closed my lips around it. Ahhhh. This is

what I wanted.

I can't tell you how sexy, how personal, how

fulfilling it was to have Bills penis in my mouth. I

felt so close to him, I could feel his pulse, and he

reacted to every move my mouth made on him. I have

never thought that this was any "blowjob" or "head" or

any other name they have for it. This was making love.

He may as well have been thrusting in my vagina.

This was making love. I could feel his very core in my

mouth. He had his own distinct taste, and I absolutely

loved it.

Just as he drove me crazy and made me happy with my

sex in his mouth, I was as contented with his in mine.

I slid as much as I could into my mouth, which was not

very much.

I am not a deep-throater, but with my tongue extended

underneath it, I could touch and feel almost half of

his 6 or 7 inches. I mostly had about the head plus

maybe an inch, maybe 2, in my mouth and I moved my

lips from just behind head down. Bill tried to gently

thrust, but I put my hand to his pubic bone to stop

him.

I wanted to suck him at my pace.

I also did not want to bring him off just yet. I just

needed to feel him in my mouth, for him to know how

much I loved him.

Although I was not prepared at all, I was willing to

take him in my butt tonight if he wanted. I know I

wanted it now, to feel him inside me, but without real

prep it has been painful sometimes, and messy

sometimes. I just had to feel him within me.

As I kept a gentle suction on him and rhythmic

movement I got a taste of his pre-cum. It was just a

hint, but I knew he was not far from cumming.

I took one long last suck on his cock and took it from

my mouth. I again hugged my face to his thigh and

looked up at Bill.

"Take me upstairs, lets get naughty." I said. "Love me

hot and hard." I was emphatic.

Bill extended his arms and I pulled myself up. He

reached to my hips and pulled my pants up enough so I

could walk, and I did the same for him.

At the top of the stairs I was confused. I didn't know

if I really wanted to be in Meg's bed, or did we want

to go into her tv room on the sofa.

"I'd feel pretty embarrassed if we made a mess on her

bed, lover. Let's go on the sofa," I said as I

motioned him to the room at the right.

It was cool in the tv room, Meg's parents apparently

keeping the heat off while she was gone.

Although it was Spring, it was early, and it was cool.

"I have my comforter in the car, let me get that and

spread it on her bed, OK?" Bill said as he went to the

stairs without waiting for my answer.

I turned and went to her room that was much warmer.

Her room was pink fluffy, there was no other way to

describe it. It was very feminine, very little

girlish, but very sexy if you thought about making

love in there. Soft pinkish lighting that could only

be cut when Meg studied and lit the fluorescent bars

over her desk. I looked around the room and remembered

the nights we had slumber parties here. I would have

never dreamed that I would be rolling around on her

bed with my boyfriend.

I heard Bill come back in the front door and bound up

the stairs. He came into the room and unfolded his

comforter. I went and wordlessly took and end and

helped him spread it out.

"Did you go outside like that?" I said laughing

looking at his unsnapped jeans pulled open and ready

to fall off.

"Uhhhh, yup. I wuz in a hurry. I got a lady in muh

room" he said in a western goofy drawl.

"God, do I know you?" I said going to hug the lug. He

chuckled and put his hands on my ass as I hugged his

chest to mine. He turned me around and we flopped on

Meg's bed.

"God, I hope no one saw you with your pants open going

in and out of the house. What did you think, I was

going to change my mind?" I asked as I held him

laying on me.

"No, Care, I just didn't want to miss a second of you,

that's all. You might be sexier than I've ever seen

you tonight. The look in your eye and the thought that

you . . . . . . . I just couldn't wait." He said as he

kissed me.

"The thought that what, Bill? Finish what you were

saying." I asked him.

"Well, ever since I left you after Easter weekend,

every time I talk to you I get the impression that

there could be an end to us. I never thought there was

ever a chance that there was a life without Carree for

me.

Now, I hear your frustration a lot and I know that

there may be an end of us. You can't handle, and you

shouldn't have to handle, how hard I have made this."

Bill confessed.

I was shocked. I didn't know what to think. Where had

I given him that impression? Was my own paranoia that

obvious?

"O Bill," I said as tears flowed freely, "I never ever

gave a single second of thought that it couldn't

always be us. I know I'm so frustrated at the

situation, but never to that end. I remember the day

you gave me the ring you told me it was not going to

be easy, but if we made our plans and kept everything

in perspective and our love was true, everything would

happen. I still believe that. You said then there

would be long times apart. I accept that, that doesn't

mean I have to like it, no more than you do."

"Even though I hate it when you cry, your words make

me happy, Care. I know its probably going to get worse

with this summer thing. We can make it, stay with me

and trust me." Bill implored.

"I'm here Bill, that was never a doubt since that

day." I said. "Do you remember how we sealed our love

that day?" I asked now laying on top of him.

"Yes, of course, it was the first time I made love to

you, in your ass. NO, in your beautiful bottom." He

answered, correcting the words he didn't like.

"Fuck me again like that Bill. Make love to my bottom.

Fuck my ass. It's OK to call it that." I said as my

pussy began to leak into my pants thinking about what

I was saying.

"I want to fuck you there Carree, I just don't know if

I can do that without hurting you, we're not prepared"

Bill reasoned.

"Let's find some lube and give it a try. I decided in

my mind, back on the stairs, that I wanted you there.

I want you inside me." I said.

"I don't have any of that stuff we use with me, Care"

Bill said.

"Let me up, I'll look around" I said.

I buttoned my pants so I could go up and down the

stairs easily and went down to her parents bathroom. I

found a squeezed out tube of KY that should have been

tossed long ago, but I also found colored lubricated

condom "coins"; Condoms in little discs.

"Lubricated" caught my eye. That was a possibility. I

checked the family bathroom cupboard and there was a

bottled enema there. But, I was afraid to take it, but

would keep it in mind. They might have it for

emergencies.

I went back up to Meg's bathroom and rummaged around,

and found a new tube of KY. It was out dated, but

still sealed, that told me she might not miss it. I

went back in her bedroom and Bill looked at me

hopefully, but I just gave him a "hold on a minute"

sign.

Both being females, I knew the what's and where's of

Megan hiding "personal" stuff. I hated going into her

personal things, but special needs require special

dispensations. Bottom drawer, under something she

never wears. Bingo! There, wrapped in a beach blanket

were two special toys. One was a Silver Bullet, a

chrome vibrator, that I knew that Meg had, she told me

about it. The other was a longer thinner one with a

little knob on the end. I don't know what she used it

for, but I knew what it could be used for, dilating

me!

I came back to the bed and showed Bill what I found,

making him swear never to breath a word to Meg. She

would kill me.

He smiled, nodded and still said nothing. I sat on the

edge of the bed and opened the condom. I wanted to

protect Meg's toy. It was a messy task, but I got the

condom rolled over the toy with lots to spare. I tied

a knot in the condom and Megs toy was safely sealed

inside.

"Can we get sexy again?" I asked Bill standing in

front of him.

He reached out and unsnapped my pants and pulled them

down. I pushed them off with my shoes. I unbuttoned my

blouse and shucked my pullover bra to free my breasts.

I was nude in front of my lover. He pulled me onto him

putting his head right between my breasts. He massaged

each breast and sucked the nipples erect.

"We are a little pressed for time Bill, let's get you

undressed," I said pushing him from me and grabbing

his pants button.

I had him stripped down to his shorts in a couple

seconds. I knelt over him and peeled his shorts over

his cock. It sprang up and I dropped my mouth on it to

give him a little jolt and reinforcement.

Mission accomplished. He groaned as I sucked at the

head and tried to thrust up a bit, but I pulled away.

I flipped to my knees and showed him my ass.

"Let's get naughty," I said.

Bill needed little encouragement to get him to pay

attention to my ass. He could never get enough of it.

He had his tongue buried in my ass again before I had

a chance to catch my breath. He licked and poked his

tongue in my butt hole while he diddled his thumb in

my pussy. I was heating up fast.

He paused and I heard him opening the tube.

He only said one word of warning. "Cold."

He was right. It was cold as the gel hit my butt hole.

His warm fingers worked it around and around my hole

until his finger slid in. It felt nice and he held it

there for me to get used to. Then he started to move

it, in and out, side to side, and then it left me.

Quickly I felt the greased pad of his thumb go into

me.

Again he held it for me to adjust to it. As he started

to work it in and out, I was getting really turned on.

I felt him squeeze a dollop of gel onto the small of

my back.

I was about to ask him why when he re-doubled the

thrusts with his thumb in my butt. By the time I was

where I could ask him again I felt him rolling the tip

of the condom covered sex toy on the reservoir on my

back.

He pulled his thumb out and before I could even think,

the knob of the sex toy was in my ass. It was only 6

or 7 inches long and the widest end was not as big as

Bill. After being real careful, just rolling the toy

around, he pressed on past my big muscle, my sphincter

or rectum, whatever it is. It hurt and I dropped my

head and cried out.

"Do you want it out?" he asked

"No, its in there now, that's the hard part. Keep

sliding it past that and relax me," I said.

That was just what he did. In a minute or two he was

strumming my butt with the toy as I closed my eyes and

enjoyed the feeling of being filled there. The strokes

with the toy became longer, then he held it in.

"Reach down and hold it there." Bill said.

I reached between my legs and held the sex toy in my

butt looking between my legs.

Bill finished taking the rest of his clothes off as I

closed my eyes and got ready for him.

I felt the bed go down near my head and opened my eyes

to see his penis in front of me.

I knew what he wanted and I was only too glad to help

him out. I opened my mouth and took him in and sucked

as he thrust short strokes in my mouth. He was as hard

as I ever remember him. I could taste pre-cum already.

I wanted him inside me.

I pulled my mouth off his cock and looked up to him.

"Fuck my bottom, lover. Fill my ass. Squirt your cum

in me." I said.

He knelt next to me on the bed and walked on his knees

to my other end. He took the toy from my fingers and

slowly slid it out. Just as the knob was beginning to

come out, he slid it all the way in again. It went in

smooth, and he took it out as quickly as it went in.

He got off the bed and I heard him stroking the slick

KY gel onto his cock.

He knelt on the edge of the bed and I held my breath.

He put the head to my butt hole and I tried to remain

loose. His put his thumb over the head of his cock and

he pushed the head straight down and in. It felt

bigger than the last intrusion, but certainly it was

going to fit. I was about to say to go slow, when he

just slid all the way in until his balls were against

my vagina, with one steady smooth stroke.

It took my breath away. There was no great pain, just

a little discomfort and the feeling of being real

full. He was inside me. My lover was part of me.

We were one.

We must have stayed like that for a full minute or

longer. Then he began to move within me. It took but 5

seconds to realize that I was going to cum, and cum

HARD, in a short time.

Bill groaned and mewled as he worked his cock in and

out of my tight opening. It felt so good, so natural.

Just how much better was regular sex going to be?

I was being made love to; getting fucked by my lover

and that was all I cared about.

My orgasm was building hard and fast.

"Hold me tight, Bill. I'm gonna cum" I said loudly to

make sure he held me tight and couldn't buck him out

of me.

I sat on the edge of that orgasm for a second longer

than I wanted, so I touched my clit from underneath

and that pushed me over.

"Ohhh, Arghhhhhhhhhh," I reported with a great

muscled squeeze of my butt.

That sent Bill into overdrive. He pumped harder and I

felt my next O right there.



"Fuck me, fuck me, fuck me," I said as he rode me hard

and fast.

I felt a big vaginal spasm coming and I knew I was

going to squirt. I heard the thrust of fluid hit Bills

comforter and I was glad we protected Meg's bed.

That was the last thought I could make out though, as

I entered overdrive and held on as a wave swept me.

"Arrrghhhhhhhh" I grunted over and over as the orgasm

wouldn't stop.

I thought to keep taking deep breaths, but I was

leaving reality, fading, it seemed.

I dropped to my shoulders and clenched my arms across

my breasts. I was going to go where this ride would

take me and was not going to fight it. I was sure I

would pass out. Before, I was afraid when this

happened, but now I knew what to expect. I could just

cum harder than my body could withstand. I knew I

should breathe deep, but I wanted the orgasm more than

the breath.

Bill saw me "leaving" and slapped me hard on the butt,

really cracking me hard, twice.

"I'm gonna cum babe, I'm gonna cum Care. Stay with

me." He said as he cracked me hard again on my ass.

The pain mixed with the pleasure, and brought me back

from lala-land. I filled my lungs with air and felt

myself return a little. I was gaining control and I

was still spasming.

"Shoot it baby, fill me up. Shoot me full," I

encouraged him as he gripped the sides of my ass.

"Ohhh, Ohhhh, Ohhh, Ohhhh, Jahhhhhhhhhhh,

Uhnnnnnnnnnn," he grunted as he slammed into me

filling my bowels with cum.

Bill kept pumping at me slower and slower and his

breath returned to normal. Finally he slouched over

and held me.

""That was incredible," I said, 'Just incredible."

"Mmmmmmmm," was all he could answer.

"If there are marks on my ass, you will pay," I said

as I began to feel the hot sting that his hand left

behind.

"I had to do something to keep you from passing out,

Carree," Bill said, "and it worked!"

"Yes, it did and I'll admit, it felt good and was akin

to the orgasm. But how does my ass look," I asked.

"Holy Jesus, you have 3 big red handprints on that

beautiful ass." Bill said.



I didn't doubt it because I could feel every inch of

them.

Ohh baby, your ass is mine," I said, "Payback's a

bitch!"

"Your ass is cute when its all red, hell, your ass is

cute all the time baby." He said.

I fell forward and let his shrinking penis slide from

me.

"Go get a towel from the closet in the bathroom. Clean

up yourself and then clean me up. If there's anything

on the towel, I don't want to know about, just don't

tell me. We'll throw the towel away." I ordered him.

He left the room and came back a minute later and

asked me to kneel up again.

He wiped around between my butt halves and folded the

towel and held it up to my ass.

"Ready to take a walk?' he said.

I reached back and held the towel in place and got up

on my wobbly legs. I walked bow legged into the

bathroom and sat on the toilet.

Big farts from the air he pumped into me came out and

I wished I had closed the door. I heard him stifling a

laugh.

"Bill?" I asked.

"Yes" he answered

"Fuck You. I hear you laughing" I said.

"I already did fuck you, and I hear you farting," he

said as he giggled.

Just then, streams of cum dripped from my butt, I knew

he came a lot.

"Was there any mess, Bill?" I hollered out to him.

"No, not a trace baby. All was fine. We lucked out."

He said.

Once I finished draining I ran around to put

everything in order to make sure Meg didn't know we

were rummaging around.

In the basement I found a basket of dirty clothes and

towels, and I mixed our clean up towel in there. We

folded up Bills comforter with the big wet spot and

put it in his car. It would go to the dry cleaners

while he was in New York.

I cleaned off Megs sex toy and returned it to

its hiding place.

We finally went downstairs and put on the tv and

curled up on the sofa together.

"Thanks, I needed that, Bill" I said.

"We BOTH needed that," he reiterated.

"I could fuck you every night," he added.

"Not there," I said as I felt a little soreness back.

He smiled. "That's not what I meant. I meant I could

make love to you every night."

"I know," I said.

"I hope we can make love every night some day."

"Geez, look at the time," Bill said.

"It's after 10, I should get going before my mom

starts to worry. I told her if I was after 10 I would

call."

"Listen, tomorrow, get someone to drop you off and you

can have my car for Monday and then leave it at the

airport when you leave. I'll get it on Wednesday

and I'll pick you up Thursday. OK?"

"OK lover that sounds great. I'll leave the parking

ticket under the seat." I said as I got up to leave

with him.

We turned off the lights and left together sure that

we left the house the way we found it. We hugged and

kissed on the porch before going to our cars.

Bill followed me out of town to the county road where

we lived. My driveway had the last city streetlight

and was easy to spot. I slowed and pulled in as Bill

flashed his lights and beeped his horn.

I stopped the car in front of the porch and sat

contemplating. I felt so alive and fulfilled, never

dreaming that I would have been made love to in such

an intimate way when I left the house earlier. I felt

a little sore back there and the sting of Bills hand

was still there, but all in all, I felt good about

everything. I had a good cry and vocalized my

frustrations to Bill, I was able to feel him most

intimately in my mouth and my bottom and he gave me

huge orgasms that still felt good.

Was it going to be this good when we were married and

spent every night together?

Both of our intern orientations went well that week.

Each of us was treated as if we were established

members of each company's teams.

Bill said that they really liked his work and was

taken aside more than once from the other prospective

interns to be told that he was a lock for the position

and was even given his summer address, as well as

email. He was locked.

I was treated much the same at Arens and Ponds.

Miranda Ponds met 3 of us at the airport and on the

way back to the office talked to just me in the front

seat of her car. Once at the office she had an

assistant take the other two girls around the company

while she took me alone and explained the whole

operation to me.

She then took me into Baltimore and showed me where I

would be living. They were small apartments that the

State of Maryland subsidized to keep students in the

city near the many small campus in Baltimore.

Miranda assured me that mine was a prime spot that

looked out onto a park on Johnson Street. It was a

reclaimed neighborhood in one of Baltimore's oldest

streets.

The only thing wrong with the whole deal was, I was

the only one not excited about being in Baltimore. It

was a great set up, a fantastic opportunity, and paid

well after fulfilling intern hours. But, I was going

to be away from Bill for the summer, and the more I

thought about that, the more it wore on me. To turn it

down would make anyone question my priorities.

They could end up paying for a good part of my senior

year. I resigned myself to gritting my teeth and doing

this, even though I was convinced I'd be miserable.

Walking away from this would disappoint Bill, my

parents, my Student Advisor (who worked so hard to

get it for me) and Miranda Ponds, who could do so much

for me.

When I got back on Thursday night I was tired from

working and running around Baltimore all day getting

things set up for the summer.

My plane was delayed and I didn't get back until

almost 9:30 that night. Bill was waiting for me, and

drove me right home. I sat up talking with Bill and my

parents until 11 o'clock. I was so tired, but wanted

to be alone with Bill.

With Bill right there, I told my mom and Dad that I

wanted to spend the night with Bill. My mom sighed and

said she had no problem with it. My Dad said he would

go along with it too. They had always liked Bill and

now thought of him as a son in law, which was

inevitable.

"If you want to stay here, Bill, you can, with Carree.

If you would rather go out to your place, that's fine

too. You've both worked so hard and have done so well

at school, it's hard to say no. We know how much you

love each other, and you are 23 years old." My Dad

said.

He caught us a little off guard. To stay at Bills own

room, outside of his house was one thing.

To be under my parents own roof was totally different.

I was so tired I really didn't want to leave.

"Call home and see how it sits. I don't want to cause

any trouble, Bill," I said.

Bill called his parents, and the fact it was late

probably had something to do with the fact they said

they said it was OK with them, either way.

Engaged and in our early 20's, both sets of parents

finally accepted the fact that we were in love and

wanted to be together, and could do so without their

approval. But we did respect them.

"Where do you want to go, Care," Bill asked.

"Let's stay here, OK?" I smiled at him.

"OK, this will be weird," he said.

My dad looked at him saying, "Just think of how weird

it is for us."

There was a certain tension building, not from anger

or disagreement, and if I couldn't cut it, we could

not continue.

"Mom, Dad, I want you to know that nothing will happen

under your roof that will disrespect you in any way.

Bill and I both want you to know that." I said.

"We just want to be together, and I'm sure you

understand that."

My Dad hugged my mom and said, "We understand, and

thank you Carree."

With that, they got up and went to the stairs, and

said, "Goodnight," and went to bed.

I looked at Bill and smiled and took his hand. We

followed them up the stairs, and then went to my room.

It felt really weird being together in my house, in my

room.

"I'm going to wash up, and I'll leave out towels for

you," I said to Bill as I went to the bathroom.

I returned in my robe and Bill went in to wash. He

came back in his pants and an open shirt. I turned off

the light and slipped out of my robe, sleeping only in

my panties, Bill, just in his shorts. We held each

other and fell asleep in minutes.

The contentment of being together, and not sex, was

the reason we wanted to stay together, at least that

night.

Later, on Friday afternoon we packed up and he drove

me to school. We spent the last 2 days of our break in

my dorm, which we had to ourselves. We talked, we made

love, and sometimes just sat in the same room doing

our own thing, studying and reading. Again, content

that we were together made the time special. It also

made us realize that we were right for each other as

our spiritual selves mixed and blended in our karma.

Sitting and reading together, either holding hands or

on different sides of the room, was making love in a

way.

It made me long for more time this summer, which I

knew I would not have. As the time of year approached,

which should have been our happiest and most free,

my unhappiness and inner rage, over not being able to

do what I selfishly really wanted, festered.

I was not accepting the predicament of the summer

well, but I held it in to keep the peace.

The next few weeks were busy and we were not able to

see each other at all, although we made lots of phone

contact.

We had decided to get home for Mothers Day weekend

together and see both Moms as well as each other. It

would be the last time before exams that we would be

able to spend any time together. We both agreed to

bone up on our studies so we could free up the time.

Finals were not that far away and, with my heavy class

load, I was feeling the pressure.

Maria and Henny were also going home for the Mothers

Day weekend and we all sat one night telling "Mom"

stories.

Henny talked with such reverence about her Mother, it

was hard to believe it was the same Henny who talked

her down during our freshman year.

The change that she went through later that year had

something to do with her Mom, but she never spilled

the beans, even when we each told insider family

stories about our Moms.

As the weekend approached I was psyched to see both my

Mom and Bill. The only downer was that a cold snap hit

and lots of the early flowers and plants either died

or were shunted.

In Upstate New York they were back to predicting 25-35

degree nights and 40-50 degree days. The tulips were

always a favorite of my Moms and there was a good

chance of there being none for that weekend.

Friday morning came and I woke as both Henny and Maria

had early class. My only class for the day had been

canceled so I just needed to prepare for Bill to get

me later that afternoon. Once I knew they had left for

classes I was able to take my time in the shower

without having to worry about using all the hot water.

I ran the hot water on the back of my neck a long time

in hopes of easing the building tension of a joyless,

loveless summer. I had just gotten out of the shower

and dressed when the phone rang.

"Hi baby, how's your day so far?" Bill asked with a

tone I didn't like in his voice.

"OK, Bill, you sound like something is wrong, is it?"

I said not wanting to hear the answer.

There was a pause and then he dropped the bomb.

"Carree, I can't make it this weekend. I have a final

on Monday afternoon and work called me to pitch in on

a feature this weekend. It's like they're testing me.

I knew I was on call this weekend, but I'm on call

lots of weekends and never hear anything. The "On

Campus" feature was supposed to be done and to bed

already and its not. I got called to supervise and fix

it. I'm really sorry Care . . . . Carree?" He asked

when he heard no response from me.

The pressure had been building up on me for a long

time and I had few chances to let it out. I hadn't let

on to Bill or anyone that I was under this stress

because I knew how proud he was of himself and his

work, and of me and what I was going to accomplish

this summer.

We had to cancel so many weekends during the year,

and now this was the real final free time we would

have before settling into our summer internships.

There was little, if any, time surrounding exams where

we could be together. I could no longer hold in my

real feelings. Before the first word left my mouth I

was already sorry, but the check valve had blown.

"WHY NOT JUST FORGET THE WHOLE FUCKING THING, BILL?

TAKE YOUR JOB, WRAP IT AROUND MY JOB AND BLOW THE

WHOLE LOAD OF SHIT TO HELL AND TAKE SCHOOL AND

MARRIAGE PLANS RIGHT ALONG WITH IT.

I SIT HERE ANTICIPATING SEEING YOU WEEK AFTER WEEK,

AND WEEK AFTER WEEK I GET MY HEART BROKEN.

WHY???

BECAUSE OF THAT FUCKING JOB OF YOURS THAT IS SUPPOSED

TO BE A CAREER.

ITS NOT A CAREER TO ME, IT'S A GODDAMN CURSE.

THEN I TRY TO GET SOMETHING IN NEW YORK, SO I CAN BE

CLOSE TO YOU THIS SUMMER AND WHAT HAPPENS?

I END UP 2 STATES AWAY TO MAKE SURE I'M SO COCKSUCKING

MISERABLE IN WHATS SUPPOSED TO BE OUR LAST SUMMER

TOGETHER BEFORE WE GET MARRIED.

I DON'T WANT TO WORK IN BALTIMORE, I NEVER WANTED TO

WORK IN BALTIMORE.

I ACTED HAPPY BECAUSE YOU WANTED ME TO.



THE ONLY THING I WANTED WAS TO BE CLOSE TO YOU AND I

GOT NOTHING.

NOW WE PLAN ONE LAST SPECIAL TIME TOGETHER AND IT GETS

SHOT TO HELL.

WELL, FUCK IT, FUCK IT ALL. I'M AT THE END!!!"

By the time I had finished my screaming tirade I had

lost all control of my senses. Looking back I was

probably at the threshold of a nervous breakdown.

I then took the phone and threw it to the floor. When

it didn't break apart, I kicked it emphatically across

the room, where it hit the wall and came right back

to my feet, so I kicked it again and then a third

time.

I sank to the floor and cried for a couple minutes

until the rage over Bills call, and what I had done,

built again to a pitch. I had basically thrown Bill

away, as well as our relationship, over my own

selfishness and dishonesty,

"THAT'S IT!! I shouted to no one." I FUCKING QUIT

SCHOOL, I QUIT LIFE."

I looked for something else to destroy, but only saw

the end table with magazines and the phone cradle on

it.

I gave that a kick, sprawling magazines over the room.



I decided I was going to walk home. I didn't care. I

would walk until I could walk no more, and then I

would slip into the woods.

If anything happened to me,it happened. I was done.

I stormed out the door.

I wasn't dressed for the cold snap, but I didn't care.

A sweatshirt and jeans would be how they found me, if

they found me.

I was stressed to the end and the people I should have

sought out for help were the ones I deceived.

I reached the end of the quad and my hands were cold.

I would allow myself that luxury in my misery, gloves,

and I went back to my dorm to get them. I stormed in

through the open door and went to my dresser.

There laid out we 3 pairs of gloves. "Look," I said to

myself. "Goody two shoes Carree is so goddamn neat and

organized she has 3 pairs ready for any occasion."

I picked up a leather pair and threw the other 2 on

the floor.

I went back into the main room and looked around for

what I was sure the last time I would see any of this.

I would walk down the road towards home until I could

go no further and then slip into the woods. If I woke

in the morning, I would continue. I truly didn't care.



I had stopped crying and was in a cold determined

sweat. I was truly flipping out.



I surveyed the room once more and turned to leave when

I heard something, a buzzing.



It was that goddamn phone; I thought I destroyed that

useless piece of shit that delivered all my bad news.

I went to the corner, behind the floor lamp, where I

heard the noise. I would give that phone one more ride

into the wall to silence it for good!!

I took the phone and wound to pitch it when I heard

the buzzing again.



It wasn't a buzzing sound I heard, it was a voice. I

held the broken phone to my ear.

"Carree, Carree! Pick up the phone!!" then, a pause.

"Carree, Carree! Pick up the phone!!"

It was Bill.

He was saying it over and over again. He must have

been saying it for the last 7 or 8 minutes.

Why didn't he give up? I had ruined what we had and

threw him away through my own dishonesty, I thought

through the cloud of rage and deceit I had.

Finally his cadence stopped. I still held the phone to

my ear to hear his voice one more time.

"CARREE PLEASE! PICK UP THE FUCKIN' PHONE" he shouted.

His shout was unsettling to me, . . .

yet I couldn't drop the phone and leave.

"CARREE, PLEASE BE THERE. PICK IT UP!! WHAT THE FUCK

IS GOING ON THERE?" he said.

Then I heard him bang his phone on his desk over and

over again.

Then I sensed he was holding the phone to listen for a

sound. I pictured him there.

Although I was hoarse and my voice shot from all the

screaming and crying, swallowing mouthfuls of tears, I

spoke.

"I'm here," I barely whispered.

I decided to let him tell me off, before I went off.

I deserved it.

Tears rolled from my eyes, although I could no longer

make a sound for crying, the tears rolled.

"C A R R E E ?" he bellowed.

"Yes, I'm here," I whispered.

I waited for him to rip me apart with his words.

"What the FUCK is going on there?"

he began his litany.

Are you some kind of raging mad person or what?

You spoiled little brat!

If I were there I would put you over my knee and make

your ass so red you couldn't sit down for a week!

That would be treating you like a spoiled child,

and that's just what you are being!

How could you let all this build up inside like this?



Why didn't you share it with me?



What makes you so special, you think you're the only

one hurt when we have to cancel seeing each other?

Poor Carree, she's so deprived!



But Bill, he's having a great fucking time sitting

back here having to deal with breaking your heart, and

feeling his own pain too!

If you didn't want to go to Baltimore there was

something you could have said to Arens and Ponds!



How about saying NO?

You spoiled little bitch!



That would be doing something for YOU,

instead of making other people happy!



You better start worrying about yourself,

because I have no intention of marrying some dependant

YES person who doesn't want to rock the boat!



I thought I was going to marry a strong person,

not some weak pussy!

That's what made you different from all the others!

You were the one who kicked my ass all over school

when I was going to just give you up because I thought

you were going to join the convent!

You were pissed off at me,

because I wouldn't fight for YOU!

Now what's this shit you're pulling on me?

You wouldn't tell me you weren't happy with going to

Baltimore because it might make me unhappy?

Are you that weak you won't stand up for yourself?

That isn't my Carree!



Where's the Carree, who when she had a problem,

would talk it out with me, instead of sweeping it

under the rug to hope it might go away?



So I can't be with you this weekend?

What the fuck are you going to do,

when we have a real problem in life?



A time when you have to really suck it up,

and do something out of either bravery or fear?,



when there is no difference between bravery or fear?

ANSWER ME GODDAMN IT!!"

I never felt worse in my entire life. Here was the man

who loved me, and I ripped his whole belief system

with me away. I almost felt that I didn't have enough

character to answer him at all. I thought to just drop

the phone and walk to my end. But a spark of hope that

he might forgive me made me open my mouth.

"I'm sorry Billy, I am so sorry. Oh my God I'm so

sorry. Can you ever find it in your heart to forgive

me" I said, although in my state it was barely

audible, or if it was, barely understandable.

"What? Find it in my heart to forgive you?

You are all that is my heart Carree.

What's wrong with you?

How could you not know this?

Do you think that anything I do here, or for work, is

as important to me as you?

Do you think I would trade you for anything I call an

accomplishment?

My greatest accomplishment is you!" Bill said through

a crackling voice.

I was pitiful. I had sunk to the floor and draped

myself over the end table I had kicked over a few

minutes earlier and my tears flowed like a faucet. I

was emotionally drained and my face hurt and stung

from crying.

"I'm sorry Billy," I implored to him. "I'm SO sorry!"

"Carree put yourself together!

Where's the woman I proposed to?

Quit your blubbering, damn it!

There are times to cry and mourn what's bad in the

world and in our lives!

Son of a bitch, this isn't one of them!

Get some backbone. Things aren't going our way.

So what. Look at all the other things we overcame to

get where we are.

God damn it, are you hearing me?" he hollered.

"YES! I hear you," I said forcing myself to speak

loudly enough for him to hear me, although I was sure

it didn't sound like me.

"I didn't know you loved me that much, that I was that

important to you," I said.

"What! Carree! Do you think I am that self-absorbed in

all of this? This is all for us, so we have a

foundation for our life. Without you, I don't need

this. You know that. I really should put you over my

knee.

Just once during all this stressing and rage building,

did you think about how much I love you? All the

emotion I have invested.

Did you think about me?

Or, was it all about you. You don't think I was

heartbroken over this, the important summer in our

lives.

You little bastard son of a bitch!" He railed at me.

I finally got chance to get a word in.



"Stop calling me names. I don't like hearing you call

me names!" I squeaked

"Well, what do you know, Carree finally stood up for

herself. Keep looking around that dorm room, see if

the rest if Carree is there" he said.

I was finally "getting it." I realized that the real

Carree had gone and hidden. Now Bill had woken her up.

All the time I spent feeling sorry for myself had

cloned someone else.

"Carree, let me ask you something else. Have you ever

heard of the Acela, the Metroliner?" Bill asked.

I was confused. I didn't know if these were things I

should know and should answer, or if he was making a

point.

"No, I don't know" I said through tears. "Should I?"

"Those are trains," he said. "Trains that leave from

Penn Station. Penn Station that is within 5 minutes

from where I'm going to work, and 10 minutes from

where I'm going to live. Between the Acela and the

Metroliner they leave New York for Baltimore over 6

times a day, and 3 or 4 at night. Its 2 hours and 20

minutes to the station in Baltimore. The station in

Baltimore is a 15-minute walk to Johnson Street, where

you're going to live. It's not a safe walk all the

time, but it's only a 5-minute cab ride. Does 2 hours

and 20 minutes seem like a long ride? Before you

answer that, keep in mind that a couple of the female

interns at Time, Inc will live on a campus on Long

Island and their commute to the office is almost 3

hours at rush times, over 2 hours when its not busy.

Carree, I can be at your doorstep, in your apartment 3

or 4 nights a week! We can be together a lot. Your

landlord will let you have a roommate as long as he or

she signs on the lease and puts up a deposit. No extra

rent, just a separate deposit. I have the rider for

the lease for you to sign with me. You didn't think I

was going to go the summer without seeing you as often

as I could, did you?

Goddamn it Carree, I LOVE YOU, more than anything.

Any night I get out before 6, I can come to be with

you. If I get out before six I can make the 6:10 and

be there at 8:30, in your arms by 9:00!

In the morning there are 3 trains to New York

between 6:15 and 6:45. Anyone of them should get me to

work by 9 o'clock.

Are you hearing me CARREE!" he hollered.

"YES, I hear you, stop raising your voice to me. I

didn't know about the train service," I whined.

"Carree, am I talking to you or am I talking to the

weak whimpering spineless son a bitch who threw her

phone against the wall as if it were my heart? Who is

it? Goddamn it!!" he demanded.

I wiped my face and nose on my sleeve. I snuffed and

swallowed a mouthful of tears and mucus, I cleared my

throat the best I could.

"IT'S ME! You son of a bitch, I'M HERE! I'm your

Carree. Although I may deserve it, if you ever put me

over your knee and lay a hand on me I'll kick your ass

up and down the hallway. Now stop calling me names and

hollering at me. I'm sorry if I was stupid and let my

feelings get the best of me. Holy shit Bill, I was

going to feed myself to the fuckin' bears a few

minutes ago. I was in a state." I said as I realized

how far I had sunk.

"Do you really think we can be together that much?

Three times a week?" I asked.

"I really think so. On weeks where the bed is set for

the new issue and the Editor is happy with everything

I can be out by 9 or so on Friday and not have to be

back in until 7 on Monday. The rest of the week I

don't have to be in until 9.

Hey, what did you mean, feed yourself to the bears,

anyway." Bill said.

"I was outta here, Bill. I was heading home, walking.

When I got so tired I couldn't go anymore I was going

to lie in the woods. I was mad," I explained.

There was a long silence on Bills end of the line.

Finally he spoke.

"Go into your room for me Care. Close the door." Bill

ordered.

I was pushing myself to my feet, but asked,

"Why, what do you want?"

"Just do it. Are you in there?" he asked.

"If you are, close the door."

"OK, I'm here, why?" I asked.

"Sick your hand down your pants. Touch that pussy.

That's MY pussy. It's the one I'm going to make love

to someday and OUR children are going to come out of

it. You were going to throw THAT away with yourself?"

he asked.

"OK, I get your point" I said,

"And I told you I was sorry."

"Are you doing it, Carree? Touching yourself?"

"No, I . . . ."

"Do it, damnit. I want to make a point here." He

shouted.

I unsnapped my jeans and let the zipper down a little

and slid my hand in.

"OK, I'm doing it. I'm touching it." I shuddered as I

did it.

"I heard you catch your breath, I know you did it. I'm

rubbing my dick, thinking about you, Carree. Are you

thinking about me making love to you? Do you want

to get off? Release some steam?" he asked.

"Yes, I need to" I said, embarrassed that I felt so

hot, so fast.

"Get out your big white dick toy Carree. Fill yourself

up with it." Bill said.

I took my hands out of my pants and pulled the zipper

down the rest of the way and pushed my jeans off. I

reached under my bed to my overnight case. I opened

it and at the bottom wrapped in a couple pair of

panties, was my white rubber cock.

I laid back on the bed and propped the phone to my

head with the pillow.

"I can't believe I'm doing this on the phone with you

Bill, after what I just put you through, put myself

through." I said.

"We're going to release some steam, both of us, OK?"

he said.

"OK," I said as I was already trying to work the toy

inside me.

My groans and grunts into the phone told him I was

doing it, and ready to get off. His heavy breathing

told me he wasn't going to need much.

"Oh Bill, Its fucking me, you're fucking me. Oh, oh,

oh" I said loud enough for him to hear. I was already

in the throes of orgasm. I DID need this release. I

heard Bill grunt and roar, I knew he had cum. I was

just behind him as I came loudly into the phone.

Then there was a silence.

After what seemed a couple minutes, he said it.

"I love you. Goddamn it all Carree. Don't ever scare

me like that again. See what beautiful love we can

make, and I'm 70 miles away."

"Oh, God! I love you too Bill, now more than ever. How

could I have been so stupid, so juvenile, so shallow."

I asked.

"Don't beat yourself up Carree. What's important is

that we fixed it all. Now get that head tied on

straight and suck it up a little. If I can get away

for a bit on Sunday, I'll be around, but no promises,

OK?" He asked.

"I understand. I'll use the time this weekend to catch

up. Bill, I promise not to be such a fucking idiot. I

think back now and can't even believe it was me. Man,

I lost it. I am so ashamed. I can't believe I was

afraid to talk to you." I admitted.

"Don't beat yourself up anymore, lets just get passed

this. I'm sorry about this weekend. I'll make

everything up to you someday." He said.

"I know you will. I have to go now. I have to clean up

this dorm, and go buy a new phone. This one is all

beat up. I'll be OK, now. I promise. I love you so

much, even more now. Bye lover."

I said as I clicked off the phone.

I drew a deep breath and knew I had to get my life, my

dorm, back in order. Though it had hardly seemed like

a time for sex, the relief that orgasm provided was a

good stepping off point to get a new start. I slipped

on my jeans and took my toy to go wash it and put it

back in its hiding place.

I opened the door and there sat Maria, a little smile

on her face.

"I'm sorry for being a voyeur, but if I made too much

noise I might have stopped you, and I know you needed

that. The stress has shown on your face. Don't worry,

we all do it. Ummm, God, what happened here?" Maria

said as I tried to hide the Great White Wonder.

I turned beet red. I was embarrassed at being caught

jilling off, caught having my tantrum turning the room

upside down.

"I'm sorry about the room, Maria. I'll pick everything

up." I said still holding the toy behind me.

"Go wash it, or whatever you were going to do. I

UNDERSTAND, ok?" Maria said.

"Thanks Mare, this has been an awful day, week, month.

Please forgive me." I apologized.

"Don't worry about it," Maria said as I slipped past

her to go to the sink.

I rinsed off the toy and wrapped it in a towel, put it

under my shirt and hurried to go back to my room.

Maria called me from her room as I passed.

"Carree, come here."

I went into Maria's room and she was standing in front

of an open drawer. I looked down into the open drawer

and there lie 3 sex toys, dildos, whatever you might

call them.

One was an orange version of the White Wonder, one was

a Silver Bullet, a vibrator, and the other an

exaggerated long thin smooth penis.

"Meet my friends. See, you have no reason to be

embarrassed. It natural. How many do you have?" she

asked.

"Uh, just the one," I said. Then Maria uncovered one

more, a black version of my Little Blue Devil anal

toy.

"Before I could stop myself I said, "Oh, I have one of

those too."

"I thought you said, just the one?" Maria asked

smiling.

"Well, Bill keeps that one." I said embarrassed that I

was revealing such personal stuff.

"Don't be so embarrassed, Carree. God, we all need a

release every now and then. At least you see Bill more

than 2 or 3 times a year. I wonder if Jack makes all

the effort he could to get out here. I have to get out

every now and then to get . . . . you know, some

company." Maria started to say something then stopped

herself then turned red and she choked up.

"What, Maria. What did you say? What do you mean, some

company?" I asked.

"It's just a faceless fuck Carree, it doesn't mean

anything. I go out and pick up a kid, someone young,

and show him a few things." She confessed.

"What? What do you mean, faceless fuck? Maria, you

have sex outside of your relationship? Are you crazy?"

I asked incredulously.

"Yes, I do," she admitted with a combination of pride

and embarrassment, it seemed.

"I go to the hang-outs where the freshmen are. Not so

much here, but over near the other area schools. I

show them a good time, they make me happy."

"MARIA, do you know what you're doing?" I said

shocked.

"Yes, I do. I have to feel like a woman sometimes, you

know. (She started to cry)

I show these boys some real tits,

how to eat pussy and they get a real blowjob.

I don't fuck them. I may act like a slut, but I'm not

a whore. I'm sorry I ever told you Carree. I didn't

think you would be so judgmental." Maria said, still

wet eyed but defensive.

She said it to me as if she was telling me she snuck a

cigarette every now and then.

God, this was sex, interpersonal sex!

"Maria, I never thought in a million years that you,"

I started.

"No one ever thinks in a million years that I would do

this, but I'm human too. I want to get off, I want to

get nasty, and I want to feel desired. I'm not hurting

anyone but me, and I happen to like it. It's not like

I do it every weekend, and I've never been with the

same guy twice." She defended.

"Mare, just be careful. We've lived together and

shared lives together. I love you, you know. You will

always be a part of my life, even if I never see you

again after we leave here next year. It would ruin

everything if I read that they found you on the side

of the road with your panties tied around your neck.

What you're doing isn't safe!" I said bawling her out.

"God, why did you have to say that!" she said taking a

second moment to think about what I said.

"Well, you've done what you wanted to do. You scared

the hell out of me, now. I almost picked up a creep

once, but I never thought of that consequence.

How can I do this again without that on my mind?"

"Maria, if you want to do it, you'll do it. But be

careful. I just think you're being really short

sighted and too trusting. Sometimes an innocent face

isn't so innocent." I said, adding,

"That's my last word on it. Just don't do anything

stupid and let anything bad happen to you."

I went back into my room not quite believing the

exchange we just had. Maria, sweet faced little Maria

with the body of an angel. It's a wonder those little

freshmen didn't drown in their drool. I know that I am

a good-looking girl, and Maria is every bit as

attractive as me, plus she tans so well. Oh my God,

the picture of her, with some young kid, letting her

teach him. My mind was going in circles.

"Carree? Can I ask you a question?" Maria asked at my

doorway.

"Sure, and hey I'm sorry for being so hard on you. I

wasn't trying to be judgmental. I love you and worry

about you, especially now." I answered.

"Have you ever heard of a blanket party?" she asked

looking at the floor.

"Yes, I have. I've been to one, and I'm ashamed to

admit. Not the lesbian kind," I added.

"No, God no, that's not what I meant. I meant the

sorority girls with no dates kind." She reiterated.

"Maybe we could put one together sometime, the three

of us, some weekend when Henny, you and I are alone?"

she asked.

"I don't know, Maria. I only did it with three really

good friends that I knew forever and it was a spur of

the moment thing. If they planned it, I wouldn't have

even went.

Why, do you think a blanket party would keep you out

of the pick up bars?

How about self control, and a sense of loyalty to

Jack, instead of a blanket party?" I finished as the

door swung open and whirlwind Henny came in.

"Blanket parties? You guys aren't having blanket

parties are you? You aren't lezzies are you? Those are

the things where you strip and hide under a blanket

while a lezzy stripper does her thing and then you

take turns?" Henny said.

"Henny," I said, leaving a long pause for effect,

"imagine me, or Maria hiring a lesbian stripper." I

said.

"OK, you got me there. I don't picture either one of

you so daring as to hold the lettuce at Burger King."

"We were talking about the kind of blanket party where

you each hide under a blanket and watch a porno movie

and do what ever comes natural, to yourself." Maria

said.

"Wow, I'm in. A chance to act like a slut again

without guilt. I like it! When do you want to do it?"

Henny said, excited.

"No one said we were going to do it. We were just

talking about it. It was something we could have done

when we were without our boyfriends and all together,"

I explained.

"Oh, I was going to say, I'm going home for the

weekend. Nick is on his way up now. I know what I used

to do on those weekends. Go out and get me some meat

and bring him home." Henny chattered.

"Yes, we know Henny, we've heard you. But that was a

long time ago." Maria said.

"You don't do that anymore, remember?"

"I know, I got my Nick now. I would never cheat on

him, but it doesn't mean I can't think about it," Hen

said.

"Alright, lets just drop it and maybe some day we can

talk about it again. But no one here is suggesting it.

It was just mentioned in conversation when you came in

Henny," I said.

"Yes, I have to get packed up" Maria said.

"My aunt should be here in a few minutes to take me

home."

"Yeah, Nick should be here in a few minutes too. I

have to pack." Henny said.

I finally hid my toy away and went back out to pick up

the dorm. There were pieces of my phone and magazines

all over he floor as well as the dumped end table, and

Henny never said a word. I loved her, but I would love

to look at the world through her eyes for a day.

I feel like asking some times, "What's it like in

there?"

Within an hour both Henny and Maria were gone, and I

had the whole dorm to myself. Right away I began using

that time to begin to think about Bill, and not having

him here, and not going home this weekend. It was

going to be a long night.

I had to get out.

I went to the quad bulletin board to see what was up.

There were keggers going on all over the place. Spring

fever had arrived. The cold snap had held down the

blatant partying this week, but the weatherman said it

would break tonight, accompanied by thunderstorms for

a short time.

I didn't envision going out tonight, but there was a

party and half-kegger at Crackerjack House.

Crackerjack House wasn't a real frat; it was a house

that bordered the campus on our end. It was a 5 or 10-

minute walk. It housed 6 guys who constantly partied,

it seemed. Although, the one fellow, the one who held

the lease this year, was Deans List, so apparently he

knew how to party and still study.

They called it Crackerjack house because there was a

big plaster figurine that looked like the sailor on

the Crackerjack box. It had become a good luck

tradition, over the years, for guys to pat "jack" on

the head as they left the house, girls would pat his

butt.

Those two spots were worn on the figure because of the

constant parties they had there. I liked parties there

because they never got out of hand and the real frat

boys didn't hang out there. It was less an animal

House than some of the other frats or houses. Because

it was officially "off campus," the school could do

little about it.



As I looked at the rest of the goings on, it began to

get ominously dark. I looked around and there was

surely a storm imminent. It was weird though, because

the wind blown air was warm, like the door was open on

a hot room. It was real strange. Before I could make

up my mind about another place to go, raindrops as

big as water balloons began falling.

I hightailed it back to my dorm and got there just in

time before the torrents of rain really hit.

The wind and thunderstorms lasted about an hour.

Once everything cleared I went out to Frazier Hall to

get dinner. It was sure strange; the temperature must

have gone up 40 or 50 degrees.

By the time I waited out the storm and ate, reading

the newspaper, it was after 9 o'clock. I was happy

that I had wasted so much time away. Tomorrow I

planned a day of running, laundry and then studying.

If Bill was to come up on Sunday, I wanted to be sure

my plate was empty.

I decided I wouldn't need a coat to go out that night,

a sweatshirt would do. Besides, I didn't like to dress

too revealing when I went out, I didn't need guys

hitting on me.

I scouted out Crackerjack house and the party seemed

to be a little loud, but not raucous. There were not

more than 20 or 25 people there, so there was enough

room to dance if you wanted. The pot smokers usually

stayed in the back of the upstairs rooms, so the non-

smokers usually stayed down.

As you entered there was a sign that said the cover

was $4 and was to go in the Crapper. They had an

old Crapper toilet, with the high tank, just as you

came in the door. The object was to stand on the seat,

and drop your money in the tank. If a girl wore a

short dress, someone with a camera snapped a picture

of her "pretties" as she reached to put her money in.

There was a bulletin board with "Past Pretties"

pictures on it, but with girls mostly wearing jeans

now days, there wasn't much to post. I guess it was a

time-honored tradition they had to keep.

I dropped my money in and looked for a friendly

familiar face. I heard a whistle and turned to see

Mark and Russell. Ahh, friendly faces! I went over and

we started up a conversation right away.

Mark went and got me a beer, and it tasted good. I

usually didn't like beer, but this was really cold and

it must have been fresh or something. I finished the

first one and Russell got me a second. I pulled Russ

onto the dance floor and we danced a little. Mark was

kind of in charge of the music and kept good dance

tunes going. I danced with each of them.

I finished the second beer, but it was way after 11

when I did. I had really nursed it. Mark went a got me

a fresh cup and a new beer, and I thanked him.

But, I knew I wasn't going to drink anymore. I nursed

a few sips and had one more dance with Russell. I gave

each of them a hug and told them I was on my way;

I had things to do early in the morning.



I went out, patted Crackerjack on the butt, and went

on my way up the sidewalk to where I could cross and

go down the Campus walkway between the scrubs to the

walk to my quad.

"Carree, Carree, wait up," I heard and I turned.

It was Russell.

"Let me walk you back to your dorm, and make sure you

get here safe," he said.

"That's really not necessary, Russell. You ought to

stay at the party. Maybe you can meet a girl for the

night, maybe even find a girlfriend." I said.

"The only girl I'm really interested in just left."

Russell said.

"That's sweet of you Russell, but you know I'm

engaged," I said.

"It's just, you're so nice, and easy to talk to and

interesting." He said.

I stopped walking and turned to Russell.

"Russell, that is so sweet of you to say. You don't

know what a bad day this has been for me. I just

wanted to die earlier, literally. It's nice to have

the support of a friend." I said as I leaned in to

kiss him for being so nice.

I didn't intend to kiss him on the lips, but I did.

I backed my face away and looked at him square in the

eye. He kissed me back, once, twice, and then a third

time holding his lips to mine and putting his arm

around me. It all felt so good, but I knew I was

wrong.

"Please Russell, no. I can't do this. You're very

nice, but I shouldn't lead you on." I told him.

We turned and continued walking towards my dorm. It

had gotten a little chilly and I wished I had more

than my sweatshirt.

I crossed my arms over myself, and mentioned I was

cold.

"Here, take my sweater," Russ said, Pulling his

sweater over his head.

"Oh, that's not necessary, Russ. Now you'll be cold."

I said.

I tied his sweater around my neck so it covered my

back, then I reached out to pull him next to me, and

we walked with arms around each other down the walkway

to my quad.

As we got to the lamppost for my building I stopped

and took the sweater off my neck.

"Here, Russell, take your sweater and stay warm.

Thanks for walking me home. I do worry a little

walking about here at night. I leaned up to kiss him

on the cheek, but he turned his face and my kiss went

right to his lips. We held it there, and I would be

lying to say it didn't feel good. I kept telling

myself to break it, but I didn't. Then he pushed his

tongue in my mouth and put his hand behind my head.

As he did this he pushed his erection right into me

crotch. I pulled away violently.

"Russell!! That was rude.

How can you do that and try to be my friend.

We aren't THAT friendly. I admit the kiss felt good,

and I held it too long, but I didn't want your tongue

in my mouth either.

Damn you, I didn't lead you on that much, Russell." I

yelled at him.

"I want you to know that, doing something like that is

offensive. It's none of your business, but I'm a

virgin. Bill and I are saving that as something

special between us. Then you go and push yourself at

me like I'm some sort of whore."

"I'm really sorry Carree, I couldn't help myself. You

just seemed to like it so much before. It won't happen

again. I'm sorry," he said to me.

"OK, Russell, I take you at your word. I thought we

were friends and I want to stay that way. Good night,

OK?" I said.

He appeared to choke up a little and I asked him what

was the matter.

"I never get the girl I want to be with. It's so

frustrating, Carree." he said to me.

"Don't worry Russ, when it's right, it'll happen." I

said.

Then, like a fool, I kissed him goodnight again.

He began to hold the kiss again and put his hand on

the back of my head.

I pushed him away, and hollered his name, wondering if

I DID lead him on.

I know that the fact I was drinking may have had

something to do with it, but I did not feel like I had

too much. Maybe Russell did. But I still think he knew

full well what he was doing.

He turned and ran away from me.

"You get back here Russell, you chickenshit bastard.

How dare you treat a friend this way! No wonder you

don't have a girlfriend! I trusted you! Get back

here," I shouted, but he ran into the darkness.

How could he do this to me when he would have to avoid

me for the rest of the school year? How did he expect

to be my friend ever again? I was willing to say I led

him on a little, but I wanted to settle this. I wasn't

prepared to lose the one male friend I had on campus

over a misunderstanding.

I went inside and locked up. I changed into my pajamas

and threw on a robe. I was going to watch some TV, but

I was pretty tired from my stressful day. I took some

Motrin and a multi-vitamin along with a big glass of

water.

This has worked as a great hangover cure for me.

Alcohol dehydrates you and strips the B vitamins

from your blood. The water, vitamin and Motrin seem to

replace everything and prevent a morning headache.

It works for me.

I just got in bed and settled, staring at the ceiling

thinking about what an asshole I was earlier,

when I heard my bell ring.

Who could this be? Was it Bill? I ran to the intercom.

"Who is it?" I said

I heard no answer; maybe someone rang the wrong bell

or leaned on it. Hopefully college students would be a

little too mature to ring doorbells and run.

I turned to go back to bed when it rang again.

"WHO IS IT?" I demanded.

There was a moment of silence then I heard a little

voice say, "Russell."

"What do YOU want Russ?"

"I want you for a friend. I'm not a chickenshit

bastard. I did something foolish tonight. I treated my

friend like shit, like an object. I want to apologize

to her." He said.

"How do I know you aren't going to try and force

yourself on me again?" I asked.

"You don't have to let me in, we can talk like this,"

Russ answered.

I pressed the button to let him in, but he didn't

open.

"Russell, you can come in," I said through the

speaker. "I'm showing my good faith that I trust you."

Before he could answer I picked up my new phone with

the emergency buttons programmed for 911 and Campus

Police, and put it in the pocket of my robe.

"OK, I'll come in, but I'll stay in the hall.

I don't want to scare you." He said.



I buzzed him in again and I heard him open. I opened

the door to our room and he was there in the hallway.

He had been crying, but I wasn't going to let on that

it showed.

"I'm sorry, Carree. I tried to take advantage of our

friendship because you're a woman.

I'm not that kind of creep. I guess I let my hormones

go a little crazy sometimes. You're very beautiful and

I can't believe that you would even talk to me, let

alone be my friend.

When you danced with me in Saratoga in front of all

my friends that night, I was so proud to show you off.

Someone so beautiful could be my friend, who knew?

But even that night, you had me all excited and I had

thoughts that a person shouldn't have towards a

friend." Russell confessed.

"I know, all my girlfriends told me you were, um . .

excited. They thought you were cute and wondered if I

was having an affair. You underestimate yourself Russ,

you can get any girl you want. Looks are always nice

bait, but you have a nice personality too. Maybe you

shouldn't drink until you know how a girl feels about

you, but . . . " I said smiling.

"I kissed you tonight because I had true affection, as

a friend, for you. When you kissed me back, I won't

lie, it felt good. I needed that reassurance after

what I went through today. But I knew to stop it. When

I kissed your cheek, for being so nice with your

sweater, you were wrong to force your lips to mine and

then when you pressed your . . yourself against me,

you made me afraid.

Friends don't do that. You apologized, and when I

kissed you again to show you I trusted you, you took

advantage again.

When I pushed you way, you ran away.

Isn't that what happened?

I want to be sure I have it right, because if it was

any other way, or you thought it was any other way,

tell me." I asked him.

Russell looked down, and said, "Yes, that's what

happened. I was an asshole. After I ran away I

realized I could never again call you a friend. That

hurt more than anything, that's why I came back. I'm

really sorry Carree."

"I forgive you Russell. Let's go on being friends,

confidants and pals. We can pretend tonight never

happened, OK?" I said as I leaned up and kissed him on

the cheek. When I did, I brushed against his ever-

present (it seemed) erection.

I looked down and laughed. "As friends, I should tell

you to do something about that. Switch from boxers to

briefs to hold it in a little. Sorry to get so

personal, but . . . "

"Apparently its more noticeable than I think, but, a

. . a. . .I don't wear any," he said turning red as a

beet.

I smiled, walk over and opened the door and he took

the hint and was right behind me. When I turned to

wish him goodnight, I was drawn to looking down and

his erection was quite noticeable. I looked up and he

gave me a sheepish smile. Said goodnight back to me,

and went out.

I no more than closed the door, when I had an idea I

hoped I wouldn't be sorry for.

I opened the door and called Russell right back in.

"Did I forget something?" Russ asked quizzically.

"No, I just had a crazy idea. Let me show you how far

a friend might go, where the line might be. Sit in

this chair, I said as I pointed to the chair in front

of Henny's door.

I went to the opposite side of the room and sat

directly across from him.

"First of all, no funny stuff. I have my phone right

here," I said drawing it out.

"I have hot buttons set for 911 and Campus Public

Safety."

Russ was confused, but I explained.

"Let's say that I DID lead you on a little tonight,

although it was not intentional. I admitted to you

before that I did enjoy your kisses at first, and that

was a tease."

"You will think I am crazy, but, I hate to see you go

home with that erection in your pants, and I'm a

little turned on by all the goings on tonight.

You can either, take it out and masturbate in front of

me, and I'll do the same, while we watch each other,

or you can leave."

"What!" Russ said.

"You heard me, Russell. This is something we are both

going to do anyway tonight. Do you want a special one-

time chance to live out your little fantasy of me?

. . . or not?"

"Are you drunk, Carree? Are you going to cry rape in

the morning?" Russ said.

"Is that trust of a friend? Russ. There will be no

rape here tonight, just something personal between

friends. Last chance, Russell." I said.

"I'll do it!" he said.

"OK, Russ. I make the rules, and you stay there, OK?"

I asked

"OK," he agreed.

I opened my robe and smoothed down my pajamas.

"Unzip your pants Russ. Don't unsnap them, just unzip

them."

I slid down a little in my chair and ran my hand over

my vagina.

"Take it out, Russell"

I slid my hand inside my pajama bottoms.

"Oooo, that's nice Russ, it looks like it needs

attention. Show me what you do."

I was relieved to know that the sight of another penis

besides Bills had little or no effect on me. I truly

was in love with my Bill.

Russell's act was turning me on, but just seeing him

meant little. I was working one finger over my clit,

and I quickly switched to two fingers on either side

of it, rubbing up and down.

I originally planned on lowering my PJ bottoms, but

modesty and fear got the better part of me.

Russell stroked his cock and looked right at me all

the while, first to my eyes, then to my crotch. He was

enjoying it.

"I'm getting close," he said, "What should I do?"

"Just let it fly Russell, when you're ready. But if

you can wait a minute we can go off together," I said

as I knew I was also close.

I stifled all the noise I usually make, I didn't want

to wake other students and then have them see Russell

leave and assume something happened that didn't. But,

I was cumming.

I grunted and hummed a low report as I began to

climax. I was looking Russell in the eye when I saw a

long stream of cum fly from his cock. It must have

gone 5 feet.

If any girl was having oral sex with him, I am sure

she would have choked on that load.

I finally got back to normal breathing and Russell was

sitting with his head back, exhausted.

I finally got up and tied my robe.

"Russell," I called, "How was that? Going to make you

sleep better tonight?"

He sat up and smiled. "Yeah, Care, I feel better."

I reached into my dirty clothes and found a shower

towel and I pitched it at him.

"Here, wipe yourself up, and get the floor too, OK?"

I said.

He wiped his penis, then his hand, then dropped the

towel on the floor and mopped up with his foot. He

picked up the towel and rolled it up, handing it to

me.

"Thank You Carree. This was special. It meant a lot.

I'll see you tomorrow at Frazier for coffee, OK? I'll

be over around 10 if you want to meet me." He said.

"It meant a lot to me too Russell. It bonds us forever

as friends. I will see you for coffee." And we said

goodnight.

My bold move made Russell see what a friend does

sometimes, as long as he doesn't jeopardize the

friendship. Nothing like that ever happened again like

that between us, and he never flirted or came on to me

again. We were friends.

We remained friends through college, he dance at my

wedding, held me, cried with me, at Williams funeral.

- - - - - - - - - - -

By the time I finished my last exam that semester,

Bill was already in New York starting his internship

at Time, Inc.

Although he had made arrangements to have his car in

New York, the price he had planned on paying for

parking was for a month, not the summer as he thought.

Living and working in New York City, particularly near

Penn Station, the need for an automobile was

minimized.

Unless you absolutely had to drive to a place that had

no train, bus or subway service, it was a foolish

endeavor.

Although Bill was to start on a Tuesday, he, along

with his mom and his Dad went to New York on a Friday

night and spent the long weekend seeing New York, and

doing New York things. A ballgame, the Statue of

Liberty, the Empire State Building, the World Trade

Center and all the standard tourist things to do.

The only thing he didn't do was, CALL me.

I was freaking out between exams checking my messages

to get one word from him. I should have been happy

that he and his parents were having such a great time,

but I really hoped to hear from him and get some

encouragement about exams.

I wasn't totally freaking out, but until the first

time I saw him at my doorstep in Baltimore, I would

never really believe that I would see him all summer.

My last exam, Art, was on the Wednesday after Bill

started in New York. I had little luck reaching him

when I tried to call, and had left a pile of

unanswered messages. I received one message on my

answering machine Wednesday just before I packed up to

leave home.

Henny, Maria, Russell, Mark and myself chipped in for

a storage unit close by, to keep our dorm belongings

for the summer. Refrigerators, TV's, microwaves and

some furniture and other items seemed crazy to cart

home, when we were going to move it back in a few

months again. By the time we figured what we really

had to bring home, I called my Dad and told him that

Russell would bring me back.

We had envisioned a truckload of things, but with the

5 of us planning on returning, and staying as

roommates, Henny, Maria and myself, Russell and

Mark, the move seemed un-necessary. I just brought

home tons of clothes and boxes of HBA, leaving Russell

to comment that it looked like we had robbed a GAP and

a drug store overnight, with all the clothes and

health-beauty aids in his car.

Russell had turned into a good friend after our mis-

understanding. He realized what a resource I was for

advice as he went through girlfriends and

relationships.

I was no Dear Abby, but he sometimes failed to see the

difference between a person seeking a bedmate for the

night, or a lasting relationship. Russell had a

tendency to fall in love with any girl who would drop

their undies for him. When I would break the news to

him that she was doing the same thing he was, trying

to get laid for the night, and that's it, he would

label her a tease and a whore. After having his heart

broken more than few times, he finally began to "get

it."

Once home on Wednesday night I called and left more

messages for Bill, but I still heard nothing. I was

beginning to worry. I really hated to call his house

in fear they would tell me to leave him alone to work,

not to spoil his opportunity, blah, blah, blah.

I was sick of hearing the whole spiel. Damn it, he was

my husband and I had not heard from him in days!

I moped around the house afraid to leave, not wanting

to miss Bills call. I knew I was driving my mother

crazy, and my Dad called that afternoon from work to

say he was taking the 3 of us out to dinner that

night.

Not wanting to hurt his feelings I told him I would be

happy to get out with them. In reality I knew I

couldn't digest any food until I knew he was OK.

As it got close to 4 o'clock my mom asked if I wanted

to get in the shower first to get ready for our date

with Dad. I had just agreed when the phone rang and I

shot down the stairs to answer it.

It was Bills mom and she had wondered if we had heard

from him since they left him on Monday evening. I was

in total freak out now. I was sure he was mugged and

dragged into a subway tunnel to die. Bills mom asked

me to repeat the work phone number I had for Bill and

she compared it to hers, they were different.

We compared his home numbers and they were different

too. My mom took out the letter Bill had sent them and

the numbers he gave them were a third set altogether.

Totally confused, Bills mom was going to call the

intern office where Bill had his original contact, and

got his keys and ID badge when they went there last

week.

She had the man's card.

"Mrs. Wilson, err mom (Bill had insisted), would you

mind if I called instead of you? Could you give me the

name and number?" I asked.

"Carree, you may be going to marry him, but he will

always be my son, and I am worried." She protested

"Mom, he will always be your son, but he will always

be my husband, too. Do you think he would be

embarrassed if his mommy called looking for him

because he hadn't checked in?" I asked her.

"Oh, damn Carree, I suppose you're right. I was ready

to go to the mat on this one, but you ARE right. He

would hold his head and say "GEEZ Mom!!" I'm sure."

She admitted.

"He's going to say "GEEZ Carree" as well, but better

to have his wife or intended call for him." I

reasoned,

"Umm, do you suppose the city will take the "geez" out

of his vocabulary." I added to show a little levity

and show her I wasn't worried,although I really was.

"I doubt it, he adds it to his spellchecker when he

uses a word processor or computer, you know. " She

said making me think I put her mind at ease a little.

Mrs. Wilson gave me the name and number and I quickly

dialed.

I got a secretary for the man I wanted to contact, and

I explained the situation to her. I suspected she was

an intern too; who also had a boyfriend, because she

thought it was important enough to put me through.

"Scott Wilkens, can I help you?" he answered politely.

"Yes, umm Hello. I'm Carree Kasc and my future

husband is interning . . ."

"Ohh, Carree!! I'm so sorry I forgot to call you.

Billy Wilson gave me your number and wanted me to call

you, and you to call his Mom. He got a chance to

string along with a feature writer who went to the

wild fires in SoCal. His aide had a root canal go bad

and he and his photog needed a gopher on a moments

notice. Bill jumped at the chance to go. I am so sorry

I forgot to call."

"Mr Wilkens, can you explain that a little slower, in

English this time, so I can get it all. I was pretty

worried and confused, plus I want to make sure I have

the right message for his Mom." I asked quizzical.

"I'm so sorry Carree. We sent a feature writer and

photographer to Southern California to cover the wild

fires. He has an aide that usually takes notes, makes

appointments, and does a little dirty work for him.

That fellow had a root canal go bad, and there was no

one in the pool to go with him. I volunteered Billy,

described the kind of work he had done, and the

reporter took a chance with him. He left Monday night

and should be home early tomorrow, Thursday," he

explained less frenetically.

"OK, I feel better. Number one, would you please call

him Bill, he was Billy in the third grade, and

secondly, was there a message?" I asked, a little

snotty, but not really on purpose.

"Sure, there is Carree. I'm really sorry for causing

all this angst. He said, "Guess what, I'm on

assignment. I'll call on Thursday. Don't call me, all

of the numbers I have are wrong. New phone system,

hard to explain."

And then he says he loves you forever and ever. I

wouldn't have read that part, but I've jerked you

around and caused enough trouble for you already.

Carree, I'm really a lot more organized than this, and

don't worry, he wont be in the field anymore this

summer, I promise you. This was a real odd emergency.

He knows you are upset and wants you to know it wont

be a regular thing. Can you call his Mom?"

"Yes, I can Mr. Wilkens. Please don't think I'm a snot

or anything. I wasn't trying to be a wise-off, and

obviously he explained I would be upset. But, if I had

the message on time, I wouldn't have been.

It's a great opportunity for him.

Hopefully we can meet in person some day and we can

get off on a better step." I said.

"I'm sure, Carree. Congratulations on your wedding,

Bill told us you were getting married. He's a fine

young man, Carree." Mr. Wilkens said.

"Thank You, I know. Well good-bye, I'll call his mom

now," and I hung up.

After explaining to my Mom, and then Bills, I felt

great. Now I was ready for that dinner date with Dad.

I told my mom to go ahead in the shower, and I would

follow her later. I wanted to make some calls. mom

finished her clothes folding, getting me ready to go

away, and headed for the shower.

As soon as I heard the water begin to run I went up to

my room and closed the door. I got out of my sweats

and hopped on the bed and put my hands between my

legs.

I had a little excess tension to burn, and hearing

Bill had said he loved me forever, plus bragging about

marrying me, was all I needed to think about sex.

I worked my fingers around my clit and then grabbed my

lips between my fore and middle fingers. As I sawed

them together, I strummed my clit with the side of

my thumb. Once I knew my orgasm was imminent I brought

my middle finger up and ran it over my slick clitoris,

dipping it inside on the down stroke. I felt I could

have went for broke if I went a little deeper to find

my G-spot, but it was going to be hard enough to keep

quiet with this the way it was. Bill Wilson was

getting me off and he wasn't even here to enjoy it.

My breath caught in my throat and I went over the edge

fast. All I could think about was Bill licking on my

vagina and how much he enjoyed it. I thought about

how I would greet him the first time he came to

Baltimore to see me.

I heard the water go off in the shower and I quickly

came back to reality, relieved in a more ways than

one. The simple fact that Bill had made sure Mr.

Wilkens told me that it wasn't a regular thing let me

know he knew I would be upset, and that it bothered

him.

At dinner that night we talked about how strange it

was going to be this summer, with me being away. My

Mom and Dad were taking their vacation without me in

over 20 years, and where were they going? Baltimore!

I was really glad they were going to come for a week,

there was so much to do there, plus they had never

been to Washington, so it could easily be full week

for them.

My main worry about going away now was having enough

of my personal things there. The student apartment had

a TV, fridge and microwave, basic amenities. I only

had to supply sheets and myself.

I packed 3 big suitcases with clothes and basics for

the plane, and had 2 shipping boxes of personal stuff,

clock radio, camera, and desk lamp; things like that,

sent by UPS on Friday.

When I took off on Saturday I knew I would be on the

phone with a list of things I wanted, but had

forgotten or hadn't thought of.

When we got back from dinner on Wednesday I had hoped

to get together with friends, but Kim had just moved

in with Brad and felt funny leaving the first night,

Jenny had left for a job she got for the summer in

Arizona (how lucky is that!) and Megan was with Jimmy

in Boston for an operation that might get rid of the

limp he carried since his accident. Thoughts of a

tearful send off on Saturday with my friends and

family, was going to be mom and Dad only.

I spent the time packing my 3 cases, all laid out on

the floor. Every time I had something in my hand that

made me think of Bill, or he had given to me, I would

daydream for a minute and recall a memory. I was

getting pretty sappy.

When I got to my overnight case with all my HBA in it,

I couldn't help reaching into the bottom for the Great

White Wonder, wrapped in two pair of Victoria's skimpy

panties. I looked at it and smiled hoping I would

never need it, or want it; all the while I was in

Baltimore.

I set the overnight bag on the floor next to the 3

open suitcases, like a staging area for packing. With

a little tingle, I thought the best place to keep

the overnight bag was in arms reach of my bed, so I

moved it.

My Dad knocked and opened my door.

"Hey pumpkin, it's almost 1 o'clock. Don't you think

you ought to get to bed?" he said.

"Wow, I had no idea it was that late. Sorry Dad, if I

woke you" I answered.

"No, I couldn't sleep. I was thinking that this was

one of the last nights you would sleep under our roof.

Except for a few nights during school next year, you

won't be here. I suspect you and Bill will be together

after you graduate and before you get married." He

said, a little teary eyed.

I hugged my Dad saying, "Don't worry Dad, I'll still

be here lots. Until we get married, unless we move to

another city, I'll live here. We decided we wouldn't

live together if we stayed in the area before we got

married. We may not be home every night, but this is

home until then."

"No matter what, this will always be home, and Bill's

too. You're not a little girl anymore, as much as it

hurts to say." He said wiping a tear,

I hugged my Dad and we cried together for a minute.

This was one of those moments I would remember

forever.

After I turned off the light and slipped into bed,

sounds of love from their bedroom put a smile on my

face. I could picture my Dad going back to the bedroom

and waking my mom just to hug her and seek comfort for

his sadness. I hoped then that Bill and I could make

love so spontaneously after 25 years of marriage.

The Great White Wonder would have to wait tonight, the

love I felt for my Mom, Dad, and Bill would be enough

to fill me for tonight. I was satisfied as if I had

been loved all night, and in a way, I had.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

"Carree, Carree," I heard my mom say was I wiped

cobwebs from my sleep.

"Carree?" she asked again as she touched my face.

I thought she was waking me for school or church, my

dreams taking me back to an innocent time. Then it hit

me. It was Thursday and I was getting ready to leave

for . . . .

"Carree? Are you awake? Carree!!" my mom said raising

her voice.

""What! Mom, I'm awake. What time is it? I didn't get

to. . ." I started.

"Carree, there's a man on the phone for you. Hurry,

he's calling long distance," my mom said.

As I rolled out of bed I wished I hadn't left my

cordless phone back in the storage unit at school. I

went to Moms bedroom to answer their phone, thinking

on the way that this must have been Mr. Wilkens

telling me that Bill was going to be held up or

something.

"Hello?" I said, my voice crackling from not being

cleared yet. I coughed, excused myself and tried again

"Hello? This is Carree Kasc."

"Hi, this is Billy Wilson, can you come out to play?"

"OooooooEeeeeeeeee," I shrieked. "You bet I can. I

miss you so much, where are you??" I asked giddily.

"I'm in a phone booth at Kennedy Airport. I just got

back from the fires, it was awesome out there, but I

missed you so much, it was hard to concentrate. How

have you been? I heard you didn't get my message until

Wednesday. I really gave Scott a hard time over that.

How was my Mom, a little crazy, I bet?" he asked.

"No crazier than your psycho girlfriend," I said. "He

probably thinks I'm a little snot, I was a little rude

to him. Bad enough he forgot to call me, he called you

BILLY 3 times. I really gave it to him. He felt so bad

that when he read your note he included all the mushy

stuff. He was embarrassed. Oh, it is so good to hear

your voice. I'm just about all packed for Baltimore. I

have UPS coming tomorrow to pick up 2 big boxes of

extras I can't bring on the plane. Guess where Jenny's

working? In Arizona! Jimmy is having his leg operated

on in Boston, Kim and Brad moved in together, and my

Mom and Dad are coming to . . . "

"Geez, slow down Carree!! I'll have plenty of time to

talk later. I just wanted you to know I was back. I

have to get to the office; this reporter is waiting

for me. As soon as I get his notes together and stuff,

and we kind of debrief, I'm going to my room to sleep.

I'll call you then, in about 2, maybe 3 hours.

I'll give you all the phone numbers then.

Call my Mom, and tell her I'm home and I'll call her

later too. I have to go, right now. I love you, I love

you, I love you." Bill said and abruptly hung up, as

if he were being dragged by the arm.

I closed my eyes and clutched my chest rolling back

onto my parent's bed. All was right with the world. I

could feel my face curl into a big grin and brighten

as I thought of him and the tingle I felt all over.

When I opened my eyes my mom was staring at me with a

tear in her eye.



"You certainly do love that man, don't you?" mom said.

"I do, I do Mom. I only hope we can be in love, and

love as long as you and Dad have." I said.

"We have our moments, like all couples do, but we are

truly in love forever." She said.

"I don't want to embarrass you, but I heard you and

Dad after he came from my room last night. I know he

was filled with joy and sadness about me. I know he

woke you to share it. I was proud that my mom and Dad

were still so in love, and obviously so happy." I

said.

My mom flushed and turned he head away for a moment.



"I guess we are out of practice being quiet, like when

you were home. Since you have been away, we are

ourselves a little more. It can still be good after

all these years." She said proudly.

"Obviously," I said with a snicker as I got up and

went to my room and get ready for my shower.

My mom followed me, wanting to talk, to impart some

advice, I guess.

"We've never talked like this much, Carree. I know I

gave you the third degree when you and Billy started

parking and that in the driveway, but . . . . .

Understand, that when I was in school, I was known as

easy. I was a tramp. It hurts me to say that, but I

was. My parents spoke broken English from the old

country.

I did things to make myself be popular. When I went to

college, I decided that I would change that, and I

did. I met your father and he truly respected me for

me.

He made me open up and become a strong woman. He

thought he was going to teach me about sex, he thought

I might be naive, maybe even a virgin. But, I was

honest, Carree, I confessed about the tramp, the

backseat slut I was. I figured I would lose him when I

did. But, if I couldn't be honest, it couldn't be

love.

It made no difference to him; he said he couldn't

judge from one day before we met. It has been great

ever since. Like I said, we have had our moments, but

there has never been a second when I didn't love him,

unconditionally. You're right about last night too. He

came in and woke me to share his joy and sadness about

you, the proof of our love." mom said proudly, but on

the verge of letting a tear escape as her lip

quivered. She turned and left the room to protect that

front.

"I love you Mom," I said as she turned the corner. She

rushed downstairs to have a happy tear in her own

privacy.

I continued to lie out things for Baltimore for the

rest of the morning and finally, about 1 o'clock, Bill

called. He had just hung up with his mom so we had a

long time to talk. He hadn't really slept, beyond on

the plane, for a couple days. He said his clothes

smelled so badly of smoke he doubted they would ever

get clean, but the trip was a great experience. He

said that he had no interest in that kind of reporting

as a career, but was able to talk at length with the

writer about writing as a career.

He sits on some board at Stanford and could get Bill

in, with his marks,should he want to continue his

education.

"When I told him that I wasn't in any position to

spend that kind of money or take a loan, he said that

there was tons of grant and education money for

writers, and I could go for nothing!! Carree, are we

California people? It doesn't really excite

me now, but who knows?" Bill told me.

"Bill, the thought of California is great, but I can

barely swallow Baltimore and New York right now. Lets

get out of school before we make those kinds of

decisions." I responded.

" I told him I would have to talk it over with my

wife. . . . . . God, I love and miss you Care.

Do you think you could get my car and come down and

see me tomorrow? I should be out of here early on

Friday." Bill tempted me.

"Bill!! Don't tease me like that! You know I could

never do that tomorrow. Besides, driving into New York

would be too stressful. Once I get settled in

Baltimore you can try the train and we can see how

that works out.

You know I already have your car, I'm leaving it at

the airport for you, remember. God, get some sleep and

think about what you said. Do you really think I could

drive down there, get together with you, drive home

and be ready for an early flight on Saturday?" I

asked.

"I know, you ARE right. I just miss the hell out of

you." He said.

I cupped the phone to make sure I didn't project too

far saying "Are you sure you're not just horny Bill,

may be you should arm wrestle the monster and see if

you still want to see me that bad." I asked in a

whisper.

I know what you're saying, but believe me, I want you.

Don't worry, I'll be OK until I see you." He admitted.

"Don't think that I don't want you either, it's just a

stress thing with me. I have to be careful not to flip

out again. Things are going great here at home and I'm

right on schedule for what I need to do to get ready

for the summer. I'll call you as soon as I get set up

on Johnson Street and I have my phone, OK? I'll be

sure we have a great time!!" I promised.

Bill had yet to spend a night alone in the city, or

alone in his apartment, so I knew he would be busy for

the next couple days. It was just as well because,

once I got to town, I would barely have time to set up

and learn my way to work for Monday. I know Miranda

Ponds had told me to call her for a ride on Monday,

but I wanted to seem a little independent.

I spent Thursday night and Friday with my mom and Dad

around the house, only taking time to talk to a couple

friends who called to wish me well. Bill was able to

call me once on Friday, but he was at work and

couldn't really talk freely. Friday night he had

tickets with Mr. Wilkens for a Yankee game, so he was

happy.

Happy/Sad was the only way to describe my leaving at

the Airport on Saturday morning with mom and Dad. I

was sure I had everything I would need. My Dad acted

like I was going away, never to return.

He tailgated me all the way to the airport, afraid he

would lose me.

I cried half the way to Baltimore.

I was confused at the Airport at BWI and missed the

shuttle to the city. The next one wasn't for over an

hour, with a lighter Saturday schedule. A really cute

skycap had my 3 bags at the shuttle counter and I was

on the verge of crying. Things were not going my way.

He really wanted to lose me, as he had more tips to

make, if he could only rid his cart of my things.

Suddenly. he saw a friend and asked if I was willing

to pay my way for a quick trip to the Inner Harbor. I

told him I wasn't sure.

He went over and these two spoke back and forth. When

he came back he asked me for $40, and I figured, "What

the hell, little miss innocence has to get her first

stupid mistake out of the way".

He took my $40 and immediately put $20 in his pocket,

then put "H I" stickers on my plane tags and asked me

to follow him. We left the concourse and went outside

where a Holiday Inn Shuttle Van was parked.

There were 4 other people with bags, also having the

H I tags. He palmed my other $20 to the driver.

Once he put my bags next to the others he took my arm

and took me aside.

"Give me another $20, it's my tip," he said

confidently.

"No way, I already gave you $40 and you took half of

that." I protested.

"Listen sweetie, with your tits and ass you won't have

to buy a drink or a dinner for the whole time you

spend in Baltimore. Tip me a $20 and you won't be

sorry, I'm doing you another favor here." He said

crassly.

I gave him the $20, glad to get rid of him.

"What hotel are you going to?" he asked.

"I'm not, I'm going to my apartment," I replied.

"Oh man, I hope it's in the city," he said.

I assured him it was and he produced a little envelope

from his pocket like he had done this a hundred times,

he and his pals working the tourists for tips.



"Put your address on this, with $20 inside. Hand it to

the driver and he will drop you at your apartment.

Otherwise you'll have to get a cab from the Holiday

Inn. So, got that?? It's a pleasure doing business

with you, sweetie. Would you like to go out

sometime??" he asked

I assured him that I was not interested. With all his

wheeling, and dealing he didn't seem so cute anymore.

But, I did as he said.

The driver looked at the address and said it was on

the way. He piled 5 of us, altogether, into the van

with our luggage and we made the trip into the city.

As we hit the city and saw signs for the Inner Harbor

he hollered out that one of the passengers had a

meeting in town they were going to miss and he was

going to drop them first, it would only delay us 5

minutes.

Duh, . . . As we turned onto Johnson Street, I

realized that person was I. He pulled up to the

address opened the side door for me and offered his

hand. He helped me out, and opened the back of the

van, set my 3 bags on the curb and stood as it waiting

for a tip. I had a $5 and then all $50's and I was

sure I wasn't going to give him that. He took the $5

and made a face, leaving my bags and me abruptly on

the curb.

My missed shuttle saved me $40, the trip cost me

another $85, but I was on my doorstep.

I struggled with each bag up the steps to the landing.

I took the keys from my purse that Miranda had mailed

me and prayed they worked.

They did, and I was in.

Apartment 1A was the first door on the right and I

opened the door and pushed all three bags in. With the

last students' personal stuff out, the apartment

seemed bigger than when I got the sneak peak during

spring break.

I went to the front window and admired the view of the

park, now somewhat scuttled by the air conditioner in

one of the 3 front windows. I turned the a/c on and

plopped down in the one easy chair, next to the love

seat that comprised all of the living room furniture.

Ahhh, I was here. As I looked out the window over the

park, I hoped that I would be happy and get to know

the neighborhood a little. I was actually on my own.

Exhausted from my trip and travel ordeal, I was quick

to nod off in the chair. I woke with a start when I

heard my bell ring.

I went to the intercom and asked whom it was.

A man with a thick Spanish accent said, "Complimentary

groceries from Arens and Ponds, hurry, this is heavy!"

Wow! I rang the man in and was indeed impressed that

the company would do that and rushed to open the front

door.

"I would feel so much better if you weren't so damn

trusting and gullible, my lover." Said Bill as he

opened his arms.

"Bill, damn you! I'm so happy to see you," I said as I

leapt into his arms.

He picked me up, spun around and hugged me, chuckling

after getting his jab in.

"You really thought the company would send you

groceries? My, aren't we full of ourselves," he said.

I pinched his ass, saying "Hey, I didn't know, you big

turd."

He carried me back inside, grabbed his own bag, set

me down and closed the door.

"Now, how did you find the time to get here?" I said

as I hugged him again to be sure he was real.

"Scott, Mr. Wilkens, gave me a train ticket and 3 days

off for bailing him out of the California fires

report, and for forgetting to call you. He wants me to

take you to dinner tonight and put it on an expense

report. He really wants to make it up to you. man you

must have given him a hard time. He must have

apologized 3 times at the game last night." Bill said.

"I was a snot, but enough about him. How about you?" I

said.

"How about me what?" Bill inquired.

"How about you being here alone with me in this city,

in this room, in my arms,"

I said looking right into his eyes with my nose

touching his.

He kissed me and held me tight then put his lips next

to my ear like he always does. I always think he's

trying to keep a secret from God when he does this.

In a mini growling whisper, he said into my ear. "I

love you so much and missed you so much, get ready to

get loved up, like you've never been loved up before."

"But Bill, I whispered. I'm supposed to find my way

around the city today," I feigned.

"I'll be finding my way around your body and showing

your way around mine. How does that sound?" He growled

in my ear.

His words gave me goose bumps all over and a special

tingle between my legs.

"Lets go find the bedroom," I said as I took him by

his hand and we began to go through the apartment for

the first time.

The grand tour wouldn't take long. The big room was

just a living room/kitchenette that was smartly

separated by a countered room divider. They had

put a wide top on it so you could bring a stool up to

it and make it a breakfast nook. But, there was also a

table for 4, with 4 chairs and 2 stools. The outside

wall was heavily shelved except for the middle of the

wall where a Murphy Bed was supposed to be.

(The landlord told me it had broken and they were

replacing it for next year's students, and since I was

alone, he was not worried that it wasn't there.)

There was a nice sized bedroom with a queen size bed

and a full bathroom off the hall, plus the bedroom

also had a very small bathroom, with just a toilet

and a small shower, not even a sink. Bill said it was

a cob-job, whatever that was.

But, I suppose it meant that both students could

shower at the same time.

The bed sat there, the mattress covered in protective

plastic. Somewhere in my luggage were a pad, a flannel

mattress cover and sheets. (My mom said the flannel

cover and the pad would make the plastic mattress

cover feel go away)

I told Bill we would have to search for that stuff,

and he responded by picking me up and bringing me to

the kitchen, and setting me on the kitchen table.

He ran his hands up my legs to my waist and took my

panties and panty hose and began to work them down.

He was going to have the first meal at the table.

If I had know that Bill was to meet me at he

apartment, I wouldn't have worn pantyhose, but it was

the first time I had worn a dress in a while.

"Bill, let me get undressed. Oh, not here on the

table. Bill! Bill!?" I implored.

He had my legs straight up with my pantyhose with

panties half-way past my calves and he looked up to my

face at my request."

"Do you really want me to stop?" he asked.

I could only smile at him.

Once threaded off my legs and feet, my underwear fell

to the floor. He ran his hands up my legs until he

held each leg just above the ankle. He bent my legs

back and spread them, opening my legs to his hovering

trunk. He dropped his face to my navel and gave it a

little lick and then trailed his wet tongue over my

hairless belly to my now engorged vulva and vagina. He

split my pussy with his hard tongue and found my

clitoris.

Even knowing what was coming, I jumped. He had slipped

his hands up a little further so they were behind my

knees, but he still held me open. Alternating flicking

my clit and tracing my slit, he had me crazy in no

time. I sensed him backing up a step and I felt his

tongue go past the end of my slit to my anus.

"No, Bill," I whined, worried if I was clean. But he

paid me no mind as he licked and drilled at my butt

hole. He was wanton with hunger for me, determined to

have me cum at the end of his tongue. He slid that

tongue back up its path to my pussy again as he took

my lips in his mouth and lightly chewed at them. He

was going to drive me over soon. One hand slid down my

leg toward my genitals while the other crossed over

and held me behind that knee and his elbow rested

behind my other. He didn't really need to hold me open

then, but he knew what he wanted.

That free hand found its way to my pussy and 3 fingers

slid in me at once causing me to catch my breath. My

clit rested just at the side of the second knuckle of

his index finger and he used it as stage for it,

wiggling his fingers and licking my clit.



My orgasm built as I felt my face turning red. I began

to puff-breath, like a Lamaze student, trying to get

the most out of this orgasm. He must have felt my

muscles flexing around his fingers because he took

them out to let me get off with the whole flat of his

tongue wiggling on my button now. I was pushing my

pussy up to his face to meet my orgasm when I felt

that wet finger go right up my butt.

That was all I needed.

"Ohhh, Ohhh, Ohhh, Ohhh, Ohhh, Ohhh," I moaned as I

began to lose control.

I heard myself grunt and groan and I called Bills name

as I went over the edge. I couldn't breath for a

second and then I felt everything center at my pussy

as he pulled his finger from my back hole and drove

his thumb up behind my clit. He wanted to set off my

G-spot

"Arggh" I groaned as I spouted a stream of fluid that

must have caught Bill low in his face or his neck, and

then another and then a weak third pulse. I was out of

strength as he tailed off with his tongue on my clit

but he ran it down to my asshole again and tickled at

it before pushing his finger back in there. He sat

back a little as he sawed his middle finger in and out

of my butt.

I was a mess, almost like I was crying, but I was in

ecstasy, moving my arms from gripping the table to

clutching at my chest.

"Ooo, Ohh,, Ahhh, heee, heee , hooo," I mewled as I

came down off the O he had given me.

It was a ride I couldn't jump off of though, with that

finger sawing in my butt. He snapped his finger from

my butt and replaced it with his mouth as I felt a

surge of pressure there, like he pushed his tongue

into me. Then again his middle finger went back into

me.

"Ohh Carree, I'm going to fuck you there, I'm going to

fuck your bottom. I have to have your ass. I have to

be inside you. I have to make you wet there." He said

as he pulled that middle finger from me and put his

thumb in his mouth. He coated it with spittle and

brought it to my butt and pushed it in. He dropped his

mouth beside his thumb as he leveraged my legs back

further. He trailed spittle from his mouth to his

thumb as he continually pushed it in, making me wetter

and wetter.

My orgasm must have left me super relaxed down there

because I felt wide open, without dilation, without a

lube. I should have been frightened that he wanted to

take me in my ass without lube, just spit, and

stretching, but I trusted Bill.

I don't know when his penis came out of his pants, but

it was at the threshold of my ass without a second

thought. I had no time to react when he pushed it into

me and it slid right in. He got a couple inches into

me, with a searing shot of pain.

"Eeeooo!" I heard myself scream in pain, but the jolt

quickly died and I felt the full feeling in my bottom.

It hurt, like anal sex never hurt before. But, this

was so spur of the moment. Bill, . . . who usually

liked to prepare me with enemas and a half tube of KY.

"Wait, wait, Bill, " I cried, but before the last

decibel hit his ear he had another couple inches in

me, at the same time it hurt, it felt real good.

I was full, it seemed. If he could just hold still for

a second, I could adjust to his size because I knew he

was slick enough.

I knew he wasn't all the way in, and he had to know

that I couldn't handle his whole penis with hard

thrusts. I was always deeply dilated in the past when

we did this.

Hopefully that was his plan, although he was driven by

lust, not a plan. This was spontaneous.

"I love Carree, I need to have you, need you, need

you. Oh fuck, I love fucking you, loving you," he

carried on almost delirious as he short stroked my

butt.

God it felt good to have him IN me. I could feel the

fat head of his cock just at and just slightly past,

my rectum, my big muscle. The stubborn muscle was

finally relaxing and letting him in. Any time he went

just a millimeter past them, it burned and I scooted

back. Bill sensed that, and kept just less than half

of himself, no longer than his whole thumb, sawing at

my little hole. It was new, it was good, and it felt

like the first time all over again.

Little orgasms from deep in my core began to radiate

to the knot of muscle holding him and my vagina. No

big gut wrenching spasms, just a very pleasant wave

after wave of pleasure. We both bathed in the heady

feeling of how naughty and satisfying this act had

become this day.

Suddenly he picked up his pace and he knew he would

uncontrollably thrust at me as he came. He knew he

couldn't do that and hurt me, although I was

disappointed as I felt his cock slip from me.

"I'll come all over your pussy, your asshole," he said

as he grabbed his cock and let my legs totally free. I

lay there with his saliva running from my butt and

onto my back and the table, watching him stroke his

cock.

I could stand it no longer.

"Feed me, feed me your cum Bill, let me taste that

love," I said as I scooted my head over to the edge of

the table.

He had second thoughts, but saw me with my mouth open

saying "Cum in my mouth, cum for me, baby."

I didn't want to suck on him, having just been in my

butt, but I also didn't think it could be that bad.

Most of the lube was just spit, and the mucus of my

bowel kept everything else pretty contained and fairly

germ free. (Sorry to get biological there)

He stroked it at my open mouth, he groaned a warning

and shot 2 big wet volleys toward my mouth, somewhat

in it, but most at my neck. I craned to put the very

tip at my lips as if I was kissing it and he shot 2

more shots right into my mouth.

Nothing tasted or smelled untoward. I took the whole

head in my mouth and lolled at it with my tongue at

his orgasm ebbed away. He grabbed at his cock as it

slipped from my mouth and groaned. He fell across my

upper body, which was still clothed in my dress. He

hugged at me a little then brought his lips to mine,

sharing each other's taste.

This was the most electric, uncontrolled lovemaking we

had ever had together.

We were drunk with lust.

Later when we talked of this, the thought of him going

into my bottom, with just our own fluids for lube,

scared us. Me especially. He said it was my gushes

that convinced him that we had enough wetness to do

the deed.

I never would consent to anything where I KNEW there

would be pain, and although this was quite painful at

one stage, the magic of the moment made it part of the

whole experience, and I dealt with it.

As we continued to kiss and just enjoy the fact we

were together.

Together, especially where we once thought we would

never see each other for the summer.

He began to massage my breasts. They had been

neglected in the whole ordeal and the attention felt

good. I realized now that my nipples ached from being

engorged and erect during our lovemaking, being stuck

inside my brassiere.

He began to sit me up when he stopped and used the

hand behind my head to lower my zipper.

When he was satisfied it was low enough, he peeled it

from my front, and moved to the end of the table again

and shinnied the dress down my waist, past my feet. My

black bra was all that remained and he unsnapped it in

the front and showered my breasts with kisses, biting

at my aching nipples.

Believe it or not, I was getting hot again. As he

played with my breasts with one hand, his other was

busy once again at my pussy. I wanted to stop him, but

my desire had been lit. He kept his hand busy sawing

away at my clit and moved to the side of the table to

get his mouth to my breasts.

He chewed hungrily at the nipples as they began to

send sizzle shots to by pussy. My pussy seemed to

respond to the sensation of my nipples and

communicated back and forth with them.

Bill was driving me crazy, and to another orgasm.

I felt the whole of my vagina, my pussy, engorging

like I was going to squirt or gush, but I didn't have

that G-spot thing going. I was going to have an orgasm

that felt entirely different from any I had before. It

was like a big hand gripped my sex and squeezed it.

The sound that came from my throat was like that of a

wounded animal. It scared Bill for a moment as he

stopped everything.

My eyes flew open and I shot a look to him and pushed

my pussy toward his hand. He continued his hand play

once he knew I was OK. I still remember thinking, "Why

did you stop!" and the look I shot him must have

scared him.

I was going to grind out another gut wrenching orgasm

from his fingers in my pussy and his lips on my

nipples.

I stifled any shrieks or screams of pleasure as I

realized how loud the former must have been to have

Bill start like he did, but it didn't mean I couldn't

enjoy my pleasure spasms.

I don't know how many climatic grinds in a row I had,

but I knew I was so sensitive that Bill had to get his

fingers OUT OF ME.

I bucked on the table and he got the idea as his mouth

left my nipples, his hand left my pussy and he just

stroked my belly with one hand and eventually the

round of my ass with the other. I was coming down from

the longest orgasmic journey I had ever been on.

As Bill stroked my stomach and my butt cheek I lay

there on my kitchen table, eyes closed and humming an

Mmmmmmm of contentment. I thought I was through, but

my love mate decided to clean me up with his tongue

again. I felt him licking and kissing at my pussy,

careful to avoid my clit. It was so soothing, but I

knew it was going to make me cum again.

"No, Noooooo Bill please, my heart will explode,"

I whimpered softly to him.

He tipped his head away from me and smiled, mouthing,

"I love you," to me.

He was finished with the most fantastic, memorable

lovemaking we had done yet.

I didn't think I could move from the table. I knew it

was slippery under my butt and beginning to feel

uncomfortable. As I thought I would get up, Bill

scooped me in his arms. He carried me to the bathroom,

knowing I would want to shower. It was then I realized

that there were no towels out yet.

"There are 2 in one of my bags. I was going to buy

more here." I whispered to him, my throat still raw

from my earlier vocalizations.

"Here," he said. "You shower now, I'll find your

towels and shower stuff. Go ahead and get under the

water."

I smiled and nodded. "Find my soap, too" I said as he

began to realize than nothing was here, it was not a

hotel.

"Check my overnight bag." I added.

I started the water and just got under the hot stream

to rinse the love making from me. Bill came back in a

moment later, handing me a bar of my soap. He went off

again, looking for towels. He returned and I saw him

put a towel in the rack and he slid open the shower

door.

"Need this?" he said, as he passed me a bottle of

shampoo.

I smiled as I realized I would need that too.

I finished my shower and got out, first drying myself,

and then wrapping myself in the same damp towel. I

hadn't yet opened my cases for my robe. I combed out

my wet hair and went to the living area where Bill was

in the easy chair in a tired stupor.

He looked up at me. "You are a dream. So beautiful."

He said.



I smiled because I knew his adoration came from the

deepest recesses of his heart. I knew because I felt

the same toward him.

I bent and kissed him, saying "Go shower, I saved you

a towel."

I extended a hand to help him up and we kissed again.

He went off to clean the juices of our love from

himself. He was no more in the shower a second when I

heard a knock on the wall. I went in to see what he

needed.

"Go look in my suitcase, I left it by the door. I need

real shampoo, not his fruit salad you use." He said

smiling knowing I would shake my head at him.



I fetched his shampoo and waited for him to come out

and meet me in the living room. We needed to plan our

day out.

I realized that my phone was in one of the boxes I had

shipped, so I would be without it until I came from

work on Monday. That wouldn't do, so I was going to

have to but a cheap one to use until then. I started a

list of things we would need.

I didn't know if Bill had taxied in from the train, or

if he even took the train. I hoped he had rented a

car. We would need one for the weekend, for sure. We

had too much to buy and lug on a bus or in a cab.

I thought about my voice mailbox at Arens and Ponds.

Miranda had told me to check it as soon as I got to

town. "As soon" had probably passed. She may have

wanted to ride from the airport. I wouldn't change

the way things had happened this morning for anything,

though.

Bill broke my reverie when he came into the room with

his towel around him.



"I guess we hadn't planned too well this morning, we

assumed all of our stuff would be laid out, huh?" Bill

said as he sidled up and sat on the arm of my chair.

His clean smell intoxicated me. I inhaled deeply and

looked over and saw the inside of his thigh where his

towel opened. I realized MY lovemaking wasn't over

yet. I still craved something hard and warm in my

mouth.

I looked up and smiled at Bill. "I know another thing

we didn't have ready this morning."

"What?" he looked quizzing at me.



I slid my hand in the opening of that towel and took

his soft, sheathed penis in my hand.

"This," I said. "I never got to suck him and welcome

him to my new home."

"Can it wait?" he asked facetiously.

"Mmm, I don't think so," I said as I felt him begin to

firm up already.

I turned and knelt in the chair and pulled at his

towel. When he stood to let it fall, I steered him by

his cock to the side of the chair that I knelt in. It

was just the right height.

About half the head of his penis had come out of its

sheath and I put my lips around the very outer edge of

his protective skin. I pushed it back with my lips

till it caught behind the head, leaving that purple

plum exposed for me to play with.

Using my tongue I swirled it over and over and then

took him all the way into my mouth once he was fully

erect. I loved sucking his cock.

I bobbed my head licking and sucking, pleasing him,

pleasing me at the same time. The smooth feel of his

glans against my tongue was heaven. I stopped

occasionally to hold it in my hand while I held it up

so I could kiss his balls. His sack was full of juice

already, it seemed. I encouraged him to fuck my mouth,

in little strokes, not wanting to gag, but loving that

feeling. I felt him begin to pick up the pace a little

and I knew he was close. He went to help it a little

with his hand, and I pushed it away. I wanted an all

mouth orgasm.

His thrusts got a little deeper, a little harder and I

pulled back my neck to compensate, but he was really

flailing away at me. He was going deeper into my

mouth than I ever knew him to, and I seemed to be at

an angle where I could handle him easier.

I got a little brave and instead of pushing back from

his strokes, I moved up on a couple of them. I felt it

touch the back of my throat, about a sixteenth of an

inch from gagging me. I was doing it! I had him all

the way in my mouth!

Before I had a chance to celebrate my new talent, his

grunts, groans, Ooos and Ahhs had all combined into

one long growl and I felt the splash hit the back of

my throat. I wanted to gag as it hit my reflex, it was

so close to it, but I forced my mouth a little more

onto him.

His second spurt seemed to go right down my throat,

but I had to let up then and I drew my head back until

just the head remained in my mouth. He put his hand to

it and stroked and squeezed out more cum for me.

This fulfilled my lust for him, feeling and tasting

him. I let him stroke in and out of my mouth until he

wanted to stop. He knew, and I knew, that a hard

suction from my mouth would send him reeling. Once I

was sure he was through oozing and had relaxed, I gave

him that hard draw as he pulled his dick from my

mouth.

"No more, no more. O my God, no more." He said.

He fell to his knees and brought his face to mine. We

shared his taste and traded spit as our tongues danced

for a long while.

"Lets just cancel the day and make love all day." He

suggested.

As good as that sounded, I knew I had to busy up

myself. Bill was on a vacation; I had to get ready to

live in my new home.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -

In spite of all my trepidations and fears of going to

Baltimore for an internship, it ended up being the

best summer of my life. Arens and Ponds treated me

like a goddess giving me plum assignments where I made

contacts with people whom I deal with, even to this

day.

Miranda Ponds took me aside in my second or third

day and told me that I had a special something, a

drive, and a determination that exuded confidence. All

the while she was telling me this I wondered if she

had me confused with some other young girl she had met

in the islands.

On my third day in the office she took me to lunch and

then asked me to go to a class with her. I was a

little confused, but went along. She took me to a

complex of offices for a major communications company.

We met a friend of hers who took us to a room with 4

other younger women; all dressed as nice as Miranda

and I.

Then a matronly woman, who I thought to be 45 or 50 at

first, came in and talked to us about looking and

acting like executives. In her banter she revealed

she was 30 years old, and as I looked at her I could

see a pretty and shapely young woman behind her

granite exterior. She talked about women getting

respect for what they do, instead of what they look

like. She went through a lot of exercises showing how

to sit and stand, but mostly how to walk.

Forty-five minutes later, the group of us was walking,

practicing being dried up old granite facades. The

instructor then left the room and returned in the same

outfit, but made up to be much prettier, looking very

feminine, but not overly made up at all. I liked her

examples, and I liked the way she showed me to walk. I

felt I could walk into the room and be noticed, but

not be ogled. The very last time the instructor left

the room and returned, she came in looking like she

was going to a dance club. She was very pretty, very

sexy, and showing lots of leg and cleavage. Obviously

she was going to extremes, but she showed us photos,

from that day's security cam, of female employees

entering the building.

Some girls did dress like that.

Whether any other girl in the room got anything from

the class, I was impressed and I took a lot from it.

Miranda said we would take a refresher some other

time.

She was very aware that being female in a male office

world could be tough, and she wanted it to be easy. I

already saw how she was treated in our office, and it

obviously worked.

She felt she needed this, and she was an owner!

I knew then, she had plans for me.

Her praise of me, the blatant favoritism I was shown

in responsibilities and assignments, even had me

thinking that she may be looking for something beyond

our professional relationship. I wondered if the fact

I met her while I was on a vacation with other females

made her think I was gay.

If this was the case, if she had aspirations of she

and I having a relationship, she never ever broached

it with me. Her fondness and confidence in me was just

what she portrayed to me, and to her colleagues who

later took me in their confidence.

While preparing alumni brochures and new academic

client prospectus for the scholastic division of Arens

and Ponds, a client contact called me and told me that

Miranda, along with her partners in the Arens family,

were going to make every effort to get a commitment

from me to come and be part of their team as soon as I

graduated.

She was only telling me this so I could investigate

other options before accepting a deal that may not be

as lucrative as a naive student might think.

I assured that person that I had proper guidance in

those directions, but thanked her for her concerns.

It seemed everything I touched at the company turned

to gold, but I admit I was given few opportunities to

fail.

I am sure that they wanted my combination of skills

and looks to billboard their company. If I did not

think that I brought more to the table than my blonde

hair, blue eyes and nice figure, I wouldn't be there

in the first place. While I may have had a naivete,

about the power of sex and the "sex sells" side of

business, I was not stupid.

I knew who my real friends were, and those who sought

to use me were cast aside, no matter what the business

implications.

I was no bimbo; I knew my job and did it well.

Bill managed to get to Baltimore as often, if not more

than, promised. If he were not there 4 nights a week,

it would be more, never less. He soon got into a

routine in his job where his hours became almost

regular; with a new campus intern handling the "grunt

work" he did as an underclassman intern assistant.

Most often I was alone on Monday and Thursday nights,

and couple rare Fridays. I thought he would become

weary of the travel, but he enjoyed the train for

reading and even wrote on his new laptop computer.

There were a couple of days when I had a day off,

where I would ride to the City with him to shop for

the day.

Regular riders, and many train personnel, knew him by

name, and would stop and talk to him. I never needed

an introduction, with many saying,

"And you must be Carree. Bill here, has told us so

much about you."

I used to kid him that he had these people set up and

scripted for the days I rode in with him. I knew he

didn't.

He was so proud of me, and I of him, plus we were in

love. Ah, the love. Not many nights went by without

making love in one way or another. We did not grow

tired of each other, as I feared we might.

We seemed to grow fonder. If I were to work late, I

could time my arrival back home to walk across the

park for some exercise.

I also knew that when Bills cab went by, he would jump

out, hug and kiss me, and walk the rest of the way arm

and arm with me.

Many summer evenings we went up my apartment steps arm

and arm at 8 o'clock, ordered chinese food and then

sit on the stoop with a couple splits of champagne,

waiting for the deliveryman, while watching people in

the park.

Once the food arrived we would go inside, eat, shower

together and go to bed early to extend the time we

held each other.

Bill could wake at 6, shave, dress and be at the train

for the 6:35 or the 7:00. He spent every lunch in the

company workout room, but was always freshly showered

when he got home again. I opened his brief case and

traded fresh briefs and socks for soiled every morning

while he shaved.

There were other nights when we got home in not so

good moods. These nights we usually forgot about the

world with our faces in each other's genitals.

Sometimes it was all we were hungry for, and the

escape it provided. It was an existence we never

wanted to end. When our worlds became hard to handle,

sex distracted us back to the reality that we were

still kids with a year of college left.

Even the week my parents spent in Baltimore we decided

we would not break our routine. They usually came by

to meet me when I got home. We would wait for Bill,

and go do some tourist or visitor "rite of Baltimore

passage."

They spent their days in Washington, as tourists. If

they got back to town early, they had a key to my

place and went there. My Dad said that if they sat

outside, people who passed by stopped and told them

what a nice couple the newlyweds were, wanting to know

if they were the bride or grooms parents.

My mom said that when she heard about Bill stopping

his cab to get out and walk me the rest of the way

home, she cried.

"I knew my little girl had found the person who would

love her and lead her through the rest of her life.

I'm so happy for you." My sappy mom said.

We were both glad that they got to see us in this

light. After about 8 weeks of basically living

together and working full time jobs we were acutely

aware of one thing. We could do this. We could balance

careers and love and live together. It was an

internship of life, and we passed with flying colors.

Bill's Dad had an expression, "Fat and Happy."

We felt that way. When he spoke to Bill on the phone,

he always said that Bill sounded "fat and happy." That

was a good thing to Bills Dad, whose gruff exterior

and reluctant acceptance of "us" had faded. He was

growing to feel good about me as his daughter in law,

and didn't feel like it was being shoved down his

throat.

Once my parent's left after their vacation, Bills

parents came to town with Bill on the train for a long

weekend. They had went to New York and spent a

Thursday there, then brought all their things to

Baltimore with Bill and spent Friday, Saturday and

Sunday morning with us, flying directly home from

there.

In order for them to "afford" flying home, they stayed

in my apartment for the last 2 nights. We gave them

our bed and slept in the living room. Even though he

was accepting "us" as a couple, I thought he and Bill

were going to have a fistfight over the sleeping

arrangements.



"Let the women have the bed, son. We can sleep in the

living room." He said.

"That's not necessary, Dad, we can sleep in the living

room, you guys be comfortable." Bill insisted.

This went back and forth for 5 minutes until I finally

interrupted them.

"Mr. Wilson? Dad?" I said to get his attention.

"Please, I want Bill to make love to me tonight. How

can we do that if we sleep in separate rooms?"

The room went silent, and the Willie Wilson looked at

his wife and said,

"Dorie, let me give you a hand moving the bags in and

getting our stuff ready for bed in their room."

Willie and Doris Wilson finally were going to face the

fact that we were together, not just playing house.

As he got up to shuffle into the bedroom with their

bags I went over to him and told him to put down the

bags.

"Thank You Dad. I love your son, and I love the two of

you. To act like we don't sleep together, and don't

make love together would be a lie. We can all be

honest; it will be the best way, OK? That's what Bill

and I base our relationship on.

That's what I want to base my relationship with you

two on, also." I said hugging him.

"You're a good and smart girl Carree. I may be a

little too hard headed to realize it at times, but I

do know it. We love you too, huh Dorie?" He said as

Doris nodded her head to me.

Bill had to turn away to laugh at my "make love to me

tonight" comment and hadn't stopped laughing to

himself yet. Once the Wilson's disappeared into our

room, I laughed with him. Honesty had won out again.

Once the Wilson's left we had 17 more days left to

live together before we were to go back home. We would

have exactly one week at home before the first week

of school. The summer was flying by and we were having

a ball living and loving together.

I have to admit that with living together, having

intercourse was becoming harder and harder to stay

away from. There were many nights that we thought we

would finally do it, but common sense won out each

time.

After waiting this long, it seemed foolish to not wait

for our wedding night. Bill had promised me to have

full ready bottom sex one time before we left. We had

bought all the little extras we would need. I looked

forward to the night it might happen.

This was the almost painless and most satisfying way

to be inside me. I suspected we might save it for our

last night together.

In the meantime, our life continued to be charmed. One

day after the Wilson's left, Monday, I was having the

worst day of the summer. The 2 other interns, who

seemingly "worked" for me at Miranda's direction, had

been great all summer.

There was one on-going summer project they were to

complete by mid-August. Each Monday they would submit

their progress to me and I would pass that information

along to Miranda. A week before the project was due

for submission to the customer, Miranda pointed out

that I had not submitted a progress report the

previous Monday.

I felt quite sure that I had, and found the pair

working in the secretarial pool that day. They worked

real hours to earn real money to offset their "intern"

hours. I asked them individually about the project and

both blamed the other for not keeping up, and no, they

hadn't submitted, or made any, progress in two weeks.

I freaked out, partly because of their non-chalance,

partly because I had let the ball drop and failed to

follow up.

When I informed Miranda, she barely looked up at me.

"You're giving me excuses, I need the product. Blaming

someone else is no reason, and you are ultimately

responsible. Their failure to follow up with you was

your flag, and you missed it. That's pretty poor

management, Carree. How are you going to fix it?"

I then made my first major blunder in my job, I

answered without thinking.

"I don't know." I said.

Miranda stood, and walked to her door and shut it,

turning to me.

"I didn't stick my neck out to get you here for the

summer, get you good money, a great place to live and

an offer of a career here to get "I don't know!!"

You're here because you are supposed to know, Carree.

Don't let me down; my ass is on the line here too. I'm

one of four partners, and the other three are related,

I'll have no other allies if this account goes down

the tubes. I let an intern handle something she was

well capable of and she dropped the ball! FIX IT!! Go

down and pull those 2 from the secretarial pool, and I

don't care if they don't get their hours. If they run

short the difference can be made up with YOUR non-

billable time. Get it done, Carree.

I told them I had my best person on it and you were

way ahead, they will be here Thursday for the

presentation. When you didn't report last Monday I

thought it was done. . . . and never let me hear "I

don't know" again. You are paid to know, and IF you

don't know, find out before you come up here looking

for the answers from me.

You let me down.

Go, and see me before you leave tonight, and I'll be

here very late." She said finishing with a finger

point to the door.

I had never been bawled out like that by anyone. I

freaked and thought I was going to cry.

Then I let anger take over. I was angry with myself

for not following up, I was angry with the two interns

for glossing me over on this.

I went down to the secretarial pool to get my interns

and had an argument with that facilitator who said she

needed them and couldn't spare them. I was about to

accept that answer, when I turned to her.

"Those two are here for ME first and you second. They

have a project for a client due and they muffed it.

I'm taking them. I'm sorry. If you have a problem,

call upstairs." I said in an angry huff.

"I'll call Mr. Arens, he won't sympathize with Ms.

Ponds pet." She said trying to impress me.

"Go ahead, and when you do, be sure you mention the

name "Meissner and West Lynn" to him. He'll want to

know the name of the account I'm going to lose for

us, if I don't get my interns." I said turning on my

heel to leave her office.

There stood Miranda Ponds waiting to speak to me. I

was embarrassed and was about to turn red and

apologize to her and the sec-pool facilitator.

"Don't let me stop you," Miranda said, "You're on a

roll, don't stop."

I brushed by her and was off to get my 2 charges and I

heard a door slam behind me.

I and everyone else in the outer office, heard Miranda

shout from behind the door.

"PET? Is that what I heard you say? . . . "



I may have been able to hear more of that shouting

match, but I didn't stick around. I had things to fix,

like an account and hopefully, my job.

I found the first girl, Linda, and asked her what set

up room she and the other intern, Naomi, had the

Meissner project in.

"It's in the upstairs finish room, why?" she answered.

"Punch out and get up there. Where's Naomi?" I asked.

I must have been pretty assertive or scary because

Linda stood right up and closed her CRT screen.

"She's down the hall on her break, do you want me to

get her?" Linda asked.

"No, just get up there and get the Meissner stuff on

the table." I ordered, as I went to the break room.

Naomi was alone.

"Naomi, punch out and get upstairs in the set-up room

as soon as you can. We have to finish the Meissner

account." I ordered.

"But, I'm on break." She protested.

I must have had a pretty good glare going, because she

got right up and headed for the time clock.

Miranda Ponds told me from day one that I was going to

be an account executive and part of the creative team.

I was to dress the part and always be neat and stylish

so that when I came into a room it would be apparent I

was important.

Miranda dressed to the nines everyday, and the 2 Mr.

Arens always wore $800 suits, impeccably accessorized.

My wardrobe could not match Miranda's, but I was a

good shopper and in the right heels, I looked every

bit as impressive as Miranda when she came in a room.

This day, as I pounded my high heels across the tile

floor, shoulders back and looking straight ahead, I

felt like I was that part.

The office manager for that floor had just lost 2

workers, and she did not stop to question me.

When I got up to the set up room, Linda had the

artwork laid out and the computer up waiting for

someone to get creative.

I came into the room and slammed my armful of things

down and was short and sweet (not really that sweet).

"We fucked this up, now we have to fix it. We don't go

home until we do, and we'll all go home if we don't.

Show me where we are." I demanded.

Linda and Naomi jumped to get me up to speed and we

all dove in. Luckily we had scripts and text

suggestions from the pre-creative team to work with.

The pre-creative team kept everything legal with what

we had to spell out, what we couldn't say, could say.

The Pre-Creative Team roughed out every newsletter,

brochure, and presentation in their most basic form to

get the ball rolling.

They just might save our ass today.

In a couple hours I literally let my hair down to

relieve some tightness I felt. We were making good

progress, but I also remembered that I had my regular

menu of things to get done that day.

Once Linda and Naomi knew I was willing to jump in

and take the blame for the screw-up and do any or all

of the grunt work on the Meissner project, they began

to work together pretty good, and had things to a

point where I could take off for a short time to catch

up with my own schedule.

I piled my arms with my other work and left the setup

room to advise legal that we had a project that needed

to be expedited. If I didn't have anymore snags, I

could be back in the finish room to wrap up with Linda

and Naomi.

I passed Miranda Ponds office and she called me in.

"I won't hold you up, I know you are busy. I just

wanted to let you know that you handled things well

after you left here this morning."

"Kick ass, take names, deal with the consequences

later" she gesticulated, holding a finger for each

point.

I thanked her for her confidence and excused myself. I

couldn't wait to get to my cubical and sit down. I

made my Monday call to Bill and he was not there, but

I left a message. In the matter of 2 hours I was

caught up sufficiently to get back to the finish room

and work on Meissner and West Lynn. I called the duo

and asked

if they wanted lunch sent in. It was going for 3 p.m.

and they must be hungry. I

had sandwiches dropped off and we prepared to work

into the night. Monday was

a New York night for Bill, so I had nothing to go home

for.

At about a quarter of six I told my team that I was

ready to see a presentation. They could do it and I

would take notes as they made changes, etc.

Normally we would call in a secretary for this, but

they had gone home. By 6:45, with many editing stops

and starts, we had a pretty good job ready to send to

legal, before we finalized everything.

Just then, Miranda came in.

Without as much as a hello or anything, she sat down,

opened her notebook, took out a yellow pad.

"Let me see what you have so far. I want to know if I

have to look for another job or different interns when

I meet with my partners on this tomorrow." She said.

I stood up and let Linda and Naomi run through the

whole thing while I handed off props and the like.

Ms Ponds took notes furiously all throughout, and I

figured we were screwed.

Upon completion, she stood up and said, "We got a

winner here. Let legal polish it tomorrow and

Wednesday clear your schedules. We will all sit

together with my partners and you can see how we do

it. Linda, Naomi, you can go home. Carree, stay, so we

can talk, in my office."

And she got up and left without another word.

I thanked the two of them for their help and told them

I appreciated their input today, but it was something

we should have finished with much more ease. I

accepted blame because I was in charge of its

completion.

When I went into Miranda's office I was prepared for

almost anything. I sort of felt that, I was going to

be told that I wouldn't be tendered a job offer after

graduation.

"Carree, you handled crisis well today. You accepted

blame, fixed the problem without pointing fingers. You

learned that you never say, "I don't know," and let

me give you a hint, if you ever do say it, add "yet"

to the end of it. I know that the Arens family was

against me bringing you in. I also know, now, that

they want to tender you an offer, and will do it on

Friday.

Great job, not just today, but all summer.

You have carried yourself with confidence and never

let the pressure get to you. There are people here who

don't even know that you're an intern, that's how well

you've done." She said with a big smile.

"Miranda, I owe it all to you. All I did was emulate

you. A confident woman who shows no cracks, otherwise

you don't get any respect. I really tried to draw the

line between confident and snooty. Thank You. I know

you gave me more than you ever give an intern; I

really appreciate the confidence you showed in me. I

still don't know what I did to earn it." I said in her

praise.

"Carree, when I met you in the islands I was impressed

by your youth and your beauty, to be frank. The

maturity you showed me, the resolve you had for

wanting every thing to be perfect. I thought at the

time, if only I could get someone like her to come on

with the company. Then I find out later that your

curriculum is almost the same as mine was, and your

marks are almost the top of your class.

Your professors gave you glowing recommendations. I

needed a strong female to even things off in

management. The Arens boys like my savvy and my money,

but when they want things their way, they get it. I

needed a home run hitter. I've got one now. You

impressed the pants off them. Sorry, bad choices of

words, but you know what I mean.

But, that was another thing I worried about. We bring

in interns every summer and they look at the men here

as their stable. They want no-frills affairs and let

the men kiss up to them. You were 100 percent

business, and never exuded anything but class.

Carree, I don't know what you want to do 10 years from

now, 20 years from now, but if you save your money,

you may be able to buy your way into the company name.

But for now, if you're smart, you'll accept our offer.

During the school year we can pass small projects on

to you, so you know what's happening with us, stay on

top of things.

Then late next June you can meet us in St. Thomas for

our company meeting and then we restart up here after

the Fourth of July. See, we close down for 2 weeks in

June. Most every employee is invited to St. Thomas for

the second week on our nickel. It costs us little,

really. That's where you met me last year. We have

meetings and show the direction of the company, it's a

morale booster." Miranda explained.

I was flabbergasted. They really wanted me, and they

recruited me like an executive, not a student. I sat

there and didn't know what to say.

"One more thing Carree, you handled that situation

with the sec-pool facilitator just perfect this

morning. I went down to bail you out, figuring she

would eat you up and spit you out. You dropped her in

her tracks. I heard the "Ms. Ponds pet" comment

outside the door. I knew I had her then. That bitch.

She tried to sleep with both of the Arens, and when

she was hired it was on the recommendation of "silent

sister" (the third Arens partner), and she's gay, so

God only knows. . . " Miranda said smiling.

"I figured I was done anyway, so she was easy meat." I

said. "I was sure you were going to can me when I

turned and saw you." I admitted as we both laughed.

"No, not that drastic, but it was a bit of a test, and

you did fine." Miranda confided. "Always know where

you stand before you stand up to someone else's

bravado. All she had on you was bravado. For what each

of you can actually bring to the table, you could

squash her like a bug, trust me."

Miranda offered me a ride home and I accepted. I

really wished Bill were here tonight to share in my

good news, and to relieve the stress of earlier in the

day.

When she turned the corner on Johnson, there on my

porch steps was Bill, with a bucket of champagne

splits, catching the last rays of the day. He had his

shirt off and he was just turning a nice shade past

tan. He looked delicious.

"Oh my God," I said to Miranda.

"Bills here, he's never here on a Monday. I wanted to

share my news with someone. Please come in for a

drink, Miranda." I said.

"Carree, I would love to, but I have a friend not far

from here, and he's waiting for me. If he looks as

good as your guy tonight, the both of us should be in

good moods in the morning." She said winking at me.

"We will all meet before you go back, I promise."

I blushed and told her she had a rain check for

anytime, and I got out, not wanting to wait another

second to give Bill my news.

"Hey, it's Monday. How do you know I don't have a date

tonight?" I hollered up the steps from the sidewalk.

"I'm just here to check up on you," Bill said, "Making

sure you don't have a boyfriend."

I climbed the stairs and stood 2 steps below where he

sat.

"Looking as good as you do right now, I might be a

little worried about another girl coming along. Where

have you been hiding that tan?" I asked.

"You must miss it in the bedroom. We should make love

with the lights on sometime." He wisecracked back as

he opened another split of bubbly.

"How many of those things have you had? And do you

really need a bucket of them?" I asked.

"I'm on my first one, and this one is for you. Oh, and

of course I need a bucket of them. You should see how

many pretty girls walk by here in an afternoon." He

said with a big smile on his face.

"Your FIRST one?" I asked, not believing.

"Well, the first bucket," he laughed, "I have

something to celebrate. They offered me a job, Carree.

They made me an offer. It's pretty much where all the

staff writers start, doing major editing, bylines, and

all that stuff you use to grow into actual staff

positions. It's not what I want ultimately, but it's

maybe the best resume builder there is. Care, I could

leave school and finish nights if I wanted to, and

they would pay for it. But, the offer is open for 15

months, as long as I continue my internship." Bill

said while glowing with pride.

I was over flowing with happiness for him. This was

the way he wanted it to happen for him. He had read

all those career planners and this was the recommended

way to be taken serious when you knocked on doors

trying to sell yourself, your work.

"No catches, the job is yours?" I asked

"I can't write for anyone or have anything published

by anyone else from 2 years after I start, and they

get first publishing refusal for 18 months after I

leave, if I leave. But they can't buy it, and then can

it. It's first "publishing" rights. Carree, I couldn't

have written it better as a script." He beamed.

"Tell me, big shot writer," I asked, "How would you

like to continue living in Baltimore after you start

that job?"

"Geez Carree, I love this city, but why would I want

to live here if I work in New York?" he asked.

"So we could be together, just like we are now,

because Arens and Ponds offered me a job today too!" I

said with my own pride apparent.

Bill held his head. " Can this be happening? Holy

Shit! Do you mean a real job, not some beginning

office worker bullshit, right?"

"Yes, a real job. Miranda wants me to be her top

assistant. That was her plan from the start. I never

told you, because you would make fun and call it

liberal crap, which it is, but, . . You know the way

she asked me to dress? . . . that was to give

me image. She says there are some people there who

don't even know I'm an intern, because of the image I

project. And this is liberal crap too, but . . umm

. . . she sent me for lessons on walking and carrying

myself, and I think it really helps.

It's tough on females in the business world. She has

been aiming me for this since I started.

Today I faced a crisis, and I kicked ass and took

names, Miranda's words, not mine.

Her other partners were against my coming in, and now

they are the ones insisting on my hiring. Bill, this

is incredible!!" I said, as proud of myself as Bill

was of he.

I took my bubbly from Bills hand and offered a toast.

"To goals." I said clinking my bottle to his.

"To us," he said back.

"To love and marriage." I countered.

"To being together forever." He said on his turn.

Wanting to really celebrate and show him how proud I

was, I bent and whispered in his ear.



"To having your penis in my mouth just inside the

front door if you can catch me." as I ran up the last

2 steps and hurried inside.

Bill was right behind me, the bucket of bottles

clinking their own toast to us as he ran.

I just about got the door shut, when he put the bottle

in his hand in the jamb to stop it.

"Oops, you almost made it." He said as he pushed his

way inside the door.

There he stood, in his jean short shorts, no shirt,

and that freshly tweaked tan. He looked good. I

grabbed at his belt, wrapping my hand over and around

the buckle and the snap of his pants. I pulled him

toward me and kissed his lips.

"I suppose I owe you a reward for catching me, huh?" I

said.

"I would rather think it was a reward for making all

the hell I put you through finally pay off." He said.

"How about I do it because I love you, find you

incredibly sexy, and love feeling your cock in my

mouth?" I whispered.



"You win." He said as I undid his belt and let his

little shorts drop to the floor.

"What? No underwear?" I said as I squat down to get

his cock at mouth level.

""If I wore undies, these little shorts wouldn't cover

them." As he turned his eyes upward feeling my tongue

bathe his cock once.

I sucked him in as far as I could, and then let him

slip out to answer him.

"Maybe you should try wearing mine, when you wear

those shorts" I said with a smile.

Then I sucked him in again.

I was really enjoying the feel of his smooth cock over

my tongue and lips, but my knees were tired from

squatting. I stood up and took my pantyhose and

panties at my waist and brought them down, kicking off

my shoes. I wanted to kneel, but didn't want to ruin a

pair of panty hose. Now I could kneel and enjoy him

more.

He sipped from his champagne bottle as I bathed his

pretty cock with my mouth. His moans and groans of

pleasure made me go a little harder at him. I really

loved doing this for him, and, it made me hot as hell.

I had my eyes closed when I felt something cold at my

nose. I opened my eyes to see him trying to pour a

little champagne over this penis. I opened my mouth

and took a mouthful, and then put the head back in my

mouth along with the champagne. It drove him crazy,

either the bubbles or the alcohol, but he loved it.

In just a few seconds of this he began to buck in my

mouth.

I swallowed the bubbly I had and took a fresh mouthful

and pushed his cock back in my mouth. That was all it

took. He groaned and shuddered and tried to push my

hand away, but I would have no part of that. I used it

to push him against the door as I assaulted his cock

with my sucking mouth. He was cumming in my mouth.

I already had his first shot in my mouth, and the

second was behind my thumb as I tried to swallow

before it came out, but I was not successful. It was

too much. My mouth overflowed and when I thought of it

getting on my dress I pushed my neck out to avoid

dribbling on it. This of course, pushed his cock

deeper in my mouth and he shuddered again.

I swallowed hard to get rid of what was left in my

mouth, and he pulsed a little more in, deep in my

mouth. Then we both started laughing about my

predicament, cum and champagne dripping off my chin,

his cock buried in my mouth while trying not to laugh.

There was a dishtowel in his reach and he handed it to

me as he saved the day. Once I got it and made sure I

wasn't going to ruin my dress, I came up for air.

"That wasn't funny William Wilson, this dress cost me

a weeks pay. Ooops, you didn't hear that." I said.

"Hey, I didn't make you do this, remember you wanted

to." he said laughing, "I was just dribbling

champagne, you wanted to swig it."

"I know, I know. You just looked so hot when I got

home, and I was so happy, I was frisky, and if I'm not

mistaken, I saw a little lump out there on the porch,

Mr. Innocence." I defended myself, picking up my

pantyhose.

"You looked pretty hot in that dress, the sun shining

through it, and with your hair down." He said as he

followed me into the bedroom where I was going to

change.

I was pulling the dress over my head when I felt a

little push and, losing my balance, I fell towards the

bed.

"Bill, God damn it, let me get his off my head." I

yelled as I was trapped trying to get the dress over

my head and get my bearings after being knocked onto

the bed.

I was about to kick out with my legs and turnover onto

my back to get up, when I felt a full mouth on the

cheek of my ass, chewing at it, then the other.

"Bill, let me get this off. Come on, this isn't fair.

You're tickling my butt." I protested.

Bill responded by taking both hands and squeezing my

butt halves right up together, and then running his

tongue up and down the groove. Wow, that was sexy, and

ticklish. I kicked my legs.

"Stoppit Bill, damnit, that tickles." I hollered,

frustrated with my head still inside my dress, plus

not wanting to tear or rip it.

"Let me roll over, please?" I begged.

He broke his firm grip on my butt halves and instead

split them all the way and placed a kiss right on my

butt hole, and then let go of me and let me roll over.

"Damn it Bill, I hate when you do that when I'm not

fresh from . . . unnnnnmmmm" I cooed as his mouth had

went to my pussy, flattening his tongue right on my

clit.

"Ohhh Bill, that's sooo goood, you big shit!! Let me

sit up a second to get this off." I pleaded, wanting

to enjoy his attentive tongue.

Suddenly I felt free and sat up on the bed, and got

the dress over my head. Bill was smirking at the edge

of the bed, waiting for me to lie down again.

"YOU are a bad boy!" I said as I kissed his lips.

He pushed me back and dropped his head to my pussy.

God, his tongue felt good. My clit seemed to vibrating

in a couple seconds. He was licking it with a steady

motion and then I felt a finger snake into my pussy

and I felt how wet I really was.

"Ohh Bill, you got it, ummmmmm, you got it, ummmmm.

Right there, right there! Urghhhhh. Eat me, eat me,

eat my pussy!!" I cheered him on, lost in my ecstasy.

I was climbing that orgasm ladder as he doubled his

efforts with his tongue and added a finger to my slit.

I lost my breath and felt myself turning red.

"Urghhhhh, mmmmmmm" I grunted and then, I found the

top of that ladder, that orgasm, and I dove off.

"Ohhhhhhhhhh, Oooooooooo, Ahhhhhhhhh," I crooned as I

felt tingly all over as the orgasm consumed me.

I was squirming away and pushing him away, trying to

turn over and roll into the fetal position and just

ride his tongue magic.

I just got in that position, when I shot a hand to

cover my butt, knowing a tongue was on its way there.

He licked my knuckle. He was impossible when it came

to my ass. He couldn't resist.

"Bill! Let me enjoy this. Oooo it's so nice! Let me

ride it. Don't lick my ass; I'm not clean there.

Please baby?" I crooned and begged.

He curled up along side me and let the vibrations and

little shocks run their course. He began to nip at my

earlobe and I tuned my head to kiss him.

"Oh my God, you drive me crazy," I said in between

kisses. He just smiled and kissed me back.

We fell asleep for 15 or 20 minutes, waking a little

refreshed. We got dressed in grungy clothes and went

out for a burger, fries and beer at a neighborhood

grille. That night we felt real "Bawlamer," out with

the locals.

He worked for his dream, and I went kicking and

screaming to Baltimore. How do you figure we both get

permanent job offers doing just what we wanted?

Neither of us could have asked for anything more. Bill

got EXACTLY what he aimed for, and I wanted something

to teach me about the travel industry, advertising and

promotion with a goal of my own agency.

I was on my fast track.

Whether we would keep the same arrangements of the

long commute for Bill depended on what kind of hours

he would have at the magazine. One thing we did know

for sure. Now was not the time to worry about it.

The scenario, as of this moment, was that we would get

married the spring after graduation, and probably live

in Baltimore, or perhaps a little closer to New York.

But nothing was caste in stone.

On Friday morning I was excited at work, on edge,

knowing I was to get my offer that day. I began my day

as usual, going to Legal and picking up all the

"clearance approval" folders for distribution to the

ad and script people. I opened the "Question" folder

and asked the secretary for a clarify clerk, who was

usually an interning law student.

He verbally explained any red lined words or wording

in that work. If something was misunderstood, he

usually OK'ed it after I clarified to him and he noted

it for the Legal team. Otherwise I took a note or two

for explaining to the ad and script teams. It hadn't

taken me long to learn ad and script "language", being

able to allay literal problems Legal might have.

Then I was off to see project managers to get progress

reports on existing jobs so I could report to Miranda

what was on target, and not, and why.

I usually spent the rest of the day sitting in with

project managers taking part in set ups and

presentations, plus I was usually either prepping or

doing some sort of presentation with the intern team

that I headed. It may not sound like much, but it was

a busy day and I usually walked, what seemed, a couple

miles in that long two-story building.

Just after lunch, Miranda had me paged and I went

upstairs excusing myself from my work. She met me in

the hallway with a big smile on her face.



"The Mr's Arens and I want to meet with you." She said

knowing I already knew what was coming down.

In the meeting I felt self-conscious because of all

the nice things they said about me. As they spoke of

how mature I was and keeping focused when the pressure

was on, . . . I thought about my tantrum at school

where I kicked the crap out of my telephone and was

going to run away. My way of being self-deprecating; I

don't accept praise or ridicule very well.

The job as Miranda's executive assistant was mine with

few caveats. Obviously I had to keep my up grades, and

they had a few other credit courses they wanted me

to add.

While originally I thought I may have enough free time

to work a part time job in my last year, that wasn't

going to happen now, but they were also picking up my

tuition for the last year. That meant that I would

have to sign a contract and commit to staying here for

18 months. They gave me all kinds of paperwork and

told me to get a lawyer to protect myself, and have

everything spelled out before I put my name on

anything.

Mr. Arens, I forget which one it was, Robert or John,

launched into this long story about a conglomerate

that bought a resort in the Bahamas. They had never

owned or managed properties before, but now after

finding success, they were in negotiations to buy four

more properties in the islands chain and 3 others here

on the mainland.

He couldn't say who it was, but he obviously wanted

their business.

Our people were working at getting it, right now, with

prospectus and presentations about the what, how, and

why Arens and Ponds could do them right in the selling

and promotion of the chain to US Postal Patrons and

targeted newsletters.

He asked me, as a way to get experience, and to show

what sort of ideas I might come up with in the

situation, to prepare a mock brochure and newsletter

that would go to known travelers, and a general mailer

that would go to targeted income brackets.

He would give me 20 intern hours, and 4 billable hours

(to his account) of company resources.

They said I had 13 days left before I left to go back

to school, and would like to see the finished product

before I left. More than anything, this was a grade-

less test to see where I was creatively, and how I

could manage hours and people.

Silent Sister, the third Arens family member in the

partnership, who was never at the office, and never

really identified, was on speakerphone for the whole

meeting. She only made interjectory comments during

the talk.

Once finished with the explanation, she piped up from

the phone, "Of course, you will still get all of your

regular duties done while putting this together."

I hated her already and I had never met her, I thought

to myself, smiling.

Miranda had met her once and knew a few things about

her, but mostly the sister partner was silent and had

little to say of the day-to-day operation, obviously

why they called her Silent Sister.

I rushed home that day, got on the phone and told my

parents the news. I forgot I was going to have to

listen to more praise, but I took it well from mom and

Dad.

Then I did something a little out of the ordinary, I

called Bills parents and told them my news. I figured

if anyone could put a negative spin on this they

could. However, they both got on the phone together

and told me how proud they were of me, and how they

loved and supported me. This was praise that was easy

to take. Then just as I was about to say goodbye Mrs.

Wilson asked me "Is this one of those progressive

companies that has a day-care center right there to

take care of your kids, so you don't have to farm them

out?"

I was a little stunned, but said that I didn't know,

but would look into it.

I hung up the phone and looked out on the park.

Mommies pushing carriages and Daddies playing catch

with their sons were all I could see.

Had Bill told his parents they would have

grandchildren soon? Did Bill want to

have a family right away? I thought we talked about

this, but his parents seemed to expect grandchildren

real soon. I couldn't have kids yet. I had to jump

start my career, fulfill my contract, finish school.

Surely they had to know I would finish school. How

seriously had they taken our living arrangement? We

acted married, yes, but we weren't going to have kids

yet.

I drove myself crazy with all of these questions,

wondering what Bill expected from us, and what he told

them. He was proud of my accomplishment, but he didn't

really want me barefoot and pregnant, did he?

It was a nice night so I thought I would get a cold

drink from the fridge and sit on the porch to wait for

Bill. Bill's bucket of Champagne splits was still on

the bottom shelf, so I filled it with a little ice and

took the bucket outside. I sat on the porch for almost

2 hours waiting for Bill, managing to knock off 3

bottles and then falling asleep. I must have been a

sight.

- - - - - - - - - - -

"Carree? Carree . . . . . CARREE!" I heard in my ear.

"What?" I answered groggily.

"Leave me alone, wake me for work."

"Carree, it's 8 damn o'clock and you're smashed on our

porch! WAKE UP! Don't make me make a scene out here."

Bill said.

I was out of it but coming back to reality.

I really wasn't drunk, just smooth on the edges.

I let the stress of the day slide off my champagne

addled mind. My biggest problem was that I fell into a

deep sleep. I had even been dreaming.

"Carree!! Come on!!" Bill said as he shook my arm.

"Leave me alone!!" I countered.

"Let me wipe the cobwebs here, give me a second!"

"Come on Carree, you're drunk and carrying on. Now

come inside." Bill said pulling on me.

If steam could actually come out of your ears, I could

have powered a locomotive.

I snapped awake to make a point.

"God DAMN it Bill, I am NOT drunk. I may have let the

alcohol put me to sleep, but I am not drunk so leave

me to fuck alone. LET ME WAKE UP."

I was still clearing the cobwebs and sorting my dream

from the reality of being on a porch in Baltimore,

Maryland.

"Fuck you, I'm going inside. Make a fool of yourself,

I don't care." Bill said stomping inside the outer

door.

I expected to look around and see people on the street

staring at me, or my pants wet or something. I looked

at myself and my clothes weren't askew. Yes I was

sound asleep out there with 3 empties beside me, but I

was on MY porch on a hot afternoon after work. No one

was on the street. What was the big deal?

I put together my empties and the bucket with 2 cold

ones left and went inside.

Bill was sitting in the easy chair staring at the tv

news. I decided to be apologetic, even though I didn't

think I needed to be.

"Billy, I'm sorry I fell asleep on you out there. I

wanted to be awake and bright eyed when you got here,

but you were late tonight." I said sing-songy.

"Don't give me that bullshit Carree, you were drunk

out there, then raising your voice and carrying on

when I tried to move you." Bill insisted.

"Bill, I may have had too much to drink, but it wasn't

like I pissed my pants and puked in the street. I was

tired, had a couple drinks sitting in the hot sun. I

fell asleep. Excuse me." I said with an attitude.

"And," I continued, "You can apologize for saying

"Fuck You" to me, out in public, on the street."

"Don't hold your breath. You embarrass me like that

and I have to kneel down to you? Forget it." Bill said

with my attitude and more.

"What is going on here Bill? Did you have a bad day or

what? Don't take this shit out on me. I had a good

day. I was offered the job, as promised. I just have

to get a lawyer to look over the papers for what I

have to do for them, which is basically stay there for

at least 2 years after graduation." I said in hopes of

ending our little tiff.



"I bet if they saw you out there on the porch tonight

they would be real proud of you, portraying a great

image for their company." He said, still pissed.

Then Bill hit one of the things I really hated to hear

any couple do, threaten.

"I ought to put you over my knee and redden your ass,

Carree. You're supposed to be my beautiful bride to

be, and you're out there like a slob slut getting

drunk."

He had raised his hand to point to emphasize what he

was saying, and I slapped his hand right away and got

right in his face.

"Listen, any talk of ass reddening will get you a

ticket to the couch for a long time. You don't dare

even think of raising a hand to me, or I will kick

your ass up and down the street and you don't want to

find out if I can do it or not!!" I shouted at him

nose to nose.

Bill backed down real fast. I couldn't believe he made

a threat, he couldn't believe I stood him down.

"Oh my God Carree, you don't think I would ever raise

a hand to you, do you? That was only a figure of

speech. Please don't think that I ever . . . " he said

as he went to hug me.

I pushed him away.

"Wait a minute, Bill. You said it another time too,

and I kind of let it go. When I had my tantrum over

the phone. I dismissed it then because I was being an

asshole. But this is twice. You, or anyone else, won't

threaten me!" I emphasized.

Bill backed up like he was in fear.

"Carree, you're talking to me like I was a stranger.

What did I do? (his eyes began to well up) I wouldn't

seriously hit you, or touch you in anger. It's a

figure of speech, really Carree. My mom and Dad

always used it. I mean I got spanked when I was

little, like 4 or 5, when they said it. It was a

phrase that just meant that you needed to be taught a

lesson or something. Carree, you pushed me away. You

don't think I would hit you, do you?"

"You cracked me on the ass before. Remember when you

said you wanted to distract me from passing out." I

reminded him.

"Carree, those were love slaps during pretty intense

love making. I didn't want you to pass out; you didn't

want to pass out. Come on, this is Bill Wilson

talking.

I would never hurt you in real life. That was passion,

and you acted like you liked it, until you saw the

handprints on your butt." Bill defended.

"And I told you I would kick your ass then, didn't I."

I asked.

"Yes, you did, but I thought it was joking around,

with a figure of speech, like this is." He answered.

I dropped my hands to my side.

"God, if I can't trust you, who can I trust. I was

afraid I was seeing a side of you I didn't know. You

were pretty pissed when you said it."

"Yes, I was" he replied, "But hit you? Come on Carree.

I worship you. Hell, that's the reason I was so pissed

about you asleep outside. I want you to look like a

goddess all the time. I'm, uhh also sorry for saying

F-you out there, which was uncalled for. I was trying

to hurt you with words, because I never would touch

you. I hurt after I said it, if that means anything."

"I didn't THINK there could be anything about you I

didn't know. It's just your words were so emphatic,

like you wanted to scare me. Well, I guess that is

your point, you were trying to subdue me with words."

I said as I put my arms out for him.

Bill held me like he never held me before. I am sure

this man would never hurt me. He worshipped the ground

I walked on. I just didn't like the context of the

words. We were OK, just a misunderstanding. Crisis

averted.

"Geez Care, that was our first real fight, I mean one

on one, face to face. I think we did pretty well. We

talked it out." Bill said

"Oh, Bill," I said, "Don't make a big deal of it. I'm

sure there will be lots of other times when we won't

agree. But, I swear, if I find you kissing my ass to

let me have my way, I'll be just as pissed off. I want

it the way it's always been. You gave me that look

before like you thought I was going to throw you out

or walk out the door. We are stuck with each other,

got it?" I said.

"I understand," Bill said, "You just had me a little

scared back there."

"Don't be. There's only one pussy allowed in this

relationship, and it's between my legs. I want you to

be as strong as you ever were with me. Just don't use

those words again. I do need your perspective some

times, because I'm so spoiled. But don't forget, you

helped spoil me." I said, satisfied that all was back

to normal.

"On second thought, maybe you don't get off the hook

so fast. Maybe I'll do some ass reddening, as a figure

of speech." I said getting Bills attention.

"Did you tell, or even intimate, to your parents that

we were going to have kids anytime soon? You mom made

a comment about daycare at Arens. You didn't say

anything to her, even to appease her granny instincts,

did you?"

"No, no way." Bill said. "I'm trying to think if I

might have said anything she might have misconstrued

as that. I mean, she knows we want kids, and if we

screwed up and you got pregnant, it wouldn't be the

total end of the world. But, she knows that we are not

doing anything where we could be pregnant."

"You're sure?" I said,

"'Cause she sounded real matter of fact on the phone."

"I'm positive." Bill reiterated.

"Geez, do you ever wonder what our parents think when

we tell them we aren't risking pregnancy?" Bill said.

"I wonder, but, people have been having oral and anal

sex for a long time, they just might not envision

their sons and daughters doing it, that's all." I

said.

It was way after 8 o'clock now, and any hope of going

out to dinner were gone, and ordering in didn't sound

good either. I told Bill to go ahead and shower, and

freshen up for me (wink-wink) and when he got out; I

would have a sumptuous feast either ready or started.

Once he got in the bathroom I put on my sneakers and

ran to the corner store and got a package of hot dogs,

some rolls and a six-pack.

I WAS COOKING TONIGHT!

Although neither one of us were beer drinkers, you

can't beat it's taste with hot dogs. Henny used to

cook them on the hot plate some nights in the dorm

when it was too cold to walk over to Frazier to eat.

She always cooked them in a can of beer with 1 can of

water. It was so simple, but tastes awesome.

By the time Bill was out of the shower I was back and

heating up our feast. I cracked a couple beers and we

clinked bottles. Sipping beer reminded me of school,

and, I hated to admit it, I missed that grind.

Actually I missed my roommates, I wish they were here

to share my happiness over the job. I hadn't heard

from either of them all summer, but I was also hard to

find, I guess.

I had hoped Bill and I could get a little frisky

tonight, after the earlier argument and then making

up.

However, in the middle of dinner, I got my period.

I had felt a cramp while running to the corner earlier

and put it off as being dehydrated from the late

afternoons alcohol. I had been so wrapped up in work

that I had forgotten that I was ripe. Once I got that

under control and got back to the table, Bill was

ready to lay back on the floor with the big pillows.

We had each had 2 beers with dinner, had a burping

contest, and were ready to settle in to fall asleep in

front of the TV.

He won the contest, but only because I lost some of

that precious burp gas when I was contorting myself to

get a tampon in.

As I was about to plop in the chair in front of the tv

I saw the last beer on the table, and said

"What the heck."

I drank that as the news came on, figuring it would

put me to sleep faster. I woke with a start during a

commercial and saw it was 11:20 and I had a third of a

beer left. I guzzled that, it tasted warm and awful,

a let out a huge belch that woke Bill.

He glared at me for a second, and then smiled.

"You are so sexy when you do that."

Bill got to his feet and headed into bed.

"I know baby, and it's only for you, only for you." I

said as I locked up and turned off the set.

We both fell asleep right away and didn't hear a thing

until the alarm went off.

I got up and had to pee something awful and then saw

the time as I fell back in bed. It was early.

Bill was scrambling to his feet to get in the shower.

"Hold on, hold on," I said. "It's too early. I set the

alarm 40 minutes early to get us some alone time

before you left this morning. You know, morning wake-

up call? (Cluck-cluck). I didn't change it back when I

was put out of commission with my period, sorry."

Bill patted my butt and told me not to worry about it,

but got up to pee anyway. Once he was back to bed he

hit the snooze twice and we cuddled up.

Me having my period didn't make him seem any less

sexy, or me any less horny. Although I didn't allow

play when I was "ripe and juicy", afraid of a mess,

(We found out the hard way that blood stains) I could

still enjoy him.

I rolled to face him and kiss him. I slinked down

under the sheets and told him he would think of me

often on the train to New York this morning.

I found his cock semi-erect and damp from his morning

pee. I spit in my hand and polished the head with my

palm and wiped it on my panty as I took him in my

mouth. He was lying on his side, as I was. I put my

hand on the cheek of his ass and began to move it

showing him what I wanted. I wanted him to fuck my

mouth, nice and shallow, nice and gentle. This way I

could loll and wrap my tongue around him, or suck, or

flutter on alternating strokes. I always liked this.

It made me feel real sexy, and let him know how much I

loved him. I was just getting into the total rhythm of

it all when I knew he was ready. I moved my hand from

his ass to his pubic bone in the front; to be sure he

didn't thrust too deep when he came.

I just didn't want to upset his cadence.

It was no hands, just lips and mouth.

He sucked a breath and I knew he just passed the

point. His cum shot in my mouth and I sucked and

swallowed as he tried to thrust harder but my hand

showed him his way.

Mmmmmm God! This was good, to feel him so intimately

and so responsive to my every move. I let him stroke

until he wanted to stop; only then did I give it up.

He extended a hand down and I grabbed it as he helped

me up. He smiled at me and then pulled me on top of

him. We necked and kissed while I rubbed my breasts

into this hairy chest. I pushed my pantied sex onto

his limp lump to get a little satisfaction, but just

knowing how much he loved me, and the fact I just

tasted him had me happy.

I could finish myself in the shower after he left

without making any mess.

The snooze went off and Bill had to dump me off his

body to get into the shower.

I fought him; I could have laid there, my ear to his

chest, forever.

But eventually, he won out. I got up, put fresh

underwear in his briefcase for his workout at the

gym, went back to bed and dozed off.

Bill woke me for work as he left for the train.

He was on the train to New York when I called his name

in ecstasy while diddling myself in the shower. I

would have rosy cheeks all morning, and despite having

my period, I felt great!

The last 2 weeks in Baltimore found us back in our

routine each day, but each night was different it

seemed. As we got closer to moving back, we let the

refrigerator stock dwindle. It made a great excuse to

go out to eat each night, or at least have it

delivered.

We decided the splurge was worth it, as we spent a lot

of time in the Inner Harbor, now very trendy with the

newly opened Oriole Park at Camden Yards drawing more

and more people to the area. I could care less about

baseball, but Bill was a big fan. When he found out

that I could get seats with a company box he was

disappointed I hadn't mentioned it earlier.

We did hit all the hot spots, and on nights when we

were worn out, the low spots, like local bars where we

could get a sandwich or crab cakes. If we did end up

living in Baltimore, or Bawlamer, as the locals called

it, we certainly knew it well and loved every nook and

cranny.

We had set the next to last Saturday in August as our

moving day, with the following Saturday, the first in

September, as move-in day on campus. Both of our last

days of our internships were Wednesday. Bill finished

work and met his Dad at his apartment and moved back

home that night. Thursday he left for Baltimore with

his Dads car, which should easily fit all of my stuff

to get back home. I spent the day shopping, my last

chance to do some big city shopping and spend my hard

earned money.

I got home about 4:30 and drew a hot bath, which I

filled with oils and essence. It was my time to

luxuriate and I did.

After a 30-minute soak, I shaved myself to make sure I

was totally smooth. I then drained and cleaned the tub

of the oils and took a nice shower to rinse and then

wash my hair.

Then, I began to prepare my surprise for Bill.

Although it was a pain in the ass, literally, I gave

myself a bottled enema, a Fleet, if you will, to

prepare for a night of tender, but serious love.

I made myself busy around the apartment, putting some

peach colored gauze over the lamps in the living room

and bedroom. I lit floating candles in both rooms as

well. I was just squatting to get a special Victoria's

Secret box from under the bed when the enema had done

its trick. I rushed to the bathroom to expel it and

prepare for another.

In no hurry, I decided to wait about ten minutes for

the next bottle and went about laying out my special

night gown I had bought for the occasion. It was long

and flowing, but did not have a lot to it. Without

removing it, I was quite accessible.

After laying out my gown I went to the refrigerator

and unpacked the cold part of our dinner from Bo

Brooks at Lighthouse Point. It was Bills favorite

seafood spot. It cost me a fortune to have it sent, by

cab, but they assured me that it would taste almost as

if he were at the restaurant if I followed the

instructions.

I checked my watch, and if all went to plan, Bill

would be checking in soon.

Bill thought he was finally meeting Miranda Ponds

tonight and if he was behind schedule, he would have

called by now. He was supposed to call from White

Marsh, no matter what. It was about 30-45 minutes

away, depending on traffic. It would be heavy at this

time of day.

I set the table and put the champagne bucket, borrowed

from Miranda, out with ice and our bottle of Dom

Perignon 1988. The phone rang and I exhaled a deep

breath.

"Hi Baby, I'm right on time. Lay out something nice

for me. I want to impress this woman who seems to see

you more than me." Bill said.

"Don't worry, you're going to impress her tonight," I

said. "Drive careful and I'll see you real soon, OK?"

I said.

"You got it babe. Did I tell you I loved you today,

and tomorrow and forever?" he said.

"You just did, and you'll have lots of time to say it

when you get here too. I love you madly, Bill." I said

as I hung up.

I set the oven on real low and put the therma-box from

Bo's in. They said it would keep everything fresh and

warm for over an hour without drying it up.

I shucked my robe and went back to the bed with my

second enema. Lying on my side, I drew my knees up and

reached around with the lubed tip. It slid, a little

uncomfortably at first, right in. With a good hard

squeeze, and a little coaxing, I had it all in me.

Later while Bill screwed me into delirium through my

private little place, I would be happy I did all of

this.

I exercised and even stood on my head for a second to

let gravity do its thing with me. Then I went and

washed my hands, and finished setting the table. I

wanted everything perfect when he walked in the door.

The setting, the light and the way I looked.

I wanted him to cum in his pants when he saw me.

After about 10 minutes, I began to worry about the

second Fleet bottle. But, suddenly, it came a calling,

urgently. Wow, shitting all over the floor might ruin

the mood, but I made it ok. Then I tried to stand on

my head again, as I read that there was a pocket low

in your sigmoid that naturally held a bit of fluid,

and if you were going to wait over a half hour for

sex, you might want to purge that also. Always making

good use of my time, I read that on in a sex book in a

bookstore while waiting for a bus one day. Weird huh?

So, I got into the upside down position again, and

held it for a second. I rolled down to my shoulders

and stood up, and what do you know, I felt a second

urge. There was just enough that it would have been a

mess later. There was something to it, and I jotted it

down in my memory.

I drew another bath, this one with bubbles and lay

back with a glass of wine. Well, I added one more

thing, my very well lubed "little blue devil" butt

plug. I held my breath as I coaxed it into me. It

burned a little at first, but I soon got a warm

feeling from it. My bottom seemed to know it pretty

well, by now.

Bill was going to have a nice surprise and a long

evening, as we got ready to spend time apart, as

school started up again. I hoped the traffic was nice

to Bill, leaving him in a good mood for my lustful

ideas and me.

I set a timer for 15 minutes and relaxed in the bubbly

water. Each time I moved in the water the plug did

too, and I was more than a little turned on by the

time the timer went off. While drying, especially the

bending and twisting, I was getting pretty tingly. I

lightly powdered my shoulders and upper arms so my

nightgown would slip on nicely after a bath. It left

little to the imagination, but after I lowered the big

lights and let the gauzed lamps go alone, I had to

move certain ways to reveal myself. It was sheer in

some light, not in others, it felt like silk and

hugged my breasts, but hung below them. It was really

quite a hot gown, and certainly nothing you would wear

for warmth at all. The sales lady told me, it was

"Strictly a come and fuck me" piece. She was right; I

was hot as hell already.



I peeked from the window anticipating Bills arrival,

watching his parking place. We were allowed to put

pylons with our apartment number on them out to save a

parking place. We hadn't actually paid for that, but

the landlord said no one would be the wiser, as long

as we didn't abuse it. We only planned on parking

there another 2 days.

Whenever I bent to look behind the blinds for the car

I could feel the butt plug shift, it was really

getting quite delicious. I heard a door slam and I

looked. It was Bill, moving the cones to park his

Dad's car there. He was a few minutes late, or so he

thought. I ran and put the hot water on to freshen my

tub water. I looked back out and he was getting back

in and parking the car in the saved space. He grabbed

his bag and took the steps 2 at a time 1-2-3 and he

was knocking at the door.

As he bound up the steps I went and turned off the

water, and ran to the door as he knocked.

"Hello honey," I said to his knock.

"Don't hello honey me, I'm in a hurry for YOU, let me

in." he said.

I tried my sexiest voice.

"Billy, close your eyes for a second."

"Come on Care, I'm not in the mood for surprises. I'm

hungry and want to get his dinner over with. Come on

Carree, open!" he demanded.

"Billy? We aren't going to dinner. Just close your

eyes so they can adjust to the light. Please? If you

play along, I guarantee you will be happy for weeks to

come. OK?" I said, sort of sing songy.

"Carree, what have you gone and done? OK, eyes are

closed." He said, giving in.

"1-2-3-4-5-6-7-8-9-10, keep them closed until I tell

you to open them." I said as I opened the door.

I let him in and shut the door.

"OK, open!" I said.

With his eyes adjusted to the darkness, I got just the

effect I wanted with what I was wearing and the peach

gauze over the lamps.

"Carree, what have you done, and WHERE did you get

that gown." He said walking around me like he was

looking at a piece of art or a statue. " You won't

need a boner guarantee, I have one already. You look

phenomenal. Oh my god, my dick hurts already. You are

the sexiest, most beautiful, woman I ever laid eyes

on. I could take pictures of you and sell them for

millions, but I'm not sharing you with anyone. When I

walk with you in public, I'll know how you look

tonight, and the world, the universe, would be

jealous." Bill said almost panting.



I expended my hand and he took it.

"Hello, my name is Carree and I'll be your server

tonight." I said as I crooked a finger to him.

From behind I put my hands on his shoulders and

steered him into the bathroom, where I ordered him to

strip. He saw the bubble bath and smiled.

"Get in, I'll wash," I said as he peeled the last of

his clothes off. His penis was standing quite erect

already.

Bill sat in the fresh bubbles and I took a washcloth

and rolled up the sleeve of my gown. With liquid soap

I washed his chest and his legs, all the while his

penis standing out of the water.

When I finally got to it, he was moaning about how

good the warm cloth felt around it.

"If you can't stand this, how are you going to take my

mouth?" I asked sexily.

"I'll take my chances, I guess." He said.

I used the washcloth and liquid soap and washed his

pubic area quite well. I even reached down to finger

clean his cute little butt hole, making him jump. I

then took a new cloth and lathered it up and washed

and rinsed his face. I extended a hand for him to get

out, and he did.

As he stood on the mat, I dried him off a section at a

time. After I dried his penis and balls I simply bent

to take him in my mouth, and only for a second or two.

I wanted more, but we had a long journey into ecstasy

planned.

I had been careful that he didn't see I had the plug

in me yet, as we were in the well it bathroom, but

now, leading him from behind into the big room with

the gauzed lighting, I could be a little freer. As of

yet, except for my caresses when I washed him, and my

little taste of him, we had not kissed hugged, touched

at all yet.

"Dinner will now be served, and I would like you to

assist me." I said as his server.

I pulled his chair out where I had put a pair of black

silk boxer shorts for him. I opened the shorts and

held them for him to step into.

As I pulled them over his genitals, I gave them a pat

and saying, "We wouldn't want this to end up in the

food, would we?"

"Oh God, I want it to be the food."

He said with anticipation in his voice.

"Patience, lover. I guarantee all appetites will be

satisfied tonight. Please open the champagne." I said.

As I prepared the plates of cold seafood I heard a

healthy POP with the question,

"May I pour?"

I answered, "Oh, please do and then be seated."

I placed a plate in front of him of cold shrimp, cold

King crab, Oysters and marinated smoked mussels, with

a hot sauce served in a shell.

I duplicated a plate of the same for myself and sat

beside him. We toasted our love and good fortune and

spent the next 15 or so minutes feeding each other. He

full knew that something special was happening, but

there was wonderment in his voice and actions. Each

time I moved, the plug shifted. It had been in me so

long, it was now very soft and much more comfortable

than ever before.

Pure anal orgasms are quite intense and leave me with

little or any coordination. I knew I had one of those

building deep inside me, with many more behind it.

"The food is incredible, can I help you to clean up?"

he asked.

"We still have a few more courses. If I were you, I

would be patient" I said as I picked up the plates

and brought them to the sink and then opened the oven.

I opened the therma-box contraption and removed the

packing to reveal the steamed asparagus, warm lobster

and crab cakes. After I arranged it all on 2 plates

and served, I thought Bill was going to jump out of

his seat.

"Crab cakes from Bo's, Ooooo, the Special." He said,

"Carree, how much did you . . . ."

I stopped his question with our first deep kiss of the

night. When we broke, I squat down and said,

"It's all, me and the food, for you, my husband,

and you are all for me.

No price is too great when it comes to making you

happy. Please enjoy." I said returning to my seat.

We ate and sipped from our refilled champagne flutes

saying little with our mouths, but volumes with our

eyes.

After we had finished the food I asked him to go into

the living room and sit in the easy chair and wait for

me, but to first pour the rest of the bubbly and bring

the glasses with him.

I cleared the table and disposed of the fishy

leftovers.

I came and knelt beside Bill in the chair.

I asked for my glass and we clinked glasses.

"Bill, in a week we will both be back at school and

this dream summer will be over. No matter what becomes

of your job, or my job, this time will always be

about the most special we will spend in our lives. Not

that we will never be happier, but we may never be

freer to enjoy each other, and our lives together. As

we look out over the landscape of our lives and our

marriage, right now there are no obstacles. Whenever

an obstacle does get in our way, I am sure we will

vanquish or deal with it. But, right now, there is

just you and I. I can't begin to tell you how much I

love you, and the feelings you bring out in me. I hope

that I can begin to show you that tonight, that WE can

show each other tonight."

"Oh Carree," Bill said, his voice cracking,

"I could never begin to put into words how much or how

deeply I love you. How much I appreciated every little

thing you do to show me that love. I only hope I do as

much as you to express it, because if you ever doubt

it, you can cut open my chest to see that your name is

indelibly stamped on my heart. It is all yours."

I knelt up and kissed Bill full on the lips and he

shifted in the chair to better get close to me. As he

leaned forward I pulled a little on him and he came

from the chair to my arms on the floor. He rolled on

top of me and held my head in his arms as we kissed

and wrestled tongues, all the while pressing our sex

together.

I can't remember just kissing so long, unless you

count necking sessions at the end of my driveway in

high school. We barely gave each other a chance to

gasp a breath. Finally he trailed a kiss down to my

earlobe and chewed on that.

"Bill," I said.

"Can you roll off me and kneel right here beside me? I

want to first love you, to give you some relief for

that beautiful penis of ours. I would feel so much

better if I could do that. Please?"

He looked at me funny, my request seeming a little odd

I guess. But he did not know that I was having a

little fun already with the plug in my butt.

He rolled off me and knelt, sitting on his legs beside

me. I turned over on my stomach and knelt up as well,

to peel off his silk shorts. Once they were off, and

he was kneeling again, I sunk to my forearms, lying on

my stomach. He anticipated me greatly as he knelt up

to get his cock closer to my lips. I put just the head

in my mouth and luxuriated in its smooth velvet feel.

In a moment I lowered my mouth to take as much as I

could and then pumping my head up and down 4 or 5

times, then letting the whole thing slip from my

mouth. I captured the head again and repeated what I

had just done. It tasted and felt so good!

I did this same thing 4 times each time catching his

eye as I let it fall from my mouth, so I could smile

at him. Then I rolled over and tipped my head back and

held his penis up so I could get his balls in my

mouth. One at a time I felt its round tenderness in my

mouth before letting each slide from my lips. He sat a

little taller and I scooted a bit more to get my

tongue on his asshole. He was so clean, so sweet

there. He shuddered and cooed as I did it. I shinnied

back and rolled over and knelt up to be face to face

with him. We kissed deeply until I broke it.

"Devour me, Bill. Eat me until there is nothing." I

said.

He smiled at my request, offered his hand and stood me

up. He lay me down on the sofa and he knelt beside it.

While kissing my lips I felt him part the front of

my robe to reveal my breasts. Lifting his lips from

mine he sought and found my right nipple, then my

left. Then like a hungry animal he proceeded to kiss,

bite knead, squeeze my nipples and breast flesh in a

seeming fit of passion. I couldn't remember him so

ravenous.

He finally satisfied himself of my breast feast and

began to trail kisses down my stomach, parting the

robe until he got to the tie. With his teeth he got it

apart to reveal my bare abdomen and hairless vagina. I

still had my legs together so the plug was still a

secret. He nibbled at my vaginal lips and vulva

without spreading or touching them for a few minutes,

driving me crazy with anticipation.

He finally sat back on his legs.

"Turn and put your feet on the floor. Let me kneel

between them and show you how much I love your pussy

and how happy I can make you." He said.



I needn't be asked twice

When I spread my legs before him, my plug was obvious.

"What is this little treasure you've been hiding?" he

asked, making me blush.

"This explains some of the far away looks I've gotten

from you tonight, doesn't it" He asked while I

blushed.

"Oh Carree, you are such a wonderful lover, how could

I ever match your passion?" he asked.

"By taking me and fucking me, holding your heart to

mine with you cock deep inside my very being" I

answered his rhetorical question.

He was over come with lust from my answer, mumbling a

"Omph, aah" as he dropped his head and took as much of

my pussy in his mouth as possible. He licked sucked

and chewed at every cell of my vagina. In no time I

began a small orgasm that built and built until I was

moaning and shaking in the couch.

As I got to a high pitch, he thrust 2 fingers into me

rubbing the very top inside part of my opening,

looking for my G-spot. They found their target and I

unleashed an orgasm that lifted my butt from the sofa

and I held the back of his head to my pussy. I lost my

breath as I squeezed out fluid right into his mouth

that now covered my pussy and he slid his fingers from

me.

"Eeeee, Ohhh Aaeee" I squealed as I could no longer

control myself; arched off the sofa not sure if I was

holding his mouth to my pussy of if he was suctioned

to it.

I thought I was going to pass out when he did

something he had done before, and caused a bit of a

row with me. He cracked a full hard slap across the

side my ass.

I broke my contact with his mouth and slumped to the

sofa. He sat back on his knees and watched as I began

to come down from my orgasm. His eyes implored some

reaction from me as he sought approval for what he

just did. I was going to pass out if he didn't break

the moment.

I smiled and said, "I owe you one, OK?"

He smiled back and kissed me while his hands squeezed

and mauled at my breasts. Bill sat back as he trailed

kisses down my breasts over my belly and almost to my

pussy. He then put his hands under my knees and pushed

them back beside me, having me hold them with my arms.

He kissed my pussy full on the clit and he took the

butt plug in his hand and gave it a little tug to get

the fat end out of me.

I groaned as it popped from me and a little wave of

spasm hit me. He pushed it back in. He twisted it. I

was weary from a butt tease already. I wanted his

cock. He pulled the big ball again and it popped out.

Then he began to slide it from me, bump-bump bump, the

little knobs tweaking me. He held the thin slippery

end in me and slid it back and forth causing me to

writhe a little.

"Please Bill, you, I want you. . . . in me," I cooed.

He slid the little blue devil from me and I felt

empty. He held it in his fingers and looked at me.

"Under the sofa, look," I said.

He reached down and there was a washcloth wrapped

around a tube of jelly. He smiled at my

resourcefulness.

"Are you hard enough?" I asked.

"Are you kidding," he answered. "One touch of your

lips and all would be gone, for sure."

That was a nice thought, but I did want a warm flood

somewhere else tonight.

He opened the tube of KY and drew two long beads on

his penis, then put a big dollop on his fingertips.

That went straight to my dilated butt hole. He then

spread the 2 long strips over his cock. Oh, it was

beautiful!

Satisfied he had it lubed well he locked his eyes to

mine. I felt the tip of him press to my anus. He

pushed just a bit and I opened to him. He was anxious

and slipped right past what I call my big muscle, my

rectum. There, for a moment it hurt and I pressed a

hand to his abdomen to stop him.

With my eyes rolled back I whispered, "Gimme a second,

Gimme a second." He did that.

The pain ebbed away and I felt full already. I made

eye contact gain and nudged myself at him a little. He

bent straight forward to kiss me and hold me heart to

heart, as I asked.

Doing this he went the rest of the way into me, and

then some, it seemed. I was full of Bill and his cock,

his penis, his font of life, and out of breath.

"Ohhh Godddd," I moaned into his ear as I broke the

kiss to get my suddenly lost breath. I was as full I

had ever been from any of the times we had done this,

but this seemed different. I almost felt as if he were

in my vagina, now. So much, did I feel this sensation

that I wanted to reach down and feel, but I was

holding my legs back. Soon I began to grow accustomed

to his presence in me and I relaxed, let my legs go

and put my arms around Bill. He pulled his lips from

nibbling on my ear to look in my eyes, real close up.

"God, I love you. You make me feel so complete, so

vital to the world. I want to make love to you. If I

am hurting you, please tell me." He said.

"You're not hurting me at all. In fact, you're making

me feel real special. I can feel every move you make

inside of me, I can hear you breath, I can feel your

weight on me. We are one and this is wonderful. Why

hasn't it been like this before?" I asked him, lost in

the closeness.

"It's been different every time, it seems, and that's

good, but this seems more passion and less lust, I

don't know. Lets not analyze, I just want to make love

to you." He whispered back.

He began to move within me as he held me, heart to

heart with him. My eyes found his as he moved. Our

eyes spoke to each other, telling each of us what we

felt as he began gentle short thrusts. It felt so

good, so natural and I could tell by his eyes he felt

as full of wonderment as I. His pubic bone seemed to

be right on my clit as he moved; only magnifying the

feeling. I felt an orgasm begin to grow from deep

within my being. As he moved a little faster in me,

this wonderful feeling built up to a pitch where I was

on the edge of reality and someplace else, and then I

seemed to just stay there. My eyes hadn't left his, or

his mine. It was as if we were thinking and acting and

feeling as one.

This was intense.

It seemed we stayed on the same orgasmic plane for a

long, long time, and it could have lasted for hours,

for all I cared at this point.

I was in a special place.

Soon his breath quickened and he began to hit harder

at me. For the first time in 4 or 5 minutes his eyes

left mine as he dropped his head onto my shoulder

making us temple to temple as he put more weight on my

upper body as he began to fuck me with abandon.

Now, with longer strokes I was losing control. I

wanted to flail my arms and legs in a burst of nervous

energy. I wanted him to stop, but I wanted him to fuck

me harder at the same time. I was losing all touches

with reality, yet I was focused on us wrapped together

as one being, bringing enormous pleasure to each

other. I was beginning to grunt and squeal as I tried

to push back at him, but lost the rhythm of his

fucking. I just kept pushing back to him in rapid

fire, and he caught up to me, we were on it together,

right now. I was losing it, his breathing in my ear

told me he was there, trying to hold it back.

I tried to talk.

"Bill, fu, fuck, fuck, cum, fuck, Oooo, oood, fu, fuck

,ohh hard." I knew what I wanted to say but couldn't

put two words together.

Suddenly he began to almost shout or holler in my ear.

"Uh, Uh, Uh," accenting his thrusts, and then he came.

"Nnnnnnnn Nnnnnnnn," and then a long grinding growl.



He was spilling himself inside me. I could feel some

of the spurts, but mostly I was aware of being a lot

squishier, and then another orgasm gripped me as I

held to Bill for dear life, swooning in his ear. But

he could go no more.

The snugness

of the grip of my bowel around the head of his penis

was sucking at him, and he was super sensitive from

it. He could no longer move and he just held himself

inside me. He would hunker and jerk every few seconds,

calling out a groan when he did.

I was totally spent, as I knew he was. I would still

not be surprised if when he sat back to pull himself

from me, he came out of my pussy. I felt that

fulfilled.

He wanted to pull from me, but each time he did we

each jumped in spasm. He began to chuckle in my ear,

then I laughed, then we laughed together.

Still laughing he said, "We can't stop fucking, it

feels too good, hurts too good to stop." He said

laughing out loud.

Then he sat up a little so we could look into each

other's eyes.

"That was the real thing babe, that was making love,

we were one. All the other times were play times. I

was really fucking you, really tuned into you. I don't

want to stop." He said, his eyes glued to mine.

I kept my eyes on his and laughed,

"I can't feel my legs, and I think all my blood is in

the knot of my pussy and ass."

"OK, I'll get up. You ready?" he said.

I just nodded.

He took the weight of his body from me and sunk back

to his knees. His shrinking penis popped from me as I

let my legs down. He took the towel he had wrapped

the butt plug in and stuck it under my stretched

little hole.

"Whew! If it took the summer to build up to that, lets

do it every year," I said.

I felt some of him leaking out, and I tried to hold

back, but it was sore as I tried to close myself up.

"Bill, can I hold that towel there and have you carry

me to the bathroom." I asked.

"Sure, just let me make sure I have my legs, and do

not touch my cock, OK?" he answered.

He got to his feet and stretched his legs, then

grabbed at his penis. "God, it still feels good, Oh!"

as he squeezed it.

He then bent and picked me up and held me close to him

as I held the towel to my butt with one hand and held

onto him with an arm around his neck.

He walked me in and set me right on the john, leaving

me to take care of myself.

When I finally thought I was empty and in control back

there, just a few minutes later, I came out with a

warm wet towel. Bill was back in the easy chair,

almost asleep. I took the wet towel and began to wipe

his penis clean for him.

"Oh, that feels good, almost too good" he said as I

wiped gently with one end of the towel and then

switched ends to rinse him. He began to grow.

"Bill! Again??" I said astounded that he could feel

that frisky already. But, I admit it wasn't totally

unexpected. I had made love to him with my mouth after

bottom sex before. Tasting him was always something I

enjoyed and associated with sex.

"I don't think so, he just likes you handling him." He

laughed.

"It wouldn't be the first time I sucked him after

being inside me. I guess I like to say thank you and

make sure I get a taste of you," I said.

I smiled, as he grew full in my hand. "Bill, he's a

magnificent little creature." I exclaimed.

He was full erect, only 10 or 15 minutes after a

stellar workout in my butt.

"I'll start him, and I'll finish him, Billy, but

you're gonna have to do the in between." I said as I

brought him to my lips and tested him for a pungent

flavor, but he tasted like Bill. I dropped my head

onto him and sucked up and down a few times, getting

him good and wet.

"Oww, he hurts, but he hurts good," Bill said.



I took him into my mouth a few more times and then sat

back and just stroked him.

My arm grew tired quickly and asked Bill to take over.

As he stroked his born again penis, I teased him with

words I know he wanted to hear.

"Did you like being up my ass, Bill, fucking me?

Fucking me until I was crazy?

Did you like filling my ass with cum? Hot cum? My ass

still feels good from it Bill. I barely even sore

there, just satisfied." I said as I kept a litany of

dirty talk going for him. He was going to be easy and

fast this time.

"Oh, I'm gonna cum Carree, I'mmm gonnnna

cummmmmmmmmmm," he growled as I put my mouth over the

head to coax his cum out and catch it. I was surprised

he actually fed me a good size spurt before he just

oozed a snotty bleccchhhh onto my tongue.

As I pulled my mouth from him, I dipped down to spit

that part out into the towel I had used to wash him.

THAT, would have made me vomit, for sure. I hate that

feeling of that gelatinous type of ejaculate from him

in my mouth!! All I can think of is phlegm.

I suggested bed for us and Bill smiled, saying he

hoped he had the strength to get there. I offered a

hand to help from my knees, but I just fell back with

him on me. Our lips glued together and we kissed and

necked on the floor for quite some time and then Bill

rolled over shifting me to the top where he repeatedly

caressed my ass and the sides of my breasts through my

sheer gown. Finally I broke the kiss and sat up,

exposing my bare breasts from my open gown. He suckled

and kissed them until I felt like I needed to climax

again, believe it or not.

He took me to bed and tenderly licked me to a

wonderful orgasm, and we fell asleep in each other's

arms, spent.

It was an erotic end to a beautiful evening of sexy

food, and hot lovers sex. It was an erotic end to a

beautiful evening of real good fucking, real intense

lovemaking, and real intense closeness. Moments like

this assured me that he was the one, and no one else

could possibly make me happier or feel more complete.

Friday morning we slept late, for us, almost until

9:00 a.m. When I rolled away from Bill and looked up

at the ceiling I played the night before in my head.

Wow! I turned to look at Bill and he was awake,

looking at me. We smiled at each other.

Bill and I spent the rest of the day tying up loose

ends in Baltimore and packing up the rest of our

things. We ended the day having dinner with Miranda

Ponds and 2 of her partners, Robert and John Arens.

They embarrassed me by telling Bill what a great

addition I was going to be to the company.

They told us how Naomi, one of the interns I used on

production and presentation teams, who was then

working in the secretarial pool, had taken my mock

presentation for a Caribbean chain of resorts, and

mailed it to them, instead of filing it in my folder.

They had a good laugh that it looked so professionally

done, I had fooled the intern Naomi.

She had mistaken it for the real thing. I had the last

laugh when that chain contacted me about coming to

work for them and their in house travel agency once my

commitment to Arens and Ponds was complete.

That ended up being the main cog in my career.

Saturday morning we packed up Bills fathers' car,

drove to the landlords office, dropped the key and

headed home.

One week from that day we packed up Bill's car with

our belongings and headed back upstate to our last

year at school.

In many ways I felt I had grown past the student part

of my life, playing the part of young executive

working in a 9-5 world. Other times, I wished school

would never end.

Sitting, waiting by the phone for my lovers call to

find when I would next see him. Each time we got to

see each other was a like first time as I got that

rush each time I saw my Bill, my William, and the look

on his face when he saw me.

I can't help but think that William was a co-writer on

this part of the story, especially. This was a dream

summer in our lives. If any time in our lives could be

captured to live forever, it would have been it.

- - - - - - - - - - -

Whenever we were faced with being alone within four

walls we always seemed to open a new door or two

sexually, and while in Baltimore that summer it was no

different. We always found ways to surprise each other

and make our love making special.

While the act of "being inside" of me seemed to be the

pinnacle of our lovemaking, it surely was not. It

always seemed so, at the time, because of the care

we took each time we experienced anal love, or bottom

fucking, as Bill sometimes called it.

Even the times we experienced it when we did not do

all the recommended preparations and "winged it," we

were sensitive to each other, Bill especially to me.

It was always making love.

- - - - - - - - - - - - - -

CARREE SETS THE DATE

Finishing our final year in college when we already

had potential careers promised was very much akin to

waltzing through your senior year of high school when

you had already been accepted to a college. A certain

amount of pressure had been lifted for both Bill and

myself knowing exactly where we were going to be for

at least 2 years following graduation.

My employer, Arens and Ponds, had been gracious in

offering to find an affordable place for us to live

until we decided where we wanted to settle. My mentor,

Miranda Ponds had found a potential home for us in the

Baltimore suburbs that was near Baltimore mass

transit, the MTA.

She described it as a "Leave it to Beaver" type of

neighborhood, with a MTA commuter line less than a

ten-minute walk away. The ride to the Amtrak station

on the commuter was 10 minutes. Miranda talked to

neighbors and found that typically you could be on an

Amtrak train in 25 minutes from the front door,

depending on schedule. It would make a 3 hour train

ride for Bill, each way. While that sounded atrocious

to me, Bill, with his laptop, considered it office

time. Last summer, while interning, he often commuted

the 6 hours in a day and used his train time for

writing, and reading, and studying. Bill was never

bored.

If I chose to drive to the office I need only get on

the interstate less than a mile from the house and go

9 exits.

The house was owned by a principle in a company we had

bought out to get some Ocean City accounts. Arens and

Ponds wanted more local dealings to better their

relationship with some of the Maryland Chambers. We

have received a lot of Maryland Education business and

had little Maryland flavor to our business besides

that.

Arens and Ponds held the paper on the property and had

it leased until June. We could then sign a 24-month

lease at $600 per month, plus utilities, and then

exercise an option to buy or move. It seemed too good

to pass up. We planned to visit and check out the

house during the Christmas break. This could end up

the house we owned when we got married.

Bill had fallen into a nice niche at Time.

Environmentalists had come to lay a lot of pressure on

Canada about acid rain and its effects on New York

forests, as well as New York Nukes and the West Valley

clean up. Upstate New York had become a hotbed of

Environmental news, so, Bill was the environmental

reporter for upstate New York. He covered press

conferences and enviro stories around Western and

Northern New York. It gave him lots more free time for

himself and me. It kept him in the loop at Time and

got his name on by-lines and "also contributing to"

credits.

Arens and Ponds kept me on top of things using me as a

copy writer. They would give me account profiles, and

goals. I would submit creative ideas and submit copy

to be critiqued. Miranda kept me totally on top of the

entire goings on with accounts old and new so I could

step right in as her assistant when I finished school.

Both Bill and I had pretty cool situations. I,

personally, could not have written a better ticket for

myself. I really stepped in it.

Henny, Maria and I had become even closer in our

fourth year of rooming together. We really wished we

had taken a place off campus for our last year, but I

was impossible to get hold of for the summer and they

could no longer hold the place they wanted. A four

bedroom 3 bathroom place could have meant boyfriends

sleeping over and lots more privacy.

We confided as sisters on intimate details of our

lives, especially sex, and that put our lives in

better perspective. To share and trust, and compare

notes, I could not have found better friends. We were

sisters.

Maria had detailed her summer with John to Henny and

I. She had moved in with him for 6 weeks while he

house-sat in Port Jefferson on Long Island. He had an

aunt who had to go to Boston for a heart procedure and

she wanted someone to stay in her house while she was

away. Maria's parents didn't like it, but she

convinced them it was the right thing to do. Maria was

relieved to find-out how compatible they were and were

going to set a wedding date for a year after her

graduation.

As she finished filling us in on her summer, she

looked at Henny and told her there was something she

had to get into the open that I already knew about.

She explained to Hen about her seeking out "faceless

fucks", when she would be separated from John for

semesters at a time while he went to school out west.

She felt that since I knew it and Henny didn't, there

was dishonesty between us.



"They were just faceless fucks, they don't mean

anything. I go out and pick up a kid, someone young,

and show him a few things." She confessed to Henny.

"I go to the hang-outs where the freshmen are. Not so

much here, but over near the other area schools. I

show them a good time, they, in turn, make me happy. I

have to feel like a woman sometimes, you know. I

became dreadfully horny and lonely and felt little

like a woman. I slipped one day and mentioned it to

Carree, that's how she found out. I felt sexually

empowered. I would be the aggressor, show these boys

some real tits, how to eat pussy, and what it feels

like to get a real blowjob. I don't fuck them. I may

act like a slut, but I'm no whore."

"Wow, Maria, that sounds like me before I really

hooked up with Nicky. I would fuck anyone. Hell, I

won't lie; I loved it. Fucking is great, but making

love is better."

"Well, I know I'm going to hear an "I told you so"

from Carree, but I had a bad experience the last time

I did it before we went home for the summer. I'm

telling you both this, because the guy knows where we

live, and although I don't even know if he is around

anymore, I think I should warn you." Maria explained.

"Why didn't you report it to the Police, if you had a

bad experience. I assume the guy tried to make you do

something you didn't want to?" I asked.

Maria got real flustered at my question and began to

lose her composure.

"Oh yeah, just what was I supposed to do? Tell the

Police that I wanted to just blow him, and not

anything else, and if they caught the guy and charged

him I have to testify that I wanted sex, just not that

much? Plus it gets out in the papers and my parents

and John find out. I WAS STUPID, OK? TELL ME THAT YOU

TOLD ME SO. I KNOW IT, NOW." Maria said as she became

undone.

I went to her to hug her.

"Maria, I can't judge you, but it sounds like you want

us to. Yes, you were stupid to do it that time, but

you were just as stupid all the other times, but

nothing ever happened, so you felt the power of the

situation and the safety that you were never caught. I

don't think any less you. C'mon Maria, we all love

each other too much for that."

"That's all I could think of all summer, was how you

were going to beat me up for being so stupid,

especially after you warned me. I should have known

you wouldn't judge me and would sympathize with my

predicament. I guess I really WANTED you to beat me

up, as my own punishment. Well, I won't do it again.

It made sex hard to enjoy for the first few weeks with

John on Long Island, the guilt ate at me so."

"So, what did this creep make you do, if you don't

mind saying," Henny asked. "I remember you were saving

it for your wedding night, he didn't ruin that did

he?"

"No, the last time John and I were together before

then, we finally did it. We finally gave in. But the

bastard . . . . . he, , he made me do other things."

And then Maria went into a full bawl, calling herself

names and banging her fist on the sofa.

We had a group hug to comfort Maria and told her to

give us a description of the guy, in case he might

come around. But, Maria wasn't through yet.

"I have to tell you what happened. No one has ever

heard the story and I have to tell it to someone so I

can get it off my chest. I know it's my fault, but I

want to tell it so maybe someone can tell me that it

wasn't, OK?" She explained. "It's actually pretty

gruesome."

"I went to a college sports bar nearby and sat at the

bar, sipping a soda. I knew a couple guys were

checking me out, but they seemed older and one of them

goes to school here. But, there was a table with 3

guys, and I assumed they were freshmen, they all had

soda's too. They had eaten, and it was almost 10

o'clock.

That's when they proof the place and all the underage

students have to leave and the band starts. I asked

the waitress if she knew any of the 3, but she only

knew they were freshmen at the Ag school. I asked her

if she could get this one kid, a cute blonde haired

guy to come to the bar. She said she would try, but

figured I didn't want to be too forward. When two of

them got up to play pool, she told him that I wanted

to speak to him. He hesitated, and then came over

wondering what I wanted, and asked if I was one of his

sisters friends.

I explained I was looking for a date to go dancing

with, and I hated to walk into a place alone. He told

me he was underage, but had proof that said otherwise.

We talked for about 10 minutes and I suggested we

leave to go to FudPuckers, or some place. He acted

real shy and I figured I had a good one on the line."

"Usually I take them some public place, like

FudPuckers, and we park the car, but before we get out

to go in, we neck a bit and get "friendly" with each

other. It usually doesn't take long to talk them out

of going in, and going someplace more private. I know

a few good places to park. young guys go for my tits

right away and that usually keeps them happy for a

while. Once they try to put a hand down my pants, or

up my dress, I stop them."

"I tell them they can't screw me, but that I love to

have my pussy eaten, and if they do it right, I'll

repay the favor. By this time they are drooling and

tripping over their tongues. This guy, he said his

name was Dean, was just like the rest. I bailed over

the seat and took off my panties and invited him to

dive in. Like the others I had to show him how I liked

it, and I kept him going by telling him how I was

going to suck his cock so good when he got done."

"Maria!! I can't believe you talk like that," Henny

said. I thought you called it a pee pee!!"

"Please don't joke Hen, this is pretty awful," Maria

warned.

"Once Dean got going it was apparent that he had done

this before. He was trying to stick a wet finger up my

butt and I kept pushing it away. He sat up and grabbed

me by the throat and told me under no uncertain terms

that he WAS going to stick his finger in my butt and

that he was using it to get ready for his cock.

Well, this scared the shit out of me and I said,

"forget it" and went to get back in the front seat. He

slapped me full force, full hand across the face and

showed me my keys in his hand. He slapped me again on

the other side of my face and I knew he meant

business.

I also knew I had lost control of the situation. This

guy was a sicko. He turned me on my stomach and pushed

my face in the seat. He walloped the hell out of my

ass with his hand and then spit on my ass and stuck

his finger back in. He kept it there and kept spitting

on my ass. I was delirious with fear and pain. Then he

stuck his dick up my ass and fucked me like a goddamn

animal."

Maria had kept her composure for the most part of her

story, but she was beginning to cry now.

"I was in so much pain, I thought I would die or pass

out. I felt if I just cooperated he might finish

faster and I could be through with him.

But, he had other ideas. He pulled his dick out of my

ass and made me suck it. He told me that if I bit him,

he would kill me. As he said that, he had his hand

around my throat and I no doubt he was able to squeeze

life from me.

Humiliated by being sodomized and forced to taste my

own ass, I wasn't doing quite well at the blowjob he

was getting, so he set about to slap my face again,

full handed, each side, real hard.

I was dizzy and in total panic. He grabbed my head and

stuck his cock down my throat and fucked my mouth hard

and deep, making me gag and throw up all over my self,

while it was still in my mouth. Let me tell you both,

that I thought I was going to die. I was THAT scared.

He finally came while fucking my mouth and told me if

he saw one drop outside my mouth, he was going to pull

out all my hair. I didn't doubt him.

I swallowed and swallowed and gagged and gagged, but

made sure I didn't lose a drop of the disgusting

stuff. I thought I had never been more humiliated

until he finished and let me lay there about 10

minutes and the told me he had to piss, and he was

going to do it all over me.

I lost it and told him he had done enough to degrade

me. He grabbed me and slapped me again, this time

slapping my bare breasts, I was sure he broke the skin

had ripped them off. I rolled into a ball in the back

seat and figured he would beat me to death. I was

planning on playing dead as he struck me. He slapped

my ass real hard a couple times and I stifled screams.

He grabbed me again and spit on my ass again. He

wanted to fuck me there. I didn't see how I could take

it. I wanted to die. After working his dick in there,

he let his piss fly."

How Maria kept her composure during her description

was beyond me. I was crying for her, but she was brave

in wanting to confess how stupid she had been.

"Once he was done, he pushed me out of the car and

drove away. He hollered out that I would find the car

at the bar where I picked him up. He tossed my clothes

out and he was gone.

After crying, shitting and puking for about an hour I

finally was able to get my clothes together, and I

found a stream where I could wash a little before

walking to my car. I must have walked 5 miles, and I

avoided staying on the road where anyone would see me.

When I got to the bar, it was closed and my car was

the only one there. When I went to it, the keys and my

purse were on the front seat. All my money was still

there, and all my credit cards and ID's were there,

but everything was taken out and neatly laid in rows

on the seat. I sat and cried for a while and finally

drove to a motel. There, I showered and washed my

clothes in the tub, and slept until the sun came up.

Once I knew you guys were in exams, I came back here,

in my damp clothes, and put my self back together."

By the time Maria finished the story, Henny and I were

both in tears.

"Why didn't you go to the Police," I asked.

"What do I tell them?" Maria answered. "I wanted to

pick up a virgin, and I gambled and got a pervert? I

didn't see any way around the fact that I PICKED HIM

UP! How do I explain that to John, or my parents?"

"The fuckin' bastard raped you, sodomized you, Maria.

He should be locked up!" Henny said, boiling mad.

"LOOK, I was a stupid whore for doing what I was

doing. Carree warned me that I could run into a loser

one night, and I didn't listen. This guy may have

scared the shit out of me, violated me in ways I

didn't think possible, but he also cured me of being

stupid. Forty-eight hours after it happened I was no

worse off. He could have killed me, for Gods sake."

"Why don't you send him a thank you card, for Christ's

sake Maria? If you ever see him, point him out. I'll

pick him up and bite his balls off, the bastard!"

Henny stewed.

"Let's just drop it!" Maria shouted. I only told you

because I have been living with it all summer. I

thought I was going to end up in therapy over it, but

I'm not. My sex life with John was great and I am no

worse the wear for it all. We even tried it, you know,

. . . back there and I was OK with it. No bodily or

emotional scars. I take all the blame, I just had to

get it out!"

"OK Maria, but if you ever need to talk about it or

have issues, don't hide them. We can all talk and try

to fix things, OK? Listen, I love the both of you and

hate to think that this happened to one of us. We have

to look out for each other. Maria, please don't

hesitate to come to us, OK?" I implored.

"OK, but I think I'm fine, OK?" Maria said.

"I don't see how, but I'll take your word for it,"

Henny said. "You're sure that everything was OK with

you and John? I mean the sex part. You don't think of

the rape every time you have sex do you?"

"No, because that wasn't sex, that was violence. I'm

pretty strong willed and know that neither John nor

sex had anything to do with it. I'm OK really." Maria

insisted.

Never one to mince words or be genteel, Henny asked,

"Even when John did you in the butt, you didn't flash

back?"

"God Henny, leave a few things in her life sacred," I

implored her.

But, Maria, knowing that Henny was Henny, said,

"That's OK, and I guess it's a good question. Yes, I

did think of it, but John did it lovingly as a lover

would. I would have been doing it reluctantly anyway,

but I really kind of liked it, at least with John."

"Yeah, butt sex is great, I really love it," Henny

said as if she just said the sky was blue. We were

truly open with each other, especially Henny, who knew

no bounds of taste or decorum. But, if you knew her,

you had to love her.

Henny and I looked out for Maria a lot for a while, to

make sure she was over the ordeal. If she had any side

effects of her attack, she never let them out. It's

almost that she felt she deserved what happened to her

and she got punished to learn her lesson. I couldn't

ever feel that way, but Maria must be a much stronger

individual.

Once classes got underway it all seemed like a bad

memory as the three of us got back into our routine.

What was different was that I saw Bill at least once a

week now, and we planned to keep it that way until the

snow flew and travel might be dangerous.

Maria coaxed John to fly home from school whenever

there was a break of any kind. Flying in from the mid-

west sounded expensive to me, but I gathered that

John's family had money. I also think that Maria let

him know how lonely she was getting, being away from

him. I think he suspected she was seeing someone else,

which really wasn't true, but the rape must have left

some seeds of doubt for Maria to sow. She must have

changed a little.

For the long Veterans days Holiday weekend I had

thought the three of us had went home. But, on my

return on Monday afternoon with Bill, figuring on a

little afternoon delight before he drove to his

campus, we found Nick and Henny in the dorm.

"I thought you went home for the weekend? I asked.

Henny just smiled at me and said, "No, I decided to

stay back and do a little local sight seeing."

The look on her face bewildered me and she was about

to explode with news she wanted to tell me.

"Just for the last month or so, I've been going to the

sports bar where Maria picked that asshole up. I was

just hanging around for short times, grabbing

something to eat and a soda or something. I became

friendly with the barmaid and was somewhat of a

regular. When we got talking about boyfriends I said

my guys name was Dean (the name the guy who raped

Maria used).

"Oh, really," she said. "You mean the Dean who hangs

around here?"

Henny said, "No I doubt it, I don't think he comes in

here."

"Well," the barmaid said, "I hope not, the Dean who

comes in here is a pick-up artist. He thinks he's

God's gift to women. If I see him come in, I'll point

him out, because if he's your boyfriend, you ought to

lose him."

So, anyway," Henny continued, "I went there a few more

times and once the barmaid saw me and motioned me to a

corner of the bar, out of sight line of the tables."

"Deans here," she said, and she pointed him out.

There sat a blonde haired blue-eyed guy who looked

about 16. He caught the two of us looking at him and

he smiled.

"No, that's not my Dean," Henny said. "That guy is a

kid."

"That's good," the barmaid said, "I hear he's into

rough stuff, but I guess some girls like that."

So, armed with this information, Nick and Henny were

prepared to go to the sports bar all weekend waiting

for Dean to show up. He showed up Friday night. They

noted what kind of car he drove, and then followed him

back to his dorm.

They kept an eye on him all day Saturday. About 9:30

p.m. he left and went right to the sports bar. Most of

the students from the area were out of town so it was

slow. Nick told Henny that he didn't think Dean would

hang there long, there were few cars in the lot, so

they waited for him to come out.

When Dean finally left, there was no one else around.

They were able to jump him and get like a canvas bag

over his head and arms.

Then Henny paused.



"Well, what happened" I asked impatiently.



Hen reached to the sofa and picked up the local Monday

paper and pointed to the front page, below the fold.

"Local Student Beaten in Fraternity Hazing"

the story read. . .

"A local student was found beaten and tied in a canvas

bag to his waist Sunday morning. His feet were tied

with plastic restraints, typically used by Police in

holding cells.

When the manager of the Third Base Sports bar came to

open at noon on Sunday she saw the lone car in the

lot. She didn't find it that strange, except there was

thick red yarn tied to the cars door handle that led

into the wooded area behind the bar. The other end of

the yarn rope was tied to the feet of victim, Dean Doe

a sophomore at Agricultural Tech. While Doe insisted

he was not part of any Frat hazing, Police said the

fact he had been urinated on made that hard to

believe. "It's typical frat house stuff", said Officer

Petersen. "With all the frats on local campus' that

are on probation for hazing, it's no surprise he is

denying it." Petersen did not make it clear if there

would be any further investigation."

I dropped the paper and was dumbfounded.

"Henny, you and Nick did this? Are you crazy?" I

asked.

"Carree, we never said one word. He never had a clue

if there 2 or 3 of us, if we were all guys or what. He

kept on shouting names of girls who he thought we were

getting revenge for. He knew why he was getting his

ass kicked, he just didn't know who it was from. He

finally got quiet when he got punched every time he

hollered." Henny said so proud.

"Carree," Nick said, "Henny would have killed him if I

let her. She kicked him in the balls about 4 times.

The little fuck was crying when we left him. Henny

went back and pissed on him, so I did too. After Hen

told me what he did to Maria, I had to get the

bastard."

I didn't know what to think. I was afraid they would

be found out and be caught, but I had a little glow of

revenge inside.

"Listen, we cannot be caught. We covered every

possible track. No one saw us. No one can place us

anywhere. He has no clue who did it. He shouted out

different girls names, saying like,

"It's for Sherry, right? Well, she wanted it rough."

Man, he was so confused. Then we really let him have

it. He got a good beating and probably thought we were

going to kill him. I wanted to scare the shit out of

him." Henny said.

"But," Henny added, "We CANNOT tell Maria we had

anything to do with it. I want her to see the article,

but I do NOT want her to think Nick and I did it. OK?"

I agreed, but was still in a daze, not believing she

and Nick could be so larcenous.

"Carree, don't go and get Goody Two Shoes on me here,"

Henny said.

"You have that look on your face. Do you think I could

stand to think of that little bastard running loose

after what he did to her?"

"But, Henny, you can't take the law into your own . ."

I started, before Henny interrupted.

"HE STUCK HIS DICK UP HER ASS AND PISSED IN HER,

CARREE," she said as she held a defensive pose to me.

I thought about that for a second, and said, "OK, I

guess it was something you had to do. Maria was wrong

not to have him put away. I won't say a word to her."

"Don't even point out the article to her. Let her find

it," Nick said. "If she doesn't see it by Wednesday,

point it out to her as you are tossing it out, you

know by accident."

Henny and I agreed and never said a word to Maria.

Later that week we saw her read the article, and by

the look on her face, she knew whom it was that got

beat. I asked her what it was, trying to draw her out,

and she just said "Oh, Nothing."

But she was humming and smiling the rest of the night.

I guess I always had a horror in the back of my mind

of being raped. I was always aware of catcalls and

whistles when I was in certain situations and always

chose to not pay attention. When Maria told us of her

rape and brutal violation, I almost felt it happened

to me. That was funny in it self, because Maria seemed

to have forgotten about it, or took it in stride. She

truly thought that going out and picking up a lover

for the night was OK, because it was strictly sexual

for her own satisfaction. To her it was enhanced

masturbation. Yet, she portrayed a Polly Pure front

almost all of the time, even when talking among us

girls. I was flummoxed to her thought processes.

Maria may have purposely planted a seed in her fianc,,

John's, mind that she was lonely and desperate enough

to seek other company. He made the long flight in for

a weekend every month to be with her. Even though he

could well afford it, in their first few years of

college, John was only home for Christmas, and usually

met her for spring break somewhere. He had taken Maria

and her love for granted for the last time.

Just as we got ready to go home for Thanksgiving

weekend, Maria took me aside and handed me a newspaper

with an article circled:



"Local Ag Tech Student Convicted."

"A local AG Tech student was convicted of a July

kidnap/rape in Woonsocket, R.I., where he resides.

Dean Doe originally was going to accept a plea bargain

for probation in the July incident, but decided to let

it go to trial. After his alleged victim was convicted

for marijuana possession, Doe recanted his earlier

confession in hopes of influencing the court that she

may have brought the rape upon herself."

The story went on to say that he could get up to 25

years, but expected he might serve 3-5 years.

Maria looked at me with a smile and a tear in her eye.

"It's over, but the girl he raped was my fault. I am

really sorry for that. I read a while ago that he was

found beat up in a Frat hazing, and I felt vindicated,

I had a revenge of sorts. I forgot about what a next

victim might mean. I never thought of that part."

"He's gone, you're safe, your love is safe, Maria. You

would have lost everything if you accused him, and he

could have beaten that charge then. Don't fret that

you could have saved someone else from him. He's done

now." I assured her.

We hugged and held each other tightly, she wanted so

bad to share this whole thing with someone she loved

and trusted. It truly was over and to this day I don't

know if she ever found out that Henny and Nick were

the ones who beat up Dean the scum.

That Thanksgiving Bill broke his family tradition of a

long weekend in Vermont. He drove up ahead of his

family as soon as he got me home on Wednesday around

noon. He went ahead to ski with some cousins and met

his parent's there Wednesday night. Right after the

families big Dinner on Thanksgiving, he headed home to

spend Thursday, Friday, and Saturday evenings with me

up in his writing study over the garage.

I had just finished drying the last dish after our

Holiday Feast when I went to sit with my parents in

front of their new fireplace. We waited to serve the

dessert pies for Bill. He was going to sit by the fire

with the 3 of us and talk.

Then after that we were to be off to be alone. mom and

Dad offered to let him stay with me there, but I am

sure they understood our need to be alone. It was

still only down in the high 30's at night, so the

Franklin stove was plenty enough to keep our little

hideaway warm for us. Besides that, we had a lot of

heat to share with each other.

Dad had just put a few more logs on and mom poured the

hot chocolate when I heard the growl of the engine.

Bill was here. I felt myself blush just knowing he was

here.

When he came to the door I rushed like a schoolgirl to

hug him. mom and Dad hollered their hello's from the

living room, allowing us a private moment and word.

Bill whispered to me, "Lets start to discuss dates

tonight, OK? Just to get a ball rolling and feel them

out."

"I'm not ready to set a date, Bill," I said.

"Geez Care, I'm not either," Bill whispered.

"But my parents are asking me about it, and with them

getting friendly with yours, lets just make them think

we're looking into things. So, if they talk about it

between them . . . I'm sick of saying we haven't

discussed it yet. Maybe we'll actually get some

ideas."

"OK, Bill," I said. "I assume you know best."

We went into the living room and Bill made sure he

made a big deal about the new fireplace. My Dad got a

lot of help on it, but he did the most of the work. He

was so proud.

It was a real piece of Americana, though, the four of

us curled in front of the fire with a homemade pie and

hot chocolate on Thanksgiving night.

Bill broke the "date" ice.

"Carree and I are beginning to look at possible

wedding dates. Now we don't want to jump the gun or

anything, but after graduation we would like to have a

date set. But we are certainly in no rush. We

discussed a window of . . .how long Carree?" he

hesitated as he looked at me for an answer.

"Two years," I blurted out as Bills eyes bugged.

"We figured we were in no hurry and if we had to wait

2 years it would be fine. We want time to plan and do

it really right and make sure everything is

accommodating to both families, and of course, us.

It's going to mean Bill and I having to plan time off

way in advance from work, we will be living in

Baltimore then. We will need all that time if we plan

on getting married back here, and we do."

Suddenly Bill wasn't so shocked that I ad-libbed "two

years". I think he assumed I would be in a hurry to

get married, and deep down I was. But, I know my mom

and Bill's Mom, with their only son and daughter,

wanted the day to be a special one to last forever in

their memories.

The three of them were all pondering my words,

searching their minds for some place in time to work

from, to or fro.

As they pondered, I added,

"Unless you want us to just elope and call you from

the Justice of the Peace office to tell you we were

married."

My mothers face turned ashen as I said it. My Dad

rolled his eyes.

"For Gods sake, I was kidding." I assured them. "You

have a look on your face like I was serious."

"Although," Bill added, "If we decide to buy that

house in Baltimore, my Dad has said that maybe we

should get married, legally, at a JP, and just not

tell anyone."

"I wouldn't like that," my Dad kicked in, "But he may

have a point." I would suggest if you do that, don't

tell ANYONE."

"You would tell us, right?" my mom asked, all worried.

"Silvie, you would be happier not knowing, I'm sure.

How do we know they aren't jp married, right now?" My

Dad said to make a point to her.

"Well Carl, I'm sure they would have told us," my mom

said and then looked at me imploring, "Wouldn't you?"

"That's my point." My Dad said. "We don't know and

would be better off not. If a legal situation makes it

to their advantage to get a legal marriage, they might

be better off. Nothing would change, that would

concern us."

"Well Carl, now you've given me something else to

worry about," my mom said.

Bill stepped in. "I can ease your mind. We are not

married in any way right now. If we did do it for any

reason, I am sure you guys and my parents would know.

Don't fret it. It was just something my Dad suggested

to make things better financially. Let's worry about

it when we have to."

"Actually, we plan on taking a trip overseas, possibly

to visit some of Carree's Dads relatives in Poland. We

have wanted to go for a long time and one of his

brothers is planning an excursion. That expense and a

wedding would be hard to handle in the same year." mom

said.

"Well, that's exactly the reason why I wanted to bring

this up," Bill said. "We call rule OUT times that are

bad for each family."

"OK, Bill," Dad said. "I'll look into things with my

brothers excursion plans, as well as things at work.

They are planning a move to a bigger complex, and that

will eat up tons of my time as well. Way to look ahead

on this. We have to get together with Doris and Willie

and see what works for them."

My mother had that worried "Mom" look on her face. I

knew she had something to say.

"In this 2 year window you are working with, what

would be the soonest, you might look at?"

"Geez, mom Kasc, that's a good one." Bill said. "What

do you think Care, 4 months after graduation?"

"If push came to shove," I began, "We could pull it

off that soon, but I would hope for a year. When I

daydreamed in high school, I always thought of August

or September after we graduated from College, but with

jobs and a house in place, the tail is wagging the dog

already."

Bill pushed himself off the front of his chair to get

closer to the fire. As he sat in front of chair he

drew up his knees and I saw the outline of his crotch.

I blushed as he caught me looking, as he smirked.

"I tell you what," Bill said. I planted the seeds, but

let's not stress anymore over it tonight. Let's just

enjoy the fire and each others company."

"Good idea!" Dad said. "Silvie, how about we refill

the hot cocoa and get seconds on pie."

We each held up our cups, game for Dads suggestion.

Mom took her tray and piled the empty plates and cups

on, saying she would be back with refills. My Dad got

up to help her.

I slid off my spot on the sofa and sidled up to Bill.

I looked around to be sure mom and Dad had left the

room. I brought my hand right onto Bills crotch.

"Aren't you the sexy one, with the tight pants

tonight?" I said. "I want seconds, but not of pie."

"These pants aren't tight at all, they just snugged up

when I slid down." Bill defended. "You just have a

dirty mind." He couldn't hide his smile.

"Well, I haven't eaten what I like to eat for over 2

weeks, so be sure there's plenty for me." I whispered

as my Dad led my mom into the room with a tray of

cocoa and a tray of pie selections.

"Here we are," my Dad said. "I wouldn't want to send

you two away without making sure you tried some more

pie. Carree made the apple, Bill, so you know you'll

always eat good."

I raised an eyebrow to Bill as my Dad made his

innocent comment to him. I was just licking my cocoa

spoon as he heard the comment. I think I saw a bead of

sweat rise up on his forehead.

We all sat and quietly reflected watching the flames

dance at the end of a busy Holiday. Bill and I

anticipated being with each other by this time and

were waiting for the right moment to say our goodbyes.

Maybe my mom wanted some alone time with Dad in front

of the fireplace, because she was the one who broke

the ice.

"Well Carree, do you have a bag packed with things for

the next few days? I guess it doesn't matter much,

it's not like you're going to be far. Your Dad has to

work tomorrow, so anytime you show up for breakfast,

I'll make it for you. You aren't planning on doing any

Black Friday shopping are you?"

"I don't think so, Mom," I said. "When we get up,

showered and dressed we will be over. I don't think it

will be too late. Then, I'll drop Bill back so he can

finish something for his journalism class. Then I'm

coming back here to study myself. Meg Parker is going

to come over in the afternoon and help me perm my

hair. She has something she says I HAVE to try. I'm

getting it cut for Christmas, so if I hate it, I only

have to live with it for a few weeks. Then, I'll get

Bill and we'll be here for dinner, if you don't mind.

Well, as long as its leftovers!" I presumed.

"Yes, it will be leftovers, and you know this is

always your house to come and go as you please, as

well as eat. We firmly believe in that old "not losing

a daughter, but gaining a son" saying. We love you

both being here." mom said.

As she finished, Bill was helping me up and we got

coats and I picked up an overnight bag I had to get me

through the next couple nights. We were staying in

Bills study over the garage, but we had the run of the

Wilson's house, so we could shower and eat and all. We

could have even stayed in Bills own room, but he felt

funny there with me. I guess I understood that.

We both kissed my mom and told her we would see her

for breakfast. We told my Dad how sorry we were that

he had to work tomorrow, and then I hugged and kissed

him and Bill gave him a hug and a handshake.

As many times as we had been together, alone, I still

had wet pants anticipating it all over again as we

bound off the porch of my house to get to Bills car.

On the short trip up the road to the Wilson house I

sat with one leg crooked on the seat. I put my hand

right over my pussy and cupped it, catching Bills eye

immediately.

"I hope you still want more dessert, because I have a

piece of pie just aching to be eaten, devoured, even."

I said as sexy as I could.

"Geez Care, You're going to make me drive off the

road. Don't worry I'm still very, very hungry." Bill

said with a smile.

"I guess just sitting in the house with you there got

me all worked up. I've been looking forward to this

for two weeks. I just love sleeping together.

Do you think Baltimore will be as much a dream as it

was last year? I'll miss the simplicity of the

apartment, but a house, one that might be ours, how

cool is that?" I bubbled.

"I'll have to admit that about half the way down from

Vermont I started to think about you. Seeing you naked

in my bed, and how much I wanted you passed through my

mind. Damn, the blue devil is back at school too. I'm

kind of getting that itch to do the nasty." Bill said

with a wink to me.

"Never mind the nasty this weekend. The Back Bay train

station has been shut down for a couple days. I had

such heartburn on Monday I took a couple of those

Pepsid tablets to kill the burn and it shut down the

system. I haven't went since . . . " I was saying

before Bill stopped me.

"Whoa, more information than I need at this time. Lets

discuss bowel habits another time. OK?" Bill said, a

little disgusted.

"Well, Billy boy I was going to tell you anyway, in

case you had a wandering tongue tonight." I said, a

little embarrassed.

"OK, I guess you're right. Too bad, you know how much

I love your butt." He said with a smile.

We just got to his driveway as I reached out and

touched his hand that he had rested on my splayed

knee.

"Don't worry," I said, "Something tells me we might

have fun tonight," adding a giggle.

Bill took his suitcase from the car and opened the

side door on the garage. I felt a little blast of heat

as soon as he did.

"You were here, already, weren't you? You're so sweet,

you got a fire going." I said.

Bill just smiled and turned on the light and said he

would be right back as he ran to the main house. He

was going to turn on the heat there so we could shower

tonight, before retiring.

I went up the stairs and found the room to be warm and

I noticed a distinctive sweet smell. Flowers!! There

were two nice bouquets in vases, one on the computer

table and another beside the sofa/lounger (that Bill

called the slouch couch).

I had just set my overnight bag down and was fishing

for my gown when Bill came up.

"The flowers are a nice touch, Bill, how sweet of

you!" I said.

"Flowers?" he said looking around. "Wow, they are

nice. My mom must have put them out. How do you

figure? I had the feeling they weren't really too hot

for us staying here these few days, and she does this.

Oh, well, lets go with the flow."

I clutched my gown to myself and sat on the couch. I

was tired from the long day of food and anticipation.

I sighed heavily and asked if he were going to shower

with me, or if he would meet me there after stoking up

the fire.

"You know, if you're tired, we can skip showers

tonight and just crash in each others arms. I'm pretty

tired myself. Besides, I showered this morning and I'm

pretty fresh, and I'm sure you did too right?" Bill

asked.

"Showering tonight means not getting to bed for

another 45 minutes or an hour. I want you now, baby.

How dirty can we be? We can freshen up here in the

bathroom." I said agreeing with Bill.

Relieved that I didn't have to run from the house to

the garage in the cold after showering, I took my gown

to the little bathroom in the study. There was just a

toilet and a sink, but mom Wilson had left a pile of

towels there for us so we were set.

I stripped off all my clothes and before slipping into

my gown I washed myself, giving myself a little tingle

doing so. I've never had any reluctance to taste Bill

when he wasn't just fresh from a shower, nor he with

me. I suppose if we had worked all day or been

running, it might make a difference. But after rinsing

a little, all that remained was our own musk, that we

keenly craved.

When I came out of the little room Bill was there,

waiting to get in himself. We kissed and I told him I

would meet him on the couch.

When Bill came out he was wearing just silk boxers

that I had bought for him on Valentines Day. The room

was warm enough, he didn't need a shirt, and he looked

delicious.

Bill came over and adjusted the "slouch of the couch"

to its lowest position. It still wasn't flat, but it

was not bad for sleeping. It wasn't quite as wide as a

double bed, but we slept close, so it worked.

A sheet, a quilt and a comforter assured us that we

would be warm, not to mention a considerable amount of

body heat we planned to share. I laid myself in Bills

arms and we hugged and luxuriated under the covers.

Alone at last, the moment we waited for.

After a long hug, running our hands over each other

Bill kissed me and we were soon necking like 2 kids in

the back seat of an old Ford. Say what you want for

sex and all the joy it brings, being attached at the

mouth to Bill was so romantic, so fulfilling, so

sweet, it truly made my whole body tingle, this

communication so simple.

After a good 10 minutes of kissing, sucking and biting

at each others lips, necks and tongues, Bill had

worked his way on top of me.



"I want to taste you and feel you engorge and cum

under my tongue. I want to make you happy and show you

how much I love you. You know I love you forever

Carree," he said as his eyes burned into mine in the

winter moonlight through the skylight.

He kissed me full on the lips again and rose up a bit

to kiss my forehead. He trailed down my neck to the

ties at the top of my robe. With his teeth he undid

their simple knot and parted my top. With his hands at

either side of me to hold himself in a cat like

position, he licked and sucked at my breasts, holding

their nipple in his teeth as he pulled his mouth up,

letting the nipple bud slip from his grip as the pain

of his toothed pinch reached its nadir.

With my own hands I squeezed my breast to satisfy that

yearn and to feed them to him again.

When I could no longer stand the pain of his bites I

covered the nipples between my fingers and felt his

tongue trail to my navel. He ate at that for just a

moment and sat back onto his knees.

No ties were left to be undone. The rest of my robe

hung from my hips, but he slid it up, just past my

navel.

My vagina, smooth and fresh, was his. He chose to kiss

and lick every molecule of my sensitive skin until all

that was untouched below my waist was the puffy

engorged outer flesh of my slit. He tried to fill his

mouth with the whole of it but he was denied. I was

swollen in anticipation. He quickly sought to worm his

tongue to open my pussy and expose my lips. As soon as

its treasure was exposed, he flattened his tongue to

my clitoris and I shuddered.

Bill's tongue danced on my clit until it seemed like

it was reaching out to him. He still was using both

hands to hold his body over mine, so his tongue was

all he had to draw me out and my clit felt like the

size of my thumb. It didn't take me long to start to

cum and I let him know it with my coo's, grunts and

cheering. Just about all of Bill that was touching we

was his tongue tip, usually he had fingers in me or

was fondling my breasts, but tonight he knelt between

my spread legs, his arms holding him up at my side. He

reminded me how much I just loved to be eaten.

Once my second orgasm came, the rest were just one

blur. I almost used my fingers to try and intensify

the electricity by pushing my clit to his tongue, but

I was just riding the wave. I was a little lost in my

own world of pleasure when I realized I wasn't

breathing, I was holding my breath and my clit was

like an exposed nerve. It was like I came in the door

from the cold.

"UghhhhhOhhh!" I forced out of my lungs as I pushed

Bills face away. "No more, No more, I'm going to

explode," I said.

Bill tried to get his face back in there, but I had

protectively sealed off my pussy with my hand and

moved into a semi fetal position.

Bill scooped me into his arms like a rag doll and sat

back on his knees holding me. My eyes caught his as he

smiled and pivoted a little and fell back onto the

sofa with me in tow, now on top of him.

He loosened his grip and I stretched out over him.

"How did you do that, Tarzan?" I said as I ground my

butt into his groin and rolled off him. "You handled

me like an animal," I said as I roared like a lion.

"I thought you were going to hold me down and fuck me,

sodomize me, like a beast. I thought I was going to

have to fight you off." I said half kidding, half

serious, remembering his hard cock touching my ass as

he held me in his arms.

No," Bill responded, "I just wanted to feel your body

against me. I wanted to play off your orgasm, you were

electric."

"Oh, don't worry," I warned him, "You'll have your own

orgasm." I said as I wrapped my hand around the base

of his package of manhood. "I wish you could fuck me

tonight, spontaneously like that. Just shove it in and

drive me nuts. But, someday it will happen, and it's

getting closer too, baby." I said as I covered his

face with kisses.

I wanted to slowly work my mouth down to his cock, but

I had it and part of his ball sack in my hand already

and I couldn't wait. With one hand around the base of

his cock and the other cradling his balls I knelt

beside him and took the bulb of his cock in my mouth.

Oh, the smooth velvet surface under my tongue! That

musky man of mine taste! I loved his cock.

I gently worked his balls in my hand and stroked him

slightly with my other. Meanwhile I was loose lipped

around his cock head, up and down, up and down.

I know how to drive my man crazy.

Bill was whipped right up to the edge of cumming

already.

"Ha haa haaa, Oh my God Carree, that's wild." He said

as he reached down and took his cock in his hand.



I sat up and looked at him, quizzing his move with my

eyes.

"Get between my legs and suck the cum out of me

Carree. Let me watch you milk it and drink it. You're

so beautiful when you do that. Ahh, do it now, suck it

off." He implored me.

I scooted down and brought his leg over my head and

knelt right between his legs.

"I'll do that Bill. I want that cum. I want all your

love juice." I said as I took him in my mouth, with no

hands, and milked him with my sucking lips and cheeks.

God, I wanted it, to taste a hot spurt from him to me.

I had barely got into a rhythm when he began to leap

at my mouth and I could taste some salty pre-cum. I

didn't want him to go this fast, but he was ready to

cum. When I felt he was right on the brink, I wrapped

my hand around it and jerked it hard.

His first blast of watery cum hit the top of my mouth

and I began swallowing. I was milking and swallowing,

one spurt, then another. He shuddered and then another

blast leapt to the back of my throat and then he

melted back into the couch. I would milk and swallow

until he had me stop, and it didn't take long to reach

his breaking point.

When he pushed me away I removed my mouth, but kept

his cock in my hand, massaging it between my thumb and

forefingers. I wanted to hug it to my cheek and fall

asleep with it, but he was calling me.

"Come here baby, come here lover. Give me those lips

and lets taste each other," he said as I crawled up

and mashed my mouth to his.

We kissed and held each other as we caught our

breaths. The next thing I knew, the morning sun just

peeked through the east-facing front window of the

loft/study over the Wilson's garage.

I wasn't sure if it was 6, 7, or 8 o'clock. I just

knew I really, really had to pee. I also knew the fire

had went out and outside of the quilt and comforter it

was cold, and the seat on that toilet was going to be

like ice.

I turned a little to see Bill and he was just opening

his eyes.

"Holy crap, Care. We passed out!" Bill said as he

realized we were still nude under the covers.

"A fire Bill, build a fire. Warm! Please!" I pleaded.

He obeyed well as he rolled out from under the covers

and I watched his cute ass run to the stove and open

it.

"Hot dog!" Bill said, there's still some embers," as

he put some smaller pieces in and followed them with

one larger piece of log.

"That should get things started, until I piss," he

said as his cute ass disappeared into the little

bathroom. He came out a minute later and I asked him

if he warmed the seat for me.

"The electric heat is always on, at like 55 degrees,

to keep the pipes from freezing, but I closed the

bathroom door last night, so it's warm in there." He

said.

Hearing that I jumped out of the covers and ran to the

toilet holding my arms across my breasts to combat the

cool air of the room.

Once I got in the warm bathroom and sat I hollered out

to Bill. "I'm staying here until you tell me the heats

up in there."

"I guess I'll just have to jerk off by myself then,"

he hollered back.

Hearing that I jumped up and wiped myself and ran back

to the bed.

"That's my cock and you leave it alone." I said

giggling as I jumped back onto the warm sofa.

I reached down between his legs and he was raising a

pole.

"Did I do that?" I asked.

"Yeah, you did. When I got back in the couch after

peeing I hit your warm spot and I could smell you.

Bingo! Hard-on! We ARE like animals," he said smiling.

I was about to tell him I would finish off for him, if

he wanted to start it, when I felt a familiar feeling.

"Shit!" I shouted. "Literally! I haven't crapped in 2

days and all of a sudden NOW it decides to come

calling. I can't wait." I said as I ran back across

the cold room.

As I just made it to the john I heard Bill say to no

one. "Man, could I ask for a sexier babe, or what?"

If he knew what my getting my bowels back to normal

might mean to our sex life tonight, he may not have

been joking around. I wanted to feel him inside me. We

hadn't been that cozy in months, and being together,

sleeping together for 2 more nights made me want to

get close. . . real close.

By the time I finished in the bathroom Bill had gotten

up and had our things together to trek to the house

for showers. Ten minutes ago I was ready to eat up his

sex juices, but nature calling had kind of ruined the

moment. I was pretty sure we could make up for any

lost moments.

I put on shoes and yesterdays clothes and ran through

the brisk November air with Bill to the house. I hated

wearing dirty clothes, but it was just until showers.

Bill turned up the heat and made a pot of coffee while

I sat and shivered in the kitchen. Once he made the

rounds of the house to be sure all was fine he came

out to me.

"Do you want to shower first, or do you want to have

your coffee?" he asked.

I stuck out my lower lip to pout.

"You mean we aren't showering together?" I wondered.

"It's just a regular tub Care, not a lot of room." He

warned.

"Then we can hold each other closer. Don't you want to

hold me under the hot water, . . . . and soap me up?"

I said with a wink.

"You sure you want to get naughty in my parents

shower?" Bill asked through narrowed eyes.

I stood up and put my arms around Bills neck.

"I really don't think of it as being naughty, as much

as making love to you . . .and I would make love to

you anywhere, OK?" I said seriously. "It isn't where I

am, it's who I'm with, and you're the only one I care

to be with."

"I'm sorry," he said. "I guess I just can't get over

doing it here in their house."

I slid my hand down the front of his sweatpants and

held his cock in my hand.

"I bet if I put your cock in my mouth in that shower,

you would do just fine." I said in a low whisper.

Bill rolled his eyes and said "Ohhh Yeeahh, I'm sure!"

We made our way into the shower together and washed

each other thoroughly. To scrub, rub and touch each

other's bodies under hot water has such an erotic

sensation to it. At one time I had a problem with Bill

washing certain personal places on me, but after all

of the sexual situations we had shared, our bodies

held no secrets.

That morning, with soapy fingers simultaneously at my

butt and vagina, I came to a loud, exhausting orgasm,

ending with my holding onto Bill around his neck to

regain my composure. He never ceased to amaze me with

the height's he could bring me too.

We barely finished rinsing when the water began to

cool and we had to cut our shower time off. I was

disappointed I had not gotten a chance to reciprocate

my love to Bill. Making love to his penis under a hot

water spray had a distinct erotic quality to it.

As we dried each other off the smell of hot coffee

from the kitchen made us hurry to taste the morning

brew. We took our cups and went into the Wilson living

room, with Bill fetching the morning paper from the

front stoop. While Bill sat in an easy chair taking in

the news, I spread the black Friday ads and flyers in

the floor to see if there were any sales I couldn't

pass up. At one point I looked up and saw our

reflections in the dark tv screen. Bill consumed in

his news, with me at his feet next to him, reading

quietly, sharing a peaceful moment separately, but

together, with our coffee. This was how our life

together would be. I smiled inward to myself, happy

that life had been so kind to our spirit.

I turned to share my reflection with Bill and I saw he

had stopped reading his paper, looking at me and

perhaps sharing the same thought. I knelt up and

turned to him seeking his lips for a kiss to seal our

shared thought. He smiled and touched my hand as our

lips met. The vibration told me we had shared the same

thought.

I smiled as I went to go back to my ads and flyers.

Turning, my eyes passed the opening in his robe. The

treasure that eluded me in the shower was peeking up

and out. While Bill seemed to turn his mind back to

his newspaper, I suddenly had other thoughts.

I spun a little and knelt up again, taking his penis

in my hand and mouth in one movement. Stunned but not

shocked, Bill lifted his paper and looked down at me

adoringly. Our eyes met and then I closed mine as I

moved more between his legs and gave my attention to

my purpose at hand.

Bill stroked my hair exulting aloud of how good it

felt, how much he loved me, and how these moments

would be many in our life's after we were married. I

drank in his words as I reveled in the great feeling

it was to have his penis in my mouth, where I could

feel his heart beat and savor a feel and taste that

was him and him alone.

"Ooo, I'm gonna cum, Do you want my cum, Carree?" Bill

said, short of breath, suddenly getting close to

orgasm.

"Ummm hmmm," was all I could answer as I sank my mouth

deeper over his prong, as if I had time to refuse it,

if I wanted to.

Quick jets of his juice hit the top of my mouth as I

swallowed and teased the underside of his penis head,

trying to coax all he had from his balls. He was salty

but sweeter than normal this morning as I continued to

milk him to get the final drops he had for me. He was

throwing his head back in jerks hoping I would release

his sensitive dick. Finally I took hold of it in my

hand and held it out in front of my face.

"Anymore?" I asked. "Lover, anymore?" I asked with a

smile for him.

Still unable to speak, he just shook his head.

I pulled his robe over his cock and patted him on the

thigh.

"Come on, baby. Lets get dressed and let my mom make

us a big breakfast. We earned it today. Despite my

appetizer, I'm still hungry." I said.



Then reaching into his robe to grab him one more time

I teased, "Unless, you have more for me."

With that he jumped up and offered a hand to help me

up.

"No, I couldn't take any more right now. Wow, you are

amazing Carree. We sure know how to love each other,"

Bill said.

"We do, I replied. "Maybe we can do something extra

special tonight." I said sliding his hand down to my

butt.

I put my arm around him to walk out to the garage

study together. We walked through the cool morning air

back to get dressed and head to my house for

breakfast.

My mom fixed us a huge breakfast, despite the fact we

ate so much on Thanksgiving. She asked if I could drop

her off at the Mall and pick her up if she needed a

ride later. With all she had done for us, it was hard

to refuse.

Before I dropped Bill back to his study he went with

me to drop off mom and on the way back he asked me to

stop at the Super Drug to get HBA supplies for going

back to school.

He grabbed a hand basket and went off while I looked

for a few things myself. He found me with his basket

full of shampoo, pre-shave, razors, mouthwash etc.

"I borrowed lots of stuff from my room mate the last 2

days at school until I could get to a drug store. You

can see I was out of most everything." Bill said.



"Can I add a few things to your basket?" I asked as I

put 2 Fleet enemas and a tube of KY jelly lube in with

his load.

"I'm not making any promises, Bill, but I think my

other problem cleared out this morning. We don't have

the devil though, (my "little blue devil" anal

plug/dilator) so you know sometimes things don't

work." I said. Then grabbing his arm and pulling him

close I whispered, "Since we're alone I want to be

special tonight, up inside me. If it doesn't work out,

I'm sure we'll have a good time."

Bill knew what I was referring to. A couple times in

the past we had anal sex without using the devil. I

experienced a little more than the usual pain but it

quickly went away and we got away without really doing

all the right prep to insure a good experience.

However, we hadn't packed the devil a couple other

times and we tried it, but had to stop because I

experienced too much discomfort. Bill hates it when it

hurts me. Maybe without the devil, but with the enemas

we can pull it off.

That was why I was always in control with anal

intercourse. If it wasn't working, if I couldn't open

up, I stopped it and he never complained. Although I

always experience some very minor pain, if Bill knew

of that, he would probably have stopped. It, as well

as oral sex, is the closest inter personal one on one,

give and take, sex experience you can have.

Bill went to the counter and paid for everything. I

brought him out to his parent's house, we kissed and I

agreed to leave him to his work and would see him in

the afternoon.

When I got back to my house it was quiet and great for

studying. I had the rest of the morning and early

afternoon until Meg came over to perm my hair for me.

It was amazing how well I studied and how well my

concentration was. I kept thinking that it was like

Baltimore last summer where I could work all day with

no stress, knowing my Bill would be there for me at

the end of the day. Although I would have much rather

spent the day with him, shopping, visiting friends, or

going to movie, we were on the downward slope of

college and wanting to finish with a flourish was

important to me.

I was always sort of disappointed that most of our

alone time was spent having sex, because we were so

much more than that. But, it seemed our time away was

spent missing each other, so what do you do to cure

that?

As we had proved to each other in Baltimore, when we

had so much time together, we made a great couple and

were each other's best friends, as well as good

bedmates.

I heard Meg's car come up our drive and I was glad to

put down my book and stow my notes. I was getting to

the blur point on the chapter I was reviewing. I

looked to the door to motion her in and I felt like I

was looking at a picture of me. I usually had my

blonde hair cut into a short Meg Ryan type of shaggy

look, and she had the long dirtier blond flowing

tresses. Meg had lightened her hair and cut it much

like I normally do. I on the other hand had let mine

grow out, (Bill liked it like that - I hated it) and

right away I knew what she wanted to do.

"Meg, you rat, you stole my hair." I kidded her as we

hugged.

"Your mom told me that you let your hair grow out.

When she told me you were going to keep it until

Christmas, I knew what I had to do. I'm going to give

you a Meg Parker special, and show you how to do it."

She said laughing.

"Oh, Meg. I HATE it, but Billy loves it like this so I

gave him till Christmas before I cut it." I said

making a face. "I like the low maintenance, like

yours."

"Oh, God. Jimmy hates my hair like this, but I hadn't

cut it more than a couple inches in 12 or 15 years. I

like it long, but I just wanted new hair. I lightened

it so I would know when all new hair had grown in. I

know I'm silly." Meg said. "Carree with your

cheekbones and chin, if you do it like mine was,

you'll look just like Michelle Pfeiffer."

"No, I'll look like you. How can you stand this? I

must spend an hour a day drying and combing and

styling." I said, wishing I had her low maintenance

coif.

"Hey, we do it for our guys. Jimmy loves when my hair

is long. He does all that kinky stuff with it. You

Know!" Meg said.

"No", I said laughing. "I don't know."

"Carree, don't pull that innocent stuff with me. You

guys lived together all last summer. Don't tell me

that you've never gotten some of his stuff in your

hair, and he doesn't like to rub his thing through

it." Meg said, a little exasperated with me.

"Thing?" I said. "Meg, Bill hasn't got a THING." I

deadpanned.

Although Meg and I have been best friends, we never

got into the nitty gritty details of our sex lives

once we really committed to our partners. We intimated

some things, but never came out and said them. I think

she wanted to talk about some of those things, beyond

the giggly stuff we talked about at slumber parties

and like that. One slumber party we played a truth or

dare type of game where she gave us details of her

first sex with Jimmy. But, that was a young girl

trying to act grown up. I guess maybe now was the time

to open that door. As we got more and more committed

in our relationships, having that trusted third ear

was going to make a difference if a problem came up.

Megan was the sister I never had. Meg's own sisters

were moved out of the house by the time she needed

them there to ask all the boy questions. She sought

out their advice a lot, but there was never the spur

of the moment one on one between sisters like she and

I had. I opened up some doors to Meg, but I always

kept a foggy shroud around the real details.

Meg looked at me stunned for a second. "No "thing",

huh?" she laughed.

"No Meg, Bill has a cock, a dick, a prick, a penis.

I'm sorry, I don't mean to pull an innocent act with

you. It's just some things I consider way too private,

but I suppose if I can't talk to you, who do I talk

to?" I said, and then paused waiting for a reaction.

She exhaled, as if some great barrier had just fallen

at her feet. Still, she said nothing.

"So," I began. "You want to compare notes, huh?"

Meg smiled real big and then hugged me.

"Oh, I do Carree, and not to be nosey. It's just you

don't know what to think sometimes, and . . . "

"I know," I interrupted. " I have the same questions

myself. I can't even really open up with my roommates,

Henny and Maria, and I've lived with them for 4 years

now. If you don't think THAT'S personal, you know

every little bodily function; there are no private

moments. Last summer Maria was brutally attacked and

raped and she told us every little sordid embarrassing

detail. I couldn't do that if it were me, unless I was

talking to you."

Meg scanned her eyes around the room as if she were

looking for some other person who might be listening.

"Umm, Bill doesn't like to play with your long hair or

anything when you're . . .you're giving . . . Oh, God

maybe I can't do this!" Meg started to back off.

"MEG," I said, "do you mean when I'm doing him in my

mouth? sucking him? C'mon, you were the one who wanted

to talk." I said, slightly peeved.

'I'm sorry, Care. I guess I had to get that first

question out of the way. But, that's what I meant. If

you're giving him head, isn't there some kink all guys

have with long hair. Isn't it WHY they like long

hair?" Meg said.

"I can't speak for all guys Meg, I have only known

Bill, and no he doesn't have any kinks like wanting to

wrap my hair around it. I usually have him so crazy he

can't think or do anything anyway. Just so you don't

have to beat around the bush, I don't get any in my

hair either. It all goes right here." I said rubbing

my tummy.

Meg's eyes bugged out of her head, "You're kidding!

You swallow! How can you stand the taste? Ewww, I get

sick!" She said making a face.

"Megan, it's Bill! It's the juice from his very core.

It's the seed that will someday make our family. It

has little taste, salty and sweet, and if you are

sucking him while he cums, his orgasm is that much

more intense. It drives him so crazy, that I LOVE

doing it. Do you still want to compare notes, Meg?"

"I'm sorry Carree, I just didn't think that you would

do that. It seems so disgusting." Meg said continuing

to make a face.

"Disgusting? I make love to the man that I love with

my mouth. It is so personal. We are so close. I can

feel his heart beat through his penis. He sweet-talks

and exalts me while I do it telling me how much he

loves me and how much pleasure I am giving him. So,

when he reaches the culmination of my act of love, I'm

supposed to be disgusted by it? It's one of the most

wonderful; most personal things 2 people can share." I

explained.

"This is a blowjob we are talking about, Carree." Meg

said, still disgusted.

"Megan, you are I are going to have a problem here. I

don't give blowjobs. I make love to the most wonderful

man in the world, and some times I do it with my

mouth. Just like sometimes he makes love to me with

his mouth. We are filled with love and passion for

each other. Don't ever tell me that I am anything less

than a devoted lover to my partner for the rest of my

life. If Bill was here to even hear you even say the

word, "blowjob", he would jump all over you.

We make love to each other to express our love and

provide satisfaction and personal joy over our love."

I said defending myself.

"Meg," I added, "Maybe we shouldn't talk about sex.

Obviously it is something we have strong feelings

about. OK?"

"Yeah, I guess so. You kind of shocked me there. Let

me do your hair, and I'll give you those long crinkly

tresses that Bill will find very sexy." Meg said.

I agreed and Meg went to work on my hair. She wanted

to do the doo all herself. An hour later we were

sitting with my hair rolled with all kinds of little

sponges and clips, all new to me. I never fussed that

much. When I grew it out, natural bob and curl made it

look nice, at least to me, and of course to Bill.

Meg had come prepared with a hard bonnet hair dryer

and all. While I sat under the heat I wondered what I

had gotten myself into. The dryer was fairly quiet and

we chatted while my hair dried.

"Did you have sex every night when you lived together,

Care?" Meg asked.

"Umm, most every night Meg. Lying together and falling

asleep in each other arms is pretty intense. When the

stress of work would get the best of us, we would

shelter ourselves in each other's arms. Sometimes we

would fight if we directed the stress the wrong way,

so making love was usually the better way." I

answered.

"Jimmy wants me to move in with him, Care. In a lot of

ways I really want to, but he says we should start

having real sex again if we do." Meg confessed.



"Real sex, huh?" I said. "Just what is that?"

Meg welled up a bit. "You know, Care, real

intercourse, fucking! We do it every once in a while

now, but it makes me worry until I get my period. It's

not that I don't like it, I do. But, when we do it now

it's like he makes me feel guilty, like our staying

away from it is his punishment."

"Punishment? Punishment for what?" I asked her.

"I don't know. It's like he's needy and only I hold

the key. We have a lot of other sex, but he says none

of it is as real as good screwing." Meg said acting a

little confused.



"Meg, if you want to talk now, you'll have to be frank

and straight forward, OK? Just what does "lots of

other sex" mean?" I asked.

Meg blushed and then looked away and started speaking.

"I give him blowjobs, and jerk him off, let him fuck

my mouth, my breasts. I can't believe I'm telling you

this." Meg said, her voice wavering.

"Meg, what does he do for you?" I asked.

"He likes to watch me masturbate and sometimes he

plays with me, or licks me there. I really don't care

for much, he makes me feel so guilty." She said with a

tear.

"Megan, what are you talking about? Guilty?" I ask,

almost horrified at what I heard.

"Carree, I really love Jimmy, we have so much fun

together, but when we get alone and we start to get

romantic, it gets to a point where he says, "Well,

since you won't fuck me, what can you do for me? I

have given in and let him make love to me, and it's

wonderful. But, like I said, the worry until I have my

period is agonizing." She said red eyed.

"Megan, he is abusing you! How can you put up with

that crap. You've let it get out of hand. Sex without

vaginal intercourse can be a full complete sex life

for the both of you. Bill and I wear each other out,

and he's never been inside my pussy, umm. . .sorry if

that word offends you. Jesus God, I feel like going

down and beating his ass myself, treating you that

way. His dick isn't the most important thing in your

relationship!!" I railed at her.

Megan was full-fledged crying now. I pushed the hair

dryer away and held her head to my shoulder.

"WHAT ELSE CAN I DO, Carree! My sisters both got

pregnant on the pill, and my mom warned me that, while

they wanted children, all 3 of us were unplanned at

the time. I'm petrified of getting pregnant and I

don't want to lose Jimmy!" Meg blubbered.

"Well, I would love to tell you something nice Meg,

but I think you're going down the road to an abusive

relationship, and your self esteem in on the line as

well." I opined.

Meg sat up and looked at me, tears in her eyes.

"I think it's already going that way. How do I stop it

and still keep Jimmy. He is so good in so many ways.

He's just being an asshole about sex. What do I do

Carree?"

"First of all Meg you have to get control of yourself

and stand up to Jimmy. If it is your firm decision NOT

to have sex where you could get pregnant, that's it.

That's final. If he talks you into it, it's rape. If

that's the case, he does not respect you, pure and

simple. Secondly, when the two of you get intimate, it

is about BOTH of you. He should try as hard as you to

make you happy. Thirdly, set your bounds so he knows

how far it will go. Lastly, Meg, if he insists going

beyond those bounds, you have to get up and leave. I

know this all sounds easy, but you HAVE to sit down

and talk with him and let him know that your

relationship depends on this. You have to be strong

enough to swing the hammer at this level. If he thinks

for a minute you might give in, he won't budge." I

lectured.

"Do you know how hard this will be? He's bound to just

bolt from me, or try to manhandle me to get his way."

Meg said.

"Then he's not worth keeping. Remember back in high

school, I stood him down with words and he almost

cried in my face when he thought he might have hurt

you. I would tell him that you are sick of being used

and, more or less, raped. If he wants to see you again

he can call you for a date. Start over again. Tell him

how defeated you feel when you give into him. Wouldn't

he like you to make love back to him, rather than be a

sperm receptacle? Tell him he hasn't made you feel

like a woman in a long time, and you're sick of

hearing your girlfriends brag about their men.

But, I also think you will have to show him how you

can completely love him, bring him the most pleasure.

If you act like his orgasm is poison, why would he

want to have it with you that way?"

"I can't DO that, Care. It grosses me out." Meg cried.

"Well, at least take it and then spit it out. If you

love him, that's part of him. Sometime I don't want

Bills, and I get rid of it. Do it in the shower the

first time, he might not even notice it." I suggested.

"Ewww, shower together? I don't want him to see me

washing everywhere, or do I want to see him do that."

Meg said.

I was incredulous.

"Meg, washing and touching EVERY part of each others

body is making love all by itself. What in hell is

wrong with you? I don't like this comparing notes

thing too much, but I can tell you that Bills tongue

on my ass, and I mean my butt hole, is one of those

things that sends me right over the line. Since I know

how good it feels, I do it to him too. Open up and

start behaving like a woman, a passionate complete

woman. If we were 18 years old, it would be one thing.

But, you and Jimmy have been "getting married"

forever. How in God's name can you marry a man you

don't know, and I mean know the way God put him here.

You have to give your self and your bodies to each

other."

"Carree, do you really think that's true love? I can't

open up like that. I have my morals and standards."

Meg said.

"Megan, if you don't feel that way about Jimmy, maybe

you really aren't in love with him. He clearly uses

you, and you're letting him. I know you may think I am

jaded or something, but you really need to talk to

someone else. Maybe I am all wet, but wet works for

me. Can you talk intimately with Heidi, and I mean

INTIMATELY. Can you discuss what we talked about

today? Call your sisters and tell them you HAVE to

speak with them right away. Don't pull any punches.

Tell them the WHOLE story. If you can't WILLINGLY give

your whole self to the relationship, you are kidding

yourself.

Megan Parker, you are the closest thing I have to a

sister and I love you. I want you to be happy. I don't

want you to be hurt. I pray all of my friends can be

as happy as I am, as Bill and I are. I am heartbroken

to think you aren't."

Megan jumped into my arms and we hugged and cried.

"Carree, I am so sorry for judging you. I was the one

who wanted to talk and get advice. You only told me

what you knew. I will talk to my sisters, hopefully

tonight. I haven't talked to Heidi in a while; maybe

this is an excuse to. She will be straight up with

me." Meg apologized. "Sit down, let me finish your

hair and I'll be on my way. Forgive me for upsetting

you so."

"You just get your head on straight, and your

relationship on track. That's what I want. Megan." I

told her.

Megan finished taking the curlers, sponges, clips and

what-have-you from my perm and combed out my hair. I

had long crinkly tresses with a little bob to it. I

knew Bill would be overjoyed, because I hated it. I

still liked my low maintenance regular doo. But, I did

look like a magazine ad. I could look very comely,

very sexy. Here I was, at a point of crisis with my

best friend, and the thought of how hard Bill would be

just looking at me tonight made me flush.

As Meg packed up her stuff I offered her these parting

words.

"Meg, when two people love each other, they give

themselves totally and completely. No sex act, as long

as you agree upon it, together, is too kinky or too

anything. The more you open yourself to your lover,

comfortably, the more at ease and confidant you will

be with your love. If you cannot be that open, that

confident, you may not be ready to commit. If you

think that washing each others body, or even watching

each other wash is over the line, you may have a

commitment problem, or a confidence problem. Meg, you

are every bit as good looking as any girl out there,

and you know it. There is no reason to stay in a bad

relationship, or even a relationship you want to BE

good, but know is bad. There are lots of guys out

there who would give their right arm to be with you.

You are a smart, good-looking girl with a great

personality. You are going to school and plan to have

your own career. You would be a great catch. Don't

feel like this is the end of your road and you have to

settle. I like Jimmy, a lot, and I think he loves you.

I just think that sometime in the past, and right now,

he has used you. I am not even sure he knows he is

doing it, because I think he loves you and would never

hurt you purposely. But, you can't let him, or any man

dominate you.

Let me tell you something. Bill Wilson is my best

friend, my soul mate. There are things that happen in

life that you cannot tell anyone, not you, not even my

parents. I confidently share those things with Bill.

He is the one who knows every little thing about me,

and I about him. In the course of life, life happens,

Meg. Remember, you have to share the good things, and

then roll with the rest. Some things aren't pleasant,

but are part of life. He's given me enemas. He's

changed my tampon, and wiped my butt when my hands

were bandaged after burning them last year. I've

popped a boil between the cheeks of his butt, found

and removed a tick from just beside his balls. We are

each other. Can you say that about Jimmy, or could you

think it was possible to, if it's not true, why not?

That's how close we are, how much we are each other.

I'm not saying every committed couple is like this,

but could YOU be?"

"Carree, I cannot imagine being that close or

confidant with anyone. I'm trying to find a way to

talk about oral sex with Heidi or my sisters, even

though they probably know or figure I do it. I can't

beat down those walls you have. You and Bill are

special, I guess. Thanks for the pep talk. I will

weigh everything before I decide what to do. You are

my best friend, I tell you things I would never say to

Jimmy. I suppose it shouldn't be that way. I don't

trust him enough, which speaks volumes to me, now.

I'll stay in touch with you and talk before you go

back tomorrow. I can always call you at school if I

miss you." Meg said before hugging and kissing me.

Her eyes were filled with tears as she left my Moms

house, her dryer and perm bottles in tow.

"Thank You," she whispered as the door closed behind

her.

I felt vindicated that I had defended my deep

commitment to my love, and still sad that Meg was

nowhere near in the relationship I thought she was. I

tried to ask myself where she went wrong and came up

with the first time she gave in to Jimmy at his

families camp. She was a confused sophomore who was

dating a senior and I am sure she felt she had to do

it to keep him. If Jimmy had been as sexually

experienced as he professed, it may have been

different still. I was afraid that Meg loved being in

love and may have forced the issue upon herself even

when she had second thoughts early on.

I still had Megan in mind when the phone rang. My mom

needed that ride home from the mall. I only needed to

find something decent to wear to go with my new look.

I didn't want to have Bill see me the first time with

this look in a t-shirt and jeans.

I found a tight pair of slacks and a sexy top that I

could go braless with. If I thought my mom was going

to see how I looked under my long coat I would have

went more conservative, but she wouldn't. I was only

going to drop her off before I went to meet Bill.

My mom piled bags in the back seat and got in the car

at our meeting point. I had just pulled away from the

curb when she noticed my hair.

"My Lord Carree, you look like a model in that hairdo.

You are so pretty when you frame your face like that.

I hope you and Bill aren't planning to go out tonight,

because once he sees you I have a feeling you'll be

staying in.

"Oh, Mother!!" I blushed, but she was probably right.

I dropped my mom off with her packages at home and

before I pulled away she again promised breakfast for

Saturday morning. She said that if we got there by

9:30 or so we could have breakfast with her and my

Dad. Not knowing what the night would bring, I told

her I would call her in the morning.

As I pulled up to the Wilson house I saw Bill getting

the mail from the box on the road. Knowing that my

hair would stop him in his tracks, I slowed and asked

in my best southern accent,

"Hey Darlin' could y'all show me to the Wilson house,

Honey? . . .Please?"

"Holy Shit Carree, where did you get that hair? You're

beautiful. You look like a model in those underwear

store ads. Wow, Megan did this for you. I'll have to

buy her a nice present for Christmas." Bill overflowed

compliments to me.

"Don't get too excited lover boy. This took over an

hour to do and if you think I'm going to maintain this

everyday, you're nuts. Besides," I said tipping my

head to accentuate my sexiest pout, "You'd love me if

I was bald wouldn't you?"

Bill leaned into the car and kissed my cheek and then

pushed back my hair to nip at my ear lobe and then

whisper to me; "I already love you bald, licky licky."

His insinuation made my pussy cream and the rest of me

shudder. He opened the door and pushed me over and

drove us back up to the garage. As soon as he put it

in PARK he turned and planted his lips on mine and

pushed me back onto the seat. After kissing me and

running his tongue over mine he sat up and undid the

button of my coat. He wasn't prepared for what I was

wearing underneath.

"My God Carree I've had a hard-on for the last hour

thinking about making love to you tonight, and you

show up looking like this, I may just cum in my pants.

I know what I want for dinner and it's not on any

menu." He said with a smirk.

"I had a feeling, my mom did too, that we wouldn't be

getting out for dinner tonight once you saw me." I

said giggling, as Bill mashed his mouth to mine and

pushed me back on the seat.

We swapped spit like a couple of teenagers out in

Daddy's car. It felt like high school.

He took his lips from mine and just looked at my face

smiling.

"I can hardly believe I can call you mine, you are so

beautiful. What can I do to make you happy Carree?

Anything. Just name it." Bill said while looking past

my eyes and into a place only lovers see.

I misted up with tears, the power of our love so

strong, so overwhelming, just knowing we had all of

each other to share tonight.

"I want to be naughty with you Bill, that would make

me happy. I want you to make love to me, and me to

you. Eat me, fuck me, and feed me. How's that for a

night between lovers? Lets show each other how happy

we can make us each. I love you so, so much Bill. I

can hardly wait until I can hold you every night." I

whispered to him.

My words caused Bill to run his hands around me and

grip me tightly to him.

"May this moment last forever," he whispered. "To know

I can hold you so warm and tightly to me and that you

are thinking what you are thinking is enough to make a

life complete."

"Let's stop the words, and go inside, Bill. I want

you." I said as I pushed my way to the car door.

"Go into the main house baby, we can shower and then

run up to the studio, OK?" Bill said.

"Anything you want," I said as I made my way to the

Wilson's door.

We just got inside and the phone rang. It was Bills

parents and they were checking on us. They planned on

getting home early on Sunday and they wanted Bill and

I to wait for them before going back to school. As

long as they stayed away for tonight, I didn't care

what they wanted to do.

Once off the phone Bill shucked his coat and turned up

the heat. I decided to turn up the heat a little

myself by taking off my coat to reveal my sexy outfit.

My slacks were tight. I'm pretty sure they weren't

even mine. I think they were Henny's, something mixed

up from the laundry. My top was a sweater type cut of

jersey, that I normally wore braless under a sweater.

Without the sweater, I was a biology book.

With my long hair, now made sexy and crinkly by

Megan's perm, I knew I was playing to Bills fantasy.

He never really liked me to dress for sexcess in

public, but behind closed doors, he was fine with it.

I struck a pose as he walked around the corner into

the dining room-kitchen foyer.

"Wow, Carree, you are some sexy fox. Have I ever told

you how gorgeous you are? My God I . . . " he started

before I took his hand and pulled him to me to

embrace.

"Shhhh," I said. "Don't tell me how sexy I look. Show

me what it does to you."

He pulled me into his arms and slid his right hand

down my back and rested it on the round of my buttock,

while his left went behind my head and held my face to

his while he kissed me. Soon his left hand slid down

to cup the other half of my butt as he pulled his

middle to mine. His kiss deepened as he slid his hands

up to the sides of my breasts and pushed them together

while waving his body side to side against my nipples.

A giggle interrupted our kiss as a side effect of my

braless nipple teasing.

"I wanted to be extra sexy, and just for you tonight.

You know this isn't "me" in these clothes," I said.

"I know, I'm used to admiring Henny's ass in these

slacks. I recognize them by the designer label at the

crease of your cheek," he said as he patted my butt.

"You know these pants from Henny's ass? I hadn't

realized you looked at her that closely." I scolded

him.

"I love butts, and hers is sure cute. She puts it on

display enough, with pants like these. But, no one,

and I mean that truly, through and through, no one has

a butt like yours, baby. It's sheer eye magic." Bill

said.

"I hope you won't be thinking of her butt tonight," I

said as I pulled him close and curled my tongue in his

ear, "While you're fucking mine."

Bill shuddered and pulled me close.

"Don't worry. You will know who I love tonight." He

said.

"Let's do the uglier part of getting ready for each

other, so we can immerse ourselves in our passions,

what do you say?" I said.

"You call the shots, baby." He said as he pulled me

close and rubbed his crotch to mine.

"Bring me to the bathroom and peel me out of these

pants. How's that for a starter?" I asked.

"How do we get from this house to our room across the

way after showers?" Bill asked.

"You're going to make love to me in your room, Bill,

in THIS house. The room where you jacked off thinking

about me, is going to be your fantasy island tonight,"

I whispered.

Bill turned red and then flushed, looking me in the

eye. Then with a waver in his voice he said, "OK, but

be gentle with me."

I shook my head and laughed at him. I was the one who

was going to get a penis pushed up my exit ramp, but I

must admit I was doing it willingly. Feeling him

inside me was just so special, I just hoped there were

no problems tonight.

"How do you want to do it," Bill asked. "Your butt,

you call the shots."

"You are so sweet, your mom and Dad would be proud.

Umm, why don't we do the Fleet bottles first, then

shower and go to bed. To go back and do the poopie

part later would break a mood, although I would love

to have you RIGHT NOW. So lets go in the bathroom and

get started so we can get to the fun part." I said

reluctantly.

"Carree, we don't HAVE to do this. I love it, but, you

make me happy in so many ways, and vice-versa." Bill

said.

"No, Bill, I want this as much as you. I have a need

for feeling you inside of me, and I can't lie, I LOVE

this too. The fuss and the mess are a nuisance, but in

the end, pardon my pun, it doesn't even play in my

decision." I said as I cupped his face in my hands as

lovingly as I could. I brought my face as close to his

as I could without kissing and pressed my nose to his,

whispering, "I want you to fuck me, love. Make love to

me and let me feel you in my very core. If there is a

problem, I'll let you know. I know you don't want to

hurt me, cause me any pain. Now come, get me ready for

your cock."

"God, I love you," Bill said as he picked me up and

carried me to the bathroom.

Once he set me down, he kissed me gently while

beginning to pull my slinky top over my head. Once he

gave up my lips to get it over my head I heard him

catch his breath as he saw and admired my breasts. He

peeled my top off my arms and set it aside, bending

slightly to kiss each of my nipples. I reached and

held each breast for him to suckle. It felt so good to

feel his gentle mouth there. Then he stood back and

fumbled at the catch for my pants. Once solved, he

lowered the zipper and then reached behind me to

unbutton the snug and lower that short zipper. He

pushed down at my hips to push the tight pants from

me. I offered each leg for him to pull them off. I

stood before him in a t-back thong.

"You are so beautiful Carree," he said. "Please don't

get sick of hearing me say that. I can never get

enough of just looking at you."

He hugged and kissed me again, running his hands over

my side and hips, settling on my butt. As we broke the

kiss I could see a mist in his eyes. I knew then, and

whenever this happened, that we understood the depth

and ferocity of our love. We were truly rooted to each

other where tears of disbelief sometimes formed. Being

this much in love hardly seemed possible.

I reached to my hips and pinched the waist string to

my panty and began to lower it, while turning round

and leaning over the counter. Bill knew I was anxious

to get this little ritual over so we could dive into

each other's love.

The first of the Fleet bottles brought more results

than usual and I began to worry that maybe I wasn't as

ready to open this road as I thought. But I was able

to retain the second bottle, some 15 minutes later,

for a long time with little result. It gave me a

confidence that we might have a real positive

experience tonight.

We had spent the waiting time in the shower cleaning

ourselves for each other. We figured this was ideal

for having a sexless shower, so we could save

ourselves for the bedroom.

I wanted to wait a few minutes to be sure to purge a

bit more of the enema fluid. I had read that the

"sigmoid pocket" held a reserve that could show up if

you waited long afterward for sex. After I threw Bill

out of the bathroom I inverted myself and got that

second little urge and took care of it. Then I stepped

back into the shower to rinse and clean myself.

Bill had left me his robe to be warm upon leaving the

shower and I donned it knowing I could look so much

better in my own, if had brought it. Still I made the

most of it trying to look sexy, I let it plunge to my

waist, at the tie, and it wasn't too long. I went to

his room where he was lying with a towel around

himself reading, of course. I struck a pose in the

doorway and cleared my throat.



"Oh man, I never looked so good in that robe." Were

all the words he could muster.

He smiled and put down his magazine and knelt up on

the bed motioning me to him with a crooked finger.

I answered his beck by coming to meet his lips, but

his strong arms pulled me down on the bed and he

parted my robe in one move. He shifted till he knelt

between my legs and began a shower of kisses, licks

and caresses from my forehead to my belly button, that

had me breathing heavy in anticipation in no time.

Bill sat back on his haunches and grabbed a body

pillow on his bed and doubled it over. He lifted my

legs to his shoulders and pushed me back to where I

almost thought I would flip, then let me down onto the

doubled pillow. It was apparent he wanted my 2

pleasure orifices to be easy to access.

He began to rain kisses on my upturned butt cheeks and

eventually worked his way to that little strip of skin

between my holes. I wasn't sure where he would go next

and that was part of his tease.

He snaked his tongue up my shaved slit and began to

devour my lips but gave then up as my clit sort of

popped up for him. He sucked it almost like a little

dick.

I pushed the air from my lungs as a rush hit me, and

then redoubled as two of his long fingers sunk into my

pussy. I was on the verge of cumming already and he

was just beginning to find my G-spot.

I was about to go over the edge when his tongue left

my clit and swirled at my exposed butt hole. He seemed

to suck at it and put his tongue in it at once.

Whatever he did, it felt great! Unfortunately it

didn't last long enough because he was back at my clit

in a flash and I was going over the top. I was just

losing my breath and humping breaths when he removed

his tongue and slid his thumb in its place on my clit.

He sat back to watch me orgasm while he busied his

other hand. As my orgasm began to subside he brought

his mouth to my pussy again but his other hand had a

finger snaking up my butt. While he massaged my clit

with his tongue his index finger went up my butt twice

and then disappeared only to be replaced by his long

middle finger. He sawed it over and over again into me

and as I began to come from his tongue. Then, that

long finger began to fade from me. Suddenly it, along

with his index finger pinched together pushed up into

my ass. I lost all my breath and felt a surge of quick

pain, but another vaginal orgasm was working and my g-

spot was about to be heard from.

My orgasm was like a rolling pin up my chest as it

pressed my breath from me. I felt my face turn red,

then white as I clamored to stay conscious. A blast of

fluid from my pussy finally caused me to draw hard and

tight into my lungs. My orgasm had taken hold of me

and I was a mere spectator as it gripped my chest

again and I bore down to push another release from my

pussy. I remember hearing the splash hit something,

probably the side of Bills face or his chest as I shot

my hand down to cover my pussy and pull any fingers

out of it. I had to stop the assault on my clit or I

was going to pass out.

I held my pussy full in my hand and realized the only

thing Bill had going was 2 fingers up my ass and he

was plunging them in and out of me. The intense

concentration on my clit was stopped but still I felt

my g-spot wavering like an exposed nerve in a cold

breeze. An anal orgasm was going right through me and

gripping my sexual being.

I don't know how long I was doing it but I was

rotating my hips to his cadence and shaking my head

from side to side with each thrust of his hand. When I

closed my eyes I saw myself like a movie, taking the

pleasure of his fingers within me. My breath kept

catching in my throat, knowing that a gut wrenching

spasm was near, but his fingers were no longer enough

to reach the spot within me to draw that out.

I needed his cock in my ass, up into my being. I was

ready.

"Your cock Bill, your beautiful penis. Put it into me.

Please let me feel you fill me. Feel the warmth of my

heat inside me. Fuck me Bill, please fuck me." I said

staccato to his hand thrusts into me.

I opened my eyes to see Bills other hand squeezing

more KY onto his cock, setting down the tube and then

stroking it all over himself.

Then suddenly his pistoning finger stab stopped and he

removed them from me. Tipped back as I was,I saw the

whole of my slick pussy and just the red puffiness

around my private little hole. He laid his slickened

cock on the groove of my vagina and slid over it. Just

a push downward with my finger or his would have sent

it thrusting into me. The way the ridge of his rolled

foreskin rode over my clit had me building a second

simultaneous spasm.

"Inside, inside," I whispered to him and I am sure he

thought of how nice it would be to sink into my pussy.

I wouldn't have regretted one second of it if he did,

but he let our vow to each other prevail.

He slid his cock back once again through the groove of

my vulva, but dropped just out of my sight line and I

felt it nudge to my butt hole.

One short, painful stroke put him about three inches

inside of me. I thrust a hand out to stop further

penetration as I turned my head to the side as if to

keep the burning pain to myself. I waited for it to

ebb, it didn't.

I stepped out of my crazed sexual state.

"Take it out Bill, it hurts like hell," I cried.

As always in this situation, Bill obeyed me right

away. He knew I controlled it.

His penis no sooner had left me when his 2 fingers

rolled together replaced it and he began sawing back

and forth inside me again. This felt good still. The

sudden widening by his penis of my hole was more than

I could take at the time. He began to muscle a

rotation with his overlapped digits, stretching me

side to side as well as in and out. I closed my eyes

and relaxed in the hard and soft pummel of my butt

hole and big muscle being stretched.

I was about to tell Bill to try one more time when I

felt his fingers leave me. I wanted to warn him to be

careful and gentle in a second try when, with no

perceptible pause, his cock went right into me where

his fingers had just left. He slid quickly past my big

muscle and stopped about 4 inches into me.

His eyes looked to mine for approval and I just

smiled. Maybe it was the angle before, maybe I was

just not ready before, but this was it.

With my legs hanging back over my prone body it was

hard to push back at him, but he got my message and

pushed the rest of the way into me, his balls nestled

in my crease.

My eyes must have shown a shock to him as he sought my

wordless approval. He wore a look of concern on his

face, but my smile made him mirror that emotion back

to me.

He was deep within me. We were one. He could now make

love to me. He reached for and held my ankles as he

started short thrusts into me. He quickened the pace

and now my legs rested on his shoulders. Before I knew

it he was pummeling me.

"FUCK me, FUCK me," my gravelly whisper matched his

thrusts. Those thrusts got harder and he sought a fast

orgasm as deep as he could reach within me. Without a

second to think about it, an orgasm hit me, a seeming

wave from deep inside me that rode across my pussy

using my clit as its release point.

"Ohh ohh, Ewww, ewww," I gasped out and sucked in new

breath to feed another orgasm and they came one after

another, like 4 in a row.

The slap of his thighs against my cheeks sounded

brutal,knowing he was in my ass, but the feeling was

exquisite. I was at a state where I relished him being

close, inside me, while orgasm after orgasm left me as

I announced each with a grunt or holler. I was in a

groove where I could have cum for hours it seemed, as

long as they didn't get more intense. Then I felt him

buck up and the cudgel within me rearing, swelling.



He was going to cum!!

Oh, Carree, I'm gonna cum, gonna cum! Take it, take it

take it, take it," he said slamming at me.

Finally he had to stop, no longer able to withstand

the pleasure of my bowels squeezing at him, my butt

hole milking him. He stayed within me and took my

right leg and swung over to the other shoulder with my

left. I lifted a bit so he could remove the doubled

body pillow under me, and he slid down to the sheets

in a perfect spoon. He held me close, gripping my

breasts tightly.

His voice cracked as he spoke.

"God Carree, that was wonderful. We were truly one.

Just awesome, awesome," he emphasized.

We lay wordless attached in our spoon until reality

began to creep up.

"You have a towel here, right lover?" I asked.

He reached for the towel he had wrapped around himself

after his shower.

"Here, I'll snake it under us, when I pull out I'll

like diaper you, OK?" he asked.

"Ohhh, do you have to take it out?" I asked wanting it

to remain a part of me.

After placing the towel under us he thread himself

from my hole. I felt a gush of cum run out as I

struggled to keep it in me, but I had little control.

He did diaper me and help me up to walk to the

bathroom. He sat me on the john as he pulled the towel

away. While I pushed out air and the remains of his

cum, he ran warm water for a washcloth to wash his

penis. Once rinsed, he took another cloth and lathered

it with soap and washed it again. I knew why he wanted

it so clean. I was going to take him in my mouth. It

had become ritual after each time with anal sex. I

love to suck him, and doing so before butt sex wasn't

necessary to get him hard, and I was afraid to get him

too close to orgasm. He had no problem rising up a

second time, so I could get my fill, the joy I

experienced from feeling him in my mouth.

In the small bathroom I reached to get some paper to

dab myself, dry myself and he was turning to put the

washcloths in the hamper. His penis passed in front of

my face, and I caught the plum of it in my mouth,

freezing Bill, most certainly catching him off guard.

He looked down and saw me with just head in my mouth

and a smile on my face. I thought he would scold me

and pull from my mouth and go into the bedroom and

wait for me. Instead he readjusted his feet and stood

there, I suppose, enjoying the fact the end of his

penis was trapped in my mouth. He ran his fingers

through my newly permed tresses and stroked my hair.

"God, that feels so good Carree," Bill said as he

nudged a bit more of himself into my mouth.

I took it that this was how he wanted me, as un-Bill-

like as it was. He was one to have me take charge and

show him how I wanted it. This was participation oral

sex for me, my pleasure, as much as he also enjoyed

it.

I looked up and my eyes met his as I took as much as I

could in my mouth. I was getting better at this, but

again, deep throating, choking, was not my idea of

pleasure. Our eyes stayed together as I bent back and

forth ever so slightly to stroke him with my mouth

sucking at him. The velvet smooth of his penis head

over my tongue made my vagina squishy, that's how sexy

this made me feel. Uncharacteristically I reached down

a couple fingers to massage my clit, taking advantage

of the wetness my actions caused. I began to get a

faint taste of his pre-cum just as he began to push at

my face a little. Within moments I was stationary, and

he was providing the friction.

Bill was fucking my mouth in nice strokes timed with

my sucking and swallowing. I wasn't too worried that

he would thrust too hard as he came, he was always

aware of that fear of mine. Still, instinctively, when

I was sure his orgasm was imminent I raised the palm

of my left hand to the flat just above his genitals.

"Oh Carree, here's your cum, I'm gonna cum, it's

cumming, cumming," he said as his eyes left mine and

tipped toward the ceiling.

I hummed a sound of disappointment as his eyes left

mine and he must have picked up what I wanted; to keep

eye contact throughout orgasm. When he re-connected

eye contact I smiled a little around his cock, just as

the first volley of cum crossed my tongue. The second

shot was huge and I swallowed fast, but anything else

he had to offer just oozed out. Our eyes glued to each

other, me reading his ecstasy, he reading my

satisfaction. It was a loving experience. He smiled

down at me, and I back at him just as I was about to

suck the last dribbles from him. I sucked all the way

up to the head then gave the underside a snake-like

lick.

"You're amazing. You're so good to me. Where did you

learn to love me so, and be so naughty?" he said

rhetorically, but I had an answer.

"From you, lover, everything just comes from our love.

We are me and you are we. Everything we do is us." I

answered him.

It was true. Nothing we did ever came to a real

question. It was all making love. There was no point

where I did anything, or put up with something, to get

something in return. Every act was of itself, and we

loved giving each other pleasure. I thought of Megan

and Jimmy and how they had so much further to go, so

much trust to assume.

I went to stand up and hug Bill and he put a hand to

my shoulder.

"Wait, I saw something here you might like," he said

as he pulled a vanity drawer open. He handed me sample

packets of baby wipes. "These may be a little easier

on your cute little butt, I know you like them and I

see them here every time I reach in there for floss."

I then remembered the reason I was sitting on the

john, to clean up and let Bills cum run out of me, as

well as let loose of the air he pumped me full of. I

opened the packet of wipes and Bill let me have my

privacy. My little hiney was sore, but it didn't feel

puffy so I was no worse for the wear that Bill gave it

today. This was definitely one of the best days of

lovemaking we had ever had. Maybe my little talk with

Megan had convinced me as well that our love was

something special, and I needed to prove it.

That night we made Bills bed up and cleaned the house

and retired to the study loft over the garage. Bill

built a nice fire to warm the place. We sat on the

floor in front of the stove and talked about getting

back to class and how we might not see each other

until the Christmas break, but that was only 3 Sundays

away. We held each other and reveled in our last night

alone together. My mom and Dad had a big breakfast

planned for us after church, we promised to go to 9:00

o'clock Mass with them. We would then wait until the

Wilson's came home early Sunday to leave for school.

We held each other tight talking of our plans for the

next few years in Baltimore and the beginning of our

life together. We laughed and cried and giggled with

anticipation. Finally we fell asleep on the floor, and

woke a few hours later cold with the fire down to

embers. Bill knelt up and loaded the cradle with more

logs and, after it began to spark, he held out a hand

to help me up and bring me to bed on the slouch couch.

We stood and kissed and ended up slinking to the floor

and having a sixty-nine in front of the fire. We got

to the couch exhausted about two-thirty, knowing the

alarm would go off in 5 hours, and fell right asleep

exhausted from our loving.

We made the Mass on time, had a great breakfast and

even had time to let Bill read the papers. We got back

to Wilson's by noon just as they got back from

Vermont.

We visited with mom and Dad Wilson for an hour or so

and were on our way. I was back in my dorm by 4

o'clock and Bill called me from his just before 5. Our

long Thanksgiving Holiday weekend was over. Three

nights of sleeping with my lover had me bright and

confident. In a mere 7 months we would be living

together as we would the rest of our lives. Although

we, ourselves, felt no great rush to be married, our

parents would bring the subject up a lot over the

coming Holidays. We decided that setting a date would

appease them and stop a lot of the questions. My

commitment to Baltimore and Arens and Ponds was 2

years. If I really felt at any time during that span,

that this was the job I wanted, we would get married

right away. However, Bill and I discussed the

possibility of me being more of an independent

contractor, setting my own pace once I was

established. Then, having a family could be done at

our leisure and I could pace my work to fit my

schedule as Mrs. Bill Wilson. Life's canvas had

finally been set before us and we had to decide how to

paint it. Would we simply fill in the numbers, or

paint an abstract.

My lips were still moist with Bills goodbye kiss when

I heard a noise from Henny's room. The dorm did not

seem to have the "occupied" feel yet for me to think

that Henny or Maria had returned from their long

weekends yet. Usually there would be fresh goodies

from home on the counter, or local newspapers from

home, or even an unpacked box or suitcase around.

Something was not right. I contemplated how to handle

the situation when common sense took hold of me.

I grabbed my phone and exited the building as fast as

I could and punched in my speed dial code for campus

security.

"Campus Eye," a voice quickly answered.

Our on campus 911 was 393 or EYE. It was for locally

handled emergencies, or for a quick decision whether

911 was needed.

"Umm, Hi EYE. I just got to my dorm from the long

weekend and I think I heard a noise in one of our

rooms and I don't think any of my roommates are back.

We've lived together 4 years and something doesn't

feel right. I mean, I think I know what's normal, and

this seems different." I nervously stammered into the

phone.

"Did you call out?" the EYE voice asked.

"No. I hope this isn't a false alarm. But I have a bad

feeling. I know you guys are busy and . . . " I began

before he cut me off.

"Don't sweat it Miss. We aren't busy at all and I am

about to make a pass of the dorm areas anyway. I show

you in Suite 1 of Hall Hall, correct?" he asked.

"Correct. What should I do?" I asked.

"Keep your distance, but try not to let the dorm out

of your sight. Keep all entrance and exit locations in

your sight if you can till we get here. I'm Patrolman

Powers." He said as he clicked off.

I sat back and kept a distance outside and hoped I

didn't do something stupid here. I envisioned 2 campus

cops bursting in on Henny and Nick having sex. But,

after Maria's rape, and Henny and Nicks revenge, I

always felt a little wary if I knew I was alone.

The Campus Eye car pulled with Patrolman Powers. He

drove right up the walkway, and another car pulled

toward the back of the building. I identified myself

and told him the story about just feeling everything

was not right. He radioed to the other campus cop and

the descended upon our dorm. The other cop watched

Powers go in while keeping an eye on the windows

looking for an egresser.

I heard a shout from inside and the other patrolman

spoke into his radio and then started walking to me.

"He's got someone, a female." The other cop said to me

as I identified him as Patrolman Howard from his

badge. "Let's go in and see if you can identify her."

We walked into the dorm and heard Powers calling for a

matron to assist transfer to local police when I saw

who the intruder was.

"Megan!" I shouted. "What are you doing here?"

"It's a long story Carree. Please explain to the

policeman that I'm not a robber or something," Meg

said.

I did just that and explained that I had given Megan a

key, but never expected her to show up anytime soon. I

let them know that all was fine and apologized

profusely to the Patrolmen.

"No problem, Miss, ahh Kasc" He said checking his

incident form. "We weren't busy anyway. We get a lot

of calls like this during the year. It happens, but

it's usually an old boyfriend." He said smiling.

The 2 cops took off leaving 2 embarrassed girls in the

dorm. I had questions to ask Meg. I really had not

given her a key, but didn't want to have her arrested

for breaking in.

"Megan, what the FUCK, is going on?" I asked.

She burst into tears and reached out to hug me.

"It's the whole goddamn Jimmy thing, Care. I had to

leave town and get away. I got in through the window

of that room I was in. I thought it was yours, but it

was dark. I've been here since about 4 a.m. this

morning. I'm sorry I came up here to bother you, I

just felt like I had nowhere to turn. I need to talk

to you."

Megan had me totally freaked out. I could not

rationalize her motivation to do such a thing when I

was so easily accessible.

"The Police are looking for Jimmy, everybody's looking

for Jimmy. They have his mom in protective custody and

I'm supposed to be the same, but I took off. His mom

knows I'm safe. You won't believe this whole thing. I

went after I saw you to confront Jimmy on a lot of

things. As I went I started thinking about a lot of

the things you said and I began to realize that WE

WERE beginning to get the way you and Bill are. But,

somewhere along the line I began to notice he was

putting up some walls. He used to break me down a bit,

you know about being casual about being nude in front

of him and stuff, and he was being cool about the

sexual arrangements and like . . ."

"STOP!" I interrupted. "What does this have to do with

Jimmy being wanted by the Police? Megan, get a hold of

yourself and fill in some blanks here for me." I said,

disturbed.

"I'm sorry, I'm sorry. I am sooo confused. Let me sit

and calm down." She said.

"After I spoke with you I went to see Jimmy, but

decided to stop and talk to his mother first. When I

began to tell her about my being reluctant to move in

with Jimmy because I thought he was changing in some

ways. His mom and I are pretty close and she always

thought moving in together was a good idea before

marriage, and she knew I planned to. It was then she

laid a bomb on me. She has known for a while that the

drugs Jimmy took after his accident could be a problem

down the line. They could cause a personality change.

One of the signs of this change was a turning into

ones self, but to have a need to be glad handed by the

ones he loved. Losing trust in loved ones may cause

violent behavior. This was to facilitate pushing away

the loved ones so he can be of himself, in himself.

Pretty freaky stuff huh? As she spoke I told her that

a lot of this was going on already. I'm pretty frank

with her about sex and stuff and she kind of knows

what was going on with us. She had to know some things

for his doctors and shrinks. Obviously I really trust

her.

Anyway, she thought it was time to bring in a doctor

to see Jimmy and maybe go away to a place where they

could get him straightened out. I guess these

personality blips have varying degrees of seriousness,

but are common with people who have had the

bombardment of drugs he had to get his body to survive

his accident.

As we were talking, Jimmy walked into the room and

said he heard everything we said and he started

calling us names, threatening us, and then left saying

no one was going to take him away, he was fine, he

would deal with us later. Obviously we freaked out and

called the Doctor, who called the Police and

everything. The cops got there right away and tried to

establish if he had any weapons, but he didn't, to the

best of our knowledge. While the Police were there

Jimmy called. He was like a different person talking

to me, saying he wanted to go out for wings and pizza

after the movie that night. I was a little confused to

say the least. His mother took the phone from me and

demanded he come right home. Well, his personality

turned on a dime right there and he called her names

saying he was going to "get" us.

Just as he hung up on us his shrink showed up and we

all had a long talk with him and the Police and they

decided to protect his mom and me. The Doctor was

adamant that he would not harm himself, which is what

I was afraid of.

Soon 2 female cops showed up and said they would stay

with us and the house would be under surveillance.

I freaked out and bolted in the middle of the night. I

knew how to sneak in and out of Jimmy's house

undetected. So, here I am. I called them to let them

know I was OK. Everyone bawled me out, but I had to

leave. I'm supposed to call back every hour or so to

see what the story is, if they caught him. He's not

really wanted, they want to protect him from doing

something that he really doesn't want to do. As long

as his personality changes from nice Jimmy to freaky

Jimmy, he's bound to show up anywhere. Carree, I am so

scared!"

"You better tell them where you are Meg, your parents

and friends, plus Jimmy's family must be nuts worrying

about you!" I scolded her.

"I'll tell them I'm OK, but I won't say where I am.

I'm not really afraid of Jimmy; I'm more worried about

him. The shrink assured me that with a minimum amount

of therapy and work, he would be back to normal with

no side effects. The key is to get him off the streets

before he does something to get himself in trouble."

Meg explained.

I handed Meg the phone and told her to dial home. I

hesitated and dialed the number myself; just to be

sure she really dialed home. I heard Megs mom answer

frantically and I handed Meg the phone.

"I'm safe and I'm OK Mom. I'm sorry I left, but I had

to get away." Meg again said apologetically.

Her face then lit up and she smiled, covered the

receiver to tell me the news.

"They've found him, and he's OK. He was taking a bus

to the hospital in Boston. He knew he had to get

better." Meg said.

Meg continued talking with her mom and tied up loose

ends with her. It seems Jimmy was aware he had to get

help and knew Boston was where he got the most help

before. He asked for Meg over and over and told Mrs.

Parker to tell her he was sorry. Megs mom said the

psychiatrist said that showed he was not that deluded.

He knew he had done some rotten things to Meg, plus he

was anxious to be helped. It sounded like a crisis had

been averted for Meg. Her sister Terry was on her way

up to get her so she wouldn't have to take a bus back

home Monday morning. This was going to make a late

night for me and washed any plans of an 8-hour sleep

to start classes after the Holiday.

While Meg waited for Terry to show she finally got a

chance to meet Henny and Maria. In typical Henny

fashion, Henny through Megan off right away with her

first words to me.

"Ooooee, Carree! Great whore hair! That'll get you

picked up in some of best biker bars in the country!"

Henny said in front of a mortified Meg.

All I could do was laugh as I tried to explain to Meg

how to take Henny. If Henny thought for a second that

any of her caustic comments were bothering you, she

heaped them on even more. Maria tried to buffer Henny

for Meg the rest of the night while we waited for

Terry to get here. Eventually Meg caught on to Henny

and before the end of the night we were all getting on

famously with Hen admitting to Meg that the perm she

gave me pretty awesome. It just required too much

maintenance for her (and my) tastes.

Meg and Jimmy would eventually get it all together,

but not until Jimmy spent 55 days "away", and then

another few months in therapy. Jimmy and his illness

spawned all Meg's "privacy" issues, and "opening up"

issues. Meg admitted to me later that she knew she

wasn't always like that, but had been brainwashed by

his phobias. I really have to give her a lot of credit

for sticking with Jimmy after all the crap he had

given her over the years. Once all the problems he had

with his own confidence, and then the results of

medication effects, he turned out to be a great guy

and partner for Megan.

The 3 weeks leading up to our Christmas vacation was a

slow and arduous one. Bill and I never got together

except for a little phone sex dirty talk. Getting

ready for exams and filling course requirements. (Both

Bill and I had extra credit work due for our upcoming

jobs to assure class placement) This was probably the

last time we would have to be this meticulous about

our school studies. If there were anything that would

draw a question mark over our job commitments, it

would have turned up by mid-terms. We only need fill

credit requirements from here out, and that was a

given at this point. Time, Inc. was somewhat

pressuring Bill into at least "looking into"

continuing his education at Stanford on their dime.

The writer Bill went away with last year apparently

was pushing Mr. Wilkens into bugging Bill about this.

Bill Wilson was not easily prodded into something he

was not really into. He thought Stanford was too

liberal for him.

Bill made me aware that he was greasing the skids to

have his parents allow us to stay together in the

study over the garage over the Holidays. Both he and I

knew that if the temps got real harsh it would not

work out, but to be together was definitely to our

liking. Our summer in Baltimore where we more or less

lived as a married couple had made us keenly aware

that we were made to be together.

We got into the home stretch at school before the

Holidays. With Christmas less than a week away I was

primed to be home for the Holidays with my family, and

of course Bill. Bill had called me earlier to tell me

that his parents were open to our staying together in

the study, but they would not do so without going and

meeting with my parents. Even though we were both in

our twenties, they felt it was the thing to do if we

were going to be in-laws. I was a little afraid of my

parents reaction, only because they may have

envisioned "their baby" being home with them.

I was a little more than shocked when I got back from

class on Tuesday to find a note from Henny for me to

call my Dad at work.

"Hello Daddy, is there anything wrong?" Were my first

words after I heard his voice. I was semi-prepared

for a lecture about not staying home with them; and

just faintly prepared to hear some bad news, as he had

never called me at school during the day.

"No pumpkin, there's nothing wrong. You must be

surprised to hear from me. Is there anything wrong

with a proud Daddy calling his little girl up?" he

said.

"No, of course not, Daddy. It's just you never called

before, and I know you met with the Wilson's. We don't

want to cause any trouble Dad." I started to say, but

he interrupted me.

"Wait Carree, hear me out, you might be surprised.

Listen, you know my company was bought by a

conglomerate from Denmark last year. They have people

coming here all the time to assist in the change-over

and adaptation. They have 2 suites on retainer at the

new Residence Inn off exit 7 off the Interstate. They

have them at one price, like $40 a night. We pay that

everyday, and if no one is registered by 6:00 pm, they

can sell the room. We have groups of men and women

coming in here all of the time from over there on a

moments notice, so it's necessary. They told me that

they would not be here again until after Little

Christmas (the twelfth day), unless there were

emergencies, so those rooms are available to us. My

boss says I can have one of the rooms for use by

relatives over the Holidays, as long as we are paying

for it anyway. Honey, these rooms are suites with

living rooms, fireplaces, full kitchens, dining areas,

2 bathrooms and 2 bedrooms, all really nice, plus free

breakfast in the morning. You and Bill can have one

right up until you go back to school or get bumped by

one of our people. I only ask that you and Bill spend

Christmas Eve in your homes. It's a family time. You

can both spend all your Christmas mornings together

AFTER you're married. What do you think?" he finished.

I was flabbergasted!

"Daddy, are you serious?" I asked. "You would do that

for Bill and I? You are the best Daddy. We will pay

you back for the room too. Have you checked with the

Wilson's?"

"First off, the rooms cost me nothing. We pay $40 a

night whether we use them or not. You guys just pick

up any phone calls, and it might be nice to tip the

maid staff, too. Yes, I ran it by them and Bills

parents like the thought of him our there rather than

in the cold garage. Well cold, if it ever gets cold,

it's been pretty mild so far." Daddy said.

"I'll run it by Bill, but I can't imagine he wouldn't

like this Daddy. You are so sweet and understanding.

You know how much I love Bill, don't you. I love being

home, but to be with Bill is . . . . . " I started.

"I know pumpkin. You are certainly old enough to make

these decisions and sleeping arrangements. We know you

were never happier than last summer, and your mom and

I were pretty proud of how you handled being, ummm . .

"married", if you will." Daddy admitted.

"Oh, Daddy this is the best present ever. I love you

for understanding everything." I said just as we

exchanged goodbye pleasantries.

I hugged my arms to my chest in my own hug of joy. I

know I flushed as a grin as big as any I ever emoted

gripped my face. I couldn't wait to tell Bill, but I

never had a chance to dial his number as my phone

rang.

It was Bill, and he was bubbling over as much as me.

These Holidays were going to be real special for the

future Mr. and Mrs. Wilson. The more we talked about

it on the phone the more flushed I got with desire for

Bill. Finally, at a break in his conversation I asked

him a question.

"Can you guess where I have my hand right now and what

I'm thinking about?" I queried.

"I have admit I'm a little horny myself, just thinking

about laying with you every night Care." He answered.

"Wow, alone again, together every night Bill. Oooo,

maybe some days we can take the phone off the hook and

never leave the room." I said. "I could just lick and

taste every single inch of you from head to toe, Bill,

Especially that beautiful handful between your legs.

My pussy is so wet right now, just thinking about you.

I'm holding my little clit between my thumb and my

index finger Bill. Can you stick your tongue through

the phone to lick it?"

"Godddd Carree, stop! You're giving me such a hard on.

I've got my hand around that handful you're thinking

about. I only wish I could lick that clit through the

phone. Rub it Care, let me hear you cum right through

the phone. God, I want you so bad right now." He

panted.



"Don't worry Bill, I'm rubbing it. Plus, my mouth is

watering thinking about having that cock in my mouth.

It's so salty sweet, and as smooth as velvet on my

tongue. I love to fondle and stroke your balls while I

suck on it. I know they're full of your juice, baby.

Oh, that sweet juice! Bill, do you know how much I

love to taste and swallow that stuff. When that goes

down my throat I know I've made you crazy with passion

for me, just like I'm crazy for you. Oh, baby my pussy

is soo hot right now, I'm gonna cum real soon." I

teased into the receiver.

"Oh, Jesus God Carree!! Just thinking of your mouth

loving me has me close. You know how to drive me

crazy. When we're alone I'm gonna want to be inside of

you Carree. Deep up inside of you! When we get married

and I can make love to that beautiful pussy, I swear

I'll fuck you 6 times a day. Until then, your cute

little butt will have to do. How does that sound

Sweets?" He cooed at me.

I was panting pretty well now. I sort of wanted to get

serious and find my g-spot, but I really just wanted

to cum. Bill talking about screwing me, being inside

of me had me nuts.

"You know I love having you inside me, Lover. It hurts

some time, but you're such a gentle lover, you always

make it easy. Once it's in me, Bill, I never want you

to come out of me. Oh Bill, I'm gonna cum. I'm

thinking about the times we fell asleep with you

inside of me. Ohhh, unghhh, unghhh, unghh. That's it

Honey I'm there. Ohhhhhhh," I moaned as I caught my

breath in my throat and came.

"Holy crap, honey. I'm cumming too. Your tight ass

makes me nuts, just thinking about it. Oh, I'll fuck

you there good, baby. Then I'll shoot THIS . . . RIGHT

. . . UP . . .THERE!!" he said as I heard him cum

through the phone.

Our breathing was all either of us could hear for a

few minutes. Finally Bill broke the silence.

"Carree, I love you so much. Being apart is so hard.

Just think, after Christmas, we only have six months

until we live together in Baltimore. I'll love you

every night, I swear." Bill growled into the phone.

"Billy, I never want to be apart from you. Just think,

our time is coming soon. We can be together every

night." I started to cry.

Through my tears of joy I told Bill how much I missed

him and wanted to be with him. It would be less than a

week until we would live together for almost a month.

Our first time alone I just wanted us to strip and

roll around on the floor feeling each other. It sounds

kinky, but the feel of his skin next to mine while we

breathe in each other's ear makes me want to cum. This

was lust and passion for my lover and no one else.

We both had studying to do as reality caught a grip on

us and we said good night. I lay there in my reverie

knowing I would fade to sleep soon, if I didn't get

going. Then a knock on my door snapped me to

attention.

"Carree?" Henny asked. "Are you OK in there? Don't

fall asleep. You told me you had lots of studying, why

don't you come out here so we can keep each other

awake? When Maria gets back from her class she has to

cram too. Come on, before you fall asleep after that."

Henny obviously figured out what I was doing in my

room. The walls were thin and it was hard to keep

secrets.

"I'll be out in a sec, Hen. Keeping each other awake

is a good idea." I shouted through the door.

I arranged my clothes and gathered my books and notes

and went to the common room. Henny was set up on the

sofa and coffee table. She was getting coffee from our

contraband Mr. Coffee we snuck in this spring.

"Black with sugar, Care?" Henny asked as I assented

with an "um humm".

She brought in the coffees and curled on the sofa next

to me. She reached over and petted my hair.



"Don't worry honey. You'll be with your lover soon

enough. I'm so fucking horny I could toot." Henny

said. "But, I have to get an A on this test tomorrow

or I'm afraid my GPA may fall off the Deans list. I

wish Nick would call me and beat off on the phone.

He's too embarrassed to do it at the frat house. God,

I need a fuck. I should borrow one of Maria's toys."

Sheesh Hen, I know it's just the two of us, but do you

have to talk like that? . . or are we that familiar

with each other? I suppose I'm being a prude, we don't

have many secrets, do we? How do you know Maria has

toys?" I asked.

"She was washing them in the bathroom sink and the

phone rang. While she answered it I came back home,

and she kind of forgot about them, . . . until I went

in the bathroom. Man, did I give it to her. You know I

had some fun with that." She said with an evil laugh.

"I can only imagine. I doubt she uses them as much now

that Jack comes back more often. Hey, we all get

stressed and we all get horny and have to release

tension. We shouldn't make fun of each other and make

each other self conscious." I scolded her.

"I know. I really love the two of you, you know. I

never had girlfriends I could get along with before. I

always felt they were trying to steal Nick away, even

though I denied I loved him. He is so gorgeous. You

and Maria almost seem married to your guys, so I

didn't worry about you two." Henny admitted.

"Don't think we didn't get hot pants over Nick,

though. We used to call him "dreamboat". We're only

human, Hen. I'll bet he's hot." I confessed.

Henny laughed just as Maria came in the door.

"Save me a spot on the couch. I gotta get 2 months of

chapters into one night. I hope there's coffee." Maria

chirped as she rushed through to her room.

In 10 minutes we were all buried in our books trying

to make up for lost study time. Three girls with

lovers waiting to whisk them home, trying to study

while pleasures of life weighed on their minds. This

would be our last Christmas vacation of our college

careers. Already I worried I might never see them

again after we left school. Amazingly, we all stayed

up and got a good study in to finish the semester with

the kinds of marks we had hoped for. The last of us,

Henny, hit the mattress at 4:30 a.m.

It was Friday with Christmas one week away when Bill

picked me up to head home for the Holidays. It was

after 6 o'clock in the evening when we left campus and

for the first time I ever remember, I fell asleep on

the way home with Bill.

I felt his arm going around me, and a whisper in my

ear.

"Carree sugar? Honey sweets? You're home, safe and

sound." He whispered.

I was in another world when I opened my eyes. I saw my

Mom and Dad at the door as I cracked my lids open and

felt Bill pulling at me a little. Man, was I out of

it.

"Holy Shit Bill. How did you let me drift off like

that! Wow, I feel like you clubbed me over the head."

I said.

"You were sleeping so hard and so sound I didn't want

to wake you baby. I brought you right home so you

could get your rest and catch up with your mom and

Dad. We can't get into the Residence Inn until Monday

so lets just stay with our parents until then. It will

make them happy. Me sleeping here, or you coming over

to the study with me will only cause problems with our

parents. I wanted to talk with you about it on the way

home, but you were GONE. Believe me, it's the best

way. We'll be together until Christmas Eve and then

back together Christmas night until we go back to

school. We'll have lots of time for each other." He

whispered as if my parents could eaves drop from

behind the closed door to our house.

I was still groggy and spaced but he was making sense

to me. I hadn't known we couldn't get into the

Residence until Monday, but I would have figured we

would sleep together no matter what. Bills words made

me realize that being with our own families a few

nights would make them all happy. Since we wanted to

go back to school with a firm date set for our

wedding, this alone time with parents was going to be

good.

Bill hopped out of the car and came to my door and

helped my groggy self out. He walked me to the door as

my Dad opened it.

"Carree fell asleep on the way home, Dad." I heard him

say. "She's not as grouchy as she is in the morning,

but I think she has a rough edge." He kidded.

"Oh, I can handle her Bill." He said.

"Let me get her stuff in and then we can talk a bit.

Do you think mom Kasc can put on some coffee?" Bill

said.

"Already done Bill, she saved some dinner for you both

too." I heard my Dad say.

I hugged my Dad and then my mom walked me to the table

where the smell of coffee was flaring my nostrils. I

was waking fast and the thought of food was making me

glad we were home. Whatever she made smelled like

"home" and I was glad and comforted to be there.

"Beef au jus with spaetzel dumplings sound good,

Carree?" mom said.

"Oh Mom, it sounds like heaven right now. I'm so tired

and hungry." I answered.

Bill called home to tell them that we were here and

that he would be home shortly. We both said later that

our parents half expected an argument about the nights

sleeping arrangements. We had now figured that as long

as we would be together with their blessing for the

next month, a few nights with the family would not be

a problem.

My mom laid out a couple nice plates of one of my

favorite dishes, along with fresh coffee. They sat

down with us as mom brought out a pie. As she cut

pieces for her and Dad she looked at me and smiled.

"Carree, you are so grown up, I can't believe my

little girl is a woman of the business world with a

husband and family around the corner. Oh, please don't

let that sound like we are pushing for grandchildren

already. It's just one of the things that goes along

with marriage and like that. If you chose to not have

children at all, it would be your decision. Damn, this

conversation is getting heavier than I wanted it to

be. I'm really just trying to say how proud I am, we

are, of you; so smart in the ways of the world and

your plan for life. The two of you are so much in love

and we feel like you're married already. The way you

treat each other, look out for each other. I guess

we're a little jealous that you don't need us

anymore." mom said with a misty eye.

"Oh, Mom. Nothing could be further from the truth. Not

need you? Come on! There's so much woman talk and

decisions for us to make together, and Daddy too!

Don't ever think I don't need you. Bill doesn't make

me not need you, Bill makes us four, and with his

parents, six! A family of six, that's what we are.

When we have children, and you know we do want to have

children, we need you and the Wilson's to help and

guide us." I explained.

Mom and Dad ate their pie with coffee while Bill and I

wolfed down dinner. The look on my Dads face told me

the pie was delicious. He looked at my mom more than

once and grabbed her knee, telling her how good it

was.

By the time we finished our dinner mom had cut pie for

us as well, along with seconds for Dad. She brought

out cold milk for the two of us and smiled down at us.

"I know you can't eat pie without milk, Carree. Bill,

I assume you're the same way. Bill, I have an extra

blueberry pie for you to take home for your Dad, I

know he loves it too. We had lots of blues this year,

so we'll have blue pie for quite a time this winter.

So," mom said, changing the subject quickly, "You

asked us to come up with dates we might suggest for a

wedding, would you like to hear them?"

"Sure," Bill piped up. "We really should have a good

idea when we go back to school. Maybe not an exact

date, but an idea we can begin to work with."

My Dad had been quiet for a time, but he picked up the

baton now.

"We think you should go through a whole year in

Baltimore, adjusting to being together, commuting,

living as a couple, working on finances, planning for

the future. You have this opportunity to really test

yourselves and make sure it's the life you want. To

pressure you by adding marriage to it all would be

crazy. Originally we wanted to drive you from

graduation to the church, but we are confidant that

the two of you know each other well enough to make the

right decisions in that first year. We know you WANT

to be married, but aside from a few of us, whose going

to know your aren't? You'll be living as a couple with

a plan for the future. By next Christmas you should

have a pretty good handle on what's going on with your

jobs, your careers. We can, the six of us, set a firm

date then." My Dad said, surprising us.

"That's a pretty good plan, Dad." Bill said. "It kind

of lines up with our thinking right now, too. Unless

my parents have an objection, or we have something

else happen to change things, we may just go with

that. You really put it in the right words. We thought

along those lines, but weren't sure of how everyone

might take it. Don't you agree, Carree?" Bill said as

I nodded eating my blueberry pie.

"I, obviously, want to get married tomorrow, but we

have waited this long, we may as well wait to do it

right. Being with Bill is what I really want most, and

I'll have that. You have no argument from me. When we

settle in as a married couple I don't want to have to

get up and move a few months later. Let's be sure of

where we are, and what we are." I said.

Bill came over to me at my chair and kissed my

blueberry pie mouth.

"I really want to get home and see my mom and Dad. I

hope everything goes as well there as here with

wedding plans." Bill said as he looked up at my mom

and Dads faces. "Mom and Dad Kasc, thanks for making

this easy for us. If my parents have a problem maybe

we can all get together and talk, but I can't imagine

they will have any reservations about this plan, but

you never know."

My Dad shook Bills hand and then hugged him.

"Son, I can't imagine a man I would trust more with my

daughter and her life and future. It's pretty obvious

how happy she is and how well planned out your future

is." My dad said as he reached into his pocket for a

small envelope. "Here is a voucher and my business

card for checking into the Residence Inn on Monday.

You should have no problem; I was out there today. The

voucher takes care of the retainer fee for the room.

Any phone or extra amenities are up to you two. You

shouldn't have to spend anything else. OK?"

"Thanks Dad," Bill said as he took the envelope and

kissed my Mom.

I walked him to the door and we kissed goodbye again.

He promised to call me as soon as he got up so we

could get together for some Christmas shopping. I

waved in the window as he pulled down the drive and

disappeared up the road. I didn't know if I could

wait until Monday night to be alone with him.

"I'm so happy to know that a man can make you so

happy, Carree. You obviously make him very happy too.

You are both very lucky. I had to search so long and

hard to find your father. I made a lot of mistakes. I

would be almost jealous of you, except that I found

the man that made me as happy as you are now. I know

how happy you are." My mom whispered in my ear as she

came up behind me as I watched Bill pull away.

There was nothing I could do but turn and hug her.

"Oh Mom, he is so special. I see the way Dad still

lights up your eyes, we are both so lucky." I said as

we broke our hug and walked arm and arm to the stairs.

My Dad had just brought my bags up the stairs and was

coming out of my room heading for his own.

"Goodnight pumpkin. It's so good to have you here with

us and see you so happy. You must be exhausted, I know

I am and I have to work a few hours in the morning.

C'mon Silvie, let's hit the hay." My Dad said.

"I'm going to get up with your Dad so I can have the

car for shopping, then I'll pick him up. Do you want

to go Carree? I warn you though, I want to be there

when the mall opens at 9:30." mom said.

"If I'm awake, but I doubt that, Mom. You go ahead.

Bill is going to call me when he gets up and I think

we are going out too." I told her.

I gave my mom one last hug as we got up to the top

step and I went toward my room.

"I bet I could sleep till noon, Mom. But, I'm sure

Bill won't let me. Leave the phone in my room before

you go out in the morning, OK?" I asked.

Mom smiled and kissed me on the forehead. Then she

disappeared into their bedroom.

I found my bag with my night t-shirts and found one

that was warm and fleece lined. I took it to the

bathroom and stripped down. I quickly used cleansing

cream to clean my face and make me feel fresh for

sleep. I took a washcloth and got it good and steamy

with hot water. After I pee-ed I put the hot cloth

over my whole vaginal mound and reveled in the warmth.

I grabbed a fresh razor and did a mini- trim to keep

my pussy smooth. The warm cloth was enough to soften

the slight stubble there was for shaving.

I dropped the t-shirt over my head and headed for my

room. I was a little tingly between my legs and

wondered if I should Jill-off to help get me to sleep

better, with all my tensions relieved.

Once I settled in bed I could hear sounds of love from

my parents room and I put my hand between my legs

satisfy my own urge. I always hear my friends saying

they can't imagine their parents "doing it", or the

thought of them "doing it" made them uncomfortable. My

parents were still young in my eyes and both my mom

and Dad were still attractive. I could easily picture

them "doing it", and there was nothing unappealing

about it. Now, don't misunderstand, the thought of

them making love wasn't the trip wire to any

masturbation session for me. My thoughts of Bill and

what we had in store for each other over the next

month had my hormones doing time trials, the sounds

from the other room only enhanced the moment.

But, apparently I was too tired any for that, because

the next thought I had was the sun shining in my

window. It was morning already and I heard my mom

rustling around downstairs. I closed my eyes again and

pulled the covers up, quickly dozing off.

I think I slept another couple hours and was slipping

back into reality when I got a look at the clock.

10:45. I distinctly heard the tv on and wondered what

happened to Moms shopping trip. Maybe she didn't feel

well. As much as I wanted to just stay in bed, I got

up to check and see if she was OK.

My sleep shirt was warm, but the cool winter air in

the room chilled my legs as soon as I got up. I

grabbed my big robe that covered me head to toe, and

made my way to the bathroom, took care of business and

wrapped myself warmly in the robe and headed

downstairs. The sound of an old Fred Mac Murray movie

came from the living room as I went to check on Mom.



There, sprawled on the sofa, fast asleep, was Bill!

I stopped in my tracks and went to look in the drive

for my Dads car, but it was gone. Only Bills car sat

in the drive. I was confused.

I went back to the living room and sat on the backs of

my legs in front of Bills prone figure on the sofa. He

was sleeping heavily, and as I had done many times, I

just watched him in his peaceful state.

Apparently his olfactory senses told him he was not

alone in the room as he rustled and his eyes opened.

"G'mornin' Peaches," he said through a little smile.

"Hi," was all I answered. My eyes were asking him "the

what" and "the how" of the situation as he smiled

broader knowing my wonder.

"I couldn't sleep at home after my parents left for

work. I called here to see if you were up as well.

Your mom said your weren't and that she was leaving

soon, but if I wanted coffee, to come over and wait

for you to get up. That was at 8:15 or 8:30. I

showered and came over and she and I had coffee. Then

she left for shopping and here I am." He said through

a grin.

I smiled and kissed him.

"Wait here while I brush my teeth, and then I'll give

you a real good morning kiss, OK?" I asked him.

He smiled and nodded. We both knew which one of us had

morning mouth.

When I came back he was snoozing with his arms folded

in front of him. He fluttered his eyes at the movement

in his space.

"Oh man, I can't believe I slipped off again. Can I

really be that tired?" he wondered aloud.

I leaned in and gave him a proper kiss, full on the

mouth.

"If you're that tired, maybe you should go back to

bed," I said. "I bet there's still a warm spot between

my sheets." I added suggestively.

"Well," he said facetiously, "If you insist."

As he rose from the sofa he put and arm around me and

began to walk to the steps. I stopped and went to lock

the inside screens on both doors to be sure if we were

interrupted, no one could walk in on us.

We went into my room and I shucked my robe and slid

between the sheets.

"Down to your underwear, please." I said. "I have to

keep the sheets clean." I said, goofing on him.

Bill's clothes quickly went to a pile on the floor and

he slid in next to me.

"I didn't say anything about underwear, Mister. Taking

them off was pretty forward, if you ask me." I

feigned.

"Sorry m'aam, but they're clean and I don't know where

your sheets have been." He said, playing my game.

We fell into each other's arms and reveled at each

other's warmth. He felt so good next to my skin. I

wanted him right there.

"Bill, I want you so bad, and we've waited so long to

make the moment right and safe for us. We have to

start thinking about adding a little risk, now that

school is almost over. I need to feel you inside of

me. In my bottom is so satisfying, but hardly

spontaneous. We should think about taking advantage of

my safe days after I finish my period. I know those

days aren't 100 per cent safe, but if you add a

condom, we have to be close." I said with a little

exasperation added to my want.

"God Carree, I've thought about that too, but we

should wait until we are a little less horny to think

this through. Decisions made in this state could be a

little skewed, don't you think?" Bill said, sensing my

state.

"I know, lover." I said, "I didn't mean right now, I'm

far from safe. Over the next month, I'm sure we will

have some special times when we can plan some hot

stuff for each other. This morning I just want to

taste you and feel your cock in my mouth. THAT will

make me happy."

"Your words are enough to make me cum right here,

Care. I can't wait to taste you either." Bill said

rolling over onto me while seeming to suck half my

face into his mouth, devouring me.

"No!" I protested, pushing back on him to make eye

contact.

"I haven't showered or anything yet, and just went

front and rear in the bathroom. I know it makes no

difference to you, but it makes me feel

uncomfortable." I said adamantly. "Please Bill? OK?" I

implored him.

He knew I was serious. So many times he had dove right

at me before I realized I wasn't as fresh as I might

want to be. I knew his skilled hands could bring me

off just fine to satisfy my urge at hand. Lying back

after a shower to open my legs and bottom for his

tongue was one of the true treasures of our love

making. Being confident that I was clean and fresh

made it perfect.

Bill straddled me while I scolded him and gave me a

knowing smile.

"I know, I know, Peaches. I just want you as bad as

you want me." He said as I slid down a little to get

closer to his penis.

He spread his legs a little more and lifted his weight

off his knees. He was in a 4 point stance over me, his

hands gripping the headboard of my bed. It was pretty

clear that he understood it was going to be my time

with him. Once I gave up this position he would have

plenty of time to busy his hands in my pussy, but for

now, he was mine.

He seemed so hard in this position as his cock

maintained a little curl. I decided to bathe his balls

with my tongue to tease him more. Upon doing so I

heard him inhale deeply as I sucked each testicle deep

into my mouth. He was fresh and clean and his sack was

full of cum for me. I heard him sigh a little

impatient "Ohh" as I redoubled my efforts.

"What's the matter baby?" I teased. "Does something

need attention?"

"Oh God honey, give me your mouth. It hurts so bad."

He whined.

When he begged, I knew I had teased him over the line.

He was always so patient in letting me have my way

with him. I couldn't hold back any longer, taking his

swollen plum cock head into my mouth and sucking hard

on it.

"Owwwwww," he moaned as he got the present he wanted.

I proceeded to take half his cock into my mouth and

suck it back up to the tip. I repeated a couple times

and then he twisted down to the bed where I could

kneel over his side and bob and suck him. I felt his

long middle finger snake right up my pussy, while his

thumb rolled over and over my wet clit.

My mouth and his hands settled into a nice rhythm,

pleasing each other amid our moans of approval. My

eyes had been closed enjoying our loving and when I

opened them I saw his sack, once impossible to fit all

in my mouth, now tight and drawn up. I ran the flat of

my hand up between his splayed butt and over his

little hole and cupped his sack. That sent him,

without warning, over the line.

I was just about to start a long wrenching orgasm from

his diddling when I felt my mouth fill with his cum to

the shrieks from his mouth. His orgasm not only

surprised me, but Bill as well. My touch to his sack

had made it all spontaneous. I could barely swallow

fast enough to get the first shots of his cum. I felt

some leaking from the corner of my mouth, and that was

rare that I lose any.

I stopped sucking and he pumped at my mouth, still

needing release. Two more good squirts covered my

tongue as I grabbed his cock and took control, my own

orgasm gripping me.

My clit suddenly exploded into ecstasy as I began to

milk the last drops from him. He drew his long middle

finger from me and rolled my clit between his thumb

and that slippery digit, setting off my own

pyrotechnics, leaving me to drop his cock from my

mouth.

Rarely did I lose a drop, and now a whole mouthful ran

from my lips as orgasm gripped me.

"Oh God, Oh God Bill!! Ohhhhhhh!" I tried to pull from

his grip as suddenly my clit turned raw. He managed to

swipe his fingers over it a few more times before

stretching back in his own post orgasmic posture.

I was an absolute mess with his orgasm all over my

face, and some in my long hair. I had an orgasmic

squirt all over my legs and Bills hands during that

last flurry of his fingers.

"Yuck! Bill, look what you did to me," I laughed.

He looked at me and we both burst out in laughter.

"This is like a bad porno movie, Care. Sorry." Bill

said as he went to get me a towel.

"Don't bother," I hollered to Bill. "I have to get in

the shower anyway."

I tried to get off the bed and into the bathroom

without getting any of Bills shoot on anything. I

hadn't planned on really washing my hair, as I had an

appointment to get it cut this afternoon, but this

changed my plans.

My long crinkly tresses really got me a lot of

compliments, many saying it made me look like a model,

but it was really too high maintenance for me. Bill

had enjoyed me this way, but he understood my wish for

a shorter coif.

I ran my shower and hopped in and began to rinse and

get myself cleaned up. Bill stuck in lathered hands to

rinse them off and avoid having to run the sink and

interfere with my water temp and pressure. With all

the mess I had, he only had to wash his hands.

I called my salon and they said they could take me

early, so I wrapped my wet hair and we were off. While

I got my hair cut and styled, Bill was off to start

our Christmas shopping. We both looked forward to

Monday when we could move in together at the Residence

Inn.

Living together for the month was going to be awesome.

We really hadn't planned on any alone time before we

got settled in our Holiday Hide-away, as Bill called

it. That morning was just an opportunity we couldn't

pass on. Actually it cooled our jets a bit so we

didn't end up parking like teenagers Saturday or

Sunday nights at he end of the driveway.

Monday morning came and I found myself up early to see

my Dad off to work. I wanted to thank him one more

time for the arrangements he had made for Bill and I.

He shook his head and said he couldn't believe he set

his own daughter up in a shack up.

I looked at him, hurt by his words, and a grin crawled

over his face.

"Pumpkin, I was just making light of the situation,

don't be offended by it. I'm sorry. I know that you

and Bill are in love and as married already as some

younger couples. I just thought, and your mom and

Bills parents agreed, it was better than having you

two sneak around trying to find alone times for

yourselves, or sleeping in that cold room over the

garage." My Dad said apologizing and making his point.

"When we saw the two of you in Baltimore last year we

knew everything was right and the two of you would be

fine. We trust you and approve 1000 percent of Bill,

honey." My mom kicked in. "Don't let your father ruin

your time. He and I would have loved to have the same

situation when we were in college and had to split up

for the Holidays."

I hugged them both and went upstairs to start packing

up my things for my mini-move. When I was putting my

dirty laundry and bed sheets together for the day's

laundry I was embarrassed by the big semen stain I saw

on the bedclothes. I hoped my mom didn't notice it.

Between what I swallowed, got on my face, in my hair

and on the sheets, Bill must have cum a gallon in our

Saturday morning fling. Just thinking about it made me

long for him, and it was only 8 o'clock in the

morning. We couldn't check in until 2 pm or later, but

actually I would see him much sooner than that. Just

being with him, and he with me, made us whole.

When I think back on us and how we were then, and how

we grew later, I don't know how I have gotten on

without him.

I went to the bathroom to get a few things to add to

my packing and on my return to my room my mom was

already stripping the bed.

"I see we couldn't leave the two of you alone for 5

minutes the other day." My mom said with a smirk.



I must have turned 3 shades of red.

"I thought you were going to remain a virgin and not

have intercourse before you got married. That sure

looks like something that leaked out of you Carree.

Don't go screw up your job or the end of your

schooling doing something stupid." mom said.

I was a little pissed off at her comment, but my mom

was never one to mince words, but neither was I.

"Mom, do I have to repeat what I said to you 5 or 6

years ago? I hope you know I kept my word." I said

with an edge on my words to make a point.

"If you mean the time you told me that you don't lie

and you don't fu. . . . screw, I'm afraid the evidence

points other wise." She said.

I stepped right into her path. "Mom, I don't lie and I

don't fuck. That's what I said a long time ago and I

thought you trusted me to keep my word, even though

it's really none of your business, anymore.

I realize if I get pregnant it is your business.

Goddamn it, PLEASE TRUST ME, and my judgment.

That stain ran out of me alright, IT RAN OUT OF MY

MOUTH, if you must know." I said intending to shock

her. By the look on her face, she had just swallowed

her tongue.

Mom composed herself.

"I'm so sorry Carree. I just treated you like my

little girl instead of my grown up woman of a

daughter. I didn't need to hear you say that, and I

guess I had it coming. I should know you have kept

your word. I had no business being so nosy. I can't

stop thinking of you as my little girl." mom said,

dropping her laundry and hugging me. She realized her

mistake and we were fine again.

My words with my mother probably changed our

relationship forever, and probably to the good. She

knew when I told her I was still a virgin that I meant

that we did not have intercourse, Bills penis in my

vagina. I'm sure she understood that we did other

things, but could not bring herself to deal with the

reality of it.

Bill came over just after lunch. He and his mom had

been shopping together Monday morning and he had told

me that they would lunch together before he came for

me. I assumed they were each shopping for my gifts

with each other's help. My mom and I had done the same

just the day before.

My things were waiting for Bill to load into the car

and he did so before he even came upstairs to find me.

"Hey lover," he said as he came into the room, hugged

me and gave my ass a squeeze. He hadn't realized my

Mom was in the room and saw his greeting.

"Oh, hi Mom." He said, embarrassed. " I'm sorry I

didn't see you there."

Mom's only response was to come over and hug the both

of us together. Everything was cool with mom now.

When we opened the door to our room at the Residence

Inn we were both pleasantly surprised. It was actually

bigger than our apartment in Baltimore, and much

nicer.

We methodically unpacked our stuff and made the place

ours. I had finished setting up the bathroom and came

out to see Bill sitting on the upstairs bed in the

loft section of the room. I came over to him and saw

he was in a pensive mood. I hugged his head to my

stomach and petted his head.

"What are you thinking about so seriously, honey pie?"

I asked.

"Lasts," he said. "The last time we do things like we

have done them. This is our last Christmas with our

families the way they are. When we go home on

Christmas Eve it will be the last time we do that with

our families. Then we will start having our own

firsts. Sorry to get so sentimental. My mom and I

talked a lot about a lot of things today. She even

grilled me about sex. She told me to be nice to you,

patient with you because she knows we don't want to

get pregnant. I told her that everything about "us"

was great and not to worry."

"My mom and I had a talk today too, but it had to do

with the cum stain on my bed. She said it proved we

were screwing, she knew it had to run out of me. When

I told her it ran out of my mouth she knew she had

wandered into a place where she didn't belong and that

she should have trusted me." I told Bill.

Bill put his head in his hands.

"God Carree, how can I ever look at your mom again,

knowing that?" Bill said with a chuckle.

"All will be fine," I said as I sat next to Bill on

the bed and hugged him to me.

I pulled him back onto the bed and did a little roll

to end up having him on top of me.

"When are we going to be able to just make love at

times like this?" I asked. "I want you inside of me so

badly right now. You know, just spontaneous, like we

are in the kind of lovey mood we are in right now.

Thinking about us, thinking about the future."

"Maybe with a condom during your safe days after you

finish your period, or is that bending too much? I

know we're both anxious and could talk each other into

anything. But, that seems like it would be more than

99 percent safe, don't you think?" Bill suggested and

asked.

"You're probably right, but we've waited this long and

if I ever GOT pregnant my mom would think we have been

lying all along. Lets stick with the original plan.

Our parents trusted us enough to do this," I said

pointing around to the room we shared. "If anything

happened we would be persona non grata in both their

eyes. Maybe after we get settled in Baltimore we can

just tell them that we are cautiously having sex, or

is it really any of their business then?" I wondered.

"It would truly be our own business then, completely."

Bill said. "I suppose you are right to have to wait. I

don't think either one of is WANT to wait."

"That's for sure, Bill." I said as I kissed him full

on the lips grinding my hips to his. "I don't want to

wait at all," I said, still anxious for loving - NOW.

"Get inside me lover. Screw my little hole. I want you

so bad. We don't have any plans for this afternoon, do

we?"



"Well, if I did," Bill said, "I wouldn't now. Are you

sure you want to do this Carree? I'm always so afraid

of hurting you."

"Billy, if I didn't want it, I wouldn't suggest it. We

should be OK without all the messy stuff. I just want

you in me." I demanded.

Bill was a little reluctant at first, but once he sat

back up and I reached down to rub the growing bulge in

his pants, he was convinced. He reached out and took

the bottom of my sweater top and began to pull it up.

With my new short doo it went easily over my head, and

I didn't have to worry about snags, like before. As

soon as he saw my breasts he kissed my lips and pushed

me back on the bed filling each hand with boob. He was

so sexy.

After a few light kisses he moved his lips to my

nipples giving each gentle kisses just enough to

sensitize the erectile tips. He sat back and reached

for the snap on my skirt. I lifted my butt and he slid

it off, leaving me only in my panty.

I smiled as sexy as I could and turned around on my

hands and knees showing him my butt. He ran his hands

over my panties and then hooked his fingers in the

side to pull them down. Once my pussy was uncovered he

slid his hand between my legs and ran his finger

between my lips. He trailed that finger right up to my

butt hole and rubbed a little of the moistness around.

He bent forward and ran his tongue over and over my

anus. I could barely stand the sensation and had to

slip to my hip to work my panties the rest of the way

off. I wanted to give him more access.

I knelt back up and he put his tongue back home

leaving me wet. I felt a finger slide up my pussy and

before I could catch my breath from that rush, I felt

the flat of his thumb pressure at my rear. He was not

wasting anytime.

"As soon as you think you want lube let me know baby,

and I'll get you ready. You want it spontaneous, and

here it is. If anything isn't right, just let me

know." Bill said lustily.

I didn't let him know that his thumb going in hurt

like hell and burned, I asked for lube right then. We

had just put everything away in the bath, so finding

the KY was no problem. He was back in a flash. In just

a few seconds I felt the cool rush of his coated thumb

go back into me, but it was much better than before.

He forced the length of his thumb up into me as his

other hand busied itself on my clit.

"Oh, baby. Carree, I want to fuck you so bad. To make

love to you, to be inside of you, I want you. Let me

know when you want to try it." He whispered.

I was still trying to get accustomed to his intrusion,

but I knew his penis, being that much bigger, was

going to stretch me even more. I wanted it now.

"Try it now baby. Lube up that pretty penis and try me

now." I said excitedly, even though I knew it would

hurt some at first.

I heard him undo his belt and then his pants hit the

floor.

"Oh Carree, my cock is so hard for you." He said as I

looked back between my legs at his show.

He must have been full of lust because he began to rub

KY over its length right away after he sheathed it

with a condom. We hadn't prepped and I think he wanted

protection in case I wasn't 100 per cent clean. Not a

sexy thought, but a real one. He knelt up on the bed

and re-inserted his thumb, this time sliding into me

much easier. After a couple pistons with his thumb, it

left me and I felt him run the head of his penis

around my crease. When he centered it on my little

hole, he pushed.

Good God, it hurt, but I pushed back to get him all

the way in, past my little knot, and into me right

away. A hot poker would have felt the same, but I hid

my pain. Once he was in I reached back and grabbed his

scrotum to be sure he didn't move.

I wanted to push him out, but I knew the longer I

could hold him in, the faster I would be accustomed to

his size and the pain would ebb.

"Don't move baby, don't move, OK?" I hissed to him.

I put my head down and rested it on my hands. After a

minute or so I instinctively rolled my butt a little

and the movement felt good. I was ready to be screwed.

"Fuck me nice and slow, Billy. Take it easy and make

it last." I asked him.

He began to move, ever so slightly within me. It

didn't take long for the sensation of having something

up my butt to turn into the sensation of being made

love to. No doubt, the gliding effect of the KY jelly

enhanced the feeling.

So far, if this were the first time I was doing this,

it would have been the last. But, I knew the end

result would justify the discomfort I was feeling. Had

I not wanted to be spontaneous and we had used the

proper preparation, I would have no complaints.

I began to breathe in rhythm with his pushes at my

core. Somewhere in the next minute or so I began to

build toward an orgasm and all the thought of the pain

and discomfort of his initial entry were gone.

"Oh my God, Billy. My sweet William! Fuck meeeee! Make

love to me!" I began to cheer to him.

But, my cheers made him stop, as he bent and wrapped

himself around my hands and knees position.

"I love you so much, Carree," he growled in my ear as

his hands mauled my breasts. He then he pushed me

forward to be flat on my stomach on the bed. He

centered all his weight on his penis in my butt to

move his knees to either side of me. He shifted his

weight to his knees then and began to pump in and out

of my flattened figure.

My first orgasm was building fast and I was losing my

breath quickly. Suddenly I was without breath as it

swept over me like a big hand crushing my body. I

opened my mouth to exclaim my ecstasy and nothing came

out. I was sure I was going to pass out when suddenly

Bill lifted his weight from me as he knelt back, in

turn pulling almost all the way from my anal pocket.

That action forced me to inhale quickly to have enough

breath to shriek and exclaim my orgasm.

"Breathe with me Carree, don't pass out," Bill cried

out as he slapped his hand hard across the side of my

ass cheek.

It was not a violent slap, but one whose purpose was

to right my thought process. He knew I could just

orgasm and pass out from not breathing, but the sting

of his hand filled me with an instant rage that

quickly filled my lungs. That sweet breath fueled my

next wave of pleasure and calmed that rage. I knew and

my instinct knew that Bill would never strike me in

anger. The sting of his hand only fixed my focus as I

came again and again, feeding each wave with long and

short breaths.

I could barely see how I could have one more orgasm.

My throat burned from the hard growls and shrieks I

made. My hips and stomach muscles cramped from seeming

to draw each wave from me. Suddenly I felt my clit

seem to bulb out and then a long squirt of my

ejaculate went into the bed.

"ArghhhhhhhhEEEEEEE" was all I could manage make come

out of my mouth as that hot hard orgasm hit.

Finally I was able to reach back and put a hand to

Bills back to try to get him to stop. He took the hint

and laid atop me with his mouth next to me ear.

"Can't take anymore? Do you want me out?" he asked

breathlessly.

"No!" I managed to say as I puffed like a sprinter.

"Just stay still." I added.

Bill stayed deep within me but didn't move. In a few

moments I gathered my self and senses to speak.

"There, I think I'm calmed down. Just pump me nice and

slow Billy." I said as he tried to fulfill my wishes.

Even nice and slow brought me to orgasm too fast,

which would have been OK if I didn't cum so hard, but

I did. I felt my next orgasm building and I tried to

nurse it, but when it crowned, I was holding my breath

trying to muscle by it.

"No more Bill, No more," I said breathlessly as I

tried to squirm from him. "I can't cum anymore, or my

heart will explode, I swear."

He slid effortless from me leaving me feel empty. I

felt cool air rush into my dilated bottom before I

fisted it shut and tried to enjoy the end of the

fucking I just got. I rolled into the fetal position

holding myself tightly with my eyes closed as the last

spasms and sensations left me. I was one long mild

orgasm as I breathed.

I felt Bill pet my back and the side of my bottom

asking me if I was OK. I was more than OK. I felt like

the most loved woman in the world, cursed with being

too orgasmic.



"I'm fine, I'm just riding the wave, Billy," I said.

Billy had become my pet name for Bill. I had used

baby, sweetie, honey and all the standards, but Billy

was pretty personal right now.

I opened my eyes and saw Bill kneeling on the bed

feeling the huge wet spot I had left. Our eyes met and

I smiled sheepishly as if I could help my discharge.

When I lowered my eyes in embarrassment I saw his

hard-on still in a tight firm curl toward the ceiling.

"Peel that slimey, smelly thing off him, and I'll take

care of that little problem for you." I said referring

to his condom.

Bill looked down and grabbed the rolled base and

pulled it up and off his penis. It was all slime

alright, but no evidence of anything else, to my

relief.

I scooted over to where he knelt and took his cock in

my hand. I looked up at him and said, "However you

want me."

"Carree, I had you how I wanted you, it would have

been great to finish that way, but I understand. Plus

I don't like to cum inside a rubber. How do you want

it?" Bill asked.

"You know I like to taste you Billy, but if you want

to finish bareback in my butt, we can do that." I

volunteered.

"No, I know I already hurt you there. Sit on the edge

of the bed and I'll stand in front of you." He said.

"Are you sure? I'll do anything for you." I said.

"You already have, you're such a wonderful lover,

Carree." Bill complimented me.

I scooted up and sat on the edge of the bed and Bill

stood before me. I could see that his penis hurt from

being swollen and engorged so long. I grabbed behind

him and took each of his butt halves in my hand and

brought him to my mouth. My warm mouth cavern going

over his hurting dick made him sigh loudly. I chuckled

a bit at my power to make him feel so good. I went up

and down a couple times and then he brought his hand

to his penis.

"Just hold the head in your mouth. Let me stroke it. I

have to cum right away." He said as I relented his

shaft and just held the head in my mouth. I worked my

tongue around and over his head paying special

attention to the sensitive underside V near the head.

He only stroked a few times and I tasted his pre-cum

and I barely had time to think about it when he moaned

loudly and my mouth filled with his cream. One-two-

three shots and I swallowed and then another two more

before I just put my tongue over the head so I

wouldn't choke if there were any more blasts. I

swallowed 3 mouthfuls before I felt his hand go away

and he sighed. If he were disappointed about not

cumming in my butt, he was passed it already.

"Zzhiiiiiiiiiii-OH" he exclaimed, as he grabbed his

cock in his hand to protect it from me. I slid forward

off the bed to the floor and hugged his legs.

I was satisfied, and he was satisfied. We had waited

almost 10 days with this promise to be alone and we

wasted no time to get to our most intimate.

I wanted to make love sometimes without all the hard

prep that anal sex should really have. Just dropping

your panties and doing it is not so easy back there.

Today was as close as we ever came to that. Bill

didn't know the whole truth of the pain I endured to

do it this way today, and I wouldn't doing it again

too soon either.

Taking him in my bottom was not something we did on a

regular basis. The fact that it had been just a month

since the last time probably marked the shortest time

between, except for once when we did it on consecutive

days.

We had vowed to make it special, and we had kept it

that way. After doing it today, I was pretty sure it

wouldn't happen again until summer. If I knew then how

sore my butt hole was going to be the next morning, I

would have signed off before we started, even though

it was my idea, especially the spontaneous, spur of

the moment part.

We didn't leave our room the rest of the night. We

stayed close to each other, kissed a lot, and necked a

lot too. Around 7 o'clock we had a pizza delivered and

ate it with a bottle of champagne Bill had brought

with him. After a schmaltzy HBO movie we retired to

bed, but I wanted to shower, still feeling a little

"slippery" between the cheeks. Bill ended up coming

into the shower with me and later we sixty-nined on

the bed, falling asleep in each other's arms. Except

for the sore butt I had, every couple in love should

have multitudes of days like this. It was a private

"us" day that I will never forget. When I think of it

now I miss him even more . . . . But appreciate the

time I had with him more. . . . . what if this day

never happened and I DIDN'T have this memory.

We spent the next few days shopping and being with

each other, seeing our friends and having dinner with

our families. On Christmas Eve after intimate moments,

over a breakfast that Bill made for us, we went to the

Mall to watch kids with Santa, their faces lighting up

with the joy only Christmas knows. This is one of the

perks of having children, and I know we dreamed of the

day when it would be our child on Santa's knee.

Early in the afternoon Bill brought me home to my

parents house and he went to his. There, we spent our

last Christmas with our families. After our family

Holiday dinners Bill came over and we exchanged

presents at our house and then brought our bag of

gifts for his family. It was truly a special time for

us.

One gift we got from my future employer, Arens and

Ponds, was a special surprise. It was an 8-day get-

away to Maine as soon as school ended, as long as I

wanted a working vacation. They wanted a review, story

and pictures from a condominium hotel on the seacoast.

Miranda Ponds called me the day after Christmas and

told me that they had this opportunity to work with

some New England resorts, but the time frame fell just

prior to their yearly meetings in the Caribbean and

the staff was stretched to the max. Would I be open to

doing the 8 days for two, and then have 6 days off

before going to meet her and the company in St.

Thomas? The only catch was, it began 2 days after

graduation, it left me only 6 days afterward to move

to Baltimore and then fly to the yearly company

meetings. I would then have until the Fourth of July,

when the office re-opened, (actually on Monday the

7th) to begin work. It would be hectic. Miranda had

taken the liberty of contacting my parents to make

sure Bill didn't have to start work that early. (He

didn't, he was free until the second Monday in June)

Christmas night, and every night that remained of our

Holiday recess we spent falling asleep in each other's

arms. That alone was "making love". Our contentment

from just being with each other was palpable.

The only evening we did not spend in our hideaway was

the one night we spent in Baltimore. Arens and Ponds

had flown me to Baltimore for a company New Years Eve

party. This, along with their yearly meeting in St.

Thomas, was another general meeting that mixed

business with pleasure and was a real morale booster.

Seminars, meetings and company updates began at noon

and continued throughout the day. Bonus incentives

were handed out at a general meeting at 6:00pm, over

dinner. The New Years bash began at 10:00 in the same

Hotel/Convention Center. Everyone was encouraged to

stay off the roads and stay at the hotel, all paid

for, of course. I paid an extra plane fare for Bill,

as we would spend New Years Eve morning looking at the

prospective property Arens and Ponds had set up for

me, with an option to purchase after 24 months. It was

everything Miranda Ponds had promised and more. The

neighborhood was definitely upscale and the paper they

held on the property would have been a bargain at near

double the price. I did need to complete 2 years at

Arens to qualify for the option to buy.

Schools swan song was sweet as our educations already

bore the fruit of selected careers. Saying goodbye to

my roommates, Henny and Maria, was a task. We planned

to visit each other from time to time, while trying to

stay in close touch via e-mail and telephone.

Our families combined our Graduation parties into one

huge get together. The Wilson's and the Kasc families

had gotten to know each other quite well and the

fruits of that union were the tremendous pile of

Congratulation cards and gifts we received. Many who

were aware of our situation in Baltimore helped

furnish our new home as if we were getting married

already. Sweeter yet, the amount of cash we received

let us begin our lives together totally debt-free. We

were cash poor, but owed no one. We had a stash in the

bank, but that was for the future. In Baltimore we

would live hand to mouth for a short time, but we saw

bright lights at the end of a short tunnel. We figured

a budget that had us in daylight in just a couple

paychecks, and in bright sunshine soon thereafter.

My life would be hectic for the next month, but after

that I figured I would be ready to sit down and absorb

everything that happened in the last 4 years and put a

perspective to it all.

The day after our party we had one whole day to

prepare for our trip to Maine. A voucher came that day

to buy a laptop computer for my work. Nothing like

cutting it close!! The product order was specific, but

CompUSA had it all put together and waiting for me. It

seems they had their copy of the order and my voucher

for quite a time.

Packing to go to Maine was crazy because I had no idea

what to expect. My mom and Dad gave me a little

insight as they had vacationed there right after

school themselves. I knew the ocean there would be

different from any I had seen in Jersey or the

Caribbean, and I didn't know what Miranda wanted when

she asked for the whole review and story to be New

England flavored. But, I was pretty adaptable and, I

had a secret weapon along with me, Bill Wilson.

Looking back, I don't think I could have gotten

serious in my creative writing without his push and

ghosting.

As soon as we got into Maine we got off the highways

and took the by-ways and it became apparent that

finding a different New England feel would be easy.

The look, the mood of life, was altogether different

from the pace Bill or I knew, and it was to our

liking. Once we settled in our condo at Wells Beach

our whole attitude changed, life was at a slower pace

here and we relished it. We met with the owners, who

had 3 properties on the Maine seacoast. They were a

nice couple that thought they had a product that was

untapped with the international, upscale traveler. The

South Sea Isle crowd knew little of the existence of

the quaint, relaxing attitude and subtle charm of

areas like this. I knew what my job of conveying their

product would entail.

When we walked the beach I think we fell in love all

over again. There was a feeling of newness to our

relationship as we took in the sea air and feel.

Instead of long stretches of pure white powder sand,

as I knew the Caribbean Beaches to be from my trip

there, the beach here was a packed carpet of sand that

lent itself to walking. It made us feel alone in our

own spot in the universe, despite the hundreds of

people, walking and taking in the same feel. Numerous

times during our walk we stopped and looked out over

the ocean landscape and then turned and kissed to make

sure we sealed each moment. Our want for each other

was something you could almost reach out and touch.

"How many of the couples walking on the beach right

now are going to make love when they get back to their

rooms?" Bill asked.

"Every one, it would seem." I said. "Just something

about the air and the view and the eternity of it all,

I guess. Don't feel bad because we won't be doing it,

Billy, I have my period anyway." I added.

"Oh well, I guess we aren't missing anything at all

then, but it sure seems like a nice thought though."

Bill countered.

"I didn't say I wouldn't mind having you for a little

love snack, lover. I might enjoy it as much as you." I

said as I stopped and turned to him, giving his crotch

a little squeeze.

"You are so bad, Carree, but I love you that way."

Bill said laughing and kissing me.

"When I finish my period, do we think we want to try a

safe sex session? I know all the things we have talked

about, but once I've have stopped flowing, there

really is no egg to fertilize for a few days. Plus if

you wear a condom, and don't cum inside of me . . ." I

said stopping and looking pleadingly into Bills eyes.

"But, what if . . . " Bill started.

"If I got pregnant from this once, we would be married

by Christmas and I would have a baby next ummm . . .

April. Yes, it would rush things, but I thought we

were going to tell our parents that we were going to

start having protected sex, once we began to live

together. This is only a few weeks difference. Really

Bill, the chance I would really get pregnant are so

slim . . . ." I said before Bill interrupted.

"Whoa, you don't have to talk me into it. It's you

that always puts the brakes on when we really start to

think about this. You know how much I love to make

love to you, . . . a . . . you know, in your bottom.

But, you must know that I really want to just be

inside of the real you, your womb, and your center.

The other is nice and has a place in our life, but

this is so special.

Why don't you think about it up until you finish your

period? If you haven't talked yourself out of it, I'm

already talked into it. The consequence, if you want

to call it that, would be a reason to be married

sooner and to have a family. We've already talked

about what great day-care Arens has for the women

there. But, I think we are worrying about nothing. In

your situation, and with a condom, and if I pull out

before I cum, I think we are over 99 percent covered."

"As of right now, I agree." I said. "Maybe it's this

ocean air mood we are in and once we get back to the

room we will come to our senses. I won't finish my

period until at least tomorrow, so I have time to

think." I said.

"It sounds smart and fair to me baby doll. Whatever

you decide makes me happy, you know that." He said

whispering in my ear as he hugged me close to him, his

erection ever so obvious.

"Thanks for respecting me and whatever my decision,

Billy. Now, why don't we get back to the room so I can

lower the tide on the little wave you have going down

below." I said as sexy as I could.

We had already walked about 2 miles of Wells 3 mile

beach, but suddenly we had an urgency to get back to

our condo that overlooked all of this. I did want to

feel that hard cock in my mouth and taste his cum. It

made me happy, and him delirious. Although I came

spontaneously from giving him oral sex, I knew he

would really make it all up to me with his tongue, and

soon. He always had. The closeness, the intimacy, the

fact it was something only we had experienced with

each other, still made oral love a hot turn-on for us.

We reversed direction and began our arm and arm trek

back to the privacy of our room.

"Did we really just talk ourselves into taking my real

virginity back there, after all of this time and

wait?" I asked Bill.

"Isn't it more that we have just reached the moment we

always waited for? We always said that a slip up would

ruin our future, number one, because of school. Well,

school is over. Number two, because we would need to

have our careers set, and they more or less are. These

aren't our perfect jobs, but if forced to live with

them, I think we would both be happy. Number three,

financial stability so we could bring a child into the

world and not have to make a train wreck of our

dreams, and we have that.

I, obviously, don't want us to be preggers now, but if

the situation presented itself, we are beyond

disaster. We just held this one thing, this ultimate

sign of our love; in abeyance to be sure we couldn't

hurt our future. I think that future is now. Look how

we have analyzed it, and the chances of us making a

baby are almost nil." Bill rationalized.

"You won't be disappointed, or hold it against me if I

change my mind?" I asked, a little facetiously.

Bill stopped in his tracks.

"Carree, you are my life. How can you even ask me that

question? Just asking it makes me feel I talked you

into something, when it was you who brought it up."

Bill said, doubting me.

"I guess I didn't mean it the way it came out, Billy."

I said as I rubbed my fingers on his cheek and then

cupping his chin to bring his lips to mine.

With our lips just a whisper apart and our eyes

looking into our souls, I said, "This is the last

thing I've held from you, and you from me; the final

proof of our love, as if there is a doubt. I want it

to be perfect, and well thought out. A hard penis and

a wet vagina don't make wise decisions, as we have

seen first hand through others. Whether we do it, or

don't do it, I don't want you to love me one bit

less." I said as I started the most passionate kiss we

ever shared.

We held the kiss and pulled each other closer and left

all caution to the wind about how or who might see our

expression. Our teeth clicked together as our tongues

sought to go inside each other's beings. Bills lips

were suctioned over mine, our bodies pressed to each

other, with our arms seeming to press every breath

from each other's bodies.

He finally relented and we looked into each other's

eyes.

"Wow, that was hot. Have we ever kissed that deeply?"

I asked.

"I don't think so, but I never loved you more than I

do now, or will, until the next tick of time goes by.

I love you Carree, and you are me and I, you and both,

we." Bill philosophized.

I locked arms with Bill and tugged at him to start our

walk again in earnest.

"Come on, I've got to have you right now. Let's get

back to the room before I end up taking you in my

mouth right here on the beach." I said impatiently.

If I didn't have my monthly flow we would be making

love in just a few minutes. Admittedly, during that

flow it may have even been safer for sex, but we had

read that, even then, couples had gotten pregnant.

But, the mess, the whole thing, was something I wanted

no part in sharing, especially that way. Making love

should be perfect, and somehow, rutting in my blood

was not my idea of perfect. As much as we shared each

other's lives and its personal details, the most

chagrin I felt in the past was when I had burns on my

hands and Bill had to change a tampon for me. Wiping

my butt was personal enough, but it seemed minor

compared to the tampon thing. I was mortified, but had

no choice but to ask him at the time.

I quickly put all those thoughts away as we picked up

our step to get back faster. I really wanted him

between my lips, and over my tongue. I wanted to feel

the heart of the man I loved. I wanted to feel it beat

in my mouth as I brought him to his orgasm. I also

knew that the mere act of taking him into my mouth

would bring me to orgasm. Not as deep an orgasm as one

he would assist me with, using a tongue or finger. But

I know I need only to reach down and touch my bared

clit to feel a wave hit me. I needed that release now.

We climbed the steps from the beach to our condo two

at a time. We were both hot for each other. Once

inside the door Bill turned to me to say something,

but I just covered his lips with mine and grabbed at

the band of his shorts. I pushed him backwards to the

edge of a desk where he could rest his cute butt. I

pulled up the desk chair and sat in front of him.

Curling my fingers in his waistband at his hips I slid

his shorts down. He was already pretty hard as his

penis popped up, released from its entrapment. I took

it in my hand and bent towards his belly to expose his

balls that I quickly took into my mouth, one at a

time, to loll over my tongue and tease him further.

Once wet with my spittle I used my other hand to rub

that cute sack and look into his face.

"Oh Carree," he breathlessly whispered. "You're so

good to me. How could I ever deserve your love or

repay you for the pleasure you give me?"

"Don't you believe we were put here for each other,

Bill? Pleasure needn't be repaid when it's mutual,

lover. Making love to you has got me so turned on." I

said as I stood and slipped off my walking short.

My bare vagina needed my hand to pull at its lips and

arrange them, as well as my tampon string. I closed my

eyes to revel in the pleasure my hand brought to my

now blood filled mound. I felt my clit pop its hood

like a little hard on as it anticipated my touch. I

realize that pulling at my lips made it pop up, but it

still seemed to have a mind of its own.

I got my crotch to the edge of the chair where I could

easily touch myself and looked up only to have Bills

penis bump my nose.

"Somebody's impatient." I scolded as I kissed the tip

and its little pee slit.

There would be no more words from my mouth as I filled

it with his cock, over and over again, as I sucked it

like a melting ice cream stick. The deep exhales,

catches of breath and subtle moans told me that he was

enjoying this little prelude.

Once I had sucked and licked every inch of him I took

him from my mouth to admire him at full attention. I

couldn't help but drop my mouth over him and begin to

bob my head over plum of it. With one hand holding his

balls while using that hands thumb to rotate over and

over the base of his cock, my other hands fingers were

pinched together behind my middle finger as it slid

long strokes right over my clit. If I didn't push the

hood over it on the down stroke to blunt the direct

touch, I would be sore and cumming already.

Bill nudged involuntarily toward my mouth on each down

stroke trying to get a little more into my mouth, but

I was happy for just the head and another inch or so

to piston in and out. The velvet smooth of the plum

felt so erotic on my tongue as it passed over and over

it. I was a razors edge from hitting a perfect orgasm

from my clit. It was the little charge I was looking

for. Almost electric, it was like a constant exposure

to a low voltage charge. With just the right touch I

could hold that bare wire to my sexual release for

quite a time. It was time to get to the business at

hand, or mouth, I guess you would say.

I rolled my eyes up to see Bill's pleasure and he was

looking right into my eyes. He smiled, mouthed a kiss

and rolled his eyes to the ceiling to show me his

pleasure. I half smiled around the shaft in my mouth

as our eyes met again. Without words we had decided

that this was the way he would cum, with our eyes

locked together to convey wordless affirmations of

passion and pleasure.

It didn't take long for me to taste a little bleachy

report from his pre-cum as his body ran through its

final systems check for a good blast off. What strange

creatures we were with perfect systems of checks and

balances for its purposes.

I increased my suction just a little to help Bill get

over the edge. I know I always compared the closeness

of orgasm like climbing a ladder and balancing on the

top step. Sooner or later you would lose your balance

and have to jump off to safely. Bill was about ready

to jump, he was losing his balance.

One watery blast hit my tongue and Bills right hand

loosened its grip in the edge of the desk to wrap two

if its fingers around the base of his penis to help

pump out his orgasm. His fingers did not impede me at

all as I sought to swallow on each up stroke to make

sure I didn't gag or choke with a full mouth. He

seemed to shoot and ooze for minutes, when I know it

was not that long, but the seeming slow motion of the

situation made the pleasure seem to last forever. My

orgasm was steady and kind to my mood as I relished in

the pulsing passion in my mouth and the moans of

pleasure and adoring adulation his eyes conveyed to

mine.

Finally he pushed his fingers up his shaft to force my

mouth from it. He could take no more of the intense

attention I was paying it. Both of his hands went to

his crotch as he rolled back onto the desk, folding

his knees up with a deep guttural moan. He was in a

fetal ball on the desktop. I was just about to end my

long orgasm as my strokes went to a loving pinch and

massage of my clit.

I leaned forward and gave each of his cute butt cheeks

an adoring kiss, and couldn't resist giving his little

butt hole a snakey tongue kiss as well, making him

spin and jump up.

"Oh stop, Carree, are you trying to kill me? I can

only take so much." He shouted impatiently.

"I know," I replied, "I trying to find out just how

much," I said with an evil look.

He smiled and came and knelt before me as I lay back

in the desk chair a little. His hands pushed up my t-

shirt and he dropped his mouth to each of my nipples

to sort of crown my tingle session. I could barely

stand this for a half minute before I pulled down the

shirt and pushed his mouth away.

This wasn't intercourse, but it was certainly making

love, and we were exhausted by it. After being shunned

away from my breasts Bill fell back to the carpeted

floor and stared at the ceiling. I fell forward to my

knees and slumped over him, hugging my breasts to his.

We lay like this on the floor to the sound of the

waves crashing outside our room. A ringing phone would

eventually interrupt our reverie.

"Oh crap, that's that Allan guy who was supposed to

call. I better get it." I said as I climbed from the

floor.

It was Gary Allan, a publicist friend of the resorts

ownership group head, who wanted to meet with me. We

spoke briefly about ideas he had for promotion of the

Maine seacoast and his friends 3 resort properties. If

he was any kind of publicist, why didn't he take the

job himself?

He kept babbling about getting money from the State

tourist council for using their logo, and to tell you

the truth, I was so burnt from my session with Bill

that I didn't hear a word he said. I arranged to meet

him the next morning. He was someone I really didn't

need to meet, but Seaside Resorts Inc wanted me to

meet with him, so I would. I really wasn't there to

get marketing ideas. I was there to put the experience

into words to spawn marketing ideas from the team at

Arens and Ponds. They wanted my suggestions, but the

translation of my experience was their real job.

While I was on the phone Bill got up and went to the

shower to freshen up and hope for a second wind. I

knew we were both hungry and a seafood dinner at an

ocean restaurant would satisfy. However, four miles of

walking and hot love making tended to wear a body down

in this air.

I did a zombie walk into the bath area and as long as

I was not dressed, I got into the generous sized

shower with Bill. He turned and smiled me and we

hugged, telling each other how tired we were. We each

washed separately and while he rinsed I bent to pay

special attention to my feet, getting the sand from

between my toes. When I straightened up I turned to

see Bill with a smirk and a hard on.



Although proud that my butt could generate life in a

well-spent penis so easily, I shook my head at him.

"You are a horn toad." I said. "Does that thing ever

rest? Ummm, not that I want it to, but you should give

it time off occasionally."

"I'm sorry, Care, but you have the finest ass I have

ever, or will ever, see. The sight of it makes me

nuts, plus knowing that I have been in that little

hiney hole that shows when you bend, makes me even

harder. Don't blame me for getting horny over you,

Care. You turn me on so, and I love you so."

"Well, relief is your problem. I'm hungry, but I want

dinner. Right now any sex would wear me out." I said

exasperated at his ever-erect penis.

We walked out of the shower area and started getting

dressed, but Bill wanted to keep the subject alive.

"Geez Care, it's no big deal. It goes up and down a

lot during the day with you around. You didn't think I

had to wank it or stick it someplace every time it got

hard, did you?" Bill said to me, a little annoyed.

"Why do you think I always have so much to give each

time I splash? I leave it alone and let it build for

the best time for us."

"To quote you Billy, "Geez", did you think I was that

big a dope?" I joked. "I just said that because you

had that "look what I did" look on you face when I

turned and saw it winking its one eye at me. I have a

feeling that if you had to get off each time it got

hard, you'd only weigh 40 pounds." I said as I pulled

my shorts up over my panties while Bill was stuffing

the monster into his jeans.

Bill chuckled and we hugged, and locked up the condo

and headed out for dinner.

"If you feel like it, we can take the Trolley to the

Grey Gull Inn for dinner and walk back. The brochure

says tonight low tide is about 8:30. They say you can

walk all the way to Wells Beach from the Gull at low

tide." I said as I perused the brochures I singled out

on the way here.

"Sounds good to me, if you're up to it." Bill said.

I couldn't resist. I turned and patted him right on

the penis. "I know you're always UP to it, huh, little

Billy." I said as I turned and ran from him. He caught

me at the door and pinched my ass.

"Very funny." He said as we went arm and arm down to

the trolley stop to go to dinner.

Dinner was as romantic as it gets. We watched the

ocean go dark and the reflection of the moon on the

cold black surface. Occasionally a boat would sail

through the long lit reflection of the moons light.

After dinner we asked the waiter the best place to get

to the beach for the walk to Wells and he took us to

the front porch and counted down houses and told us

the path to follow. It was a beautiful long romantic

walk. We stopped to kiss, hug and neck, over and over.

If I had one more drink I would have loved to have sex

on the beach right there. I still was flowing a bit

from my period so it would have had to been me doing

him, but it would have been incredibly sexy. But the

wine would have had to make me brave enough. As much

as I wanted to do it, and it was dark, it was still

outside, in public. Our smooching, feeling, and

hugging was sexy enough though. We came upon other

couples doing the same thing. We walked close to the

water, but wondered what was happening back up on the

dunes. We thought we saw movement, but we let people

have their privacy.

When we got back to our condo we climbed the steps and

went inside, only to walk right out on the veranda to

enjoy the ocean air and ink black view splashed with

moonlight. We ended up on the chaise together and just

watched the water crash and ebb. After a time I became

aware of another sound and I motioned to Bill to be

quiet and cupped my ear to signal him to listen. On

the veranda beside us, separated by only 2 feet in

between and a thatched web blind, we heard a couple

making love. The squeaking chaise was unmistakable, as

well as the moan of the woman. The man simply hummed a

loudly as he struck bottom each time. She was

obviously beginning to orgasm as she got a little

louder in unison with the quickening squeak.

The more we listened the more aware I became of Bills

hard cock under me. I slid over a bit and pulled down

his zipper and reached inside to set him free. I

kissed the tip and smiled at Bill as I began to stroke

him. He stopped me and peeled my cropped sweater top

off over my head. While I stroked his cock, he

massaged my breasts and pinched at my nipples. His

attention made my boobs ache and want to be sucked at.

He was only glad to oblige me as I fed him my breasts.

Once the tingle in my breasts subsided, I got beck to

jerking him off. I was going in rhythm to the couple

next door, but they got pretty fast paced. Finally she

said something urgent to him and he got up. As we

craned our necks as much as we could from the chaise,

we figured he was jerking off over the balcony. We

just couldn't figure what else he was doing in the low

light we had. We kept perfectly still so as not to be

discovered. A few seconds later we heard him grunt and

groan, sounding like he was cumming. She giggled and

said something like, "That was nice", and they got up

and we heard their door slide shut.

What we heard was hot, but we were sure embarrassed to

be caught out there. Actually, we discovered that the

only people who could see you on your veranda or

balcony were people on the beach. For you to see into

anyone's balcony you really had to lean out over the

rail and that would be just too gauche. We later

realized that maybe they knew we were there and wanted

to put on a show for us. The only thing we were

jealous of was the fact they were having intercourse

and we weren't.

Between hearing them making love and Bills hand and

tongue play with my breasts I was ready to get off. He

didn't like to play with me during my period; we had

one too many accidents when we were inexperienced with

each other. I didn't blame him, the bloody mess

freaked me out too, but I knew how to get off without

making one. So, I got up from the chaise and spun

around, sitting at the foot.

"Watch me, Bill. Watch me get my jollies while you

stroke that beautiful cock for me." I said to his

smiling approval.



We both began to masturbate in earnest. I should have

told him to wait, and that I would finish him with my

mouth, but I really needed to get off. The whole night

of romance had me totally frustrated. If there was a

night when I wanted to 69 and have a monster O, it was

tonight, but with Bloody Mary at the bar, nothing was

going to happen.

My orgasm was going to be fast and I wanted to lie

back, but being on the end of the chaise it was

impossible. Once I began the cumming stage of my clit

play I brought up my knees and spun around again and

laid back so I could really grind one out. This put my

head right between his legs, and if I looked up I saw

his hand going up and down.

My O came with a big spasm and I did just what I

turned and laid back for, to grind out a knee biting,

toe curling spasm to soothe my pussy. I just got to

where I could no longer stand my own touch when I felt

a splat hit my boobs. Bill came.

"Oh, don't get it in my hair." I said trying to move

away, but I felt a drop hit my forehead. I risked

looking up and getting a shot in my eye, but I saw

Bill put his hand over the tip so he couldn't spray

me. He laughed and made a joke about the conditioner I

might be using, but he really didn't hit my hair at

all. We ended up laughing and cleaning each other up.

It had been a nice day for us. We hadn't just kissed

and smooched and necked so much in a long time. Not

really having any mutual sex available to us made

those things even sexier. The oral sex I had done on

him earlier was so nice. It was my idea and my

aggression that made it happen, I liked that. Any

woman who doesn't feel the power she has and the

absolute sexiness of doing her man, without any

expectations, has really missed something.

We fell asleep in each other's arms to sounds of the

crashing ocean. What a peaceful and sexy way to end

the day.

About 3:30 in the morning I heard Bill get up and go

to the bathroom. He saw I was awake and apologized for

waking me.

"You didn't wake me. I was awake already, lying here

thinking." I said.

"About what, the review and things you have to get

done?" Bill asked.

"No. About us, about us making love like real couples

do. I think I want it Bill. You know, on my safe days.

They say 72 hours after you stop flowing is safe, but

if we keep to 48 hours and use a condom and you pull

out. . . . I know it sounds like jumping through

hoops, but I want to have you in me, in my vagina,

where you should be, reaching the depths of me. With

our lips locked together with our eyes open to see the

pleasure we give each other. I want it to happen Bill.

I want it to happen now, as soon as I stop, OK?" I

said looking at him in the dark with just the ambient

light from the outside reflecting in his eyes.

"Oh Goddddd, Carree," Bill said, his voice quivering.

"For the first time in our life together you are

saying this where I can really agree with you. It's

time. We need to cross this bridge. God, I'm

trembling, Carree. You must think I'm a big wuss or

something, but this means so much to me, to us. Yes, I

think we are ready. Let's make it happen here, with

the ocean crashing." He said sliding over and holding

me tighter than he ever did.

We held each other and cried each other to sleep. No

tears of sadness were shed, just sheer and utter joy.

All of our careful waiting was going to have its first

finale.

We woke in the morning still in each other's arms and

the sun peaking into our room. It was very early and

we watched the sun come up. The tide was pretty high

and there were not too many walkers on the beach. Once

the sun got above our window we lie back and just

looked at each other and smiled. We fell asleep for

another couple hours, waking to the ring of the phone.

After a groggy "hello" I realized it was Garry Allan

the fellow I was supposed to meet on behalf of Seaside

Resorts.

"We have an 11 o'clock appointment and I know how easy

it is to let time slip by up here. The sound of the

ocean can make you sleep for hours." He said.

"Oh my God, Garry, I'm not late, am I?" I asked

incredulously.

"No, but it's 10 o'clock and you wouldn't be my first

morning appointment who slept through it." He said.

"Well, I'm a little surprised we aren't up yet, so

thanks for calling. I'll see you in the office in an

hour." I said as I hung up.

Holy crap, I really may have slept through if he

hadn't called. I shook Bill and told him we were late

and I was getting in the shower. He acted like he had

a hangover.

Before I got in the shower I checked my tampon and

knew I was at the end of my flow, or near the end. I

was excited that tonight might be the night.

I was just rinsing my hair when Bill came into the

shower. We kissed and I got out to dry and do my hair.

"Are you expecting me to go with you this morning?" he

shouted over the shower.

"Of course. I'm meeting a man I don't even know who

wants to ride me along the coast to show me romantic

reasons why couples might come here instead of the

Caribbean. I can handle myself, but I would like you

to be there." I said.

"I know I would feel better." Bill said as he finished

up his shower.

Garry Allan was a guy very full of himself and a local

know-it-all, it turned out. He thought he was big city

slick but his naeveties really showed through. His

homespun attitude may have worked with the locals, but

we were trying to sell this to a client totally the

opposite of the Down East Mainers. The Seaside Resorts

owners were just making sure that the city slickers

knew what they were selling. I am sure they had never

spent this kind of money before on promotion and

advertising, but were ready to graduate to the big

time and maybe get some international business to get

their feet wet and expand beyond Maine. Bill summed it

all up. Garry was a protection for the nervous local

stockholders, and he was probably right. I thanked

Garry for "all his help"; made evident by the hundreds

of faux notes I took. I had done a service for the

client by seeing this fellow, and maybe even made some

points with them.

After just 24 hours I could have written enough to

fill a brochure. The thick New England feel of the

area was quite pleasing and made me feel like I had

been here forever. We still had a lot of food to try

and local entertainment and sights to see. We still

had 6 more nights here, and we knew at least one of

them was going to be very eventful.

We spent the rest of the day, after Garry Allan's

meeting, visiting local antique dealers of which there

were many. Bill was surprised his parents had never

been here with their obsession with old stuff. Bills

knowledge of antiques helped me tremendously in my

note taking and descriptions. We got permission for

some photos of a few places more quaint. This

assignment was given to me because it was fluff,

compared to the high roller accounts Arens and Ponds

normally handled. I was going to make an impression

with my report and input.

We got back to our room about 7 o'clock and we were

famished. We should have stayed out to eat, but I got

caught without a bathroom when I needed it. Rather

than stop at the grocery store or a gas station, we

were close enough to get back to the room. I knew I

could check my progress with my period too. I was

excited for both of us that a new door was going to

open for us, sexually.

I came out of the bathroom and saw Bill sitting in the

easy chair beside the bed where he was, of course,

reading a newspaper. (He was in his glory here, they

had both Boston papers, both New York tabs, a New

Hampshire and the Portland paper, plus the WSJ)

I went to the back of the chair and bent to whisper in

his ear.

"Guess whose gonna fuck my pussy tonight?" I whispered

in his ear.

The paper went down.

"Are you sure? You think you're all done? Even now in

the light of day and everything, you haven't changed

your mind?" Bill asked.

I massaged both of his shoulders with my willowy

fingers.

"Unt - Uh. No change of mind, no change of heart. I

want you to make love to me tonight. I would do it

right now, except in my fantasy it's in a dark room

with candles lit. We have to go get dinner, and buy

candles. This is going to be the night we have waited

all of our life's love for Billy Wilson. I may not be

a real virgin, but you know I've always wanted you,

and only you Bill."

"God Carree, lets get out and do something before I

burst out of my pants." Bill said getting up grabbing

his crotch.

He grabbed my arm and we left. He was so cute.

We hopped into the car and went to Oqunquit and

Perkins Cove. These were two real touristy spots that

screamed big bucks for those who wanted to shop. The

women's clothing stores and the gift shops were very

pricey, if not exclusive. We found a little spot

called the Lobster Shack and had a quiet dinner even

though the place was packed. Afterward we got an ice

cream and took a nature walk on a path called the

Marginal Way. It was as romantic as anything else we

had done. What great sights from the walkway!!

The walk ended in the middle of town and we walked

back to where we had parked. It was close to dark and

we passed a candle shop and went in and bought at

least 10 candles with bases, floating candles and

votives. We were ready for the drive back for our

night of love.

The drive back was very quiet as we sat and thought,

looking to read each other's eyes from time to time.

Each time our eyes met it elicited a big smile from

either of us. We were ready, we were thought out, it

was time. The rest of the ride back was eerily silent

and we contemplated what we were going to do. No

change of mind, no change of heart. It was going to

happen.



There was a tension that was thick between us when we

pulled into the parking garage and gathered our things

and went upstairs to our room. The only way to

describe it was that the world was buzzing by at 100

MPH, while we stood frozen and watched. It reached a

fever pitch until the walked in to the room. The latch

clicked to signal the door closed and locked and our

eyes met and we leapt into each other's arms.

"Oh my God, Carree, I never realized how much I love

you, how much I want to possess you and be yours until

this moment." Bill whispered into my ear. "We've spent

years and years saying I LOVE YOU and making each

other happy with physical gratification and enjoying

each other as if there were no one else in the world.

But, now it really is true. There is no one else in

the world and our union really could bring another

life into our world, a direct result of our love. What

an incredible miracle. I know we are taking every

precaution to make sure that doesn't happen, but I

just realized that if it did, what an absolute joy and

gift it would be, because I love you and you love me

and together it's a love so strong we can make another

life to share that love with."

I went to answer Bills realization but the

overwhelming desire to put my mouth on his and kiss

him won over. I sucked his tongue deep into my mouth

and then rolled mine with his together in each other's

mouths. My arms were glued to his back and I could

feel each of my fingers between ribs, as I held him

tightly to me as if some force might want to take him

from me. His hands held my lower back and my ass to

him, as we stood for minutes in this passionate

embrace. It was the kiss of the ages and it

transmitted volumes of feelings to each of us.

Finally our lips parted and I was able to form sounds

to whisper in his ear.

"Your words, Bill. Your read your words right off my

heart, I swear. So beautiful, Oh my God Bill, so

beautiful, we are one. There will be no time in our

lives so right for what will happen tonight between

us. Fate planned this all for us. How perfect." I

breathlessly worded into his ear.

Finally our embrace and kiss broke and we eased our

grips on each other to stand back and look at each

other. After what seemed a long moment, I spoke.

"Part of me wants to throw you to the floor and push

you inside of me to love and possess me and prove our

oneness and relieve the excitement and joy that is

building within me. Another voice is telling me to let

you gently take me, and me take you, both under the

shower to wash everything else away and leave nothing

but our flesh for each other to consume. Consume we

must with our tongues at every tender part of our

bodies to excite and anticipate the great union we

will share tonight. As much as I cannot wait to have

you within what makes me a woman, I do want to wash

and make perfect your body for me to consume and

excite." I said philosophically to be sure Bill knew

how I loved him so, but I really had no doubts. He

knew, I knew.

"Let's get everything in the room ready the way we

want it so when we come out of the shower we have no

interruptions." Bill said as he retrieved the bag from

the candle store.

We each took candles and put them around the room. The

owners of the condo must have made this their love

nest often enough as well. There we candle dishes,

floating candle pads, and other holders placed around

the room. Each were in a safe spot to be left to burn

for hours, and once we had ours lit it was obvious

that they formed a circle around the bed, each

strategically placed to contain light and aim it to

the bed. As we lit the last candles and looked at the

scene, our eyes met and we smiled. It WAS a place for

love, to be sure.

Bill drew open the curtains and opened the French

doors wide, while locking the screens. The burst of

cool sea air filled the room and made perfect the

ambiance. The moon would hang center in our picture as

we lay in bed that night, if we had time to look at

it.

The bath in our condo was large and had a tub with

shower and a large shower, clearly meant for two,

although with its seat in one corner and the safety

bars, its intention was probably for handicapped. The

placement of the candles, the dEcor of the room, the

large added shower told me this room was a love nest

for its owners. We would try to hold tradition for

them.

While the room was spacious for a bath in a unit

condo, the addition of the extra shower made it a

little cramped. Still though, we waited to get inside

the room to begin removing our clothes. We undressed

ourselves until we got to our underwear. There and

then we embraced again and I heard Bill draw deeply

into his lungs as he ran his hands over the near naked

skin of my body.

"You are beautiful, so perfect, both inside and out. I

have done nothing in life to deserve such perfection.

I will be sure to always treasure you Carree, and

never ever hurt you." He said as if he were proposing

again.

I blushed and relished in his strong hands running

over my body. I was doing the same for him.

"I don't know what I have ever done to deserve you

either Bill. You are so perfect for me and we know

each other, in and out, so perfectly, so intimately.

Last night while I lay awake thinking about us I

thought of something silly. We have been part of each

others life for 4000 days, with few of those ever

spent without seeing or talking to each other. For the

lion's share of those 4000, any time I spent away from

you, I spent wishing I was near you, or could hear

your voice. Something tells me that we won't be

growing tired of each other soon." I said.

"Not with so many things of love and life to share, if

we ever do grow tired of each other, the memories will

buoy our love until our last days." Bill said as he

unsnapped my bra.

I stepped away from him to let my breasts go free and

the garment drop. I reached out and slid my fingers

over his back and down under the band of his under

shorts over his buttocks until they fell to the floor.

The only snag I hit was the fact that, surprise, his

penis was erect. I reached and took his penis in one

hand and his ball sack in my other. They were both

warm and damp from their hiding place. My hands and

fingers massaged and stretched their prizes to get

them accustomed to the free air again. The second I

let go, Bill reached out and took the hip ties to my

panties and pulled them to let the front and back

panels drop. I bought these just yesterday while

shopping with Bill. The panties were cut, and tied,

like a bikini bathing bottom. However, they were so

sheer you could roll them into a small ball. He ran

his hand down my belly over my bare mound and through

the furrow of my vagina to arrange and pull my lips,

teasing me, as I did him.

He smiled and looked me in the eye, winking.

"Hmmt, no string," he chuckled.

We now stood naked before each other and embraced,

once again running our hands over each others naked

backs as if to feel and verify each others body while

our sexuality intermingled. It was as if we were

seeing and touching each other for the first time.

Bill stepped back and turned on the shower, adjusting

the water to our liking and he took my hand to escort

me in. Now, we had showered and washed each other

many, many times before, as well as having both oral

and anal sex under the steams of a showers water. But,

tonight was totally different. We each gingerly washed

each other as if we were porcelain dolls, gently

cleansing and scrubbing each other from between our

toes to behind each others ears amid giggles and

sighs.

Upon finishing we gently dried each other and went arm

and arm to the dressing table where Bill helped me dry

my hair, and I combed his. When we turned off the rest

of the lights, only the candles glow from the bedroom

remained. We turned down the sheets and bedspread

beforehand, so the bed was set. We stood back and

looked outside to the sound of the waves crashing in

the distant low tide, and then Bill put his arm around

my shoulder and scooped me up into his arms. He

carried to the bed and set me down on the cool sheets.

"You are my virgin bride tonight, Carree. This is the

night we have waited for, it seems forever. I cannot

put into words how much I love you, especially right

now." Bill said sweetly.

He treated me so kind and gentle when he needed to,

like now; yet at times, so firm and convincing when I

was more prone to tantrums, or when our sex got

mutually rough (to a point). Tonight he was the

perfect husband to me, treating me like a fragile

doll, so far.

"When was the first time you really wanted to make

love to me, Billy. I don't mean the first time you

looked at me physically and had naughty ideas, but the

first time you really thought we should go all the

way?" I asked him.

"The first time? I remember it distinctly. We had been

necking and humping like crazy for a couple nights in

a row. You attacked me each time, and on the third

night you said you had a leg cramp and changed

positions. You lay right on my cock and we humped. I

used to carry a condom in the glove box and I wanted

to show it to you that night, but I chickened out.

But, for a minute I really thought we were going to DO

it. Man, was I naive." Bill explained.

"I remember that night. It was the third time in a row

I had to take care of business when I got home. I was

so exasperated with you." I admitted.

Bill knelt beside me and said, "Enough of past

history, we have some new heights to reach."

He laid his lips to mine and we soft kissed for a

moment or two, and then he tried to devour me, nipping

at my lips, then my ears. He quickly moved to my

breasts and my nipples, but it was clear where his

target was. He soon passed my navel and was head first

at my pussy. His licking, nipping, and fondling were

all meant to excite me and get me wet for his cock.

But, that cock was in my reach now. I wanted to love

it tender before he pushed it into me for the first

time.

I was in a place I had not been before. It was like

being love drunk, or sex drunk. I was light headed

from the anticipation and also from the erotic mood of

the room. I suppose Bill's tongue on my clit might

have had a little to do with it too. My eyes had been

closed for a few minutes as I began to float away on

an orgasmic trip and when I opened them as I began to

flounder around a bit, I saw Bills cute penis just

with in the reach of my mouth. I reached out my hand

and pulled it to me and enveloped the perfect plum in

my mouth. Never had it felt so good, tasted so good,

or felt so natural as it had now. If I were to have

cataloged the hundreds, maybe thousands, of times we

had each other genitals in our mouths, tonight would

stand out. It was truly special.

After lolling his dick in my mouth a bit I really

wanted to get into it and turned a bit to get at it

more. Feeling this, Bill began to turn a bit to me and

soon we were on our sides, our heads deep between each

other's legs. As we bent and hunched over the next few

minutes we were able to kiss, lick, and suck each

other's sex right down to our butt holes.

On a normal night of sex like this I would have been

over the top with a screaming, mind blowing orgasm,

but tonight I seemed to have a control over myself,

knowing this really was foreplay.

However, a person can take just so much and I was

reaching that point with Bills tongue driving me

crazy. I wiggled and squirmed away from his tender

kisses and licks, letting him know that I had reached

a pinnacle. He could barely argue because it meant

that I could pay a lot more attention to him. I gave

him a heavy tongue and spittle bath from the top of

his cock, the creases of his balls, and the split of

his cute butt and asshole. I wanted to taste and feel

every part of him, as he had me tonight.

At one point I sought out his mouth to kiss and our

turning and wrangling left him with him kneeling in

front of me, my legs spread and his cock pointing

towards the ceiling, engorged, shiny and curled hard.

He smiled at me and asked if I was truly ready. I just

nodded my head.

"Slip your hand under that pillow and get the condom."

Bill said pointing beside my head. "You can help me

put it on."

I slid my hand under the pillow and sure enough, there

it was. It was the one thing in tonight's love making

that wasn't really a part of either of us. I found the

little place where you could tear open the package and

I had the blue colored ring in my hands.

I crooked a finger to get him closer to me, and he

quickly straddled me sitting just below my breasts,

presenting his cock to me so I could roll it on.

Everything tonight had been so perfect, so beautiful;

we traded smiles as I began to fumble with the

slippery disc.

"Remember before when we were talking and you said

something like umm . .There really is no one else in

the world, besides us, and our union really could

bring another life into our world, a direct result of

our love, for us to love, and what an incredible

miracle it would be?" I asked Bill.

"Yeah, I remember, and I assumed you feel the same

way, right?" Bill asked.

"You know I do, and for that reason, I don't want to

put this on you. I want to feel you, and only you

inside of me. I want to feel your cum splashing inside

of me. Our chances of getting pregnant are almost nil,

and if that small chance happens, we will have the

most beautiful and most loved baby ever. It would be a

direct result of this night. How could that be bad?" I

asked a shocked Bill Wilson.

"Oh Carree, if that's what you want, I am with you. I

couldn't agree more with you, my virgin bride." He

said touching my cheek so affectionately.

"Bill, I don't want to talk you into this, I want you

to go along if you really feel that way in your heart

of hearts." I cautioned him.

"No Carree, I've felt this way from the start of the

night, that the end would be, somehow like a cheat to

you and me and us. I truly would feel blessed if we

got pregnant from tonight. Since I'm not the one who

would have to bear it, I really didn't want to say

anything. I hope you understand what I mean." Bill

said, a tear coming to his eye.

"I understand," I said, now stroking his beautiful

cock as it rested between my breasts. "I want this

inside of me so I can only feel you tonight. There may

be other times when we have to settle for the

protection, but tonight . . " I said craning up to

plant a kiss on the head of his penis, "I just want

this." I said as I flipped the condom ring aside.

I really hadn't thought that I could get Bill to go

along with my idea, but he later explained that he

felt cheated at times before when he wanted to make

love to me and we used alternative methods, and then

was his chance to really be in me and make love to me,

but he had to "wear a raincoat".

Bill braced himself up on his hands and kissed me,

then settled on his knees between my legs.

I smiled at him and wanted to just get up and hug him

again. His adoring smile back at me was accompanied by

tears, which began to roll down his face.

"I'm sorry, Care. You probably think I'm some sort of

wuss or wimp. This moment is so emotional to me. This

is almost 10 years of dreaming and imagining if this

would ever happen. I was always so afraid I would lose

you and I would never have made proper love to you."

Bill said through his tears.

"Bill, Oh Billy baby, you could never lose me, and you

never could have. It was always you and I never wanted

to even think about anyone else. Show me how much you

love me." I said coaxing him on.

My legs were still spread as Bill knelt up between

them. Holding himself up with one arm he used his

other hand to place his penis between the splayed lips

of my pussy. He was going to come into me. Once I knew

I wasn't a phyical virgin, I had used the Great White

Wonder dildo on myself, or with Bill doing me with it.

In itself it was 7 or 8 inches long, but I don't think

I ever had more that 3 or 4 inches in me. When I

looked down at Bills seeming huge penis before he put

it into me, it suddenly occurred to me how big he was.

"Be gentle, you look awfully big." I cautioned Bill.

In reality, he was probably 8 or 9 inches erect, or so

it seemed. When I first bought the toys, as an

experiment to bring into our lovemaking, I did measure

them, and the White Wonder was over 7 and less than

eight. I always thought Bill was bigger.

I felt Bill slide down over my clit and he nudged

forward a bit into the opening of my vagina. I drew a

deep breath as he began to stretch me open. Emotion

tears formed at the corners of my eyes to match Bills,

as we silently read each other's excitement. Slowly he

pushed into me. He was definitely bigger than anything

I ever had in there, and the sensation that it and he

created was much heavier than anything going in there.

He had pushed into my anal canal from this same

position, but this felt altogether different.

I raised my hand to his hip to prevent him from going

too deep, and as soon as I did that he pulled from me

a bit and then rocked to re-insert to at least as deep

as he had been. He did this over and again a few more

times and I realized: HE WAS FUCKING ME!!

I looked up from where we were joined to look at my

Bills face. He was smiling and crying at the same

time.

"I'm really inside you and it's wonderful. I really am

part of you. God, I love you." He exclaimed.

I was especially shocked that I didn't hurt or feel

stretched out. I really expected to be in some pain,

but he was right, it was wonderful!!

The realization he was making love to me was shadowed

by the beginnings of my first orgasm. The feeling was

familiar, but it was beginning in a new place.

"Oh, fuck me, baby, fuck me!" I surprised myself by

saying, but it felt so good. I began to pop off little

orgasms with his rhythmic pumping at me. My breath

would catch with each one and I was smiling at Bill as

he gave me adoring looks back.

Suddenly he stopped and gathered my legs up and hung

my knees over his shoulder. He had almost done this

once or twice when he was doing me anally before, but

never really accomplished it. This time he was. I was

bent up with my legs over his shoulders and I felt him

rise up. He pressed his penis as far and as deep as I

could take it.

"Whoaaaaaah", I expelled as I felt him deeper and in a

place nothing had ever been. Without a chance to

protest or get used to him so far into me, he began to

piston in and out.

I was without breath as I felt him all the way into me

and the shaft of his penis was right on my g-spot in a

way I had never felt it before.

"Gnnnnt, gnnnnnt, gnnnnnt", I moaned as my orgasms

doubled and tripled as they popped up on me. Then just

one big grinder took over and I looked at Bill in a

panic trying to get my breath and push the orgasm down

the chute.

"Cum baby, cum." He said breathlessly. "Catch your

breath and cum for me." He said as he pounded me.

I told myself I wouldn't pass out and I forced a big

lungful of air into me, catching my breath. I got into

a cadence and drawing two hard breaths and then

grinding an orgasm down the chute. Somewhere along the

line here I realized I was squirting and we were both

pretty wet down there. But, I was finally in control

with my cumming and keeping from passing out, forcing

air into my lungs.

"All the while I was loving being screwed hard and

having multiple orgasms, Bill was crying out, cheering

me on.

"Squeeze me, cum on that cock, cum for me baby! I love

you!" He carried on and on.

I was in a delirium as he pounded me hard and deep in

this position. He was right on my g-spot and the

position was squeezing him hard and making me feel

every pulsing inch. I finally could take no more

without a respite and I pushed down hard with my knees

to break his stride.

He stopped his assault on my pussy and sat back on his

haunches and let my, near paralyzed legs fall from his

shoulders. He grinned as our eyes locked on each

other.

"Oooooooooo, Ooooooooooo, Arghhhhhhh," I emoted as I

felt my eyes roll back into my head.

Everything on my body felt so good as the aftershock

of my orgasms rippled through my body. But, Oh how my

legs ached.

"My legs, my legs Bill. Let me move them." I said as I

tried to push him from me.

His cock popped from me leaving a huge void as I

turned on my side and stretched out my aching legs. I

felt blood rushing to them, soothing the ache. But,

Bill had an ache to relieve himself. While on my side

I must have provided him an open view of my pussy

because he crawled right up and snaked his cock back

into me. My void was full again and I was full of

cock. Bill wrapped his arms around my prone body and

whispered in my ear.

"I never want to be away from you, I want to be inside

of you forever. God, I love you. Are you OK, baby?" he

asked.

"Gnnnnnnt! I answered to his thrust into me. "Fuck me

more and more Billy. Make that cock cum in me. Fuck me

till I can't walk." I said pushing my ass in the air

so he could get at me easier.

He pushed at me a few more times and then I felt him

shove all the way into me and he sort of crab-walked

his one leg over me as he pulled me up into a kneeling

position. I realized he was near standing behind me

while I was in a doggie position as he hovered over

me. He settled his knees on either side of mine and

picked up a rhythm of plowing me as I vocalized my

delight.

"Eeee, Ooooo, fuck-fuck-fuck," I squealed feeling his

cock hit new spots within me, but I couldn't hold

myself up any longer. I dropped my arms in front of me

and arched my back so I could rest my face on the bed.

He stopped his fucking for a second and drew up his

knee from beside me and I felt him try to settle it

between my legs. I took the hint and opened my knees

on the bed as he knelt between them with his cock

stuffed in me.

Bill began to fuck me slow while running his hands

over my back, occasionally leaning up to cup and

squeeze my breasts.

"Mmmmmmmmmmmmm you feel so nice baby, but I've got to

cum. Can I fuck you till I cum in you Carree? Do you

want my cum?" he asked.

"Cum baby, cum. Fill me up with it." I answered as I

pushed back at him.

He needed no more prodding. I hadn't realized how much

deeper he could get into me from this position until

he near pushed the breath from me.

"Ohhh, Ohhh, Ohhh," I chanted as he hit bottom over

and over again as he began to screw the daylights out

of me again.

I heard the slap of his groin against my ass as I

pushed back to meet his thrusts. It felt so good to

have his cock head kissing the very bottom of

womanhood. One of his hands that were gripping my ass

slid over and I felt a thumb snake up my butt-hole and

I went over the top.

"Nnnn, Nnnn, Arghh," I grunted as I felt full from

both ends and orgasm sweep over me simultaneously.

He kept the double stroking for a moment or two and

then the thumb left me.

"Oh baby! I gonna cum, gonna cum. Here it comes

Carree!! Gonna cum!!" Bill suddenly shouted.

I felt the plum of his penis within me swell like a

fist opening to a hand inside of me. I was cumming at

the same time.

"Ahhhhhhhhhhhhh, Arghhhh, Ohhhhhhhhhh, Hnt, Hnt, Hnt."

He grunted as he pounded me ever harder pushing his

cum into me.

I felt the whole situation get real squishy as I

became super lubed by his load as he double speed

fucked me. Finally he could take no more as I began to

squeeze back with my muscles. He fell back onto his

knees and crashed on his side on the bed behind me. I

fell exhausted forward and to my left side. I felt his

cum running from me as I drifted away.

I became aware of a terrible urge to pee and heard the

sea crashing much closer than it had before. I was

sore and could barely move, but I really had to go. I

opened my eyes and scanned the room for the clock.

3:35, the red numerals lit. It was after 10:30 when

our fuck session began, I remember seeing the bathroom

clock as we got out of the shower.

I pulled myself to the edge of the bed and got to my

feet. Lord, my legs were sore, and as I began to

stride and pad towards the john something else was

sore, my little pussy! But it felt good too.

I parked my nude little butt on the toilet and let my

stream loose. All the while I was peeing I felt more

cum running out of me. Bill must have cum a gallon. If

I had a fertile egg within me, there was no doubt that

Bill creamed it. If that were the case I would love

that baby, created by the love we shared tonight, with

every molecule of my body and soul. The fact that this

maternal feeling swept over me had me convinced I was

pregnant.

My vagina was finally drained of Bills cum, it seemed,

and relieved of the pressure from my bladder. My

thighs ached as I got to my feet and returned to the

bed. Bill was breathing heavy and almost snoring in a

fetal position. If I could have gotten to it without

moving him, I wanted to kiss his penis, but he was

almost on his stomach. It would have to wait. The room

had gotten cool and I found the spread and pulled it

over Bill to keep him warm. I curled beside him and

fell asleep almost immediately. Just as I drifted off,

I felt Bills arm drape over me, and then another

stream of cum escaped my pussy and ran over my thigh.

I snuggled back to him and we fell asleep together in

each other's arms. I was glad that he was aware that I

had tended to him. I wanted to do so forever.

I was dreaming of Bill and I together with a car full

of kids trying to beat the school bell when I shook

awake and realized it was the telephone ringing and

ringing. I looked up and saw the phone and kicked it

with my foot.

"BE RIGHT THERE," I shouted, hoping the caller could

hear me as I got my bearings.

I sat up and rolled to my side and reached to the

floor for the receiver.

"I'm sorry - Hello?" I squeaked into the phone.

"Wow, still in bed? You're taking the expression

"working vacation" too seriously." The voice of

Miranda Ponds exclaimed.

"Oh, Miranda, it's you. Sorry, I couldn't get to the

phone. I was just getting my messages at the same time

and . . ." I began.

"Carree, It's OK if you were still in bed, I'm not

keeping tabs on you. I don't care what you do as long

as the client is happy in the end and I'm sure you

will do a great job. I just wanted to touch base on a

few things. Did you get with that Garry Allan fellow?

I spoke with one of the principles of Seaside last

night and he wanted to make sure you got with him. He

said he was full of great Maine ideas and could be

invaluable to us. But, I have to warn you; I think

this guy is just a local who thinks of us all as

"flatlanders". Miranda explained.

"You have it right on the bean, Miranda. I met with

him yesterday and he made sure that we saw the

homespun nature of people here. Told us what they like

and don't like and how he would have taken the job

himself if he weren't so busy. Never mind that they

don't need to sell this to the locals. He was just a

blowhard, but I was real congenial and thankful to

him. I sensed what you wanted there, and everyone will

be happy." I said.

"I thought you would see through him. These people are

just paranoid about the money they're spending, and

believe me we gave than a great price. It's

experimental for us too. Glad that's going OK. Listen

I have 2 seats reserved for you guys on the junket to

St Thomas. Is Bill going to be able to go? You can

tell him that it's only about 50 percent business and

he can have a great time. I would love him to feel

like part of our family here. I can't tell how excited

we are to have you starting here next month. Plus I

can tell you that the Arens family feels like you have

made a big commitment to us by taking the house."

Miranda went on.

"Well, wait." I said, "We haven't said we would buy

the house yet, only live there for a year or two."

"Oh, I know," Miranda said, "But I can just about

guarantee that you'll buy it after you live in that

neighborhood. I think if you don't decide to buy it, I

might, just as speculation. You'll see what a value

they are offering you and what a great place and

neighborhood it is. But this is all stuff we can talk

about later; I'm way ahead of myself. I'm so happy to

have an executive assistant, and I'm overjoyed it's

you. I'll let you go and get back to me on the junket

seats. If Bill isn't going I can maybe fill that seat.

Have fun and stay out of trouble up there. Ok? Bye-

Bye." She said as she hung up.

Whoa! I had to filter out everything that happened in

the last 12 hours and make decisions about the trip to

St Thomas and the house, when all I wanted to do was

cuddle up to my man, and that's what I did.

He was just stirring barely aware of the phone ringing

and my conversation with Miranda.

He pulled me close to him, where we were face to face.

"Hello, I have to warn you that I love you so much

more this morning than last night it's almost scary."

He chuckled. "That was the most incredible single

event of my life Carree. Will you marry me right now?

I want to make love to you forever, everyday, starting

now."

The smile on my face was so big that it almost hurt.

"Hee Hee," I giggled. "Me too!! I was just on the

phone with Miranda and all the time all I could think

about was holding you. I almost hung up on her."

"Wow, we are some kind of lovers, aren't we? Knowing

each other so well made last night just the ultimate."

Bill said hugging me even closer as I began to giggle

and laugh like a schoolgirl.

Bill joined in the laughing and he hugged and rolled

over to me hugging, giggling and laughing. At one

point He ended up on top of me, his hard cock was

right at the entrance of my vagina. We used to pull

away from each other at times like this, but he pushed

right into me.

"Ooofff, you slid in, lover. You feel so good in me."

I squeaked into his ear.

We just lay there enjoined, kissing and rolling around

a bit. I wanted him again, right now.

"Fuck me lover. Hold me like this and fuck me while I

look in your eyes." I said.

We were wrapped into each other as he began to hump

into me. He felt so good just sliding, humping into

me. It wasn't a long stroked rousing screw like last

night, it was making love face to face. I felt myself

beginning to cum as I gripped Bill even tighter. I

caught my breath and felt the next orgasm coming onto

me when Bill hastened his push at me.

"I'm gonna cum again baby, I'm ready, almost." Bill

puffed in hard breaths.

"Give it to me again Billy, cum in me." I whispered as

I came again.

The words no sooner left my lips when I felt him shoot

into me again. We were lovers of the highest degree,

for sure.

Bill collapsed on me and hugged his face to my neck.

He nibbled at my ear as I felt him shrinking within

me.

"Oh, baby. You are so awesome. I know we can't do this

all the time, but feeling you cum in me is just beyond

words." I said.

He popped out of me and I let him go and he rolled

off.

I looked over at Bill and knew that I never adored

him more than I did this second. He had made love to

me twice in the past few hours like he had never done

before, like I never had before. Our long and

adventurous love and sex life was always missing basic

lovemaking. Last night he brought me to heights and

places I never thought possible as he used the prowess

he learned from his own fantasies to turn me into a

gushing font of love and adoration, and possibly even

a mother. This morning he simply mounted me in the

most common position and made me a delirious woman

filled with love and adoration for the man I loved.

He rocked my world.

We both lay in two separate heaps on the bed, side by

side. We were both exhausted from making love to each

other. What a feeling. I drifted in and out of sleep

and each time I moved a little, I felt cum leaking out

of me. I mustered a little strength and made a push in

my vagina to clear myself and stop the ooze, but that

only lasted a few minutes.

I felt a mouth attach to my nipple and I opened my

eyes. It felt great and I hugged his head to my

breast. I was glad he hadn't had enough of me yet,

because I wanted to love for hours more.

"Are you sure you're going to be able to douse any

fires you're going to start down there?" I asked.

"I just saw this beautiful tit in my face and I could

not resist it." Bill said as he lifted himself away

from my breast and kissed my face all over before

settling on my lips.

"Umm, you didn't give me an answer to my proposal." He

said between kisses.

"What proposal?" I asked.

"To get married right now, right here, so we could

make love like this forever." He responded.

"You know I would marry you this very second, Bill

Wilson. You also know we can't make love like this

everyday, but you also know the love we always make is

beautiful. The memory of this and the promise of more

will make our love burn forever." I promised.

"Oh, I know that, I just want to every little chance

to prove you are mine, and I am yours." He responded.

"There should be no doubt in your mind", I said.

"Oh, there is no doubt, no doubt at all. I just want

to call you my wife." Bill said.

"Maybe you can call me the mother of your children

after last night. Would that be proof enough?" I said

with a serious tone. "I had this feeling while I lay

in bed afterward, that there was a change inside of

me. I know I'm probably being silly. But, you know

what? If it were true, I wouldn't care. We would have

the proof of our love as a beautiful baby. Wouldn't

that be something?" I asked excitedly.

"That would be incredible Carree." He said as he

showered my face with kisses again.

"If I'm not pregnant, and you know I'm probably not,

lets move it up a year." I suggested.

"Next summer? Really? I'm all for that. We kind of

told our parents 2 years, but for next summer they

have all the time in the world to plan, and so do we.

After last night I don't want to wait another minute.

Carree, I'm really serious when I say that I love you

more than ever this morning." Bill admitted.

"I know. I feel the same way Billy." I said as I

climbed back onto him. "Don't get any ideas down

there, we really have to get going this morning." I

said as I put my hand over my pussy so nothing could

slip in. "C'mon, lets jump in the shower. We have to

scrub each other up good this morning."

"This bed is a mess." I said to Bill. "There's cum

everywhere. I leaked every place I moved. I imagine

the maids will love me today."

"The maids will be jealous, for sure, Care." Bill said

matter of factly, and he was probably right.

We dragged our bodies into the shower and made a deal

to wash our hair first, and then we could wash each

other's bodies and get out together. This all worked

out well until I was finishing Bill up. It seemed I

spent a little too much time washing him.

I looked up from my scrubbing and asked him, "Did I

scrub him too much? He doesn't want to go down. Last

night when I got up to pee I wanted to give it a kiss

before I went to sleep, but you were on your stomach.

Now, that kiss I owe you has interest applied."

"Will you be this insatiable when we get married?"

Bill asked.

"More so." I answered as I dropped to my knees.

I really loved the feel of his cock in my mouth and

the power it gave me, and the love I could show him by

doing it. Of course, he loved it as well. As much as I

hate the term, I finished my little blowjob and we got

going for the day. We spent the remainder of our

vacation touring the seaside of Southern Maine during

the day, and making love every night. The next 2

nights we used condoms for our new lovemaking, with

Bill pulling out before he came. We finished each

other with our mouths each time with a sixty-nine.

Then when we were fairly sure that vaginal sex was

unsafe, we loved each other in every way possible the

rest of the week. On our last night there we made all

the preparations for butt-sex, and before he lubed

himself and removed the Little Blue Devil, he sheathed

on a condom and plowed my pussy for a few minutes,

catching me by surprise. As fantastic as that felt, I

had to scold him later, a lot later (I admit), for

breaking the rules. But, I have to come clean. Having

him in both places on the same night was an experience

I will not forget soon, as well as being filled in

both places at once.

The ocean air made us insatiable and we took every

chance to take advantage of it.

It wasn't until the ride home that I realized I hadn't

spoken to Bill about going to St Thomas on Arens and

Ponds junket. It would mean him having to take a few

days off from his new job, after only working a few

days. The thought of more ocean air to fill our lungs

and fuel our sexuality excited him though. He began

work tomorrow in New York City, the ninth of June. He

would commute by train that week and then we, along

with our Dads, would pack his car and a rental truck,

and we would move to Baltimore on Saturday. Sunday

Morning they could return the rental truck and both

our Dads would take Bills car back home. We figured we

didn't need a car for a while and it saved train or

plane fare back for our Dads.

Bill could then begin his commute from Baltimore to

New York for the week of the sixteenth while I set up

the house and began a little orientation into Arens

and Ponds again. The office closed Monday and Tuesday

and we all flew to St Thomas on Wednesday and had

meetings and leisure time until July second when the

junket came back. With the Fourth being a Friday, we

all had 4 days to decompress before going to work on

the seventh. (Even though Miranda told me to be in

town for the weekend.) The office being closed for 13

days, with only answering and message services to

relay problems to the Caribbean meant there would be

lots of catching up and client fixing.

It all sounded so hectic that Bill wanted to pass at

first, but Scott Wilkens, Bills immediate boss at

Time, reminded him that he had 42 hours of comp time

he couldn't carry over after a year, and he should use

it if he wanted to over the July Fourth Holiday. (It

was from his emergency trip as a field assistant where

he was credited 24/7 pay, but only saw 12 hours per

day real pay) He really wanted Bill to use it up now,

and not lose it. If Scott could give him 6 more hours

of comp or LWOP he could make the whole junket with

me, or leave on Sunday and pay his own way home.

Luckily, Mr. Wilkens remembered the favor he kind of

owed me for forgetting to call me when Bill

disappeared last summer to go on the field trip.

He told Bill that an intern wanted the Saturday off.

If Bill could work it for him, Scott would add it to

his comp time and he could take it. This meant Bill

would have to meet us in Baltimore on Saturday night,

but between my 2 Dads, I thought we could manage to

pack. Bill was going to be able to spend 8 days in the

Caribbean with me! If my body didn't let me down, I

would get my period the day before we left and I would

finish Saturday or Sunday, leaving a big green light

for Bill and I. Everything was going our way.

Look at me prattling on about minor details. Please

understand this is one of the most precious times of

our life together and holding on to every detail makes

me feel I can live it over and over again. William was

my love and I will never forget a detail for the time

we spent together, which seems like the whole of my

life.

From the time I drew my first breath in this world

until this moment, I spent part of each day of a full

half of my life, 14 years, thinking about, being with,

or talking to Billy, Bill, William Wilson.

As he promised when we got home from that wonderful

trip to Maine we recalculated our Wedding day and

moved it up one year.

We would be wed Saturday, June 27, 1998.

I've carried on my working life and am doing well.

The hit the travel industry took from the 9/11 tragedies only

prolonged my hiatus from work, but that all seems to be behind

us, business-wise. As a nation, the recovery is much

longer. I've heard from some 9/11 victims who had

their loves ripped from them even more cruelly than my

situation, and we try to comfort each other. Their

reminders are endless though, because of the media.

It has been 20 months since I lost the love of my

life. For the past few months I have had a special

friend, the person from my stories I call "Russell".

He has been a pillar of support for me and I am afraid

I have used him taking advantage of his kindness and

affection for me. However, in getting through this

part of our story I feel I can finally open up to him

so we can become lovers, so I can begin life anew,

William would have wanted it that way, I am sure.

I want to finish all 10 of the stories as William

outlined for himself, but they have gotten hard to do

when trying to start a new life with a new love.

If he were to read them, he might see a woman he does

not know. In my stories I say often how pretty or

beautiful I am, and while it may be true, I am not the

type of person to flaunt or brag of that, in real

life. I am shy, quiet and unassuming. If any of my

friends, or even Russell, knew of my walking, without

a stitch, on the nude beaches of the world that my job

brings me to, they would be shocked and amazed.

My old friends still think of me as "Carree Virgin

Mary".

When William pointed out to me that men stare at me

walking by them, I was mortified. I was that naive of

my looks and body, and how they affected men.

William ONLY knew the insatiable sexual being, the

multi-orgasmic nymph that I am.

I flaunt and brag in my stories for erotic effect to

make sure the reader knows the real me inside the

bedroom, behind the closed door.

I am a 28-year-old widow with a broken heart that will

never mend, but I have finally learned to let someone

else in.



I have chosen to open this little window for a moment

in response to several e-mails I've received saying

that my lover used me.

I was always a willing participant in everything and

any word from me would have stopped anything. I was

never ever in a position where I experienced

anything beyond what I was willing to give. A simple

look of pain, hurt or discomfort brought everything to

a halt, until I gave the OK. Be assured that was the

way it always was.

There are no two ways about the fact that, part of

anal sex is usually painful, just sometimes to lesser

degrees than others. Even the experience on the

kitchen table, where at one point I was in more than unusual

pain, it was pain that intensified the pleasure.

Now, that does not mean that I enjoyed the pain, I

can assure you I am not into that. It's just that the

pain and the pleasure sensations are very much the

same, at certain junctures.

Also, each time we experienced anal intercourse, we

DID think it was the ultimate lovemaking, the nadir of

closeness. But, in base reality, the simple kiss was

always the ultimate, and most intimate.

I am telling you this because I did not want you to

think that I was not in control of whether or not I

accepted the commission of the act. If I was not

agreeable and I protested, it ended.

The act of anal intercourse was a substitute for real

intercourse, which we considered too risky. While some

consider many of the acts we did together to be risky

sex, please remember that we had never been with other

partners, so those acts then become minimal risks,

health wise.

While the stories of anal love or bottom sex are

featured in many of our accounts from my diaries,

these are about the only times they occurred, save a

few very personal experiences that no one will never

hear about. Later William realized, as an erotic story

reader himself, that there was a great voyeuristic

interest in anal stories and chose to include most of

our experiences in his outlines

. . . .Carree